by RobertaME
Every Day is Your Last is a prequel to Lost Faith. They are written so that either book can be read first, but there are a few spoilers in Every Day is Your Last, so it's best that Lost Faith be read first.
I hope you enjoy them!
RobertaME
Eric Dunning was only twelve and in the last six months had watched his mother Erica waste away with cancer, eight years after the death of his father Jack in the early months of fighting in Afghanistan. Torn away from everything he has ever known, a happy southern California life with his mother and his best friend April, he is sent to the complete opposite side of the country to live with an aunt and cousin he has never met. Enduring one trauma after another, circumstances alter the way he sees life, God, and himself in ways he could never have imagined.
Set against the backdrop of rural northern New Hampshire in the 2010s, Lost Faith combines elements of coming-of-age, transformation, self-discovery, and romance, interwoven with a potential answer to the question, "Why does a loving God allow good people to suffer?" It is written as a companion story to the novel, Every Day is Your Last.
Copyright © 2019, 2021 Roberta Elder - All Rights Reserved
130,129 words
This is a work of fiction. The names, characters, businesses, places, events, locales, and incidents herein are either the products of the authors imagination or are used in a fictitious manner. Any resemblance to actual persons, living or dead, or actual events or firms is purely coincidental. No part of this publication may be reproduced, stored in a retrieval system, or transmitted in any form or by any means, without the prior permission in writing and signed by the author, nor be otherwise circulated in any form other than that in which it is published and without a similar condition including this condition being imposed upon the subsequent publisher.
Attachment | Size |
---|---|
![]() | 1.68 MB |
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Eric looked out the window of the cab through rivers of raindrops that ran down the side of the roof in little streams. The sun was just reaching the ebb of twilight in the wet October sky as he opened the cab door and stepped out onto the muddy driveway in front of the house that was to be where he would live from now on. He couldn't call it home; that was back in Newport Beach.
The scent of rain and the faint hint of ozone combined with the imposing edifice, marble pillars standing to either side of four perfect marble steps up to the massive oak front door, to create a frightening scene. The twelve-year-old gulped as he'd had no idea what his aunt Heather's home would be like when he'd left Southern California. He had thought that even in twenty-ten northern New Hampshire would all be farms and rustic shacks made of hewn logs. The last thing he had expected was what appeared to him to be a mansion.
The cab driver irately came around the vehicle, stomping through the mud quickly. "Hey kid! You owe me another thirty-eight fifty!"
Startled by the man and his situation, Eric lost his footing and slipped in the mud, falling backwards onto his rear. Looking up at the imposing and obviously irritated man as mud and rain soaked into his ratty jeans, he blinked up at him. "I... I gave you all I had left." He pointed toward the massive building. "Th-they should be able to p-pay the r-rest, sir!"
Pulling the child up by his jacket accompanied by the sound of seams popping, the cabby growled at him. "They better be able to pay kid, or I'm calling the cops!" He dragged Eric up the fine marble steps, the youth noting that their passage left the only blemishes on the pristine wrap-around porch. Banging on the door in one continuous stream of noise, the cabby nearly fell through the doorway when it opened.
Eric looked into the house and saw a monstrously huge man in a tuxedo jacket staring at them with a look of near disdain. He was obviously well muscled and very tall, seeming at least half again as tall as Eric's four foot-ten height. He guessed he could use each leg of the man's pant legs as a sleeping bag.
The stranger stepped into the doorway, blocking most of it. "May I help you, sir?" he said in low even tones. "What is your business here?"
The cabby was initially intimidated, but determined to get what was owed to him. "Look Jeeves, you know this kid?" He hoisted Eric onto his tiptoes.
The man in the doorway looked emotionlessly down at the dangling child who had a terrified and broken look in his young eyes. "I have never seen him before sir, however..."
Even as he spoke, the cabby lifted Eric up by the jacket with his free hand, popping more seams on the sleeves as he hoisted the child completely off his feet. "You little thief! Think I have nothing better to do than... Ah!" He screamed as the man in the doorway gripped his arm like a vice, making him drop Eric unceremoniously onto the soiled and torn seat of his pants. "Lego of me!" he screamed, finally stepping away as the giant man released him. "What're you, crazy!" he yelled.
Clearing his throat, the huge man answered, "I only acted to prevent you from harming the boy, sir." Looking down at the child, he bent at the waist and offered a hand to him. "I am Fredrick, Madame Hargrave's butler. Would you, young sir, be Eric Dunning?"
Nodding as Fredrick helped him back up, he stammered shyly, "Y-yes, sir."
The driver moved up again cautiously. "Say...what's the gag here? You said you didn't know him!"
"I have never met young Master Eric before, sir." Fredrick replied smartly, "However, he was expected... though not until next week at the soonest."
"Well, the kid still owes me thirty-eight fifty for his fare! I hauled him all the way out here from Boston-Manchester and he shorted me! I ought to call the cops!"
"Fredrick?" a light feminine voice said from behind the butler. "What's going on?"
"Just an issue regarding young Master Dunning, Madame Hargrave." he replied with a slight turn of the head. "It appears he is here far in advance of when you were expecting him. There is also a... cab driver... insisting on an additional fee for the fare, Madame."
Watching as Fredrick moved back into the house, a woman came into Eric's view. Heather Hargrave was dressed in a formal gown of pink satin and lace, organza sleeves extending almost all the way to her fingertips. Her lovely blonde hair was curled and coifed perfectly to frame her beautiful countenance centered around two of the bluest eyes Eric had ever seen. As she looked down at him with a concerned expression, he felt ashamed of his disheveled appearance just being in her presence.
The driver, hoping to just get his money and go, cleared his throat. "Evening, lady! I drove the kid here all the way from Boston-Manchester and... well... he shorted my fare! Then this guy grabs me and almost breaks my arm!"
Fredrick bowed slightly to her and whispered in her ear. She sighed as she looked at the two strangers before saying, "Very well, Fredrick. Pay him what he is due."
Retrieving two twenty-dollar bills, Fredrick handed them to the driver. "The change and a receipt, if you please, sir." he intoned flatly.
Snatching the money from his meaty hands, the cabby grumbled and went back to his vehicle, Fredrick moving out the doorway to follow him.
"Won't you come in?" Heather said lovingly.
Stepping slowly and cautiously into the house, Eric's shoes squished with each footfall, making him embarrassed for even being in her lovely home. "S-sorry I'm such a m-mess. I... I fell d-down outside... Mrs. Hargrave?"
"You may call me 'Aunt Heather', Eric. And don't worry about the mess. Though you might want to remove those shoes!" she said lightly. Sweeping her hand toward a marble bench along the wall opposite the door, Eric could now see it was actually the side of an ornate marble stairway.
Making his way over to it, he sat down just as Fredrick came back in; the sound of the cab speeding off into the rainy night.
"Eric?" his aunt Heather asked. "Don't you have any luggage or bags? Were they still in the cab?"
He slowly shook his head. "They... they were lost somewhere when I changed planes... Detroit maybe? I... I asked the lady at the counter about them. She just gave me a number to call. She... she said they might be able to have them in a few days or so."
Heather looked down at the child who she hadn't seen since he was three years old. Her sister-in-law's son, Eric's defeated and vacant visage vaguely resembled both of his deceased parents, but favored Erica and her late husband's side of the family more. But his hair looks so much like Jack's! she noted of the boy's bedraggled dirty-blonde locks. Smiling at him sweetly as he started pealing his soggy shoes and socks off, she swallowed back her own inner turmoil over the family's loss and lowered herself down to the floor so she wouldn't tower over him.
"We weren't expecting you until the first of the month, Eric. I am sorry that we aren't prepared for your arrival, but I do hope you come to love living at Hargrave House, sweetie!"
Eric froze as she called him sweetie, the same thing his mother had always called him. His thoughts drifted to their final time together.
Erica Dunning smiled weakly as her son entered her hospital room. "Hi, sweetie!" she greeted him weakly, barely able to turn her head toward the door.
He swallowed hard, the sight of his mother so weak and helpless making him want nothing more than to just cry, but he made himself smile. "Hey, Mom! Looking beautiful as always! Coming home today?" he chirped.
She tried to keep smiling at him, but her strength was ebbing quickly. Her usual reply of 'Thank you, Eric! I bet I'm home by tomorrow!' was one of the ways they coped with her leukemia, but today she just sadly shook her head, knowing it was simply false hope. "No, sweetie."
Pausing as his smile fell like sunset, Eric shook his head. "No, Mom! You're supposed to say..."
She coughed painfully, reaching a hand out to her only child. "I'm sorry, sweetie! I'm afraid today I will be going Home... to be with your father." Her eyes drifted away aimlessly. "My Jack!" she almost whispered, her heart breaking for him just one more time.
"Mom?" Eric said taking her hand. It was cold and fragile, almost as though if he squeezed it too hard it would crack into powder like fine china. "You... you can't go! I... I need you!"
"I know, sweetie!" she said as a tear ran down her cheek. "I don't want to... but God has other plans for us... and sometimes they're hard to endure. My biggest regret is that I won't be here for you. Taking care of you, watching you grow, and being there for you when you need me. That and there's so many things I wanted to tell you when you got old enough to understand. About your father, about our family, about love and life."
"There are so many stories I wanted to tell you. Like how you got your name?" She laughed lightly as she remembered the day. "The doctor was so sure you were going to be a girl, we didn't even have a boy name picked! Jack wanted to call you 'Erica Bella'... 'Erica the beautiful'!" She laughed again at the memory of the wondrous sense of humor that was his gift, coughs eventually overtaking the light chuckles. "You should have seen his face when we found out the doctor was wrong and he had a son!"
Eric smiled weakly. "I guess he was pretty jazzed, huh Mom!" He tried to keep his tone up beat.
Nodding, his mother slowly blinked and smiled. "And then stammered like an idiot over what we were going to call you!"
He nodded at her. "I like my name just fine, Mom. Eric Bell is a great name!"
Chuckling once more, Erica's smile evaporated with her waning strength. "There's so much more. Things I wanted you to know about your father. What kind of man he was, why I loved him so much, why he had to do what he did... but it just isn't meant to be, sweetie. I'm sorry... so very sorry!" Her eyes closed long enough that Eric thought she might have fallen asleep, but a moment later she opened them once more.
"How are the Stones treating you, sweetie?"
Eric sighed as he looked down, thinking about his best friend April Stone. Her parents had taken him in six months earlier when his mother had been admitted to the hospital expecting only a short stay, but the longer it had gone on, the less welcoming her parents had become. "It's OK, I guess. Am... am I going to be staying with them for a long time, Mom?"
She shook her head once more. "No. I've written to your aunt Heather. She was my brother Richie's wife before he and your father died. She wrote me back to say she was going to take care of you from now on. You're going to go live with her in New Hampshire."
His eyes grew wide. "New Hampshire? But... I'll be so far away! Away from April... from my school... from all my friends! Why can't I stay here?" Eric's eyes began to well up with tears. "Why can't you stay here?"
"I wish I could, sweetie!" she said as she weakly released her hand from his and wiped the tear from his cheek. "I really do! But sometimes things happen and we don't get a choice... we just have to accept them. They make us who we are." Her strength gone, her hand slid back down onto her bed lifelessly. "I love you, sweetie. Always have, always will." her eyes closing once more.
"I love you too, Mom." He paused and waited for her to open her eyes again, but the machine next to her bed started beeping loudly. "Mom? Mom!? Mom!" As he watched her, tears dripping down his cheeks, a nurse came and escorted him out of her room for the last time.
"Eric!?" Heather said a fourth time, this time nearly shouting at the child who had gone almost catatonic for several seconds in the middle of taking off his shoes. "Eric, sweetie?" She watched as he blinked back to life, tears forming in his eyes as he resumed his task. "Are you alright?"
He nodded and stuffed his soaking wet socks into his old and worn out ill-fitting shoes. "I... I'll be fine, Aunt Heather." he sniffed.
Seeing for herself just how traumatized he was, but wanting to teach him to be a man as Erica had asked in her last letter, Heather stood and cleared her throat. "Very well. We were just about to sit down to dinner. I normally insist that we dress for dinner. It's our tradition, but seeing as you have nothing else..." She turned to her butler. "Fredrick, please take him upstairs, draw him a bath, and deliver his clothes to Franchesca for laundering as quickly as possible. Dinner will have to be postponed until he can join us."
"Yes, Madame." he said in his deep monotone. Taking Eric by the hand, he walked her nephew around the railing and up the stairs.
Eric finally started taking in how truly huge his aunt's house was. The entryway emptied out into a large living room with a high ceiling. On the right wall were the expansive front windows he'd seen from the outside. The opposite wall had a spacious archway into another room with a gaping fireplace beyond it. The room was decorated with an openness to it, all with very fine antiques.
Following the huge man up the stairs, he noticed the walls decorated with old oil paintings of people who must have lived long ago. Planters, figurines, and vases filled almost every corner and crevice of what he'd seen of the house so far. Thinking it should smell musty and old, he was surprised that instead it smelled clean and fresh, as though the house had been built only yesterday. Reaching the second landing, he turned to the right, following Fredrick up six more steps, and out into a hallway off to his right. Just as he came around the corner and into the hall, he came face-to-face with a girl.
Drawing in a breath of surprise, Eric nearly shrieked. The girl who stood before him was a miniature version of his aunt Heather. Soft, long, blonde curls fell around her neck and shoulders while vibrant blue eyes stared widely back at him, looking him up and down. Her face was a creamy complexion with a cute nose above pink lips that sat agape.
Mirroring the up and down look the girl gave him, he saw what his aunt had meant when she said they 'dressed' for dinner. The girl wore a pretty pink and white dress that came down just past her knees, the kind he'd only ever seen in windows of high-quality dress shops when he was out with his mother. White stockings adorned her thin legs and pink patent leather sandals covered her tiny feet.
She recovered more quickly than he did, smiling at him gaily. "You must be Eric! I'm Faith!" Her face growing confused, she added, "Mamma told us you weren't going to be here until after Halloween."
Recovering the use of his tongue, Eric slowly shook his soaking wet and muddy head. "Um... n-nice to meet you Faith. I'm Eric..." he blushed. "...but... you know that. S-sorry." He fidgeted as his torn and soaked jacket dripped onto the pristine marble floor, the scent of rain and mud filling the hall. "So... do you always get dressed up like that? Just for dinner?"
Nodding, her smile seemed almost infectious were it not for the crushing weight of loneliness in his soul. "Uh-huh! Do you like my dress?" Faith spun around and began circling him, looking at his clothes. "Is that where you're going? To get cleaned up and dressed for dinner?"
He shrugged absently. "I guess. I don't have any nice clothes or nuthin' like yours, though." He felt like he should make a joke about that, but instead he just apathetically stood there... too hurt and scared to care.
Faith turned to Fredrick. "What'll he wear to dinner, Freddie?" she asked him innocently.
"It appears the only option is what he has on now, Miss Faith." the muscular butler answered. Turning to Eric, he urged him on as he then turned down the hallway. "This way, young Master Eric."
"It's very nice meeting you, Eric!" Faith sang as she danced around behind him toward the stairway. "I hope you'll like it here!"
His eyes were fixed on her as she walked away, slowly following the butler blindly, Faith still smiling at him as he watched her until she disappeared down the stairs. At last turning his head in the direction he'd been walking he saw Fredrick open a door on the left side of the hallway. Following the man into the room, Eric stopped at the doorway, too stunned to move.
The room before him was easily three times larger than his old room and beautifully decorated. Cream silk and white lace curtains adorned the two windows in the far wall and lush carpet the color of beach sand covered the floor. A matched set of antique stained oak furniture decorated the room, and creamy floral wallpaper brightened every wall, reflecting the light from the crystal chandelier in the middle of the ceiling. It was breathtaking.
Turning, Fredrick saw the boy stopped in the doorway. Doubling back, he took the child's hand, leading him between the vanity and dresser that sat along the hallway wall to their left and the four-poster bed on their right. The headboard of the bed was finely carved with vines and roses, and silk pillows decorated it flawlessly along with a comforter that matched the color of the carpet. The blanket was so thick and fluffy that it alone seemed to add six inches to the height of the bed.
"This is to be your room, Master Eric." Fredrick said flatly. "And this is your private bath." He led Eric through a doorway situated between the dresser along the hallway wall and the giant bed.
The bathroom light came on with a loud snap, Eric squinting into the room cautiously as though he might have been intruding. Looking ahead of him, he could see white wooden shelves built into the far wall with more on the wall to the left; to the right sat an old but pristine white porcelain pedestal sink. Above it hung a huge ornate wall mirror with a fine stained oak frame and gold piping that ran round the edges. Passing it as he entered, he caught his reflection and turned away at the sight, his dirty-blonde hair, muddy and unkempt, hanging down past his shoulders in a tangled mess.
Opposite the sink he saw more wooden shelves hanging from the wall, each filled with towels, washcloths, and other linens the same beach-sand color as the carpet in the bedroom. The marble tiles in the floor each had an intricate swirl of gray, brown, and dirty orange that seemed to have been matched to the rest of the decor.
Stopping, he watched Fredrick approach the white porcelain clawfoot tub that occupied the entire far end of the bathroom. Nearly six feet long and half as wide, a curtain of white wispy material surrounded it that almost seemed to float in the air with the slightest breeze. Between the tub and sink, along the wall to his right, he saw an old style toilet with the tank several feet above the bowl and a chain hanging down. A finely carved marble handle at the end of the chain matched the marbled pattern on the floor.
Warming the water, Fredrick pulled the curtain and rotated another handle, sending the water up a golden pipe and out the white porcelain showerhead.
"Madame Hargrave called for a bath, however given the late hour, I believe a shower would be more prudent." He stood and looked at Eric. "Remove your clothes and place them in the basket there." he indicated a rectangular white wicker laundry basket sitting opposite the toilet. Removing a large cream-colored towel from the shelves, he hung it from the ornate gold rod that resided on the wall between the toilet and the tub.
Moving aside as Fredrick silently exited the room, closing the door behind him, Eric stripped down and dropped his wet and dirty clothes into the hamper. In doing so he saw that the cab driver had torn the sleeves from the shoulders of his threadbare shirt. The pants were iffy at best, with wide holes in the knees, a tear in the seat, and legs far too short for his size, while the shoes that he'd left in the entryway were likewise falling apart. It left him one set each of socks and underwear, the former with holes in the toes and the latter tight fitting. He'd grown several inches in the last six months, but the Stones had refused to pay for any new clothes for him.
Entering the shower, he stood in the warm water and relaxed a moment as the grime of travel began to wash away. Looking around, he saw a small golden shelf on the wall near the faucet that contained a bar of soap, a bottle of shampoo, body wash, and a safety razor.
Picking up the shampoo absently, he washed his bedraggled 'beach bum' hair, as April had always called it. He'd meant to get a haircut before leaving Newport Beach, liking his longer style but wanting it better kept, however the Stones had wanted him out and gone as soon as possible, barely leaving time to pack, let alone see to a haircut.
Idly wondering what city his luggage had wandered off to, he noticed a feminine scent began filling the room. Thinking that his aunt Heather had come into the room, after checking to see he was alone, he brought a hand down to sniff the lather coating it and his hair. Looking again at the toiletries, only then realizing that they were all for an adult woman, not a young boy.
Sighing apathetically, he heard the door open and watched through the gauzy curtain and plastic liner surrounding him as an eclipsing shadow entered, retrieved his clothing remnants from the basket, and exited. Rinsing out his hair, he sniffed it and confirmed his suspicions. His hair no longer stank of mud and sweat, but rather the girly perfumed scent of lilac and roses.
Unfazed, he next examined the body wash and saw it was something called Japanese Cherry Blossom. Not knowing what that was, he set it aside and sniffed the bar of soap and was overpowered with a strong floral scent. Knowing he had to get clean with something, he used the soap and turned off the water once he was clean and rinsed.
Reaching out and pulling in the soft towel, he wrapped it around his shoulders and stood in the tub for several minutes until he began shivering. The lights flickered twice as he stood in the damp tub, the sound of the storm outside that had mildly abated on his arrival seemed to regain its strength with every passing minute.
Slowly making his way out, he dried himself, becoming very aware that he was now all alone, in a strange place thousands of miles from everyone he had ever known, and had nothing but a borrowed towel. He missed April terribly, and had been missing his mother so much that he thought he might die of heartache. He also found himself missing all his girl friends from school, and even missed his teachers and April's grouchy parents. Most especially at the moment though, he missed his luggage.
Once dry, he slowly walked back into the bedroom with the towel wrapped around his chest, taking a seat on a small chair. He sighed and looked at the room again. It was then that he noticed that the room had a distinctively feminine style, and even the chair he sat in was for the lady's vanity he sat next to. Sadly, he shook his head. "I'm in a girl's room." he said absently. Thinking that he felt he should be angrier about it than he was, he lacked even the desire to be mad about it.
"I'm sorry, but this is the only available room to give you." Heather said from the doorway, a slight bit of irritation evident in her voice. "As I said, we weren't expecting you until next week. We thought we had more time."
"Oh!" Eric exclaimed, startled at her sudden presence. "I um... I wasn't... just... uh..." He hung his head in shame at seeming to complain about the lavish room she'd given him. "I'm sorry, Aunt Heather."
Entering the room, she sighed wearily. "Always be mindful of what you say, sweetie. You never know who may be listening."
"I know." he shrugged. "I wasn't really complaining about the room. It was more just like, a comment. It's really nice. Beautiful, really! I just feel like my entire life is one big disaster. I mean, what else can go wrong?"
Almost as soon as the words were out of his mouth, all the lights went out.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
CAUTION - emotional pain/open emotional wounds
--
Gasping as the room was plunged into darkness, a crack of thunder rolling over the house several seconds later, Eric thought he heard someone squeal in fear. After it passed, he found himself wrapped in his aunt Heather's arms and he could finally hear the sobs of fright escaping his own lips.
"It's alright, sweetie!" she soothed the terrified child. "I've got you! You're alright!"
Petting his head to soothe him, she noticed the sweet floral scent of women's shampoo drifting through the room. Leaning forward, she was mortified to learn that her suspicions were correct. "Oh, sweetie!" she exclaimed. "I think I understand why you were upset before. You had to use the lady's shampoo and soap that was in the shower, didn't you?" Feeling the orphan boy just shrug in apathy, she sighed. "We really weren't prepared for you! First thing tomorrow, I promise we'll drive down to Berlin and buy you all new clothes to wear and all the other things you'll need like shampoo. How does that sound?"
"You might have to do it without me." Eric answered as he slowly pulled away from his aunt. "I was looking at my shirt and pants when I took them off and they got torn pretty good, so I don't think I'll have any clothes 'till then." He looked up at her. "What'll I do?"
"I've had my maid Franchesca focus exclusively on getting your clothes repaired, cleaned, and..." She stopped when she had a horrible thought. Just as she was about to say something, a light moved out in the hallway. Turning to look, she watched as Fredrick brought in two oil lamps.
"Pardon the interruption, Madame, but I thought you could use this." he said as he handed her one of them. "I have called the power company. There is an extensive blackout over the area that is not expected to be resolved anytime soon. Shall I turn the gas system on, Madame?"
"Thank you, Fredrick," she smiled at him as she took the lamp. "I would appreciate it if you could see to it as soon as possible."
"Franchesca also wanted me to deliver a message, Madame." he said bowing to her slightly. "I delivered a lamp to her and Cook, as well as one to Miss Faith. Franchesca said to tell you that with the power out she would not be able to launder or dry young Master Eric's clothes and that the shirt and pants will have to be repaired, if they can be at all. The damage is extensive. Even if they can be, she advised that air drying in this weather could take days, Madame."
"Thank you, I just realized that myself." she admitted. Looking down at Eric, she noticed his eyes were vacant and hollow, not even seeming to care and hardly even noting he had nothing to wear and wouldn't until at least the next day. "Fredrick, please bring me the smallest things you have to wear. I don't care what they are, but he needs something!"
The butler arched an eyebrow. "Madame, I will do as you request, but I'm afraid it will do little good. He is much too small for anything I have. I will return shortly." At that he turned and left, walking quickly down the hallway toward his own room. Less than a minute later he returned once more with a pair of workout shorts, underwear, and a T-shirt. "As Madame requested."
"Thank you, Fredrick!" she smiled. "At least this way he'll have more than a towel." Handing them to her young charge, she helped him to stand again. "Take these into the bath and put them on, sweetie."
A glimmer of hope fought its way through his despair as he smiled weakly. "Thank you, Aunt Heather." he mumbled. Following her into the bathroom, his aunt placed one of the lamps on a shelf next to the door and left to let him dress. He quickly determined the futility of trying to get the shorts or underwear to stay up, carrying them and the lamp back out into the bedroom wearing only the T-shirt that hung off one shoulder, leaving it bare.
"Aunt Heather?" he almost cried as he handed the bottoms to her. "I... I couldn't get these to stay. They're way too big." He pulled up the baggy T-shirt at his neck with one hand to try and keep it over both shoulders. It was thankfully so big he could manage to wear it as an oversized nightshirt, but unfortunately it only came down to the middle of his thighs.
Heather sighed in frustration. Handing the unusable clothes back to her employee, she nodded. "Thank you for the effort, Fredrick. That will be all for the moment. Please see to the lights." Watching the giant man walk silently back out into the hall, she looked at Eric once again. "It's hardly better than the towel, is it?" she asked rhetorically.
Looking at the floor, he just shrugged. "Not really. It won't stay up unless I hold it." His head came up as he heard the sound of clicking approaching the door to his room, a light accompanying it.
"Mamma?" Faith asked tentatively as she stepped into the room carrying another lamp. "I'm getting pretty hungry. Can we eat soon?"
"Soon." her mother replied simply.
"Is Freddie going to light the lights again?" she asked with a smile.
"Yes, dear." Heather replied. Seeing the confusion on Eric's face, she explained. "Fredrick is turning on the gas for the old gaslight system that your uncle Richard restored after we bought this house. See, back when this house was built, electricity was new and most houses had lights that ran on gas, which is what people used before electric lights."
Remembering with a smile she added, "Richard wanted it for the practical benefit of having a source of light in power outages, but mostly for the pleasure of having a truly historical home that could stand as a testament to old world ingenuity and ideas of beauty." She looked back to Eric ruefully. "But enough of that. We need to get you dressed in something." she sighed, lightning flashing through the windows. "I would give you something of your uncle Richard's, but I gave those away years ago."
"What's the matter, Mamma?" Faith asked as thunder rolled over the building once more.. "Doesn't Eric have anything to wear?"
"Just one of Fredrick's T-shirts, dear." her mother answered. "His clothes are all damaged or missing, and I don't know what else to do."
Looking at Eric carefully, Faith saw he was just about her size. "He could wear something of mine, Mamma. I wouldn't mind sharing for tonight."
Heather looked up at her daughter and smiled sweetly. "Faith, that's very generous of you, but it wouldn't be appropriate. I'm not about to force him into a girl's dress." Mumbling to herself she added, "Jack would never forgive me!" She looked over at her departed friend's child who stood there apathetically, not seeming to even notice they were talking about him.
"Maybe you don't have to force him, Mamma." Faith opined. "Maybe he wouldn't care!" Looking at Eric she asked bluntly, "Would you like to borrow one of my dresses? Just to have something to wear for tonight? I think you would look nice as a girl!"
He stood numbly, almost unaware of the question. "Huh? Oh." He looked up at his aunt. "I... I don't think Aunt Heather thinks it's a good idea." He blushed heavily as he realized how little he had on and was suddenly grateful that the room was so dark.
Seeing him grip the T-shirt neck even tighter with his one hand and tug at the side with his other to try and make it longer, Heather put her hand to her brow and bit her lip. There was no way she was going to ever suggest putting Jack and Erica's son in a dress, even considering the situation, but she was running out of ideas. He can't stay up here all night! she reasoned.
Faith refused to accept the situation as hopeless. "Mamma! He's got to wear something, right? Besides, Freddie's T-shirt is basically a dress! It's even shorter than any of my dresses! What else can he do?"
"I don't know, Faith dear, but boys just don't wear dresses and that's that." she answered, almost snapping at her. "It's not appropriate. Do you know what would happen if it got out that I had dressed young Eric in girls' clothes? I'd simply die of embarrassment!"
Hearing her say she would die put Eric over the edge. He began to silently cry, tears falling down his cheeks, unable to stop them. He tried to pretend it wasn't happening and didn't even try to wipe them away in fear of calling attention to it while his aunt and cousin debated. He hoped that the darkness of the room would hide it, but his hopes were in vain.
Pausing in her argument, Faith looked at him. "Mamma! He's crying!" she said sympathetically.
Heather turned and saw his noiseless tears, misunderstanding the reason. Moving to her knees and taking him in her arms once more, she tried to comfort him. "Eric, I swear to you, I will not make you wear a dress! I promise, sweetie!" Looking over at her daughter, she shot her a stern look. "Faith! Don't you see how upset it makes him just to mention it?"
Shaking his head and trying to form words, the thought of seeing his last living relation die, just like everyone else in his life had... his father, his grandparents, and then his mother... couldn't be pushed from his mind. Death seemed to surround him and follow him like a gleeful tormenter, threatening to leave him utterly alone. "Everybody I know dies." he cried. "I'm gonna be all alone!"
Pulling away to regard him in surprise, Heather realized too late that she'd incorrectly assumed the cause of his distress and quickly hugged him again. "Oh, sweetie! I didn't mean that! It's just a figure of speech! I wouldn't really die from that! Even so, you'll never be alone! You'd still have Faith!"
Eric took his turn to cleverly misunderstand and got angry. "I don't!" he shouted, pulling away from her as lightning flashed through the rain-soaked window. "I hate God! He took away everyone from me! He left me alone! I'll never believe in Him ever again!" Overcome, he began to sob openly and ran to his aunt's arms as the thunder rolled by, the T-shirt falling off one shoulder again as he released it to hold her.
"No, sweetie!" she tried to comfort him, noticing that her daughter was starting to tear up as well. "I didn't mean it that way! I meant that you would have your cousin Faith!" She rocked him gently as Faith came up and held Heather across her back. "Besides, you shouldn't say that. God loves us, sweetheart!"
His tears beginning to abate, Eric slowly pulled away from her. "Th-then... w-why...." Unable to continue, he resumed crying as she pulled him back into her arms and held him once more.
Waiting until his tears slowed again, she asked his question for him. "Why does God let bad things happen to us? Oh, sweetie! That's a big question!" Smiling, she realized she might have an answer for him. "You know, your daddy Jack used to have an answer for that. He used to say, 'All the things that happen to us, good and bad, are what make us who we are. They need to happen or we would end up being someone else.'"
"I don't know if he was right, but what I do know is this. The bad things that happen, like people dying? That's not God's fault, sweetie. That's people's fault. Either because someone did something bad... like what happened to your father and your uncle Richard... or they didn't do something good that they should have... like not helping someone in need. God wants us to love each other and take care of one another. It's people that let bad things happen. He has to let people make their own decisions and live with the consequences. He can't make us love each other. Do you understand, sweetie?"
He listened and he understood what she was trying to say, but his pain wouldn't let him accept the answer. Not wanting to upset his aunt again though, he forced himself to stop crying and nod. "Sort of, I guess." he lied.
Knowing he wasn't convinced, she pressed the point. "Your mommy knew she was dying. Didn't she tell you she was going to go be with your daddy?"
Shrugging, he stifled another sob before nodding grudgingly.
"I know what it's like to lose your parents." Heather shared. "I lost mine when I was in college, shortly before I met your uncle. So I do understand, at least a little."
He sniffed and looked at his beautiful aunt's face smiling while talking about her own parents' deaths. "Don't you miss 'em?" he asked.
Smiling wistfully, Heather closed her eyes. "Of course, sweetie, but I know they're here with me, now and always. When I close my eyes and think about them, I can feel them with me." After a moment, she looked at him. "Close your eyes and remember your mother with the best memory you have of her!" When she saw him close his eyes, she continued. "Now see her in your mind, and feel her in your heart, and tell me what you see."
Eric smiled faintly. "I remember our last trip to the beach this Easter. April went with us. She's my best friend. We had so much fun! We collected shells, splashed in the ocean, made sand sculptures, and watched the sun set on the ocean." By the time he finished, he had stopped crying and his aunt was wiping away his tears.
"There! Feeling better, sweetie?" Heather asked.
Nodding, Eric wiped his eyes with his forearm. "Yeah. I just get really sad about it sometimes. I miss her so much!" Hearing his stomach growl, he fixed the T-shirt and gripped it again with a hand. Holding his stomach with the other, he looked up at her. "Aunt Heather? Can we go eat?" he asked, trying to change the subject.
Having a degree in psychology and being a licensed therapist, Heather could tell he was deflecting, but felt he probably needed to let the matter drop for now. "Well, you still have a problem."
"Oh yeah." he grumbled. "Clothes." Not wanting to leave the darkness of the room in only a T-shirt that barely covered him, Eric chose hunger over potential humiliation. He shrugged, glanced at Faith for a moment, and blushed. "That's OK. I can just go to bed. I can eat tomorrow when I have something to wear. I'm not really that hungry." he said as another stomach growl gave the truth to his lie. In reality, he hadn't eaten anything all day except a bag of peanuts on the plane.
Heather turned to her daughter. "Dear, would you please wait outside for a minute? I need to talk to Eric alone."
"Why?" she asked innocently.
"Faith." she answered impatiently. "Just wait in the hall with your lamp and close the door." Seeing her daughter close the door behind her, she turned to Eric. "Sit down, sweetie."
Eric shook his head. "I'd rather stand, Aunt Heather." he said meekly.
Seeing him tug on the T-shirt again, it was Heather's turn to blush slightly. "It hadn't occurred to me that if you sit down..."
He nodded shyly as he pulled on the T-shirt again, wishing he could make it stretch to his feet.
"Well, I would get you a robe to wear, but I don't believe Fredrick has one. Even if he did, it would be far too big." she thought out loud, hoping that the process might spark an idea she'd missed. "Any others I could give you would be one of Faith's or mine. At least a girl's robe isn't too inappropriate, given the circumstances. Alternatively I could just let you eat dinner up here and make sure you were left alone so no one would be around for you to get embarrassed. What do you think?"
Shrugging absently, he sniffed and held back tears. "I guess I should just eat up here alone. I... I guess I just need to get used to being alone."
Moving down to him and hugging him once more, her heart was breaking for him. "Oh, sweetie! You know I don't like it any more than you do! I... I just don't see any other options. I'll leave it up to you. What would you rather do?"
He thought about what it would be like eating in his room alone in the dark and almost started crying again. "I don't want to be alone!"
Rocking him gently, Heather petted his head and held him. "No, sweetheart! You'll never be alone again, if I can help it!" Letting go of him while still holding his shoulders, she smiled at him. "I'll tell you what. I'll get you something that can get you through dinner and bed, then in the morning we'll have Fredrick run into town and buy you enough things that we can take a trip down to Berlin to buy you all new clothes! I promise, no one will laugh or treat you mean... and you won't be alone. OK?"
Too numb with grief and despair to care, Eric nodded absently and trudged alongside his aunt toward the bedroom door. As it opened he saw his cousin Faith standing in a brightly illuminated hallway with a concerned look on her face.
"Did... did the power come back on?" Eric asked hopefully as his aunt blew out her lamp and set it next to Faith's on a small table along the hallway wall.
"No!" Faith laughed happily. "Freddie just turned on the gaslights! Aren't they pretty?"
"Why don't we go into Faith's room for something to cover up with?" the girl's mother suggested, noting that Eric had momentarily forgotten how exposed he was, even moreso in the bright light of the hallway.
Faith's eyes widened as she smiled. "Really?" She turned across the hall to her bedroom door and flung it open, racing in and to the right.
"Faith!" Heather shouted. "Wait just a minute!" She started towards Faith's room, already lit with its own gaslights, but stopped herself as she didn't want to leave Eric alone. "Come on, sweetie. Don't worry. I'll explain it to her." She held out her hand to him.
Taking her hand with his free one, the other still clutching the T-shirt's collar, he let her lead him into Faith's bedroom. Entering, he saw the room was similar to the one his aunt had given him, almost a mirror image, but decorated differently. The walls were a pale lavender with gray carpet, and the bed, a pink and white painted iron canopy instead of an oak poster bed, was on the adjacent wall to his left, the wall to the right instead occupied by two white painted wardrobes and an ornate dresser. There was a cluttered white vanity to his left that sat in the corner against the hallway wall alongside the bed and an ornate white nightstand and lamp between them with its twin on the opposite side.
He looked around further and counted three toy boxes, a My Little Pony changing screen, a dollhouse, and a small pink bookshelf, all scattered evenly and neatly around the room. There also appeared to be a doorway through the wall on the right between the dresser and the bookshelf that looked to be entry to another bathroom. Two large windows with lacy white curtains spotted with tiny red hearts were on the opposite wall. As they entered, his cousin had already opened one of the two wardrobes and was pulling out a pink and white satin dress that greatly resembled the one she wore. Turning to suggest it to her mother, Heather shook her head and stopped her suggestion before it even left her lips.
"Faith!" she said trying to keep her temper as she closed the bedroom door. "I did not say he was going to wear a dress, now did I?"
Once the door was closed, the room seemed even brighter than the hallway. He felt a sudden welling up of fear that made him want to run back to the darkness of his new room and hide, but he was even more afraid to be alone than of being exposed. In some ways the room reminded him of the room April had back in California, only bigger. His aunt's raised voice reminded him of the last time he'd seen his best friend.
April hugged Eric for the third time since they had entered the terminal. Red tear streaks marred her pretty young face as she kept having to push her long black hair out of her damp eyes knowing that her best friend was moving so far away, likely never to see him again. They’d been best friends since before either of them could remember; a permanent fixture in each of their lives. People almost never saw one without the other.
"It's just not fair, Eric!" she sobbed quietly in his ear as they hugged goodbye for the last time. "What am I going to do without you?"
Eric returned her hug tightly, never wanting to let go. April was the last constant in his young life marred by so much loss and change. Trying not to cry for April's sake, he steeled himself against the onslaught of sadness and the final loss that would end his life as he'd always known it. "It’ll be OK, April." he lied. "We have each other's e-mail and we can stay in touch that way. It won't be so bad. And you have lots of friends, still."
She sobbed quietly for a moment before replying, "But they aren't you, Eric!" Suddenly overcome with emotion, April pulled back slightly. Knowing how much she loved Eric, and only just recently beginning to realize she had feelings of more than friendship for him, she was overcome with the desire to give him his, and her, first real kiss. Just as she started to lean forward to kiss him, her mother pulled her away.
"Come on now, April. He needs to go and so do we!" she chided. "You've said your good-byes three times already!" Pulling on her daughter's arm, April went into hysterics.
"No! Mom! Just one more thing! No! Mom! Not yet! Eric!" April began to sob as she felt her fingertips leave Eric's outstretched hand.
Seeing April's mother pull her away crushed Eric's already breaking heart to dust. He wanted to run back into her arms and just let her hold him forever, but the look on her mother's face said very plainly, 'Don't!' Numbness suffused his being as April cried for him while all he could do was stand there.
Mr. Stone nodded forward. "Go on, boy. Your family's waiting for you. Good luck to you." Turning to his wife he muttered, "Get that girl under control and let's go home. I'm tired."
April's mother dragged her daughter by the arm and threatened her. "April! Stop embarrassing us or you'll regret it when we get home!"
Eric watched as his best friend was carted away, sobbing his name, as he turned towards the social worker there to see him boarded and safely on his way to his aunt.
"Eric?" Faith asked, the debate with her mother temporarily suspended as they noticed him silently crying once more for seemingly no reason.
"S-sorry." he said, wiping the tears away once more with his free hand as his voice remained even and unshaken, despite the tears. "I... I was just thinking about my best friend April and really missing her."
Handing him a tissue, Heather turned to Faith. "Now dear, let me explain. Eric doesn't want to play 'dress up'. He just needs something that will cover him while we eat. Please put the dress away." Seeing her daughter reluctantly obey, she turned to him. "Alright, sweetie. If you go in the bathroom there, you'll find a robe hanging on the back of the door. Go ahead and put it on and come back out when you're ready. I'll get you something for your feet so you won't get cold."
Nodding vacantly, his memories still threatening to drag him back down into the misery of pain and loneliness, he shuffled into the bathroom and closed the door as lightning flashed outside, another gaslight to the left of the door illuminating the room while the peal of thunder faded slowly away. Looking at the back of the door, he saw the robe and removed it from its hook.
It was white satin with a feminine floral pattern embroidered into it and puffy pink marabou cuffs, hem, and collar. Wrapping it around himself, he tied the knot as his cheeks burned with embarrassment knowing he was going to have to go out wearing it. Sighing in apathy, not even caring if they laughed at him, he opened the door and shambled back out again.
Seeing him wearing Faith's robe almost made Heather tell him to take it off and just make him go downstairs in the T-shirt, but she couldn't force him through the kind of humiliation he would endure if he exposed himself accidentally. Given the short length of the borrowed shirt, that eventuality was highly likely. His trauma was too fresh and too raw to force him into a potentially embarrassing situation, and his emotions were too fragile to leave him to eat alone. Sighing in acceptance, she bade him sit on Faith's bed as she slipped the matching slippers on his feet.
Eric tried to keep his legs together, but doing so prevented his aunt from putting on the slippers. "Sweetie, I need you to relax your leg for a moment so we can be done and go eat, OK?"
"Um... Aunt Heather?" he asked. "Could I at least wear my underwear? Even if they're wet?"
"I'm afraid they're more than just wet, Eric." she answered, finally getting one slipper on. "They would have been in the washing machine, so completely soaked, and full of soap. Even if we tried drying them over a fire, it would take hours before you could wear them. Are you that uncomfortable, sweetie?"
"Kinda, yeah." he admitted. "I'd wear them even soapy and dripping at this point, but I guess I'll just have to learn to do without." he finished with a defeated tone.
Faith intervened again. "Mamma, why don't you just let him wear a pair of mine? I mean, nobody will even see them!"
Heather closed her eyes and tried to control her reaction. She had a viscerally negative view of the idea, but Faith had made a valid point. No one would see them or even be able to tell they were there. The only legitimate reason to deny it would be if he didn't want to wear them. In the end, she turned to Eric. "Alright. Faith makes a valid point, but the choice must be yours." Coming up with an idea, she smiled at him as she headed for the bathroom. "Come with me, Eric."
Stopping at Faith's dresser as he followed her, she retrieved a pair of the plainest white underwear she could find and placed them on the bathroom counter. "You stay in here for two minutes then come out. Nobody will look to see if you put them on or not and the choice will then be completely yours. If you chose not to wear them, simply drop them in the hamper. Only you will know what your choice was."
Taking a breath, Heather continued. "If you wear them because it makes you more comfortable than nothing, you needn't feel any embarrassment over it because we won't know. If you don't wear them, you don't need to be embarrassed about not wearing underwear because we won't know that either. OK?" Seeing him shrug, she sighed and closed the door behind her.
Eric looked at the underwear as though they might jump off the counter and attack him. He didn't want to wear them, not even sure why he didn't, but not wearing anything was beginning to be unbearably uncomfortable. Using a variation of his aunt's idea, he closed his eyes and picked them up, putting them on by feel alone. He figured that if he didn't know what they looked like, he could pretend they were just another normal pair of briefs.
Once he was putting them on however, he quickly figured out that his idea was just wishful thinking. He could feel the lace around the waistband and leg holes and while he didn't know what it was made of, the material was defiantly not cotton.
Determining that it didn't matter anyway, he opened his eyes and pulled them on, standing in the T-shirt, robe, slippers, and undies until his aunt knocked on the door. "Coming." he said flatly. Exiting the bathroom, he at least felt more comfortably secure, but weird at the same time as every step made him know he was wearing girl's undies. The feminine robe and slippers didn't help matters.
When his aunt looked him over with his long and damp dirty-blonde hair combed back, it was all too easy for her to see him as a young girl, but she repressed the feeling. "I told you I would make it as easy as I could." Smiling reassuringly, she could tell by the way that his walk had changed what his choice had been. She didn't let her knowledge show, vowing to herself and his father Jack that she would make it up to him.
"It's fine, Aunt Heather." he mumbled "At least this is warmer than just the T-shirt."
She admonished Faith before they started toward the door. "Now Faith, you must remember we are to help young Eric feel comfortable in the necessity of the moment, not like he's a plaything for your amusement." Faith damped her excitement somewhat, but couldn't help but smile gaily. While she wasn't as sure as her mother was, she was fairly sure what he had chosen, and knowing made her happy. I was right!
Smiling weakly back at her, his every step was a ticklish reminder of his situation. While he'd never been a 'rough and tumble' boy and had always preferred the company of April, his mother, or the other girls at school to that of the boys, he couldn't shake the butterflies-in-the-stomach feeling that plagued him. Even knowing it was his aunt and Faith's idea, he had the idea that wearing girl's things was going to get him in trouble somehow. At the moment though, anything was preferable to the alternatives... hunger or the horrible loneliness that threatened to consume him.
"OK then. Shall we go eat?" Heather suggested.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
CAUTION - emotional pain/open emotional wounds
--
The three exited out into the hallway after Heather turned down the lights in Faith's bed and bath, showing Eric how to do it with a long stick made for that purpose for people not tall enough to reach them.
Near the stairway at the end of the hall the three saw Fredrick adjusting one of the wall-mounted gas lamps. Turning and seeing Eric wearing one of Faith's robes and her slippers, the huge man nearly broke the light's mantle. Composing himself, he calmly finished with the light, adjusted the flow, and replaced the chimney. Turning with his usual grace and dignity, he bowed slightly as the three approached him.
"Is Madame ready for dinner?"
Nodding she replied, "Yes, Fredrick. Please be so good as to advise Cook to serve at her convenience? Thank you." While Fredrick briskly preceded them, the three slowly started down the stairs.
His aunt and cousin descended fluidly, each holding the hem of their skirt to avoid tripping, and before he realized he needed to do something similar, he noticed he'd already been mimicking them with the robe he wore without even thinking.
"I hope you'll come to love Hargrave House, sweetie." Heather said as they came down the stairs. "The house itself is almost one hundred twenty years old. Back then, wealthy people were just starting to install electric lights in their houses. Some, like the people that built this house, had both electric and gas lights installed."
Reaching the lower landing and turning right, the three went down the few remaining steps into the entryway as Heather finished talking about the house. Turning left and entering the huge living room, Eric saw that a fire burned warmly in the fireplace set into the far left wall, illuminating the matching white couch, loveseats, and chair arranged in a semi-circle in the far right corner with an antique coffee table in the middle of them. A large ornate rug covered the highly polished hardwood floor of the closer half of the living room, while various shelves and cabinets filled with mementos and heirlooms decorated the walls.
Passing the grandfather clock that sat in a nook around the corner from the lower landing of the stairs, it's slow and even ticking echoing around the silent room, Fredrick emerged from the archway along the left wall. As the butler escorted them into the dining room, Eric looked at the enormous table that occupied it. Eight antique chairs surrounded it, but it could easily accommodate twice as many.
Gaslights lit the room from around the walls while an elaborate electric crystal chandelier hung over the table; the crystals in it refracting the glow of light from around the room making it sparkle even without electricity. A large window took up most of the far wall, beautiful white satin and lace curtains providing privacy, while a white swinging door could be seen in the right-hand wall near the archway.
Hearing the sound of a chair scrape across the polished dark wood flooring as Fredrick seated his aunt at the head of the table, he saw Faith standing next to the left side middle chair as though waiting for something. Moving to sit in the chair between Faith and his aunt, he stopped when Heather cleared her throat. "Yes, Aunt Heather?" he asked.
"A gentleman always seats a lady before taking one himself, sweetie." she answered. "You should also rise anytime a lady enters or leaves the room or when a guest enters or leaves."
"Oh." he replied shyly. "I... I didn't know that." Turning toward Faith, he clumsily pulled out her chair. She sat gracefully as he pushed it in, helping him push it the rest of the way. Then taking his seat with Fredrick's help, he looked over at his aunt. "Did I do that right?" he asked hesitantly.
"It was fine." Heather noted with a sad smile, remembering a similar incident with Eric's father Jack. Meanwhile, Cook brought out their meal of petite sirloin, garlic potatoes, and steamed vegetables.
Eric watched the older woman as she served his aunt first and then Faith. Her short gray hair sat in tight curls and framed her plump face; the gray nearly matching the color of the dress she wore, with a simple white apron tied around her ample waist. Returning to the kitchen she brought out his plate last, smiling at him with compassionate eyes that seemed to understand his fear and loneliness with just a look. Without a word, she returned to the kitchen as Fredrick stood by impassively. Picking up his fork to start eating, having finally remembered that he was hungry, he again heard his aunt clear her throat. Looking over at her he asked, "Yes, Aunt Heather?"
"In this house, we say a prayer of thanks before eating." she explained. "We would have nothing to eat, were it not for His gifts."
Watching her bow and clasp her hands in prayer, then turning to see Faith had done the same, he begrudgingly did likewise.
"Dear Lord, thank you for the blessings you have seen fit to bestow upon us, and make us truly thankful for them. In the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, Amen." she intoned respectfully.
"Amen." Faith echoed and finally Eric mumbled it as well, the entire time cursing God in his mind. While his family attended church on Easter, and he'd been taught to pray at bedtime, they had never prayed at dinner. He'd thought that was only something they did in old movies.
Heather opened her eyes and looked at her nephew, seeing the faintest hint of anger still visible in his expression as he opened his eyes and looked to her. Sighing and silently praying for his wounded soul, she picked up her fork and began to eat while the howl of wind outside could be heard mutedly through the walls. As Eric began wolfing his food down, she cleared her throat yet again, seeing that she had a lot of work to do to teach him proper manners. "Sweetie, please don't eat so quickly. No one is going to take it from you."
He looked over and watched Faith taking small bites carefully and slowly, smiling as she looked back at him. Slowing down, but taking larger bites than his cousin, he savored the flavor of the beef and managed to finish his plate while Faith had half of hers left. Still hungry, but not sure how to ask for seconds, or if seconds were even allowed, he sat back in his chair as despair once more threatened him.
"Sweetie? Would you like more to eat?" Heather asked after finishing a bite.
"Please?" he said as he sat forward, his face showing the faintest sign of hope. "Can I have another piece of that meat?"
"May you have another..." she corrected him sternly.
"Sorry." he blushed. "May I have another piece of the meat?" Eric saw her nod to Fredrick who disappeared into the kitchen for a moment before returning followed closely by Cook. Taking his empty plate and replacing it with a new plate holding only a petite sirloin, she smiled at him kindly and then hurried back to the kitchen.
Resuming his meal, he finished as the others did; the storm raging outside even more fiercely. The dimmer light of the gas lamps wavered slightly as he took his last drink of milk. Picking up his napkin and wiping his mouth, he turned to his aunt. "Thank you for dinner, Aunt Heather. It was very good." he said reservedly.
She smiled at him politely. "Thank you, Eric. You are most welcome." Just as Fredrick came up behind her chair to pull it back out, Eric remembered her admonitions at the start of dinner and quickly stood up when she did. Seeing the pleased look on his aunt's face made him feel the faintest trace of happiness. Following her as she exited the dining room, he was surprised when Faith came up next to him and took his hand, leading him out and into the living room, shyly smiling at him as they walked.
Heather glided into the living room, the fire warming it against the bitter cold outside, and sat graciously on the loveseat nearest the bay window that faced the fireplace and gestured to the couch that sat against the adjacent wall. Faith made her way there, Eric following in tow to sit next to her.
Turning toward the two, Heather took the moment to explain some things to Eric. "Since you're new sweetie, I should explain our rules and traditions. Breakfast is at seven each morning. When you are not in school, lunch will be at noon. Dinner is served promptly at six. If there is news of importance to share, it will be done after grace and before we eat. Any matters of lesser importance are to be discussed after dinner when we retire here to the living room. If nothing need be discussed, you may feel free to read here or go up to your room to play. Baths will be done and teeth brushed before nine when I will come to tuck you in and kiss you goodnight."
Continuing, Heather's tone turned ever so slightly stern. "I do not tolerate back-talk, interruption, whining, or any form of disrespectful behavior, to include neglecting your responsibilities such that it would require me to nag you." Looking at Eric, her voice softened slightly. "In exchange I will refrain from speaking harshly or yelling. You are both of an age that corporal punishment should no longer be necessary. I expect you to act accordingly."
"When I instruct you to do something, I expect immediate compliance, not a question about why you should have to." she added, glancing at Faith as that was her worst failing. "If, after you have complied, you feel the action requires explanation, I will do so at my convenience, not yours, but I will explain." Thinking for a moment she concluded, "I will permit one infraction of the household rules to allow for the fact that nobody is perfect, but further infractions will be punished. Do you understand why, Eric?"
"Because if you didn't, we'd just keep breaking the rule, which would mean it wasn't really a rule at all. That's what..." His voice trailed off and he sighed. "...that's what Mom used to say."
She smiled, knowing that it was Richard who had come up with the rules when he ran the household while she worked as a therapist. She was happy to see that his sister Erica had done likewise in her own home. "Good! Do you think it's a fair arrangement?" Seeing him nod absently, she shook her head, thinking that she may have to begin therapy sessions with him to help him through his grief and pain. He seemed so disconnected with life that it pained her to know this was her dear friend Jack's son; the man who had taught Richard to really live and laugh. "So, do either of you two have any questions or points you would like to bring up for discussion?"
"Yes, Mamma." Faith said respectfully. "Two questions and a point of discussion, actually."
"Go ahead, dear." her mother permitted.
"First I wanted to ask about school tomorrow. Is there going to be school with the weather this bad?" she nervously looked toward the window.
Shaking her head, Heather explained. "I don't believe so, dear. However, even if they do not cancel school, I'll be excusing you from it tomorrow as Eric's arrival will require you to be available. He'll need someone who can show him how we do things here, and I can think of no better example than you, dear. Your second question?"
"My second question is to ask if Eric could be allowed to sleep in my room with me tonight so he won't be lonely." she inquired. "That gets to the point I wanted to discuss. May we discuss it, Mamma?"
Heather had expected her to ask. Taking a breath, she turned to him. "Well, I know you're troubled to be alone, and I don't blame you, sweetie. You've been through more than many people could bear in such a short time, especially at such a young age. What do you want to do? Would you rather sleep in your own room tonight, or spend your first night here with Faith?"
Shocked she would even ask him, Eric shrugged. "Well, I don't want to be alone, but I can't sleep in the same room as Faith, right?"
"Why do you say that?" Heather asked, settling comfortably into her therapist's habits of answering a question with a question.
He blinked at her in confusion. Thinking that his aunt wanted him to say the obvious out loud to prove he knew it, he cleared his throat. "Because it isn't right for boys and girls to sleep in the same room together. Like, when I used to stay over at April's house sometimes when my mom would be out of town? Before we turned ten I used to sleep in her room. After that, April's parents made me sleep in her older brother's room that he wasn't using anymore since he went off to college."
Arching a brow, she answered honestly. "Well, April's parents were free to set whatever rules they wished in their home. I personally disagree with their opinion regarding age appropriateness, though. I see nothing wrong with young boys and girls sharing a room, even up to your age. You're children, not teenagers... and cousins, besides."
Using the opportunity to work out some of his repressed emotions, she covertly changed directions. "Family is different. If you had been raised here as our child, we would have put you two in the same room together growing up. As for Faith's request, I would leave that up to you since you seem to feel there's an issue." She laid the suggestion out specifically, watching for how he would react to it being his choice and presenting that it was his opinion, not that of April's parents, that he was stating.
He had been expecting she would disallow it due to their age, but since it was left entirely up to him, he bit his lower lip and tried to think. Whenever he tried to imagine sleeping in that big room by himself, so far from all he'd ever known, it left him feeling even more scared and lonely.
"Well, I really don't want to be alone." he pondered out loud. "If it were up to me, I would chose to stay with you or Faith... maybe just for tonight? I really didn't know if it's right or wrong. I was just repeating what April's parents told me, but you seem to think it's OK, so... may I, Aunt Heather?"
She nodded in understanding, happy that he'd asserted a choice of his own, a definite sign of improvement over the apathetic behavior she'd observed thus far. "Very well. You may go up to Faith's room with her. I'll be up in a while to turn down the lights."
Eric gingerly got up and followed his cousin. Seeing her pause to kiss her mother, he stepped up to his aunt and leaned forward to hug her. While she hugged him back, he felt warm and secure; a feeling of genuine affection like when his mother or April would hug him. Kissing her on the cheek as he'd seen Faith do, he stepped back and said, "Thank you for taking care of me, Aunt Heather."
She smiled at him. "Of course, sweetie. You're family! Now scoot on up to Faith's room! I'll be up soon."
Smiling weakly back, he turned to see Faith holding out her hand to him. Once he took it, Faith led them both to the stairs, Eric holding his robe again as he ascended to not trip on it. She led him by the hand all the way to her room. As they went inside, he watched Faith pick up the long metal stick and use it to turn each of the lights up until the lamps on the walls were lit brightly, giving a soft but warm light to the room.
Faith then stepped over to her dresser and removed some things. Closing the drawer and turning towards the bathroom she said, "I'll be out after my bath. You can play with any of my toys if you like! I promise I won't take too long!"
Just after she closed the door, it dawned on Eric that he had no toothbrush; his being lost in an airport somewhere. Wandering around the room aimlessly for a moment, he turned when he heard the bathroom door open.
"Eric?" Faith asked. "Could you help me please?" Going over to the door, he watched her turn away from him, showing him the back of her dress. "Would you unzip my dress for me, please?"
Reaching up, he unzipped the dress, seeing she was wearing another garment underneath it. Overcome with curiosity he asked, "What's that under your dress?"
Faith laughed lightly. "That's my slip, silly! Thank you for the help! I always have a hard time getting the zipper down! I just can't manage to reach that part of my back!" She gently shooed him back into her room and closed the door once more before he could even ask about a toothbrush.
Resuming his wandering, he looked at her dolls, the items on her vanity, and then went to the large toy chest on the opposite side of the room between the windows. He opened it to find several tea sets, more stuffed animals, many Barbie dolls, and a good-sized box marked 'Doll Clothes'. All were very neatly organized as though each one knew their place and had assumed it before he had lifted the lid.
Closing the box, he went to the toy chest at the foot of her bed and saw it contained a collection of board games and other boxed toys. He saw one that caught his interest, pulled it out, and examined it, not sure what it was. What's a Spirograph? he wondered. Figuring out quickly that it was some sort of drawing toy, he took it up on Faith's bed. Lying across the foot of her bed, he determined how it worked and idly started creating many different designs, serving as a distraction from his sorrow and loneliness.
Just as he was really getting into using different color combinations, Faith came out wearing a pale blue nightgown with a towel wrapped around her hair. Seeing her, he was suddenly reminded that he was in a girl's room and wearing girl's panties, robe, and slippers and began to blush. Watching her as she began brushing out her hair, he almost jumped when she noticed what he was playing with.
"Oh! My Spirograph! I love that!" Climbing on her bed to join him, she saw he seemed embarrassed. "What's wrong? I said you could play with my toys! I don't mind that you were using my Spirograph!"
Fidgeting, he blushed even more. "Oh. It's not that. I just..." He was too embarrassed to say the words and really didn't feel like a long conversation about it, but at the same time he was too polite not to answer. Taking a deep breath and closing his eyes, he let it all out. "It's just when I saw you I remembered that I was wearing your robe and slippers and stuff. I got so into drawing that I forgot for a while."
Faith dropped down on her elbows next to him. "I think you look pretty. Don't you like my robe? Doesn't it just make you feel all pretty inside?"
"I guess it's nice." Eric shrugged, running a finger over the satin. "It's really girly though." he pointed out.
Picking up a pencil, she started to draw little pink hearts on a free sheet of paper. "I guess I don't understand. What's wrong with being girly?"
"There isn't anything really wrong with being girly. It's just... Boys are supposed to be different."
She continued to draw as he resumed using the Spirograph, trying once more to distract himself. "Different how?" Faith interrogated.
He started to answer, came up blank, then thought of something. "OK. So my friend April? She likes unicorns. I like horses."
"I like both." Faith smiled wryly.
Sighing, he tried another approach. "OK, she likes playing house and Barbie dolls, I like video games and riding bikes."
She stopped to consider his comparison. After a moment she asked, "Did she ride bikes with you and play video games with you?"
Replying nonchalantly, he said, "Sure."
"Did you play house and Barbies with her?"
He stopped and remembered all the times they'd played house with April as his pretend wife. He used to make up long and elaborate stories about their life and problems and it was a lot of fun. He also remembered the many times they played with her Barbie dolls, again with him usually driving the narrative that established the direction of their play. "Well... yeah."
She jumped on his confession with a mischievous grin. "Was it fun?"
Thinking back, he admitted to himself that April never had to cajole him into playing the games she liked. He liked doing it because it made April happy and he had fun making up stories to go along with it. "Well, when you put it that way, I do have to admit it was fun most of the time, but I..."
Faith didn't give him a chance to rebut. "And did April like playing video games and riding bikes with you?"
Not really seeing what she was getting at, he replied, "Sure. She liked racing through the dirt lots at the end of our street."
"So then I don't get it." she unraveled his argument like an expert in debate. "You say boys like different things from girls, but you liked doing things April liked and she liked doing things you liked. She liked feeling boyish sometimes, and you liked being girly sometimes. So then, what's wrong with feeling pretty? You are pretty!"
Putting down his pencil, he tried to recover his position. "OK, I'll admit that, but I would never play Barbies if April didn't want to."
"Why not? Barbies are lots of fun! You said so yourself!" she grinned.
Dropping his head down on the bed, he sighed out heavily. Answering into the comforter he replied, "I don't know, OK? I just know that if April didn't like Barbies, I probably wouldn't have played with them on my own!"
Faith tapped him on the back of the head. When he raised his head to look at her he saw her smiling. In a matter-of-fact tone she quietly stated, "Now that you know Barbies are fun, why wouldn't you want to play with them?"
Dropping his face back into the comforter, he groaned loudly into the bed. Wanting to think of a good comeback, but now lacking the desire to even fight her on the issue, he raised back up and sighed. "OK. I give. I can't tell you why. I don't have any better reason than it just wouldn't be any fun if April didn't like it."
Going back to drawing she quipped, "Well of course! How could you have fun playing something if the person you're playing with doesn't like it? Duh!"
At that, Eric sat up, grabbed a pillow from the top of Faith's bed, and bonked her with it gently on the top of her head. Smiling and giggling like crazy, she grabbed another pillow, swinging it wildly at him. The two struggled for a better position to get each other, giggling happily, when the door slowly opened without either of them noticing. After a moment of watching the two, Heather cleared her throat.
The two children looked over at the door frozen mid-play in sudden shock. Faith quickly tossed the pillow back to the head of her bed and dismounted, standing silently next to her bedpost. Slowly Eric did the same until the two were standing next to one another.
Entering the room, her white satin nightgown and robe drifting around her, she crossed her arms. "Faith? You know rough play is not allowed after bath time and never in the house."
Hanging her head she admitted, "Yes, Mamma. I'm sorry. I forgot myself."
Looking over at Eric standing shyly in Faith's robe and slippers and looking very ashamed, she simply pursed her lips.
Fidgeting with the robe, he mumbled guiltily, "Please don't be mad at Faith, Aunt Heather. I started it. I'm sorry."
Seeing genuine remorse in his eyes, she uncrossed her arms, shook her head, and laughed lightly. Petting both on the top of their heads, Heather sighed. "Considering your ignorance, and seeing you genuinely happy for a moment, I'll let it pass this time, but please try to remember. This is not your old home. We have our own rules here. Not too many, and none without reason, but I do expect you to keep them. Alright?"
Guiltily, he looked down. "I will, Aunt Heather." Looking back up at her he added, "Aunt Heather? I don't have a toothbrush."
Thinking a moment, she realized she had not thought of that detail. "Well, we can get you one tomorrow, but in the mean time go in the bath and use one of Faith's. You'll find an unopened one in the bottom cabinet next to the sink. Please be quick about it. Faith? Please finish brushing out your hair. It's already well after nine."
Walking quickly into the bathroom as Faith obeyed her mother, he found one of her unopened pink Barbie toothbrushes. Repressing the feeling that using it was somehow bad, he pushed it aside and began brushing his teeth.
It was unnerving seeing his reflection in the ornate bathroom mirror. Faith's pink toothbrush in his mouth and the girly bathrobe he wore, along with his nearly dry long dirty-blonde hair combined with the feminine scent of the shampoo and soap he'd used earlier, making him see a girl reflected back at him. He didn't even try to fight it. At this point he was getting used to it and figured that there wasn't much of a choice in the matter anyway.
Tomorrow, he reasoned, things will be back to normal. He soon realized that they in fact would never be so for him, ever again. He would have to find a new normal, the realization undoing all his happiness from earlier. Rinsing his mouth absently, he padded back out into the bedroom and across to the right side of Faith's bed, she having already gotten in on the left side and sitting up waiting for him; the gaslights turned low.
He was about to climb in when his aunt cleared her throat. Stopping to stand next to the bed he asked, "Yes, Aunt Heather?"
"We do not sleep in robes and slippers, sweetie." she pointed out patiently.
"Oh." Flushing once more, he stepped out of the slippers and untied the robe, letting his aunt remove it for him as he clutched the neck of the oversized T-shirt once more.
Heather returned the robe to the bathroom before Faith asked, "Mamma? Couldn't he borrow a nightgown to sleep in? He could wear my favorite! Freddie's T-shirt is awfully short and too baggy to sleep in." she pointed out.
Returning from the bathroom, Heather considered her daughter's argument. She didn't want him to feel uncomfortable having to wear only a T-shirt and girl's underwear to bed, but she didn't want him to wear a girl's nightdress even more. Thinking he would simply reject the idea outright she asked, "Well, why don't we leave it up to him?" She looked at Eric and smiled. "Sweetie?"
His vacant expression had returned. Having already admitted to Faith that he enjoyed girly things conspired with his thoughts of how his life would never be normal to make him accept whatever Heather wanted. If that were him wearing a girl's nightgown, he would just accept it as his new normal. "It's fine, Aunt Heather." he shrugged. "Whatever you think is best."
Sighing, she was disappointed that he hadn't taken the initiative to say he didn't want to wear a nightgown. She knew Faith was right. Other than social convention, there really was no valid reason to prevent him from sleeping in a long nightgown that was his size and available versus a short ill-fitting T-shirt. Trying to slip one by her daughter, she changed tactics. "It would be silly to have him change when he doesn't have a preference, since a nightgown would only be a bit longer than the T-shirt anyway."
Shaking her head, Faith didn't buy it. "Mamma? My long nightgown? My favorite? It goes down to my feet! It would be way better than a T-shirt!"
"Possibly," she said, still trying to find a way out of it. Seeing Eric standing by the bed blankly, she shook her head. "I'm going to call it 'good enough' for tonight. We'll get you boy's pajamas tomorrow. Go ahead and climb into bed, sweetie." she ordered him.
Not really listening to their conversation, and no longer caring what he was wearing, Eric pulled back the comforter and sheet and climbed into Faith's bed. In doing so, the baggy shirt drooped open so that both Faith and her mother could easily see the borrowed undies he still wore. Heather avoided looking by going to the bathroom to dim the gaslights to minimum. Faith however, watched him avidly as he got into bed and adjusted the loose shirt repeatedly, trying to get it to stay on his shoulders.
Approaching the bed, Heather waited while Faith laced her fingers together and prayed silently, finishing with, "Amen." Once done, they looked to Eric.
Seeing them waiting for him to do likewise, he figured it was easier to just fake it rather than fight it, and didn't care either way. Closing his eyes, he pretended to pray for several seconds and then absently mumbled, "Amen."
As the two settled in for sleep, Heather kissed them both on the forehead and returned to the door. "Goodnight, you two. Pleasant dreams." she said softly as she closed the door behind her.
Eric started fidgeting almost immediately. The baggy shirt, as Faith had predicted, turned out to be very difficult to sleep in, making him move to adjust it over and over again.
"Eric? Are you alright?" Faith asked just above a whisper.
"Not really." he answered embarrassedly. "The T-shirt is so baggy it keeps bunching up every time I even breathe, but I'll be fine. Really."
Quietly slipping out of bed, she tiptoed across the room to her dresser. Coming back quickly, she handed him her favorite nightgown. "Here." she said sympathetically, keeping her voice low. "I don't care what Mamma says. I think you should sleep in this."
Shaking his head he whispered, "I don't wanna make Aunt Heather mad at me, Faith. She said to just sleep in the T-shirt."
"You're gonna fidget and fuss all night if you stay in that! Come on! Please? Mamma said it was up to you." she argued putting on her 'cute girl' look.
Seeing her hold it out to him again and knowing she was just going to keep insisting, and not really caring about anything at the moment, he sighed and reached out, taking the garment with his hand. "It's really soft." he mumbled.
Letting him take it, she stepped back and whispered, "I know! And super comfy! Well, come on then! Get up and put it on!"
Embarrassed for her to see him, the shirt having ridden up to the point it was exposing the underwear he'd borrowed, he shook his head. "Get back in bed and turn your back?" he stated as though it were a question.
"Why?" she asked innocently.
He was about to explain, but apathy and a desire to just escape reality with sleep made him give in. Getting out of bed, he lifted the T-shirt off with ease. Standing in front of Faith in nothing but the panties he'd borrowed, he quickly slipped into the pink satin polyester nightgown, dropping it over his head and pushing his arms through the elastic banded short sleeves.
Satisfied, she smiled and walked back to her side of the bed and climbed in, settling in facing him this time.
Wearily, he climbed back into bed, having to admit that wearing the fitting nightgown that came down to his ankles was far better than the loose T-shirt. It was soft and comfortable, but it felt funny wearing a satin nightie with lace edges and little flowers on the chest, every move reminding him of its presence. Settling in, all Eric could hear was the rain on the roof and the wind howling through the trees. Punctuated by occasional thunder and lightning flashes through the window, he found it difficult to get to sleep.
After a few minutes he heard Faith whisper, "Eric? Are you still awake?"
"Uh-huh." he replied turning to face her. "It's a little spooky here."
Scootching closer to him, she continued whispering. "If I tell you something, you promise not to get mad at me for it?"
"OK. I suppose so. What is it?"
She shook her head. "You have to promise first."
Rolling his eyes, he answered, "OK. I promise not to get mad. What is it?"
Faith lowered her voice even softer. "I think you look really pretty in my nightgown. And I'm glad you chose to sleep here with me tonight."
Blushing, he looked down at the top of the pink nightgown that he could still see above the covers. Seeing the little pink roses on his chest, he shrugged. "If I tell you something, do you promise to keep it a secret?"
Nodding she replied, "I promise! What is it?"
Eric sighed and closed his eyes, embarrassed to say it out loud. "It's not too bad really, not nearly as bad as I thought it would be. I thought I'd hate it, but it's actually really nice. It's super soft and gives me butterflies in my stomach, but in a good kind of way. I think I actually like it."
His cousin nodded and smiled, sliding close until he could hear her conspiratorial whisper. "Now you know why it's my favorite!"
"Remember you promised not to tell anyone... especially not your mom!"
A giggle escaped her lips before going back to whispering. "I promise! I'm really glad you like it though. It's not as pretty as some of my other ones, but it's a lot softer and more like some of Mamma's grown-up nightgowns. Doesn't it just make you feel all pretty inside even more than my robe?"
Gulping at the suggestion, he blinked nervously a few times before answering. "Um... I guess so. I... I don't really know what pretty feels like."
"Um... it feels like... well... pretty!" Faith stumbled over the words, realizing she couldn't describe it any better than Eric could. "I guess it is hard to describe. I bet that's what you're feeling though! Goodnight, Eric."
"Goodnight, Faith." he whispered. "See you in the morning." Rolling over with his back to Faith, he thought about what he was feeling, wondering if Faith was right, then tried not to think too much about anything, but the thoughts came unbidden. This has to be the worst day of my life. he mused. I wish April was here! She'd know what to do. His eyes closing, tears threatening to pour forth, he wondered, Could tomorrow be any worse?
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
CAUTION - emotional pain/open emotional wounds
--
Awaking slowly in a dark room, his mind was groggy and dull. The satin pillow and distinctive sweet smell that screamed 'girl' told him he wasn't in his room at the Stone's house. That room still stank of teenage boy from its occupant before he'd taken it. Unable to remember where he was, he had a vague notion of going to sleep in someone else's bed and there being a storm. He reasoned that he must have sneaked into April's bedroom last night like he'd done a few times after his mother's hospitalization when he'd been especially scared. April would soothe away his fears and he would sleep on her floor, returning to his own room in the early morning. That's when he remembered he was in a bed and noticed he wasn't sleeping alone.
He felt a girl he assumed to be April snuggled up tightly behind him. He could tell it was a girl from the scent of her and the wonderfully gentle touch of her arm wrapped around his body, her delicate hand gripping the front of his nightgown. My nightgown? he started, finally awakening fully. Looking down and seeing it with his own eyes, Faith's hand gripping the front of the nightgown he wore, brought reality crashing down on him. His mother's death, the funeral, the tearful goodbye at LAX, his lost luggage, and lastly Faith insisting he wear her nightgown.
Afraid someone would see them sleeping so close and that it was bad, even though he couldn't explain why, he tried to scootch away from her. Her hand tightened its grip and she scooted even more tightly against his back, undoing all his progress. Seeing she would not be moved easily, and now feeling why he'd woken, he almost panicked. Reaching up with his hand, he started to pull her arm off of him when he heard her stir.
"Oh." Faith yawned as he tried to move away, snuggling up to him once more. "It's still dark out. Let's go back to sleep."
"Um, Faith?" he asked. "I have to use the bathroom!" he explained quietly.
"Huh? Oh! Sorry!" she said, releasing him.
Sliding out of bed, he quickly crossed the cold room into the bathroom, closing the door behind him. Returning a few minutes later, after learning that he could not relieve himself while wearing a nightgown except by sitting, he almost ran back to the warmth of the bed. "It's freezing in here!"
Waiting until he was fully settled back in bed, Faith scooted up close once more and spooned against his back, her arm slipping around his waist and gripping the top of his borrowed nightgown. "G'night, Eric." she yawned.
"Um, Faith?" he inquired to see if she was still awake. Hearing her acknowledge him wordlessly with a hum, he turned his head toward the ceiling so she could hear him more easily. "Y-you should go back to your side of the bed. If your mom saw us sleeping like this, she might get mad."
She picked up her head off the pillow and leaned over him, almost lying on the side of his body. Looking down at him, her face less than an inch from his and her blonde locks gently tickling his face, she furrowed her brow. "Why? It's cold! And you're warm!"
Feeling flustered with her lying on top of him, her face so close he could feel her breath on his lips, a lump rose in his throat that made it difficult to talk. Turning his head toward the far wall, he stammered, "N-never mind."
Shrugging, Faith lay her head on his shoulder, gripping him tighter than before and draping one leg over his. "G'nite."
Now fully awake and terrified of being thrown out into the cold, the feeling of her laying on him stirred feelings of comfort and affection. He felt as safe and comforted as the times he'd sneaked into April's room where she'd held him while he'd cried. Staring at the darkened window across the room, he apathetically accepted his role as human hot water bottle. Part of him wanted to make Faith to go sleep on her own side, while another part was very much enjoying the secure feeling it gave him. Apathy gave the tie to the latter as he just vacantly lay there, enjoying the feeling of closeness while his heart hammered like a rabbit's.
Pondering his new normal, he felt the rise and fall of Faith's breathing; her breath warm against his neck. Relaxing him, his mind began to drift. I should hate wearing Faith's nightgown... so why don't I? he wondered. Looking down at Faith's hand, he actually smiled at the sight of her fingers gripping the satin bodice. Floating in and out of consciousness, he would be awakened periodically as Faith would move slightly or sigh contentedly in her sleep. He was startled fully awake when the door to the room opened, a shrill voice filling the space with the sound of irritation.
"Alright, you two!" the woman barked. "Up! Up! Up! Faith? Time to get up and dressed. Your mother said to pick something warm, we're in for the first serious storm of the season!"
Rolling over and away from him, he heard Faith cheerily sing, "Good morning, Franchesca!" The bed shook as he felt her move off it, listening to the sound of her light footsteps heading for the bathroom. Closing his eyes to pretend he was still asleep, he hoped the woman would just go away.
"Alright, you!" Franchesca barked. "It's after six o'clock! Breakfast in less than an hour! Mrs. Hargrave wants to talk with you right away, so drag your lazy bones outta that bed!"
Eric, afraid to be seen wearing Faith's nightgown, pulled the covers tightly to himself. In a flash, the comforter and sheet were ripped from his grasp; the chill in the air assaulting his body. Looking up, he saw a middle-aged woman in an ankle-length black dress with a white half apron, her ebony hair drawn up in a tight bun, making her long narrow face more pronounced.
"Come on, you!" she ordered while holding out the borrowed robe he'd worn the night before. "Snap to it! I have a lot of work to get done and you're messing up my schedule, lazing about!" Believing Heather had told the boy to wear the nightgown out of necessity, she didn't pay it any mind.
Getting up tentatively, he let the woman put the robe on him, sat down, and watched her place the matching slippers over his feet; the marabou at the toes tickling nicely. Seeing her offer a hand up, he took it and smiled weakly, thankful that she seemed to be unaware he'd been told to sleep in the T-shirt.
"That's better!" she said, her voice less harsh. "Come along." Taking him by the hand, he had to jog to keep up as she led him out and down the hall to the last door on the right. Knocking gently but firmly, she opened the door after hearing a welcome. "Mrs. Hargrave?" she pushed Eric into the room. "If you won't be needing me, I'll be getting to my work, ma'am."
"That will be all, Franchesca." Heather intoned sweetly from her bed. Gesturing for Eric to approach she inquired, "Did you sleep well, sweetie?"
Scared that the robe might come open and show he was wearing Faith's nightgown, he pulled the robe tightly around him as he stepped a few feet from the door into the opulent room. "Y-yes, Aunt Heather." Seeing her gesture him forward again, he resumed slowly walking to her.
The center of her room was dominated by a huge bed made of dark stained oak with four large posts running up to within a foot of the ceiling, making them almost look like support beams rather than furniture. Wrapping around it was an ornately carved headboard with attached nightstands jutting forward from the sides, lovely electric lamps decorated them that, for the time being, served no purpose. The only light in the room came from the gaslights stationed at even intervals around the room's four walls. The large electric chandelier hung uselessly but beautifully from the middle of the room's ceiling and the windows showed no sign of the coming morning yet.
He looked around while making his way to his aunt's bedside, noticing all the furniture was similarly done in dark stained oak and appeared very old in style, like things you might see in a movie with some fabulously wealthy character. Two dressers, an armoire, three wardrobes, a vanity, and a desk decorated the rest of the room. Elegant wallpaper of deep burgundy with thin gold vine patterns leading to delicate rosebuds covered the upper half of the walls, while the lower half was finished in fine polished oak. The carpet was a deep mahogany, so thick his slippered feet sank into it with each step.
Reaching the side of the bed his aunt was on, she regarded him with concern. "I need to talk to you. If you like, you may sit on the bed while we talk."
Climbing up on the massive bed, he was careful not to let the nightgown he was wearing show, holding Faith's robe closed in front tightly and keeping the bottom pointed away from her. Sitting on his feet at the foot of the bed, he made sure the robe he wore covered his legs for warmth, modesty, and secrecy, he finally looked up toward her. "Yes, Aunt Heather?"
She smiled, but he could tell she was upset. "Sweetheart, I think you can see that the weather has taken a decided turn for the worse since last night. It's very cold out this morning. Freezing, in fact."
Thinking she'd been told how he and Faith had been cuddling together for warmth, he was terrified that she was going to eject him from her home for letting it happen. Looking down in fear of her, he was too ashamed to even look her in the eyes. "I... I'm sorry, Aunt Heather." he stammered. "I won't blame you if you send me away to live in a foster home."
"What?" she exclaimed in confusion. "Sweetie, what ever would make you think that! I would never send you away!"
His head snapping up at her confused reply, he furrowed his brow. "I... I thought..." Realizing he'd misjudged what she was getting at, it dawned on him that he had given too much away and now would have to tell her what he'd assumed she already knew. He looked away once more, taking a breath. "Um... I thought you were mad at me that Faith was snuggled up close to me this morning... like kinda almost laying on me?" He glanced back toward her, but couldn't keep eye contact. "I... I told her you'd be mad about it, but she just told me to go back to sleep. I know I should have just told her to move, but I didn't. I'm sorry, Aunt Heather."
Her confused look transformed into one of understanding and then mild irritation. "I see. I assume she was snuggling for warmth against the cold?" Seeing him nod silently and fearfully, she sighed. "It's alright, sweetheart. I am not mad at you, or Faith... though I'll have to have a talk with her about intruding on people's comfort and privacy. It's something she's terribly blasé about. However, that is not why I wanted to talk to you."
Looking up and feeling the burden of guilt released, he smiled weakly. "Oh. What is it you wanted to talk about, then?"
"I'm afraid I'm forced to break a promise I made to you yesterday." she said embarrassedly. "I... I told you that I would take you into town today to get you new clothes and the other things you need, but I'm afraid circumstances are going to force me to delay my promise." Seeing the dismay on his face and then the vacant look of apathy returning, she sighed in exasperation. "You see, the storm is getting worse by the hour and many of the roads are already closed due to ice. We won't be going anywhere until at least tomorrow at the soonest, more likely the next day."
Taking a moment before she told him the worse news, Heather steeled herself. "There is a further problem. The power is still out and the power company says that it may not be restored for days. Since we have firewood and gas lighting, we are the lowest priority for service in an outage. Right now, they're working to restore power to other people that are much less fortunate than we are... people that depend on electricity for warmth and light. Do you understand, sweetie?"
He nodded. "I understand. You mean we're lucky and should be grateful we have heat and light. It may be cold in the house, but it's warmer than it would be if we needed electricity for heat." Realizing what his aunt had been driving at, he gulped again and asked, "Does this mean my clothes still can't get cleaned?"
She nodded ruefully. "I'm afraid it does, sweetie. You see, while we have some amenities that run on gas, we don't have any way of cleaning clothes quickly without electricity. We can wash them by hand, I've instructed Franchesca to do so, but drying them with no electricity in this cold and wet weather could take a very long time. It could be days before even the few clothes you have here, such as they are, are wearable... and only if Franchesca can repair them, which is doubtful. She's a housemaid, not a seamstress. On top of the roads being closed, it means that, for the time being, what you're wearing is all there is."
Feeling guilty about what it was he was wearing, his despair at the situation led him right back to apathy and guilt that he'd disobeyed her instructions. He almost hoped she would be mad and punish him for changing into the nightgown, feeling he deserved it for going against her wishes.
"About that." he started. "After you left last night, I had trouble settling in to sleep. Faith was right. The T-shirt kept bunching up just like she said it would." He gulped in fear that he was going to get Faith in trouble, but he just had to tell her. "Faith gave me a nightgown to wear." he said with an embarrassed sigh. "I should say though that she was right. It was way more comfortable and I fell asleep almost right away. Also, you did say it was up to me, right? I... I just decided it was OK. Please don't be mad at Faith!"
His aunt sat for a moment in stunned silence. Not that Faith had done it, she could easily believe she had, but the fact that apparently he'd complied without a fight. "Well... um... OK." she said as she tried to think what to do about it. As she looked at him sitting apathetically at the foot of her bed, she reasoned that his pain and grief were so acute he'd lost the will to assert much of any opinion, even willing to wear a girl's nightgown at the slightest prodding. Slowly she began to grasp the depth of his despair.
She'd seen similar behavior from adults who'd gone through severe trauma, but never such depth of pain in a child outside of abusive homes. Normally she would try to encourage talking through the grief, but every time she'd tried it only seemed to worsen, indicating he wasn't ready to face it yet. What he needed was a distraction, an escape, but circumstances were making that difficult, if not impossible.
Trying to work the problem one step at a time, she lifted her chin. "Alright. Well, I don't see that any real harm has been done. I'm glad you were able to sleep well and be comfortable. I'm sorry my calling you in here didn't give you a chance to change first. Would you like to return to Faith's room to change back into the T-shirt now?" she asked hopefully.
He shrugged absently, not seeming to care. "It's fine, Aunt Heather. Whatever you think is best." A soft knock sounded from the ornate door.
"Come in?" she bade them.
Faith walked in happy and smiling, wearing an off-white dress that came down to her ankles. "Good morning, Mamma! Franchesca told me they did cancel school today and that it might be canceled the rest of the week, so I won't miss anything staying home!" Seeing Eric sitting on her mother's bed shyly, she slowed as her smile died. "Is everything OK, Mamma?"
"Everything is fine, dear." her mother answered frustratedly. "I was just talking with Eric about our plans for today. You see, I promised him we'd drive down to Berlin to get him new clothes, but the storm has the highway closed, so I have to delay my promise." She looked back at him apologetically. "I will keep my promise, sweetie. I just can't do it today."
"It's alright." he answered vacantly. "You don't have to. Eventually my luggage will get here and that's good enough for me." His emotions were spiraling downward rapidly, certain that soon his aunt would tire of all the problems he was causing and send him away. His only faint hope was that perhaps she would send him back to Newport Beach where he could be put in a foster home near April. Thinking of her again, his eyes went wide.
"Aunt Heather?" he asked looking up at her sadly. "I jus' realized I fergot ta' call April last night ta' tell her I got here OK. You gotta smartphone I can use real quick?"
Almost flinching at his abysmal use of language, she shook her head. "You forgot to notify April that you arrived safely, and do I have a cell phone you may borrow briefly." she corrected him. "However, the answer would be 'No' either way. There is no cell service here at the house, so I don't have a cell phone anymore, nor would it do you any good if I did have one."
"Oh." he answered dejectedly. Looking up at her once again he asked, "How about a com..." He stopped mid-question before answering it himself. "...puter, which wouldn't work since there's no power. Do you have a regular phone, Aunt Heather?"
"We do, sweetie." she answered, giving him fleeting hope. "However, it's only a quarter after three in the morning there. I'm afraid you'll have to wait until later in the day."
"That's right." he replied, hope evaporating quickly. "I forgot about the time difference, and April's parents don't let her take calls before school anyway, so I can't call her 'til six tonight when she gets home from school."
Faith stood by impassively as he and her mother talked. Noting the time, she waited until she would not interrupt. "Mamma? Breakfast is in less than forty-five minutes and Eric still doesn't have anything to wear." she pointed out. "What's he going to do today?"
"I really don't know, dear. His clothes won't be dry for a few days at least, and we have nothing for him to wear, except what he has on now. Speaking of which, I'm told you had him change after I put you two to bed."
"I had to, Mamma!" she defended her actions. "He was fidgeting around trying to get comfortable and couldn't, isn't that right, Eric? He would have kept us both awake for hours! Besides, he chose to wear it!"
Turning to the young boy, Heather could see the defeat in his eyes; willing to be led to almost anything so long as it distracted from the emptiness. "I find it hard to believe that a boy your age chose to wear a girl's nightshirt."
"Yes, Aunt Heather." He nodded shyly. "I really did. It's not like I had much of a choice. She was right. It's a lot better than that baggy T-shirt." Wrapping his arms around himself, he shivered. "Sorry. It's really cold. I'm not used to it ever getting this cold. Cold in Newport Beach is sixty, not six!"
Faith turned to her mother. "You didn't answer my question though, Mamma. What is he going to do today? It's cold enough that I didn't get warm until I got dressed. You always told me that 'I don't know' isn't an answer, right?"
"Don't be flippant, dear." she retorted. "No, it's not an answer, but I don't have one to give you. Sometimes even adults don't know what to do."
"Then why not have him wear one of my dresses?" she persisted. "I honestly don't see what the big deal is. Besides, what choice is there?"
"He could stay as he is, dear... that is a choice." she pointed out. "In fact he could go back to wearing Fredrick's T-shirt and we can try to find some way of getting a pair of pants to fit him."
"Mamma!" she said incredulously. "You saw him! He needed my robe to keep Freddie's T-shirt from falling off! I don't understand what's so terrible about him borrowing a dress! It's the only thing in the house that will fit!"
Eric looked over at his cousin. "Don't you have like jeans, or a T-shirt I could borrow? Even if they're girly, that would at least be warm... and maybe Aunt Heather wouldn't mind that so much."
Faith shook her head. "No, I hate pants! So Mamma doesn't make me have any. You could wear one of my skirts and a blouse instead of a dress!"
He shrugged defeatedly, his one thought of how to resolve the issue up in smoke. "Anything is fine with me, I guess. Whatever you think is best, Aunt Heather." he repeated as he shivered once more.
Now seriously concerned that he was falling deep into depression and apathy, enough that he may consider harming himself, Heather tried to think of a way to make him assert himself again. Shivering inwardly, she thought of a therapy technique that she felt might have the best chance at success; confrontation and transference.
She could not only allow Eric to borrow a dress from Faith, she could insist on it until he pushed back at her, transferring his anger with the world and God to her. She had used the technique before, but this was the first time she had actual authority over her patient, making it both easier and more difficult at the same time. It was also morally ambiguous and risky, but her training and experience told her that doing nothing would be far, far worse.
"Very well." Heather began. "Faith has made a point I cannot find fault with, nor can I think of any reasonable alternatives. Since without heat other than the fireplace, you can't very well run around the house all day in a bathrobe, and since you don't seem to care either way, you will borrow clothes from Faith until yours are dry. Please go take a bath in Faith's room. Use the toiletries she has available. She and I will be in shortly to help you change." She was almost abrasive in her tone.
"Really, Mamma?" Faith asked incredulously, hardly able to believe that her argument had changed her mother's usually unshakable mind.
Shrugging, Eric slid off her bed and headed toward her door. "Yes, Aunt Heather." was his only reply. Feeling completely cut off from himself, like a puppet on a string that he could only control indirectly, he simply obeyed. He had a fleeting impulse to shout at his aunt, tell her that he wouldn't do it, but his anger was born only out of habit, not any actual desire or preference. Walking down the hall and into Faith's room, he found it odd that he didn't really care, thinking he should more than he did.
Entering Faith's bathroom, he started the water running, warming it up while he undressed. In short order he was bathing using Faith's toiletries. Washing his hair thoroughly, he rinsed and picked up the bottle of Japanese Cherry Blossom body wash. Cleaning himself all over with it left him feeling heartbroken as soon as he recognized the scent.
Sitting on the curb in front of his house in Newport Beach, Eric fiddled with a rock under his shoe, barely noticing when April sat beside him. Finally he smelled something odd and looked to his left.
"What's that smell?" he asked curiously.
Leaning against her best friend, her head rested on his shoulder. "Soap."
"No. I use soap and that ain't it." Eric grimaced.
"OK, so it's girl's soap." April shrugged. "I ran out of my normal bath soap and had to use some of my cousin's that she left here last Christmas."
Nodding in understanding, he went back to rolling the rock under his shoe. "OK." After a span of silence he commented, "It smells nice."
She sighed, worried about him. "Thanks."
After another silent stretch he added, "I just didn't want you to think I thought you smelled bad is all."
Hooking her arm under his, her head never having left his shoulder, after another awkward silence she finally asked, "How's your mom?"
"Not good." he shook his head despairingly. "She told me this morning that she's going to have to go to the hospital and stay there for a while. Maybe even a few weeks. She's inside packing right now."
Sitting up quickly, April turned to look at him. "That bad? I thought her chemo was going well?"
Shrugging as he shot his foot forward, he made the tiny rock under his shoe roll out into the street. "That's what she told me last week, but I guess you just can't tell with these things."
April thought silently for a moment before asking the question she didn't really want to hear the answer to. "So... what's going to happen to you? I mean, if your mom is going to be stuck in the hospital for a while, you can't stay home alone, can you? You're not even twelve, yet."
Picking up another pebble, Eric flung this one out in the street with his free hand. "I guess I'll hafta go to a foster home. At least 'til Mom gets better."
She drew in a short breath. "A foster home? Isn't there any other option? Don't you have any other family?"
"Not really, no." Eric shook his head sadly. "I mean I have an aunt that lives someplace back east, my uncle Richard's widow, but I don't think she'd be very likely to want to take me in. I don't think I've ever even met her. Besides, I need to stick around so I can help Mom get better."
Leaning against his shoulder once more, April tried to figure out a way she wouldn't lose her best friend. Suddenly, she sat up. "Hey! I could ask my mom and dad if you could stay with us! I mean, you've stayed over lots of times when your mom was out of town for work! Why not just stay with us for a few weeks?"
"Do you think they would mind?" Eric perked up.
"Only one way to find out!" she exclaimed, standing quickly and extending her hand down to help Eric up.
As he stood, he caught the scent of her again and smiled a little. "That stuff's really pretty. Your cousin sure must like smelling like a girl, though." he quipped.
"What do you expect?" she retorted as they started walking the short distance to her house. "She's a girl!" After a moment of walking silently together, she added, "Oh, and in case you hadn't noticed, so am I."
Eric smiled at her as they walked up the walkway toward her front door, simply unable to resist the easy joke she'd handed him. "Yeah, but I won't hold that against you!"
His last remark earned him a slap on the arm just as he passed her while she held the screen door open for him, the two entering the house he would live in for the next six months.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
CAUTION - emotional pain/open emotional wounds
--
Rinsing off the body wash as he remembered the happy exchange that now nearly brought him to tears, Eric's heart ached to see his best friend even though he knew he likely never would again. Draining the tub, he pulled in one of Faith's towels and dried. Stepping out, he pulled the towel around him tightly to ward off the bitter cold seeping in from the outside.
Noticing a small pile of clothes on the counter that weren't there when he entered, he realized his aunt must have placed them there while he was lost in his memories. After drying himself, he absently donned the second pair of panties he'd ever worn, this time pink, but there was also another article present that he recognized, which almost made him balk.
It was a training bra.
Warring within himself, he remembered his aunt's admonition to obey first and ask questions later and pulled it on over his head. Seeing the last garment she'd left for him, it looked like a very plain nightgown. Quickly figuring out it must be a slip like the one he'd seen Faith wearing the night before, he dropped it easily over his head to drape down his body. The war still raging inside him, he hesitated only a moment before opening the door.
Walking out, he saw his aunt, now fully dressed in a beautiful gown of blue and silver, standing next to the chair for Faith's vanity. Shuffling over to sit, he saw his cousin standing next to her bed smiling, her shocking blue eyes following his every move. Once seated, he watched his aunt crouch down and start to push what looked to him like a giant white sock up over his toes. "What's that?" he asked curiously, but with a hint of irritation that she was dressing him as though he were baby.
"Tights." his aunt said simply. "They'll help keep your legs warm." Pulling them up over his feet and calves, she stopped when she reached the bottom of the slip at his knees. "Stand and pull them the rest of the way up." she ordered, warring within herself whether or not she'd chosen the right therapy, as he didn't seem to be struggling against it nearly as much as she believed he should.
Vacantly, he did as he was told while Heather turned her back to give him a modicum of privacy. Faith on the other hand watched him avidly as he lifted the slip and pulled the tights up over his rump. "Done." he said as he let the slip fall back into place.
Holding out a thin pink petticoat, she lowered it down to the floor. "Step in."
"What's that for? Is it really necessary?" he asked with more than a hint of irritation in his voice as he stepped in, remembering the house rules.
Sliding it up to his waist over the slip she explained with a faint smile, seeing that he was, at least vaguely, beginning to resent being dressed as a girl. "It's called a petticoat, dear. It gives the dress the proper shape so it doesn't just hang loosely around the legs." Hoping that the next item would be the final straw that would break his anger out, she went to Faith's wardrobe and pulled out a dress that she was sure would push him too far.
Eric turned and nearly fainted as she lifted the pink satin dress up for him to see. It looked to be the same length and a similar style as the cotton dress Faith wore, but had shorter puffy sleeves, a bodice covered in a swirl of vines and little flowers in a brocade pattern, and tiny pink sequins scattered about it. The neckline was accented in a Peter Pan collar with lace trim and more tiny sequins. The very full skirt was made of pale pink bridal satin and edging around about an inch above the lace-trimmed hem was another band of lace, ribbon, and a floral patterned organza with even more of the tiny sequins scattered around. He also noticed two satin sashes attached to the sides of the dress at the waist.
It was the girliest thing he'd ever seen.
"Point your arms up, sweetie." Heather instructed, waiting for him to balk.
Afraid to say no for fear of being sent away, and not really wanting to say it, he lifted his arms straight up as instructed. He was soon feeling a zipper closing up his back, followed by a tightness around his waist as his aunt tied the sashes together at the small of his back in a perfect bow. Inside he felt conflicted. The thick satin warmed him quickly, for which he was thankful, but the satin and lace all over his skin gave him more of that feeling of butterflies in the stomach than the nightgown had.
Directing him to sit back down, his aunt proceeded to brush and comb out his long wet hair. Every stroke seemed to fill the room with more girlish scent, making the butterflies in his stomach change to little rubber balls, bouncing around inside him every time he thought, I smell like a girl! I'm dressed like a girl! which he repeated with each brush of his hair.
His conflicted feelings weren't over wearing the dress. He honestly didn't care one way or the other, accepted the necessity, and in fact enjoyed the feeling. It was the other things that bothered him. If his aunt had just told him he had to wear a dress for the day, even this one, he would have been fine with it and perhaps liked it even, though he wouldn't tell his aunt that. Insisting he wear a petticoat and bra he didn't really need, simply because they were things a girl would wear with the dress, made him feel things he didn't want, and wasn't prepared, to face. The war inside himself became a pitched battle, feeling that he must fight to stop his aunt from treating him like a girl, but being treated like a girl gave him a feeling that made him simply give in to the apathy and quietly obey.
"Well," she said after a few minutes, "we can't dry and style your hair properly without electricity, and brushing it out it just makes you look like a boy with long hair in a dress."
"Well aren't I?" Eric huffed.
Heather smiled sweetly, certain that he was about to lash out. "Yes sweetie, but I'm sure you don't want to feel that way, do you?"
"Mamma?" Faith asked. "He could wear one of my play wigs! The red one!"
Believing him to be close to breaking through the apathy and venting his anger out at her, she smiled. "Yes, dear! That would work, wouldn't it?" Pushing his boundaries to the breaking point, she coiled his damp hair on top of his head and pulled the auburn wig Faith brought her over it, seeing the anger in his eyes. "There!" she made herself say happily as she picked up a brush and did her best to make it look nice. "Take a look!" Heather ordered, preparing herself for the dam of emotion to finally break.
Furious that she'd added yet another unnecessary feminine article that made him look and feel even more like a girl, Eric angrily turned and regarded his image as instructed. Reflected back at him was someone who only looked vaguely like what he recognized in the mirror, but somehow seemed so very familiar. As the wind howled outside and the beating rain turned slowly to sleet and snow, he realized that he was watching an echo of the past; a ghost reflected back at him instead of his own image.
A chill ran down his spine unnerving him when he realized why the image in the looking glass appeared familiar; not because it was a reflection of him dressed as a girl, but because it wasn't. In desperation to escape his tormented life, his broken mind took the reflection that vaguely resembled pictures of his mother as a child and twisted it to make him actually see her image as a child reflected back at him. Mom?
Seeing his shocked reaction, his aunt readied herself for a full-scale rebellion. "Well?" she asked.
The traumatized child could scarcely speak. After a moment, his expression of anger and shock melted into one of fascination. He simply nodded and murmured, "It's... it's fine, Aunt Heather." causing her to visibly blanche.
Watching him, Heather had been certain he was seconds from pushing back; moments from the break that would finally see him pour out his pain, grief, and anger at her instead of the faceless world that had been so cruel to him. If he had, she would have been ready to take it all, begin working through his grief, and help him learn to cope with it. Instead, something she hadn't anticipated happened as he just stared at his reflection, mesmerized.
Bringing over a pair of pink patent leather Mary Janes still in their box, Faith handed them to her stunned mother. "You bought these for me for when I grow some, Mamma. I think they might fit her already."
Swallowing hard at hearing himself referred to as 'her', he wanted to turn toward his cousin, but was almost physically incapable of looking away from the vision of his mother as a young girl staring back at him.
Heather was about to correct Faith's gender switch, but it started a thought brewing. "Are you sure, dear? You haven't even had a chance to wear them yet. They might get ruined before you even get a chance."
Faith dismissed the idea. "Of course she won't ruin them! Will you Erica?"
Hearing his mother's name broke the spell and he snapped his head around, thinking that they could see her in the mirror as well. When he saw Faith looking back at him and mentally processing the conversation he'd heard but wasn't listening to, his shock slowly melted away and he shook his head, noticing the strange sensation of the long red curls tickling his neck. "N-no Faith. I promise I won't mess them up for you." he said softly.
Beaming happily, Faith handed the shoes to her mother, who slipped them on the stockinged feet without a word. They fit well and his aunt then bade him to stand and look at himself in Faith's full-length mirror, hoping that perhaps the full image would be too much for his male ego to handle.
Stepping in front of the oval freestanding mirror, he got another chill as he once more saw his young mother in the mirror trying to copy his movements, just out of sync enough that he could tell it was her and not his reflection. He no longer cared about the clothes he was wearing or the uneasy feeling looking like a girl gave him. All he cared about was seeing his mother, even managing to smile at the idea that she was here with him once more.
Coming to stand next to her cousin, Faith looked at their reflections, appearing to her, and anyone else who might see them, like a perfectly normal pair of young ladies.
Heather quietly opened the door. Turning in the doorway she said, "I'm going downstairs to let Cook know to start serving breakfast. Please don't dawdle." Closing the door behind her, she was in a near panic. It almost worked! she insisted to herself. It nearly did, but something changed in him. I wonder... Guessing what it might be, she spotted Fredrick dousing the gaslights in the hallway and approached her butler. "Fredrick?"
Turning to face her he asked, "Is there something you need, Madame?"
Blushing slightly, she steeled herself. "Please inform Cook that we will be down for breakfast shortly. Additionally, I want to let you know something so you don't react negatively. Lacking options, and with his consent, we have attired young Eric in one of Faith's dresses. He was quite unnerved by it, but we didn't have much choice in the matter, given circumstances."
Explaining further, she added, "He didn't want to feel like a boy in a dress, so Faith and I helped to make her look more the part, which helped, so please treat her as you would any young lady. Can you do that, Fredrick?"
Barely able to restrain his shock, after a moment Fredrick accepted it as simply what his employer, a trained therapist who knew more about these things, desired. "Very well, Madame. How shall I address the child?"
Sighing, she replied, "Miss Erica. This should only be for part of today, hopefully. I'm going to go talk with Franchesca. I want you two to figure some way of fixing and drying his clothes today. Once his clothes are dried and repaired, he will remain in them until the roads open... even at night. Please inform Cook of the situation."
Bowing slightly he stated, "Of course, Madame. I shall do my best to make... her... comfortable with the situation." At that he returned to extinguishing the gaslights while Heather went off to find her maid. She wasn't sure what was going on in Eric's mind, but she couldn't live with herself if she didn't do everything possible to ensure Jack and Erica's son remained their son.
"Mamma picked my prettiest dress!" Faith pointed out after Heather left. "You look gorgeous in it, Erica! Do you mind if I call you that?"
Looking back at Faith in the mirror, he shook his head. "I suppose not, Faith. I... I guess Eric wouldn't be right... for... for a... a girl." A feeling he didn't understand washed over him as he referred to herself as a girl for the first time; a calm unlike anything she'd ever experienced. The war inside her was over. All that remained was the blissful calm. Turning back to marvel at the image of her young mother in the mirror, Faith took her hand.
"We should be getting down to the dining room. Mamma doesn't like it when we're late and it's already seven-thirty... half an hour late."
Swallowing hard, she asked, "Can I tell you a secret, Faith?"
She turned and faced Erica's reflection. "Anything, Erica! I promise not to tell... unless it's something bad."
She shook her head, this time enjoying the tickle of the hair on her shoulders and neck. "It's not a bad secret. When I look at myself in the mirror dressed like this?" She paused and let go of Faith's hands, gathering the nerve to say it out loud and not cry. Closing her eyes and holding her breath a moment, she finally blurted it out. "When I see myself in the mirror like this, I... I see my mom when she was a little girl!"
Faith gasped and her eyes grew wide. "Oh, Erica!" She'd seen pictures her father had of his sister growing up and, looking closely, she realized that in the dress and red wig her cousin did resemble her somewhat. "Are you OK?"
She nodded in fascination as her mother nodded with her. "I... I never noticed how much I looked like her before because my mom has red hair, and I have dirty-blonde hair like my father did."
"So I was right to pick the red hair?" she smiled.
Erica nodded, watching the youthful image of her mother eerily shadowing her head movement. Fascinated, she turned only her body away from the mirror slowly, continuing to watch her youthful mother following her movements imperfectly. She could turn her body just enough to see the big pink satin bow at the small of her mother's back, its ends trailing down the back of the skirt as though the ghost were a giant present.
Taking her hand, Faith chirped, "Come on, Erica! Let's go have breakfast!"
Entering the hallway, they saw Fredrick waiting for them at the top of the stairs. Erica's cheeks flushed and she felt the urge to run back into Faith's room to strip the dress off, but the impulse to do so was small and distant, like a memory of a desire. Instead, she just let Faith continue to lead her, hearing the clacking of their short heels against the marble floor. It was an odd sensation for her, having never heard her own footsteps so prominently.
When the two reached the top of the stairs, Fredrick bowed. "Good morning, Miss Faith... Miss Erica. Breakfast is served. If you will accompany me?"
"Thank you, Freddie!" Faith said happily as she released Erica's hand and took his, descending the stairs with the perfection of royalty.
Following, Erica tried to descend the stairs as gracefully as Faith. Passing the framed paintings that hung along the stairway wall, she would occasionally catch sight of her mother in the glass and smile. Slowly, she formed a story in her mind unlike any she'd ever made up. Reaching the bottom, Fredrick held out his free hand and waited. Taking the offered hand gently, she held it the way she saw Faith doing, letting the butler escort them both to the dining room. Entering, they saw Heather already seated at the head of the table.
"Miss Faith and Miss Erica, Madame." Fredrick announced formally.
Nodding to him, Heather gestured to the same places they had occupied the night before. Realizing that she should wait to be seated like Faith, she stood beside her chair while Fredrick assisted her cousin. When the muscular man moved her seat out for her, she smoothed the back of the long skirt and mimicked how she'd seen Faith sit. Sliding into place, she again followed Faith's lead and placed her napkin across her lap.
Waiting patiently, she saw Cook come out with two plates. Serving her aunt first, she again served Faith second. The household cook then left and came back to place Erica's plate in front of her, smiling at her gently, if nervously, the whole time.
"Thank you." she muttered, her voice soft and meek.
"You're quite welcome, dearie!" Cook replied. "Just let Fredrick know if you want any more! There's plenty!"
Remembering dinner, she clasped her hands to pray and bowed her head while her aunt repeated the same prayer from dinner. During the prayer, the broken child imagined she was her own mother, praying as she must have done thousands of times before Erica was even born. It gave her a warm smile that lingered all the way through "Amen."
Throughout breakfast in fact, she was smiling. She hadn't played pretend, creating stories like she used to, since before her mother's hospitalization, but at that moment she was lost in a world where she was Erica Hargrave, a twelve-year-old girl visiting with her cousin Faith and her aunt Heather. Imagining it as she ate, she changed the back-story so she was living with her 'aunt' who was really her sister-in-law because Richard was her much older deceased brother. She just called her 'Aunt Heather' out of respect because she was old enough to be.
Watching the two eating, Heather noticed that Erica seemed happy, but lost in thought. Worried that she was in some kind of fugue state at the shock of seeing herself dressed as a girl, the therapist decided that she'd made the right decision in arranging to have the boy clothes cleaned, dried, and repaired as soon as possible. Whatever's going on in his mind seems to have broken through the apathy and depression, so it's done some good, but the sooner he's back in his own clothes, the better. I don't like this...
When at last the three finished breakfast, Fredrick helped each of them out of their seats in turn. Moving from the dining room into the living room where the large fireplace warmed the house, Heather sat once more on her usual loveseat while the two girls took seats on the other one facing her.
"Well!" she began. "Since there's no school today, and likely not for a few days at least, we needn't worry about getting Erica registered until likely next month." Looking at Erica's reaction, she noticed no change in expression over the use of her name in the feminine form. Needing to see just how badly damaged she was, Heather used her therapist's training and began engaging them in light conversation. "Do you two have any plans for today?" she asked.
Looking at one another, they shook their heads, Faith answering for them both. "Not really, Mamma. I've done all my homework, and Erica doesn't have any yet, so I guess there isn't anything we have to do. Could we just go upstairs and play for a while?"
Her mother shook her head. "I think we should sit here together and talk about a few things. Besides, it's much warmer in the living room than in your bedroom, don't you agree?" Turning to Erica, she asked, "Did you have anything you wanted to talk about? You must have a lot of questions."
"Not really, Aunt Heather." she said demurely.
"I noticed that during breakfast you seemed to be deep in thought." she probed. "What were you thinking about?"
"Well, I was thinking... um..." she began hesitantly, sure that her aunt would react badly to the idea that she was pretending to be her own mother. Deciding to just let her know some of her thoughts, she closed her eyes and took a breath, her way of making herself say something she didn't want to. "I noticed that I look an awful lot like... um... my mom... when she was younger. I was thinking about that." Still sorting out the details of her story, she justified her statement by separating Erica's life into two parts; her old life as a grown up and her new life, reborn in the body of her own child.
Faith looked at her surprised. "I thought you wanted me to keep it a secret?"
"It's alright, Faith." she sighed. "I couldn't very well lie to your mom, right?"
"I guess so." she replied. Turning to her mother, she asked, "I noticed I look a little like some of the pictures of you when you were little. Don't you think so, Mamma?"
Smiling, Heather turned to her daughter. "Somewhat, dear. I also agree, Erica... you do look somewhat like your mother at your age. How does that make you feel, seeing something of your mother reflected back at you?"
She shrugged absently. "Mostly I like it... like she's still here with me."
Looking at her intently, Heather nodded. "I understand. Well, I see no real harm in it for a while. Maybe it can help you cope with your feelings."
Smiling, Faith turned to her cousin. "Erica? Would you like to play pretend and your name can be Erica while my name can be Heather?"
Shaking her head slowly, she replied, "No, that's OK, Faith. I think you should just be yourself. You can still call me Erica, though. I like it." Even as the words came out of her mouth, she remembered that she was sitting across from her aunt. Looking over at her with eyes wide, she tried to stammer out a retraction. "Well, what I mean is... um..." Unable to come up with a convincing restatement of a meaning other than the truth, she finally sighed and looked down in her lap again, waiting for a lecture that she shouldn't be enjoying her predicament. The response she got surprised her.
"That very understandable, Erica." her aunt replied.
Looking up at her guardian, she asked, "It is?"
Heather laughed. "Yes, sweetie! You see, from a certain point of view, Eric is an orphan boy, uprooted from the life he's always known, and cast into a strange place with family he doesn't know with almost nothing to his name. Erica is a young lady with pretty dresses, lots of toys, a cousin just her age, and living with loving family and isn't missing anyone in her life, because she has no life other than what you want there to be. Do you see?"
She nodded as she began to see what her aunt meant. "I think so. It sounds like something I read in a psychology book once. I think it's called escapism. Is that right?"
Sitting forward, Heather was surprised by her degree of knowledge on the subject. "Very good, Erica! You seem to have a knack for psychology. Isn't that what your mother did for a living?"
Thinking about her mother Erica while being Erica was confusing and unsettling. If she was Erica Dunning, that meant her mother was also Eric's mother, therefore her mother was also dead, whereas if she was Erica Hargrave, her mother was alive again. Shaking free of that confusing and depressing line of thought, she answered her aunt's question distantly. "In a way, Aunt Heather. I think she was called a Human Resources Consultant."
Nodding, Heather already knew that her mother had gotten a degree in psychology; they'd both attended Stanford at the same time, Heather one year ahead of her. She also knew what her sister-in-law had done for a living after her husband Jack was killed overseas. It was all in the letter that the dying woman had written to her asking her to take 'Eric' in. "Well I'm impressed, young lady." she complimented.
Faith was bored with the conversation. "So then, can we play down here in the living room then, Mamma? If we promise to play quietly?"
"In a moment, dear." her mother replied absently. Turning back to her niece, she waited to see if the girl would volunteer anything more.
"Aunt Heather? If what you say is true, about me using escapism? Doesn't it mean I should stop? It's not healthy, right? Isn't it what crazy people do?"
"No, sweetheart. In fact a little escapism can be very healthy. Actually we do it all the time. Sometimes we need it the same way a pressure cooker needs an escape valve. When life gets too hard, or changes too quickly, the pressures it can cause can lead to very self-destructive behavior. A little escapism, like reading a book or watching a movie, is as healthy as a little wine; too much and you can't function in the real world... too little and you won't have much fun at all. Do you understand?"
Erica nodded. "So it's OK to be Erica?"
"For a while, yes." she nodded and smiled. With an almost laughing lilt in her voice, she added, "We'll see how you feel once your regular clothes are clean and dry and you have a choice!"
"Is it OK now, Mamma?" Faith sighed.
Her mother looked sternly back at her. "Now Faith, you know perfectly well that whining will not get you what you want. I think it would be good for you to be reminded of that by you two staying down here to read for a while. You may chose from any book in your library, so long as you read until ten. Is that clear, young lady?"
She'd regretted her impatient tone the moment it left her lips and knew that she'd blown any hope of getting to play downstairs any time soon. "Yes, Mamma." she replied apologetically. Standing up she extended her hand to her cousin, helping her stand in her unfamiliar outfit. "Come on, Erica. We really do have a very nice library. Would you like me to show it to you?"
She smiled at the idea as she'd always enjoyed reading. Pausing a moment, she realized she'd missed something. "Wait, you have your own library?"
"Well, I call it my library." Faith shrugged. "It's just one wall, though."
Her mother intervened, standing next to the two. "That's enough, Faith. Follow me, ladies."
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Stepping through the door to the right of the old grandfather clock in the living room, Erica walked into the library. Its dark interior illuminated only by the little light that managed to seep its way past the heavy curtains that covered the room's single massive window, she followed her aunt to the right; rows of bookshelves jutting out from the wall opposite the door.
Following the woman around the corner and further to the right, she determined it had to be directly below the room they'd given her, just as the living room was beneath Faith's and her aunt Heather's rooms. Slowly building a map of the house in her head, she looked around as Fredrick entered and drew back the heavy curtains, showering the room in the light managing to make its way through the heavy clouds and freezing rain.
She had never seen so many books outside a public library.
"This is our library, Erica." Heather said matter-of-factly, having come at last to the other end of the room near the window. "This far wall is Faith's library, and now yours as well. You may feel free to take any book on those shelves. If you want a book that is anywhere else, you need to ask my permission first. Do you understand?"
She nodded absently as she looked at the wide assortment of books available. "Yes, Aunt Heather." In doing so, she realized she'd mimicked the slight little curtsy she'd seen Faith do every time she said 'Yes, Mamma.' She hadn't actually thought to do it, it just seemed the natural thing to do.
"Richard expanded the library when we bought this house." she reminisced. "Originally, this part of the house was a separate room, a den, I believe. He combined them, then added the rows of shelves on the south wall to expand the library's capacity. Many of these books have been in my family for generations. The original library could never have contained them all. If you do request to use any of them, please be very careful. Some are quite old."
In awe of the number of books just in 'Faith's Library', she nodded and curtsied absently. "I will, Aunt Heather." Looking over the collection, she saw nearly every novel ever written for children from the mid-eighteenth century through the mid-twentieth, as well as several sets of encyclopedias.
While Erica perused the books, Faith came bounding up, happy as a lark, having completely forgotten her disappointment at being denied permission to play. "Erica! Have you ever read this one? It's one of my favorites!"
"Rebecca of Sunnybrook Farm?" she read the title. "No, but I've heard of it. I think they made it into a movie once." Taking the book graciously, she wandered up and down the shelves, looking for anything that seemed interesting.
"That should be enough time." Heather instructed after a few minutes. "Take what you have to the living room and read quietly until ten o'clock."
Not having found anything that had caught her interest, Erica simply took the book Faith had handed her and followed her cousin out to lay on the floor in front of the fire where Fredrick had put a blanket for them to keep warm while they read. The two lying down to read, Heather reading on her usual loveseat, she looked at Faith's book. "What did you pick?"
"Little Women. I like Beth the most, even though it's mostly about Jo."
Shrugging, Erica settled down on her elbows to read in front of the fire. A short time later she noticed that she was doing something she'd done for years without realizing. The two pre-teens were both lying on their stomachs with their feet toward the fire and at some point Faith had started kicking her feet up as she read, mimicking what Erica had been doing. Imagining how they must look, she thought how it really was a very girlish thing to do and giggled. Looking up, she saw her aunt steal a glance at them, making her smile melt as she looked down and resumed reading once more.
Not long after, she heard someone enter the living room from the archway into the dining room and kitchen. Looking around, she saw Fredrick holding some metal racks and standing next to a waiting Franchesca who was carrying a small basket.
"Madame?" Fredrick began. "Franchesca has hand laundered the soiled clothes, however the only place suitable for drying them quickly is in front of the fire. With your permission?"
Not relishing the thought of seeing Erica's boy clothes hanging to dry in her living room, she was however more eager than ever to see Erica returned to her old clothes, mistaking the behavior as Erica slipping too easily and happily into newly acquired girlish habits. "Proceed, Fredrick. Please make room." she directed toward the two youths.
Both children scooted away from the fireplace, leaving room for Fredrick, Franchesca, and the improvised drying rack Fredrick had made out of grills from the oven.
While Fredrick started setting up the racks for drying, Cook stormed in. "Mrs. Hargrave! Fredrick has taken all the racks out of my oven! Without 'em, I won't be able to prepare dinner or supper!"
Heather put down her book. "I see." Turning to Fredrick she sighed, "Is there no other option?"
"I'm afraid not, Madame." he shook his head solemnly. "I find we are quite unprepared for this circumstance. The fire is the only means of drying clothes quickly, and the oven racks are the only viable means of setting clothes in front of it to do so. The only alternative would be to hang them on lines in the library or spare room, which would take two to three days to dry."
Thinking a moment, willing to do whatever was necessary to get Erica back in pants, she nodded. "Very well, Fredrick." Turning to Cook she sighed, "You'll have to make do without them until later today at the soonest, Cook. Hopefully they'll be available in time to cook supper."
Scowling, she answered, "Yes ma'am! But just so you know, I don't like it!" Turning to leave, she glanced down at Erica with a pained expression.
Watching her leave for the kitchen once more, Erica wondered what the exchange was about before she looked over at Faith and for the first time saw her visibly upset. Leaning in close, she whispered, "What's wrong?"
Looking close to tears, she whispered back. "Once your clothes are dry, you might not want to be Erica anymore!"
"I think even if I have a chance to go back to... the way I was... I might not." she reached out a comforting hand to Faith.
Taking it, she smiled. "Really?"
"I really like being your cousin Erica." she smiled genuinely. "It's a lot more fun than when... when I... um... wasn't." Leaning in close to whisper even quieter, she added, "Your clothes are really nice and pretty!" Faith squeezed her hand happily before Heather interrupted the moment.
"That's enough whispering. Back to reading please."
Letting go of each other's hands, the two went back to their books. When the grandfather clock struck ten, Heather released them both to go upstairs and pick toys or a game they could quietly play in the living room to stay warm; the storm outside continuing to rage as the temperature plummeted.
Several minutes later, Erica stood patiently behind Faith as she rummaged through the toy box at the foot of her bed. "It's funny." Erica noted. "I didn't think I'd like Rebecca, but when your mom said we could go play, I was actually kind of disappointed that you didn't want to keep reading."
Looking back over her shoulder, Faith smiled. "It's a great book, isn't it?" Going back to her rummaging, she shortly pulled out a board game box and handed it to her slightly younger cousin. "Take this please, Erica?"
Taking the box, she watched Faith put all the other games back. More interested in the fascinating way the bubbly girl packed her toy box than the game she'd been handed, Erica watched as Faith neatly and carefully placed every object back in a specific place, finally dropping the lid when it was done to her satisfaction. Burning with curiosity, Erica asked, "Why do you put everything in a certain way? Doesn't that take a lot of extra time?"
Standing up, Faith shook her head. "Not really. When I want something I know just where to get it. Mamma taught me that being organized saves time in the long run because you don't waste time trying to find things and cleaning up messes that you wouldn't have if you were organized."
Walking over to her wardrobe, Faith opened it and revealed a huge assortment of dresses. "See? If I know what dress I want to wear, I know exactly where it is, saving time trying to find it. Plus, they don't wrinkle!"
While Faith talked for a few minutes about organization, Erica looked at her dresses. Only half listening, she was instead imagining what she would look like wearing each of them. Suddenly conscious of what she was doing, and remembering what was said while her ratty clothes were set out to dry, she chided herself.
Faith closed her wardrobe and took the game from her absent hands. Noticing her far away look, she asked, "Erica? Are you alright?"
Sighing, she stepped backwards until she felt Faith's bed against the back of her legs and sat down. "I really don't know, Faith."
She walked over and placed the game on her bed, sitting beside her. "What's wrong? Are you feeling ill? Do I need to get Mamma?"
"No, I'm not sick. I'm just... sad."
"Why?"
"I... I mean... Ugh!" Frustrated at her inability to express what she was feeling, she flopped back onto Faith's bed, staring up at Faith's pink canopy while her feet dangled from the edge. "I like being Erica, a lot... but I'm not supposed to."
Wrinkling her nose up in confusion, Faith asked. "Why do you think that?"
Closing her eyes, she tried to find the words that would make her understand. "Your mom really doesn't like me wearing your clothes or being Erica. I can tell. I think she's gonna make me stop... very soon... like as soon as lunch is over. I really like being Erica, but I think I can't like it. I... I don't want to make Aunt Heather mad at me." She left out the part she feared so much she dare not even speak it out loud, that if she displeased her aunt severely enough, Heather would send her away, just as the Stone's had.
Moving the game, she lay down on her side next to her cousin. "Didn't Mamma say it was good for you to be Erica for a while?"
"Yeah, but she doesn't like it." she mumbled. "She wants me to be a normal guy, and normal guys don't like dresses. Besides, I have to do whatever she says. She didn't have to take care of me, ya' know. I kinda owe her. So I'll hafta stop being Erica whenever she says to, even if I like being a girl."
Quietly, Faith mulled over the idea. "I guess I don't understand why she doesn't like you wearing my dresses. I mean, the way I see it, there's lots of girls I know that hate dresses. Some don't even like me wearing dresses! My old friend? Jennifer Wilks? She lives a little ways down the highway. She hates dresses! She told me that I should stop wearing them because she says they're... um.... de-grating? So it figures that since not all girls like dresses, then not all guys have to hate them, right?"
She opened her eyes and turned her head to face Faith. "If a boy likes to wear dresses, he gets teased by everyone and called names. If a girl doesn't like dresses, nobody cares. Girls can wear pants and guy stuff and it's fine, but boys can only like boy stuff... nothing else. It's just the way it is."
Faith sat up. "That's not fair!"
Sitting up, she leaned on one elbow and faced her. "No one ever said life was fair, Faith." she sighed depressingly. "If it was, we'd still have dads."
Sighing and lying back on her bed, Faith reluctantly agreed. "I suppose. I guess it's sort of like Mamma's friends, Aunt Brooke and Aunt Jenny? They live in a little house just north of here. Aunt Brooke was my daddy's best friend! She was in the war with him when he... um... when he died."
"My dad was killed in the war, too." Erica shared. Holding out her hand to Faith, she smiled when her cousin took it.
"I guess I see what you mean about life not being fair. When they got married last year, the ladies at church called them names I'm not allowed to say. Mamma stood up for them, then Pastor gave a sermon about having a splinter in your eye or something and everyone stopped calling them names. Aunt Brooke is really pretty, and Aunt Jenny is super nice! It wasn't fair that they got called names just because they're two married women."
Nodding in understanding, Erica sighed. "So anyway, that's what's wrong. I really like being Erica, and I love your dresses, but I can tell your mom isn't going to let me be Erica, or let me borrow your clothes, anymore." Pausing a moment, she began understanding herself. "I never really thought about it before this morning. I just assumed that because everyone told me to be a boy I had to be one, but it's like I was supposed to be a girl. That's what the doctor told my parents before I was born, that I was going to be a girl." Turning sullen, she looked down at her pretty dress. "But it doesn't matter. Even if your mom did let me be Erica, everyone would make fun of me."
Standing and stepping in front of Erica, Faith held out her hands to help her back up. Once she was standing again, Faith put her right hand over her heart. "Erica? I promise you that no matter what, I will never make fun of you liking to wear my dresses or for being a girl! I think you're prettier than anyone as a girl! I wish you could stay Erica forever and would never have to wear those ugly boy clothes ever again!"
Just as she finished speaking, both of them heard the smoke alarm sounding. Erica ran for the door to her room, but Faith stopped her from opening it.
"No! If there's a fire, we're supposed to get down on the floor!"
The two got down on their hands and knees and waited. When the noise stopped, Faith checked the door for heat. Feeling nothing, Erica reached up and opened the door as the two started crawling toward the stairway where they heard footsteps running up toward them. Looking up as her aunt rounded the corner, Erica wasn't sure what to do and just froze.
"What are you two doing?" she asked impatiently.
"What they taught us in school to do in a fire, Mamma." her daughter answered as though it was a silly question.
"You two! Get up and follow me!" Heather barked.
Getting off the floor and walking over to her, the irate woman started down the stairs, the two children following. On reaching the living room, it was obvious why the smoke alarm had sounded. There in front of the fireplace was a smoldering pile of cloth with Fredrick pouring water on it to put them out.
Swallowing hard, Erica looked at her aunt. "My clothes?"
She nodded. "Your clothes. Where were you two a few minutes ago?"
The two looked at one another, then back to her. "We were upstairs getting a game, Mamma." her daughter answered shyly. "You told us we could."
"It doesn't take twenty minutes to get a game and come back down." she said, trying to keep from shouting. "Who did it?"
"Did what?" Erica asked, a genuine look of confusion on her face.
Faith understood her mother's implication much sooner, her eyes opening wide in shock. "Mamma! You don't think..."
"Yes, I do!" Heather interrupted. "And now I have a good idea who and why!" Walking up to her daughter, Heather took a breath and calmed herself. Folding her arms, she looked down at her daughter. "Faith? Tell the truth and your punishment will be much less severe. You know that."
Scared that she was to be punished for something she didn't do, Faith was near to hysterics. "Mamma! I didn't! I swear I didn't!" Unfortunately, her thoughts drifted back to the wish she'd made, wondering if she had done it by wishing for it. It left enough doubt in her eyes that Heather could see it.
Wanting to help Faith, once she figured out what was going on, Erica got her aunt's attention. "Aunt Heather? Faith and I were together the whole time. She couldn't have done it. Maybe it was an accident?"
Seeing that Erica was showing no tell-tales of a lie and appeared to be answering honestly, she looked at Faith who had shown she was holding something back, sure now that Faith had sneaked away without Erica seeing. "I'll give you one more chance to come clean, Faith. The truth!"
Backing away, Faith started breathing heavily. "But... I..." She tried to find the words to make her mother believe her, but it was impossible to prove that she hadn't done it, especially since she thought she might have. Thinking fast, she equivocated. "I didn't touch them, Mamma! I promise!"
"Very well then." Heather said in a menacing tone, her experience letting her see the deception in Faith's body language. "Your punishment..."
"Stop!" Erica shouted. "I did it!"
Snapping her head around to look at her niece, she saw several tells that told her she was lying to protect Faith. Looking back at her daughter, she scowled. "Are you going to just stand there and let your cousin take the blame for it, Faith?" she tried shaming her.
"But I didn't, Mamma! And I know she didn't either!" Faith started to cry. "She couldn't have! She never left the room! I saw her the whole time! Erica! Tell her the truth!" she pleaded, but saw her cousin standing rigid as a board with a thousand-yard-stare in her eyes.
"Very well." Heather growled. "Both of you, go upstairs and wait in Faith's room. I'll be up in a few minutes to tell you what your punishments will be." Once they made their way up the stairs and were out of earshot, Heather turned back to Fredrick. "Can you tell what happened?" she asked.
Turning to her as he ran his fingers over a burnt shirt fragment, he nodded. "Indeed, Madame. I believe Cook could shed some light on the issue."
Theresa Cook stood defiantly at the entryway to the dining room. "Yes, I can, Mrs. Hargrave!" she snapped.
Quickly making her way to stand in front of her household cook of more than thirty years, Heather spoke in hushed tones. "Explain please."
Heading into the kitchen for privacy, Cook turned as her employer entered behind her. Once the door closed with Fredrick waiting nearby, she stared Heather down, despite her shorter stature. "I poured lamp oil on 'em!"
Heather was taken aback. After a moment of silence she asked, "But why?"
Theresa never flinched. "You know a lot about a lot of things Mrs. Hargrave, but what you don't know a lot about is grief." Seeing her employer about to object, she waved a dismissive hand. "Oh, you know enough about it to have some sense of it... as an adult. I know you still grieve the loss of Mr. Hargrave... and your parents... and you have your fancy degree, but you cannot understand the grief of a child who's lost what that child has!"
Stiffening at the accusation, Heather scoffed. "Just what gives you the right to say I know nothing of grief?"
The household cook stalwartly faced her down, wielding a wooden spoon like an accusing finger. "The right of an orphan, dearie! I lost my parents at the same age as that child! You were lucky enough to be an adult... with a sizable inheritance to get you through it! That child is suffering a profound grief that cannot be measured... losing your parents before you're ready to assume the responsibilities of adulthood. Then uprooted from all you've ever known, taken in by strangers! It makes a child feel unwanted and abandoned, no matter how many people she has telling her otherwise!"
She poked her wooden spoon towards her employer, coming within an inch of actually poking her with it and making Heather back away. "And you! So eager to resume a state of normalcy that you'd make extra efforts to see to it he can be put back in pauper's rags before suppertime! Pushed out of the only thing holding back his grief... his escape into a girl's world! Oh, you make grand statements about it being 'his choice' if he wants to play at being a girl for a while, but make no mistake! That child knows you don't like it and feels so indebted to you for taking him in, he'd rather endure the grief than go against you! You can fire me for doing it Mrs. Hargrave, but before you do, just know this! The deed is done and now you're stuck with it! So if you think getting rid of me will solve things, you better think again!"
Silence filled the room like a vapor, threatening to suffocate them. Finally, Cook stepped slowly up to her long time employer and lowered her voice to a caring tone. "You know me, Heather. I've been a part of this family since you were ten. You know I don't act rashly, but this child needs this. The idea of making the dear wear rags while the rest of us have fine clothes? That poor thing needs an escape from all that... and one that can be counted on for a while. At least until he can manage to swallow his grief and move on. Maybe a day... maybe a week... maybe a year. Eventually he'll go back to being himself, but forcing it for propriety's sake? I think you already know it's wrong Heather, but for once... put your pride and fancy education aside... and listen to your heart."
Heather had been about to fire her, consequences be damned, if for no other reason than for going behind her back, but the more she listened, the more of what Theresa said made sense. Clearing her throat and raising her chin up, Heather addressed her. "I should fire you for it, but you are right, Cook." Her eyes turning toward the floor, her pride evaporated and she took on the look of the ten-year-old girl Theresa once knew. "I have been stuffy and prideful. Richard would be so disappointed in me for that!"
Relaxing and taking a seat at the kitchen table, she continued. "Oh, I know it's no excuse, but Erica's death has affected me much more than I've let on. She... she was my last tie to Richard... and Jack... and I loved her as though she were my own sister. Now I'm afraid that she's entrusted me with her child and I've let her... and Jack... down! I wanted to help him, but it seems like all I've done is confuse him. Erica warned me that he wasn't very boyish and asked me to make sure he grew up into a good man like Jack, and I put him in a dress! And he liked it!" Looking over at Theresa, she shook her head in disbelief. "Lamp oil?"
"I wanted to make sure!" she smiled at back.
Fredrick, who had stood by impassively through the entire exchange, cleared his throat. "Madame? If I may, the children are upstairs awaiting your adjudication."
She covered her face with her hands. "Oh, the children! What'll I tell them?"
Cook walked over to her and rubbed her back gently. "Tell them the truth, dearie. I oiled the grills and some of it caught fire. It's a half truth, but one that does more good than harm." Heather looked up as she continued. "Sometimes the greater love is to take the sin onto one's self to ease the suffering of others. I'm sure He understands! As for Jack and Erica? The little I got to know them tells me that they would understand, dearie. Better to let their child be a girl for a time than to suffer needlessly."
Standing gracefully, Heather started out of the kitchen. Stopping just short of pushing the door open, she half turned and addressed the woman who'd taken such a great risk for her niece. "I'll deduct the cost of one set of boys clothing from your check..." Pausing a moment, she concluded, "...when Erica decides she's ready to be Eric once more and desires them." At that, she made her way up and to her daughter's room. Knocking gently, she opened the door after a moment to see both of them seated on Faith's bed, looking for all the world like convicted prisoners awaiting sentencing.
Walking into the room slowly, she cleared her throat. "Erica? Are you still intent on professing to be the one responsible for your clothes catching on fire?"
She sighed, gathered her nerve, and looked up at her aunt. "If it'll mean Faith isn't punished for something she didn't do, then yes, Aunt Heather. I did it. I burned up my old clothes."
Seeing the anguish on Faith's face, she walked over to the vanity and sat down. "I know that's not true, Erica. I'm afraid I owe you both an apology. I erred in accusing either of you. The fire was not your fault."
Both children looked up at her, astonished that a grown-up was apologizing to children. Finally, Faith asked, "What happened, Mamma?"
Her mother sighed before telling her half-truth. "It seems Cook got some inflammable oil on the oven grills. It became too hot and caught fire." Looking over at the two relieved children, she sighed apologetically. "Oh, girls! I'm so sorry I accused you falsely! Can you ever forgive me?"
Immediately, both got up and hugged her, each in turn offering their forgiveness. Faith cried, telling her mother about the wish she'd made, making her think she had done it. After a brief exchange of tears, hugs, and kisses on the cheek, Heather looked at her young charge.
"Erica? I want to ask you something and I expect you to tell me the truth." she intoned seriously. Gathering her nerve, Heather remembered what Cook said and just hoped to providence that this was the right course of action. "Do you want to stay living as Erica for a while? I mean a long while? Before you answer, I want you to know that I hope the answer is yes! I have to admit, you do look like your mother when she was your age, and it brings me great comfort to feel a little of her presence in my home again!"
Erica looked confused, unsure if the offer was some sort of trick. Taking a chance, she asked, "Do you mean it, Aunt Heather? It would be OK if I stayed Erica? Even once the roads are open?"
Heather smiled back at her genuinely. "Yes, Erica! I really mean it!"
Throwing her arms around her aunt, feeling jubilation at the idea of no longer being 'Eric the orphan boy' and becoming a kind of reincarnation of her own mother. "Yes, Aunt Heather! I would like to stay Erica!"
Hugging her new niece, she felt Faith hug them both while they hugged each other. "Oh, thank you, Mamma! I just know Erica will be happy here!"
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Erica awoke slowly, stretching her body and rubbing the sleep from her eyes. Next to her, Faith lay sleeping. The room had an odd quality to it as she unwrapped herself from Faith's warm clinginess. Sitting up, she dropped her feet into the slippers that Faith had given her the night before. Crossing the floor toward the window in her borrowed nightgown, she'd finally noticed that the howling wind had subsided leaving an eerie silence to sit over the house. She'd become so accustomed to the howl of the storm, its absence left a void in the perceptions of her surroundings. Peaking out the window, Erica saw something she'd never seen before. Awestruck, she stood in wonderment at the beauty of the sight before her.
Everywhere she looked glistened with the sparkle of fresh fallen snow from the light of the waning three-quarter moon still in the western sky. She'd seen pictures of snow and knew what it was, but never before had her own eyes beheld the beauty of a morning draped in crystal and moonlight. Behind her, Erica heard Faith's early morning groans of awakening.
"Faith! Come look!" she cried.
Faith sat up slowly, sleep still blurring her vision. She could see her cousin Erica standing in nothing but her nightgown and slippers next to the window, jumping up and down slightly. Closing her eyes a moment, she moved toward her side of the bed and opened them again as she slid into her own slippers and made her way over to look out the window.
"What is it, Erica?" she managed to get out around a yawn. "What's wrong?" Looking out the window, she saw nothing unusual. "What?"
Erica continued to jump up and down, giddy as a schoolgirl. "It's snow!"
"I know it's snow. What's wrong? You act like you've never seen snow before!" Faith said with a perplexed look.
She shook her head. "I haven't! Isn't it beautiful! I had no idea it could be so... pretty!"
Faith shook her head in disbelief. "How can you go your whole life and never see snow? Don't they have winter in California?"
Shaking her head, Erica looked back outside. "Not like this! Winter there is rainy and muggy! Winter here is... is..." The words escaped her as she tried to encapsulate the beauty of seeing her first snowfall. "...it's breathtaking!"
Her cousin smirked. "Just wait until you have to walk through half a mile of it to get to the bus stop! Then it'll just be cold and wet!"
Even as Faith finished speaking, Erica dashed for the bathroom, grabbed the robe Faith had given her off the back of the bathroom door, threw herself into it, and dashed out the door of their shared room while still tying it shut. Skidding to a stop at the top of the stairs, she went down the steps as fast as her feet could carry her. Reaching the bottom, Theresa intercepted her.
"Hold up there, girl! Where're you off to so fast?" As she spoke, she caught Erica's arm and slowed her race to the door to a stop.
"Oh, Cook! It's snow! Real snow!"
Refusing to release her arm, Cook nodded in understanding. "Yes, dearie... real snow, and it'll still be there after you put on some clothes! You'll catch your death if you go out there dressed in nothing but your nightshirt and slippers!" Looking down at the girl's desperate need to see it for herself, she sighed. "Alright, girl! Just wait a moment and I'll get you a coat and some proper boots and you can go out for just a minute or two, alright?"
Erica could hardly contain herself, but calmed enough to stop trying to pull away and rush to the door. Waiting at the marble bench while Cook went into the closet at the end of the entryway, she looked up to see Heather descending the stairs in a graceful glide of seafoam green chiffon, silk, and lace. Curtsying slightly, Erica turned to her. "Good morning, Aunt Heather! Did you see outside?"
Heather smiled sweetly. "Yes, sweetie. It snowed last night. The way you're taking on you'd think it snowed flakes of pure gold!"
She shook her head. "This is better! I've never seen real snow before!"
Her aunt blinked, then realized the girl never would have, growing up in southern California. Smiling wistfully, she remembered the day she and her husband had bought this home. You were right, Richard! When she saw Theresa bringing over one of Faith's winter coats and fur-lined winter boots, she laughed and asked, "What's all this, then?"
Cook waved her off. "The girl was so anxious to go out and see it for herself, she nearly ran out in nothing but her skivvies. It can do her no harm to see it for herself so long as she's at least a little better dressed for it." She slipped the coat on Erica's arms and started to button it.
Scoffing, Heather shook her head. "Oh, that's nonsense! She can certainly wait until after the sun is up and she's properly dressed and filled with a warm breakfast! The snow isn't going anywhere!"
"You don't understand, Miss. She needs to see it, now, while the wonder's still fresh." Cook continued explaining as she had the newest member of their household sit on the marble bench so she could put the boots on. "Remember when you told me about your first trip to Paris? How you couldn't wait to get out of the airport and set your own eyes on the Eiffel Tower? You nearly got arrested trying to skip the Customs line!"
Heather remembered it like it was yesterday. Smiling, she looked away at some distant place as though she could see right through the world and time itself and look at it once more. "Oh, yes! That was so foolish of me! I was just so excited I couldn't think straight until I'd seen it for myself!" Pausing, she looked over at Cook putting the second boot on Erica. "Oh, but that was different!"
Cook shook her head. "Not to Erica, it isn't. Snow is her Eiffel Tower ma'am, just as wondrous and mystical as that silly collection of iron was to you before you laid eyes on it."
Tilting her head to the side, she gave in. "Oh, very well." Walking over, she crouched and tied one bootlace while Cook tied the other. Smiling up at the giddy girl, she helped her to her feet and led her to the door. "Now just for a minute or two, alright sweetheart? I don't want you out in that cold too long without proper winter clothes to keep you warm and safe. Promise?"
"Yes, Aunt Heather! I promise!" Erica nodded vigorously.
Nodding in acceptance, her aunt opened the door.
Erica stepped out on the front porch, marveling at the awesome beauty of it all, gazing at the beauty of clear moonlight reflecting off every surface with a gleam like a million diamond flakes scattered as far as the eye could see. Hearing the door close behind her, she exhaled and watched her breath condense into a fog that drifted through the air like smoke rings.
A giddy feeling washed over her as she stepped gingerly out into the cold. She could feel the bitter chill of the air on her ankles and slightly up her nightgown, sending a shiver up her spine. Reaching the edge of the porch where the snow had only accumulated lightly, she knelt down until her fingers could touch it. Scooping some up, she felt the coldness of it bite into her delicate fingers, turning them red.
Rolling the snow over in her hand, she marveled at the simple beauty of it. A few flakes broke away and slipped between her fingers, while others melted against her warm skin. Gathering up another handful, she packed it together into a snowball, reared her arm back, and let fly with the first snowball of her life with a squeal of delight. Stretching her arms out, she spun around in the cold like a top, exhilarating in the feeling.
Remembering her promise, she drew her arms back in to cover her chest and slowed her spin until she was facing the door once more and slowly started back inside. The door opened for her and she stepped in to see Fredrick holding the door and everyone else smiling at her. Faith, her aunt Heather, Cook, and even grouchy Franchesca greeted her from her first foray into a winter wonderland.
"Welcome back, Miss Erica." Fredrick intoned with his usual grace and refined dignity as he closed the door. "May I take your coat?"
Letting Fredrick take the coat before walking over to her aunt, Erica flung her arms around the woman before standing on her tiptoes to plant a kiss on her cheek. "Oh thank you, Aunt Heather! It was wonderful! Cold, but wonderful!" As she turned, she saw Cook take a picture of her.
Grinning at Erica as the girl giggled, Cook nodded toward the housemaid. "Franchesca took a movie of you with this thing while you were outside. Lord knows how!"
Franchesca snatched her digital camera back from Theresa. "Fat lot you know! I'm surprised you knew how to take a picture with it!" Turning back to Erica, she almost smiled before returning to her natural grimace. "You just be grateful I took time out of my busy schedule to teach these fools that moments like this are why we invented cameras!"
Erica padded over to Franchesca, slipped her arms around her in a genuine hug, and said softly, "Thank you, Franchesca!"
Stunned, and unused to such overt affection, she stood there numbly for a moment, her arms spread in a wide circle around the new member of the family with her camera in one hand and a dumbfounded look on her face. Finally she closed her arms around Erica and returned the embrace. "You're quite welcome, dear." Releasing her hug, she stepped back, leaving Erica standing there grinning at her. Handing Erica the camera, she said in a snippish tone, "Now don't you go breaking that! You can look at the video and pictures, but then I want you to return it to me post haste! I'll get you a copy of them, when I have time!"
The girl smiled ever wider and said again, "Thank you, Franchesca!"
"You can thank me..." she quipped as she headed up the stairs, "...by keeping your room clean so I don't have to!"
Stepping up next to Erica, Faith joined her in watching Franchesca ascend the stairs. Once she'd disappeared around the corner of the upstairs landing, Faith said, "Wow! She hugged you? She must really like you!"
Everyone except Fredrick giggled at Faith's remark, and even he cracked a half smile, removing it before anyone noticed.
Heather directed Erica back to the bench to remove the boots, while the two young girls looked at the pictures on Franchesca's camera. Once done, Fredrick took the outerwear to put away while Heather directed both girls upstairs to change for breakfast. The two raced upstairs, ran to their now shared wardrobe, and flung the doors open to decide what they should wear.
Erica was torn. On the one hand, she wanted desperately to go out and play in the snow for the first time, which necessitated a warmer winter weight outfit. On the other hand, it would be the first time she could chose a dress to wear for herself and wanted it to be pretty.
Faith made several suggestions before Erica found one dress that she felt could fit both desires. It was a heavier broadcloth, so it was warm and soft to the touch. The design was a simple girl's A-line with mid-length eyelet sleeves, a scoop neck with a V-shaped lace fringed white eyelet collar with a thin pink ribbon woven though the eyelets at the edge. Darts at the waist of the skirt flared to a wide hemline trimmed in a floral lace that came down to mid-calf. The material was patterned in pink and white gingham, giving it an older but very pretty look with the accents. It also had a sash tie at the waist to draw in her figure, which helped to offset the child-like style that would otherwise make Erica look younger than her age.
Once the two girls had picked their outfits, Faith started to undress at her bedside as she always did. Erica blushed as she gathered up her things and started for the bathroom.
"Why are you taking your clothes in the bathroom?" Faith inquired. "I'm going to need that in a few minutes!"
Biting her lower lip, Erica was suddenly very self-conscious of stripping bare in front of her cousin. "Um... I just thought..."
Faith interrupted her stammering. "Just get dressed out here with me! It's warmer out here than in the bathroom!"
Trying to figure a way out of her predicament, Erica dropped the majority of her clothes on the bed except the bra, panties, and slip. Taking just those into the bathroom, she stated, "I'll be out in a minute or two!" and closed the door behind her. Undressing quickly and dropping her dirty clothes in the wicker hamper, she donned her undergarments as fast as she could manage. While struggling with the bra, a gentle knock came at the door.
"Are you almost done in there?" Faith asked.
Struggling with the training bra, she answered brokenly. "Just... give... me... another... minute!" she panted.
While Erica continued to struggle, the door cracked open. Seeing her cousin facing away from her and having so much trouble, Faith entered the bathroom and came up behind her. "Here, let me help." she said blandly.
Erica nearly jumped out of her skin as Faith spoke and suddenly, without any warning, started pulling at the straps of her borrowed training bra. "Yeeeaaahhhh!" she cried out.
Her eyes widened and Faith stepped back, startled at the reaction. "Erica! You scared me!"
Having nearly climbed the far wall over the pedestal sink, Erica slowly slid back down. "I scared you? You about scared the life out of me, Faith!"
Undaunted, Faith put her hands on Erica's shoulders, spun her around to face the sink, grabbed the back of the training bra, and pulled it down. Smoothing out the twists in the shoulder straps, she bade Erica turn around to face her. Seeing Erica blushing profusely as Faith straightened out the cups of the bra against Erica's non-existent breasts, she smiled shyly and tried to console her cousin. "I know you don't have anything up front, Erica. It's no secret! It's also nothing to be ashamed of! Lots of girls our age haven't started to develop yet! You're still the prettiest girl I know!"
Feeling her heart in her throat as Faith futzed with the bra overly long, Erica just stood there like a silly lump and let her do whatever she wanted.
"Take your slip out with you. I need the bathroom." she demanded. "I'll be out in a few minutes to help you get dressed!"
Erica grabbed the slip and stepped out sideways to avoid bumping into Faith, facing away from her the entire time. After stepping back into their shared room, she went over to the bed. Deciding to wait on the slip as it would make putting on tights more difficult, she picked up the white tights and sat at the vanity.
Following the example her aunt set the morning before, she started putting them on. She was just pulling them up over her rear when she heard the toilet flush and the sink faucet turn on. Hurrying, she dashed over to the bed and grabbed the slip, pulling it over her head just as the bathroom door opened and Faith returned to their bedroom.
Smiling as she passed Erica, Faith picked up Erica's dress, unzipped the back, and held it up as high as she could. "OK. Put your arms up and step in." she instructed.
Faith's shorter stature conspired with Erica's lack of experience at putting on dresses, making her lean too far forward trying to push her arms up the dress and into the sleeves. Losing her balance, Erica fell into her cousin, knocking Faith back and onto their bed while she slipped down the side.
Mortified, Erica could scarcely move, now trapped by her awkward position, the side of the bed, and Faith's legs. For her part, Faith found the entire situation hysterical and began giggling, which did nothing to help Erica's embarrassment. After a moment, Erica felt Faith's legs move off her back, finally freeing her to be able to stand once more, albeit with some difficulty as her arms were still trapped sticking straight up in the bodice.
"Here. Let me help." smiled Faith. Coming around behind Erica, she put her hands on Erica's waist, steadying her until she could stand on her own. Taking the sides of the hem in each hand, she tugged the dress down until it settled into place and Erica could lower her arms. After she closed the zipper up the back, Faith suggested, "Maybe next time we should just try having you step into the dress. You can't do that when you're wearing a petticoat, but this dress has crinoline built in, so you can just step into it."
"Why didn't you say that before?" Erica giggled lightly.
She paused in the middle of tying the sashes into a bow. "I guess I just didn't think of it. Can you grab the knot with your fingers so I can pull it tight?"
Reaching behind her back, Erica fumbled around until Faith directed her hand to where the loose knot was. Pinching it, Faith drew the sashes together, tightening the dress around Erica's waist and narrowing it like a corset. "Does it have to be so tight?" Erica begged.
"Yup." Tightening the bow in place Faith said, "OK, you can let go now." Fiddling with the bow for another minute she exclaimed, "There! All nice and pretty! Now you can help me, and then we'll do each other's hair!"
She followed Faith around to the side of the bed nearest the vanity, the one they agreed would be 'Faith's side'. Watching her cousin walk ahead of her in nothing but her undergarments gave Erica a funny feeling. The swish of her own dress's crinoline against her legs as she walked seemed to make it even more acute. Holding her belly she noted, "I wonder if I might be getting sick. I feel sort of queasy."
Faith immediately stopped and turned around to face Erica. Putting the back of her hand against Erica's brow, she waited a moment before putting a hand on Erica's left chest, just over the training bra. "Well, you sort of feel warm to me, your cheeks are flushed, and your heart is beating like a rabbit! You should tell Mamma."
Erica's eyes grew wide. "But she might make me stay inside! I just can't, Faith! Not today!"
"I guess I understand." Faith shrugged. "I think if I were in California and about to take my first trip to see the Pacific Ocean, I wouldn't want to tell Mamma I was feeling ill." Turning back to finish walking to her side of the bed, she picked up her tights, donned them in seconds standing in place, and then dropped her slip over her head. "What are you going to do?"
Erica noticed that once she was focused on the snow outside, her stomach quieted down, her cheeks felt cooler, and she couldn't feel her heartbeat in her neck anymore. "That's weird! It's OK! I'm starting to feel better."
Looking back at her cousin with a smirk, Faith picked up her own dress. "Uh-huh! Suuuure! I promise I won't tell!"
While Faith stepped into her dress, Erica came up behind her to help the same way Faith had. "No, seriously. Maybe it was falling down and getting frustrated that made me feel sick. I feel fine, now." Erica zipped up Faith's pale blue dress with Faith holding her long blonde curls away from the back of her neck. She watched as Faith spun in place and kissed her on the cheek with a giddy smile.
"Thanks, Erica!" she sung. Faith watched as Erica's cheeks, which just moments ago were indeed no longer flushed red, blushed again and she could almost see Erica's pulse rise on her thin neck. Puzzled, she cocked her head to one side again. "OK, that is weird! You did look fine for a second, then when I kissed you, you got all red and flustered..." Stopping mid-sentence, her eyes grew wide and a smile crept back across her pink lips. "Are you embarrassed that I kissed you?"
The slightly younger girl shook her head as she walked over to the vanity once more. "Not really embarrassed... it's just..." She searched for the right words as she took her seat. Faith came up behind her, picked up the brush, and started brushing out Erica's dirty-blonde hair.
An eternity passed while Faith waited for Erica to explain her reaction before Faith offered her own. "Come to think of it, you were like that when I was helping you get dressed. You got all red then too, which was before I kissed you."
Erica shrugged as Faith worked on a knot in her hair. "Like I said... it's not embarrassed... it's... something else. I don't know what it is, but it happens whenever I see a pretty girl."
Swallowing hard, Faith stopped brushing. "You... you think I'm pretty?"
Looking in the mirror at her cousin, Erica nodded. "Sure! You're more than pretty! You're beautiful!"
This time it was Faith's turn to blush and get a fluttery feeling. Looking down and feeling shy, she replied, "You're just saying that!"
Erica shook her head and turned to face Faith directly, looking up at the blonde girl with a slightly dreamy expression. "Oh no, Faith! I really mean it! I think you're about the most beautiful girl I've ever known! Even prettier than..." As she spoke, a wave of sadness crashed over her entire being as the memory of the night before came back into her mind.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
CAUTION - emotional pain/open emotional wounds
Clarification: The entire first part of this chapter is a traumatic flashback.
--
Erica bounded into the living room, gay as a lark. It was just before six o'clock and she knew April would be home from school by now. "Aunt Heather? It's almost six. I know it will be time for dinner soon, but before dinner, can I call my friend April and let her know I'm OK?"
Her aunt Heather sighed. "May you call her..." she corrected.
She calmed herself and rephrased her request. "Before dinner, may I call my friend April and let her know I arrived safely?"
Still getting used to the bubbly little girl before her who stood in stark contrast to the broken and lifeless boy she'd met less than a full day earlier, Heather conceded. "Very well, but please keep it brief. This is not a cell phone. Long distance calls cost money, and I won't have you making dinner late."
"I promise, Aunt Heather! Just a quick word to say high and let her know I'm alright." Pausing she asked, "If I give April your phone number and tell when it's OK to call, she can call here and it won't cost anything, right?"
Heather disliked giving out her phone number to strangers, but she determined that giving it to a child could do little harm. "Very well, Erica. The number is on the telephone. Please tell her not to call during meal times or after eight thirty. Is that clear?"
Curtsying slightly, Erica replied with a smile. "Yes, Aunt Heather. May I call her now?"
With a simple nod from her aunt, Erica stopped herself from squealing and running across the room to the old style rotary telephone. She'd never seen one before and found its use charming and elegant. Over the last several hours, she'd reconciled the details of her life. She was Erica Hargrave, her own mother. After she died of leukemia, to keep her child from being alone, she'd been reborn into 'his' mind. Now they were simply one girl.
Making herself cross the room at a walk, she sat gently on the couch, lifted the receiver, and started to dial April's cell phone number. She was dismayed when it gave a message that the number was no longer in service. Hanging up, she dialed April's home number and waited as it began to ring. She waited nervously as the phone rang and was startled slightly when she heard the other end pick up.
"Hello?" April's mother said.
"H-hello Mrs. Stone. Is April there?" Erica asked nervously.
The voice on the phone seemed irritated. "Who's calling?" she asked.
Being her own mother, the 'boy' April only ever knew as Eric, and Erica, she wasn't sure how to answer. Barely managing to stammer out a reply, she said, "It's Eric...a Dunning."
Listening, she heard April's mother say, "It's that Dunning boy!" to someone, then the sound of the receiver being passed around, followed by a strong masculine voice.
"This is April's father, Eric." he boomed. "We don't think it would be a good idea for you to talk to April."
Erica felt her heart drop. "W-why, sir? Is she sick?" Thoughts of losing her best friend not only to distance but also illness or death flooded Erica's mind, nearly driving her mad at the thought of losing yet another part of her old life.
"Now listen here, boy." April's father growled as Erica listened in stunned silence. "We put up with your dead-beat butt for six months! Fed you, clothed you, paid for your school supplies, and we never even got half of that back from your mom's probate!"
As she listened in shock, she heard April's mother. "Dear! That's not the boy's fault! Just tell him what we talked about and hang up before April hears and comes down!"
Finally, he lowered the axe. "I know what happened isn't your fault boy, but April's been a wreck since you left! In time, she'll get over it and forget all about you. You talking to her will just drag it out longer. It's best if you just go about the rest of your life your own way and let April go hers. You'll never see each other again anyway, so best to make a clean break of it and stop ruining her future by making her cling to a wimp like you!"
Pausing a moment, there was some concealed conversation before he finished his cruel one-sided conversation. "Oh, and don't try emailing her, texting her, or calling her. We've had all that changed. So good riddance and don't call here again!"
Hearing the connection terminate, Erica dropped the receiver as tears began streaking down her shocked face.
Seeing the stunned and hurt look on Erica's face, Heather raced to her side. Returning the receiver to its cradle, she asked, "What happened, dear? Is she alright?" While she generally tried not to eavesdrop, she couldn't help but overhear Erica asking about April being ill.
Erica turned to her aunt and buried her face in her loving shoulder, the older woman taking the girl up in her arms as she began to cry like a baby.
Worried that the damaged child had been made to endure yet another trauma, all she could do was rock her in her arms and pet her head, telling her, "It'll be OK, sweetie! I'm here! Just let it all out!"
She cried for a full ten minutes, Faith standing in the living room the whole time, waiting to find out what happened. Fredrick merely stood impassively next to the entryway to the dining room, waiting for things to settle out before his employer would give the word for the delayed dinner to start. When the ordeal had begun, he'd taken it upon himself to tell Cook that dinner would be late and that something was terribly wrong with the newest member of their household.
As she sobbed, she whispered to herself, "I'm Erica Hargrave!" over and over, unaware that her aunt could hear her. Finally, the tears dried up and Erica was so numb she couldn't cry anymore. Leaning back, she eventually said between sobs, "I'm... s-sorry, Aunt H-Heather. I... I... didn't m-mean... to g-get... you... all w-wet... and m-make... dinner l-late!"
Heather consoled the devastated youth. "Oh, don't worry about that, sweetheart! You're much more important than my dress or dinner. Now, can you tell me what happened?"
While Erica told the tale, Faith just stood by in wide-eyed horror. Fredrick remained standing impassively, but was nearly overcome with the desire to find these heathens and teach the man of the house a lesson in what it feels like to have your heart broken by breaking a few of his ribs. Theresa had entered just as the story began and couldn't contain her tears. Even the frosty Franchesca, standing at the top of the stairs and listening, was moved so much that she couldn't bear to hear the whole thing and ran off before she could be seen crying her eyes out.
She managed to finish the tale just as the crying began anew. "And then he... he said n-never... to call back a-again... and h-hung up! I... I... I n-never... even g-got... to s-say g-goodbye... to h-her!" Resuming her place on her aunt's shoulder, she continued to cry for some time. Meanwhile, Faith slowly walked up to her mother and cousin and gently placed her hand on Erica's arm, just so the girl would know that she was there.
Eventually, the tears subsided once more and Fredrick was ready. Handing Mrs. Hargrave tissues for herself, Erica, and Faith, he returned to stand next to the doorway alongside Cook, handing a tissue to her as well so she would stop using her apron.
After the crying ebbed, Heather addressed Fredrick and Cook. "I'm afraid we'll have to postpone dinner once more. I apologize for the inconvenience it may cause you two."
Fredrick spoke for them both. "Think nothing of it, Madame. I took the liberty as I could see there were more important matters to deal with."
"Thank you, Fredrick." Heather replied. "Now, Erica. There's nothing I can say that will make this better right now. Just know that in time, you won't feel the hurt so badly anymore. It will never go away, but you will survive it and one day it will be bearable!"
She understood her aunt was trying to help, but nothing seemed to make the pain lessen. "I know, A-Aunt Heather. Th-Thank you. It just h-hurts so bad th-that I couldn't e-even t-tell her I w-was OK! She'll n-never know!"
Heather petted her head gently. "I know, sweetheart! I know! I wish I could fix it for you!"
Smiling weakly, Faith offered, "Couldn't you write her a letter?"
The devastated youth shook her head, her tear-soaked cheeks making her shiver. "No. Her parents would see who it was from before she ever got it."
Crestfallen, Faith's voice turned sullen. "Oh."
Eventually, after getting cleaned up, the three solemnly headed for the dining room. Erica was impassive and vacant, eating only when reminded to and even then just enough to satisfy her aunt. Finally, after Faith had been done for nearly ten minutes, Heather said, "Well, I guess that's enough for tonight. Maybe your appetite will return in the morning."
She looked down at her plate, feeling guilty that she failed to eat the meal given to her. I don't think I'll ever be hungry again! she mused. Not wanting to upset her kind and gracious aunt, she nodded weakly and said, "Yes, Aunt Heather. May I be excused?"
Erica felt her chair being pulled away from the table and then felt a heavy hand on her shoulder. Looking up at Fredrick's impassive face, she took the other offered hand and let him help her stand. Slowly, she followed her aunt back into the living room with Faith taking her hand as they walked side by side behind Heather.
Her aunt sat on the loveseat as usual and Faith let go of Erica's hand, hugged her mother, kissed her cheek, and said simply, " I love you, Mamma."
Returning the hug and kiss with much more care and affection than normal, she replied, "I love you too, Faith. Very much!"
Slowly shuffling up to her aunt, Erica resumed her place where she'd spent so long crying before dinner. Hugging her earnestly, as though she were the last person on Earth, Erica could hardly make herself let go. Finally, she released her aunt, kissed her on the cheek, and said with every good feeling she had left, "Thank you, Aunt Heather. I love you so much!"
Heather nearly burst into tears herself, seeing the desperate love, adoration, and gratitude young Erica showered on her. "Oh, sweetheart! I love you, too! I'll be up in a while to tuck you both in, OK?"
She bathed in the guest bathroom, just as she had the first night. Before the fateful call it had been decided, mostly by Faith, that Erica and she should share the girl's room from then on. Though her mother was hesitant to agree, Faith got her way by asking questions and refusing to accept an answer that was essentially, 'because you're not supposed to' or 'it's just not done that way'. Lacking any valid reason to keep the two separate, and since Faith's wardrobe was going to have to be shared by the two for a time, putting them in one room was just the logical choice.
The only concession Faith made was at bath time. Since both needed to bathe at the same time, it was decided that Erica would bathe in the guest bathroom, while Faith continued to use her own. Even Faith had to admit that seeing her cousin completely naked was 'bad', which itself took half an hour to get her to admit, without explicitly stating why.
While Erica finished washing, she noticed the hair on her legs was growing slightly noticeable. Taking the lady's razor, she shaved her legs for the first time, enjoying the smooth feel of them when she was done.
Pulling the plug on the tub, she stepped out and dried off, making sure to wrap her hair in a towel the way she'd seen her mother and Faith do. Her hair was just long enough to make it stay, and she felt quite grown up as she pulled on her fresh panties, nightgown, and robe. Slipping her feet into her slippers, she deposited the towels and dirty laundry in the hamper, the dress she'd worn that day having already been taken off in their bedroom where she'd donned her robe and slippers.
Shuffling her way to her shared bedroom, she was pleased to see Faith was only just then coming out of the bathroom herself. Concerned that she'd taken too long to get clean, she was content at least to know that she'd not dawdled. The two girls were solemn as they got into bed after drying their hair as best as they could and then brushing each other's hair out in silence. A few minutes after they got in bed, the door opened and Faith's mother again glided in to share prayers with her two girls.
Faith looked over at Erica sadly before saying her silent prayer. After she said "Amen.", she and her mother turned to Erica.
The girl simply sat there, impassively staring off into empty space, her pain acute and raw. She felt cold and alone, certain now that even if there was a God, He was a cruel and sadistic monster that enjoyed watching people suffer in torment.
Heather cleared her throat. Once Erica looked over at her she said, "Erica? Won't you say your prayers?"
She bridled at the suggestion that she bow in supplication to a God that would let her suffer so much pain and loss. "Why? So He can kick me in the teeth again?"
Faith's eyes widened as her mother shook her head solemnly. "So you're going to blame God for the actions of two foolish parents?"
Feeling the wind knocked out of her sails, Erica was prepared to fight her aunt, but she'd just made an unassailable point. I'm not really mad at God, I guess, not for this anyway. Directing her thoughts at the Creator, she shouted in her mind. Letting my mother die for no good reason is enough reason to hate You! I don't need to blame You for April's parents being cruel! Though You supposedly made them that way, right? You made everything!
Feeling guilty for shouting at God while her wonderfully kind aunt waited, she decided it would do no harm to please her, laced her fingers together, closed her eyes, and pretended to pray. After what she thought was enough time she simply said, "Amen." quietly, opened her eyes, and looked at her aunt while smiling weakly.
Sighing as she guessed that Erica was just humoring her, she accepted the old adage. Fake it 'till you make it. Smiling back, she bade both girls to lay down. Once they were settled, she kissed them on the forehead, first Faith and then Erica. Pausing as she sat on the bedside next to her niece, she tried to soothe the young girl's aching soul.
"You know, I remember when I went away to college, I had a best friend, too. Her name was Lydia and she and I did everything together, but her parents wanted her to go to Columbia, while I was headed to Stanford. I used to be so mad at them for breaking up our friendship, but it turned out for the best. When Lydia and I were together, we didn't need anyone else! If she had gone to Stanford with me, I would probably have never gone to the party where I met your uncle Richard."
Erica wasn't sure what her aunt was driving at. Finally she asked, "So now you're glad they split you up?"
The older woman shook her head in the dim light of the moon coming through the window. "No, not glad per say, but I'm not mad at them for it anymore. Because you see, we don't know why things have to happen the way they do. We just aren't smart enough to see the future and know what good things can come from the bad things." Pausing, she stood up and concluded, "And who are we to say that the bad outweighs the good? After all, if you hadn't needed to come here, we would never have been able to know and love you, Erica."
The devastated girl felt a tear roll down her cheek as her aunt kissed her on the forehead and walked to the door. As she looked over at her aunt silhouetted by the dim gaslights in the hallway, she heard her say, "Goodnight, girls. Pleasant dreams and may God bless."
"Erica?" Faith asked, wondering why her cousin had suddenly become so sullen. Going back over their conversation, Faith realized Erica had been about to say that she was prettier than April, reminding her cousin of the heartbreak of the previous evening. "Oh, Erica!" Moving around behind her again, Faith began to brush out her cousin's hair, still damp from the previous night's bath, until she was ready to put the wig on.
Thinking of how to cheer her up, Faith smiled. "Hey, Erica? I think you have really pretty hair. Maybe when we can get to town, Mamma can get your hair dyed and you can have your own hair just like your mamma's!"
Perking up and breaking from the depressing lows of the previous evening, Erica looked at her cousin's reflection. "What was that, Faith?"
She pulled the red play wig over Erica's head, settling it in place and tucking little strands of dirty-blonde hair out of sight before inserting the bobby pins to hold it in place. "I was saying that maybe once we can get to town, Mamma can get your hair dyed the same color as this hair."
Looking in the mirror, once more Erica saw the vision of her young mother. Smiling she tried to imagine her own hair the same shade of red as her mother's without having to wear it. "I would like that!" she purred.
Once Faith finished settling Erica's hair in place, they switched and Erica followed Faith's instructions as to how to brush and style her hair. She found the experience relaxing and fun. Faith's hair was very fine and naturally curly, so using only a curling brush, she managed to restore most of Faith's curls. As she was nearing completion, her aunt entered their shared room after a light knock on the door.
"Well!" she complimented. "You've done a very nice job, Erica! Now I don't have to tend to Faith's hair in the mornings!"
Her daughter stood as soon as Erica finished. "Mamma? I thought of a way to thank her!"
She smiled down suspiciously at her suddenly generous daughter. "And how is that, dear?"
Looking back at Erica she said, "I think we should get her hair colored the same as her mamma's was!"
Heather looked at Erica's reaction and saw her smile at the prospect. "Well, we'll see. Until the roads open once more, it's a moot point, though."
"I know." Faith nodded. "I just think she would look a lot better with her own hair that color. Don't you think so, Mamma?"
Her mother regarded her niece, not wanting to commit her to a change that would have lasting effects should she decide that she was ready to move on from her escape. "Yes, I think it would be most becoming, but then I think we can also do a lot with her natural hair color. Dark blonde hair with the proper style can be very pretty!" Walking up to Erica she asked, "What would you like, sweetie?"
Blushing, she looked down and fidgeted with her fingers. "I do like it most when my hair is this color, Aunt Heather." Toying with the hair tickling her neck she added, "But this wig can get awful itchy sometimes!"
Laughing lightly, she took both girls in her arms. "Come on you two! Lets go down for breakfast and afterward we'll get you two set up to go out and enjoy the first snow of the season!" Starting toward the door, she noticed Erica's dress. "That dress is lovely on you, sweetie. Did Faith pick it out?"
Erica shook her head as they entered the hall. "No, Aunt Heather. I did!"
Walking slowly toward the staircase, she smiled. "Well, I think it shows you have wonderful taste!" As they descended the stairs, she noted absently, "Once the roads are clear, our first priority will be to get you some new clothes, Erica. Have you thought about what you'd like?"
Slowing as she followed Faith and her aunt down the steps, after a moment of gathering her courage, she resumed their pace and replied. "I was thinking some dresses, not the same as Faith's, but different? I mean, Faith looks great in her dresses, and I don't think she should change her style at all, but I think I'd like some things that are... um... different, Aunt Heather. I don't know how to describe it. I guess I'll know it when I see it."
Reaching the base of the stairs, her aunt nodded. "Very well. I'll think on it."
After an uneventful breakfast, old music emanating from the restored Victrola in the kitchen, the three sat in the living room once more, her aunt seated on the loveseat and the two girls seated on the couch. After settling in, Heather asked, "So you think you will want to stay Erica for a while?" It was the first time since her aunt agreed to let her be a girl that she'd broached the subject of how long she wanted to stay that way.
Faith put her hands on her hips, giving her a furious look. "Mamma!"
Heather held up a hand to forestall Faith's objections. "Now dear, I have no intention of pushing Erica into anything, but she must get her own clothes. She cannot just continue to wear yours. True?"
She looked back at her mother suspiciously. "Yes, but..."
Once more she stopped her daughter's retort. "...but I must know Erica's intentions... not yours." She paused to let it sink in before returning to her sweet mothering tone. "Erica is not your plaything, Faith. Circumstances demanded Erica dress in your clothes, and she has decided to live with us as Erica... for now. I believe some good can come of it, and hope she decides to stay living as Erica... while it is helpful... but your desire to have a sister should not enter in to her decisions about what is best for her."
Pausing a moment, she collected her thoughts. "I can even say that my love for Erica as she was shouldn't sway her decisions." Heather admitted. "Erica must feel free to make that decision for herself, to determine on her own what she needs to do. I will not have you pushing her to be what you want her to be just to make you happy. Is that clear?"
Faith's anger at her mother for what she felt was pushing Erica to go back to being a boy melted in the face of her own desire to ensure Erica stayed a girl indefinitely. "Yes, Mamma. I'm sorry if I disrespected you. I'll try to do better."
She smiled at her daughter. "I know, dear. You always wanted a sister, and now here you are with a cousin and you want things to stay the way they are, but I must know what Erica's needs are and plan accordingly." Turning to face the girl who'd said nothing during the exchange, she motioned for Erica to come sit next to her.
Standing and gingerly walking over to the loveseat, Erica sat facing her aunt. "Yes, Aunt Heather?"
"Erica sweetheart," Heather began, taking both of Erica's hands in her own, "I know this is difficult, but soon the roads will open again and we'll go into town to buy the things you'll need to live here. I must know how long you want to live here as Erica." Glancing at her daughter she added, "With no pressure either way. Right Faith?"
Standing back up, Faith looked at her cousin solemnly. "Erica? You know I love you just the way you are, and I would love it if you stayed this way, but I'd still love you if you don't."
Her mother smiled and turned back to Erica. "And I'll love you just the same if you stay this way or not. What do you want to do?"
The new girl took a moment before answering. "I think I know, Aunt Heather. I know it's kind of escaping from my troubles, but if it would be alright, I'd like to live here as Erica."
Her aunt smiled. "I know sweetie, but I need to know for how long?"
"I really don't know, Aunt Heather." Erica admitted. "The way I feel right now, I can't see me wanting to ever go back to the way I was." Closing her eyes, she gave it serious thought. After a few moments she opened her eyes and said, "I know you need a time, but the best I can say is that I want stay Erica for as long as you'll let me. Does that help?"
She patted Erica's hand. "It helps enough, sweetheart. I'll plan accordingly. I think I know what you need. Will you trust me on that?"
"Yes, Aunt Heather!" Erica smiled. About to get back up, she sat down again and asked, "Aunt Heather? I know it may be asking a lot, but I really do want to have red hair. May I?"
Sighing, she gave in. "Very well. I'll look into it."
Leaping into the air, Faith cried, "Yippee!"
Her mother tried to be stern with her, ordering her to sit back down, but her jubilance was too infectious and could not be contained. Soon the three were laughing and, after a moment, Heather rose to her feet. "Well girls, I have some things to attend to, and you two have a field full of untouched snow waiting for you!"
This time it was Erica's turn to jump up, but in her case it was to head to the closet for her outerwear. About to run past her aunt, Erica doubled back and hugged her. "Thank you, Aunt Heather!" At that, she practically skipped over to the front door as Fredrick waited to assist with coats and boots.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Erica stepped out onto the front porch again, this time fully decked out in dress, tights, bloomers, coat, scarf, hat, mittens, boots, and a burning desire to run out into the front yard, plow through the knee-deep snow, and bury herself in it. Carefully making her way down the front steps, Faith by her side, she still couldn't help but giggle at the sense of wonder she felt experiencing her first snowfall.
Now that the sun was up, the magical beauty of the fresh snowfall was magnified a thousand times, turning every tree branch and rock into a dazzling display of twinkling brightness. Blinking against the blinding whiteness of the sun, Erica was awestruck with every step.
Reaching the bottom of the steps that Fredrick cleared before breakfast, Erica couldn't contain her excitement any longer and ran to the closest drift of snow she could find. Wading into it, she giggled as she flopped backwards into it, relishing the feel, even as cold as it was.
Right behind her cousin, Faith yelled, "Erica! Wait for me!" Watching Erica drop into the snow giggling, she giggled as well. "Oh, Erica! Now you're all snowy and wet!"
"I don't care!" she retorted between giggles. "This is like magic!"
Jogging up to stand next to her prone cousin, Faith held out a mittened hand. "Come on! Let's go make snow angels!"
Pulling herself up with the offered hand, she followed Faith around to the north side of the house opposite the garage where the lawn lay dormant beneath the untouched snow. Erica watched as Faith lay down and splayed her arms and legs out, wiping them back and forth until she had carved out a perfect snow angel. Helping Faith back up, Erica looked down at the pattern and smiled.
"That's pretty neat! Let me try!" she said through her smile. Finding a clear patch next to Faith's angel, she lay down just as Faith had done and repeated the process, getting up to admire the two patterns with their apparent hands joined together. Spending the next ten minutes making more, they finally looked back on their works of art.
Erica looked at her cousin. "That was so much fun! What else can we do?"
She shrugged. "We could build a snowman!"
Nodding vigorously, the two spent the next half-hour rolling snow and stacking it into a body and head. Using rocks for eyes and loose sticks for arms, Erica made a smile out of gravel from the driveway before taking off her scarf and wrapping it around the neck. The two girls laughed at the sight as it was barely half their height, lumpy, goofy looking, and not at all what you see in movies and TV shows, but so much better because they'd made it. They laughed so hard their sides ached when they noticed the rock eyes made it look cross-eyed.
Starting back to the house, Erica noticed how wet they both were. "Aunt Heather isn't going to be mad at us for getting wet, is she?" she chattered through cold lips.
Faith turned around and walked backwards through the snow toward their front door. "Mamma said we could go out in the snow, she knows that means getting wet, and cold. Cook will probably have hot cocoa for us to drink in front of the fire so we can get warm again!"
"It sure is cold! I bet it stays this cold until spring, huh?"
Her cousin turned back around to see where she was going. "It might not. Sometimes we get a snow like this and the next week it'll turn warm and melt everything, but we'll get more snow by Christmas, that's for sure."
Reaching the foot of the steps leading up to the front door, Erica watched Faith stamp her feet and wipe her arms and sides of her coat to remove the snow. Doing the same, she helped wipe snow off of parts of her cousin that she couldn't reach as Faith did the same in return.
"Hey, Erica?" Faith asked while she was getting brushed off. "Do you know what you want to be for Halloween? It's this Sunday, only three days away!"
Shrugging, Erica finished brushing Faith off. "Nothing, I guess. I haven't dressed up for Halloween in years. That's for little kids."
Turning, Faith looked at Erica with a hurt expression. "Oh. Never mind."
Seeing she'd accidentally hurt Faith's feelings, Erica apologized. "Faith? I'm sorry! I didn't mean to..." Even as she spoke, she watched Faith ascend the steps in a sullen waddle. "Faith! Come back! I'm sorry!"
Hurt turning to childish anger, Faith spun around, looked back at her cousin, and spat her reply. "Well, maybe in California it's for little kids, but here it's for everyone!"
Erica moved slowly up the steps towards her. "I'm really sorry, Faith! I didn't know you liked Halloween so much!"
"Erica, that was mean!" Faith crossed her arms. "I'm not a little kid and I love to dress up for Halloween! Even Mamma does, and we have lots of fun at the Halloween party!"
Hanging her head, Erica stopped on the steps. "Faith, I swear I didn't mean to make you feel bad! Back home, almost nobody does Trick-or-Treat... except little kids. They don't even go to people's houses anymore! They have Trick-or-Treat at the mall. I didn't know it was different here! Will you please forgive me?"
Looking at her cousin warily, Faith judged her explanation as if to search for hints of lies in it. Satisfied Erica was sincere, she uncrossed her arms and nodded. "Well, OK." Her sullen expression slowly breaking into a smile, Faith giggled. "I can't really stay mad at you anyway, Erica!"
She finished climbing the steps and hugged her slightly older cousin. "Thank you, Faith! I really am sorry. I'll try not to assume so much in the future. It's just... really different here."
They took each other's hands and walked up to the door, which opened for them as they approached.
"Welcome back, Miss Faith, Miss Erica." Fredrick greeted them. "Did you quite enjoy yourselves?"
"Quite!" Erica nodded with a grin. "Thank you, Fredrick!"
"You should call him Freddie, like I do, Erica." Faith offered as she sat down on the marble bench to take off her boots. "I think he likes it!"
She looked up at the huge man and noticed only the slightest remnants of a smile fading to his normally emotionless expression.
"As you like, Miss Faith." he replied. "However, I should say that Miss Erica should be free to refer to me as she prefers."
Thinking as Fredrick helped her out of her coat, Erica turned and looked up at him. "I'd like to call you whatever you like."
Fredrick raised an eyebrow in surprise, having never been asked what he liked to be called. Thinking honestly a moment, he looked down at the child before him. "I think I like you referring to me by my full first name, Miss Erica. It seems to suit you."
Smiling, Erica stood tall and tried to sound formal and dignified as best she could. "Then Fredrick it shall be. Thank you for helping me with my coat, Fredrick!"
"My pleasure, Miss Erica." he replied with only the slightest hint of a smile. He found it odd that he was actually beginning to think of Erica as a young girl, but he understood it was what she needed to be for now. Guiding her to the marble bench, he knelt and helped both girls off with their boots and mittens before helping them put on their indoor shoes. Looking around briefly, he asked, "What has happened to your scarf, Miss Erica?" The mention of its absence caused both girls to giggle at the memory of their ridiculous looking snowman that now wore it.
Making their way into the living room, the two saw pillows and a blanket placed in front of the fire. Rushing forward, stopping at the fireplace for a moment to warm their hands, they sat on the pillows just as Cook came out of the dining room with a tray. Lowering it down so they could each take a steaming cup of cocoa, she smiled at the girls.
"Did you have fun Erica?" Theresa asked.
Nodding, she smiled. "Don't you know it! I didn't know it could be so much fun to do something as simple as making a snowman!"
Leaning in next to her cousin, Faith bumped shoulders with her, giggling conspiratorially as she sipped her cocoa. Repeating the process over and over, she kept bumping shoulders with Erica as the girl described her first time playing in the snow to Cook and her aunt. Finally, she'd managed to irritate her cousin after five or six bumps.
"What?" Erica fumed, turning to look at her just as Faith crossed her eyes and grinned like an idiot, mimicking their snowman. Erica stifled a laugh, her ire loosing out to her funny bone. Finally, the two were forced to put their cups down, rolling on the floor and giggling like crazy.
Their giggle fit was infectious as both Cook and Heather couldn't help but chortle at the two of them, the room filled with the sound of giggling girls. Even the unflappable Fredrick couldn't help but let out a few repressed chuckles before composing himself as he entered the room.
When Heather saw Fredrick standing and waiting for her attention, she asked through her mirth, "What is it Fredrick?"
With only the faintest hint of a smile and a glance at the two laughing hyenas in front of the fire, he bowed slightly. "Madame, I wish to inform you that the main highway is open once more. I will have the driveway cleared within the next thirty minutes."
His news halted the laughter at once as Faith rolled over on her stomach to look back at him. "So soon?" she asked.
"Yes, Miss Faith." Fredrick nodded curtly. Knowing what the girl was thinking from experience, he added, "Though I do believe school is still unlikely to be resumed until Monday the first, at the soonest. Too many in the area are still snowbound."
"Thank you, Fredrick." Heather nodded in understanding. Turning to Erica, she could see mild fear in the girl's eyes. Having already considered how to proceed, she smiled at her niece. "Erica? Are you ready to come with me into town to get some clothes of your own?"
Faced with the prospect of leaving her safe and loving environment, Erica gulped as she shook her head slightly. "Do I have to, Aunt Heather?"
Looking at Cook, Fredrick, and then Faith, she cleared her throat. Without a word, all three knew at once that she wanted to be alone with her niece.
Erica watched as Faith stood up and grudgingly left for the kitchen with Cook and Fredrick. Standing, she walked over to her aunt where she beckoned Erica with a patting of the loveseat's cushion. Nervously, she sat down as Heather turned to face her.
"Erica, I know you're happy here, and you're happy being you." she began. "Is there something keeping you from wanting to go with me into town?"
Fidgeting with her fingers, Erica was terrified to say out loud what she was feeling. After a moment, her aunt took her hands to quiet their restlessness. Without a word, she looked into her aunt's vibrantly blue eyes and wished that Heather could read her mind so she didn't have to say it out loud.
"I see." her aunt said, knowingly. "You're scared that people will 'know' and that you'll be made fun of, aren't you?"
Tears welling up in her eyes were Erica's only response.
"Oh, sweetheart!" her aunt consoled, drawing her into a comforting hug. Holding her lovingly for a few minutes to quell her fears, she finally pulled back and regarded her niece. "How about this. Before we go shopping, I'll take you to a friend of mine who runs a beauty salon. Her name is Brooke Hathaway and she lives just a short way down the road. I can call her up and I'm sure she'll be happy to help you feel much more comfortable as Erica so no one will know. Would that be alright?"
Drying her eyes with a tissue, Erica nodded. Curious, she asked, "Did... did she used to be Uncle Richard's friend?"
Surprised by her niece's knowledge of Brooke's connection to her late husband, she was stunned speechless for a moment. Finally she asked, "How do you know about that?"
Sniffing, Erica shrugged. "Faith told me that a lady that lives nearby named Brooke was in the war with her daddy."
Heather smiled sadly. "Yes, she was in the service with Richard. She and your Uncle Richard were very close friends for many years! Brooke was also a very dear friend to your father and mother. In fact, she sort of introduced them to one another, from a certain point of view." Heather barely managed to hold back her tears as she remembered that day with a sad fondness.
Turning around, Heather smiled as she saw the three people she was waiting for enter. New Years Eve nineteen ninety-five just wouldn't be the same without her sweetheart to kiss at midnight. Making her way to the door, she saw him notice her approach and her heart fluttered with anticipation.
"Richard! I'm so glad you could make it!" she said as she got close enough for him to hear.
Richard Hargrave, a Sergeant in the United Stated Marine Corps, smiled his rugged smile as he saw her approaching. He removed his cover and ran his free hand through his short-cropped red hair. At just over six feet with classically handsome features and a muscular ex-football player's build, he was what most women would die for in a man. That he was also charming, witty, gracious, and kind made him the target of much of the female population around the college.
For his part, Richard couldn't believe he'd ever managed to attract the eye of Heather Moore, the most beautiful girl he'd ever known. She wasn't the most popular girl, nor the most outgoing, but in his eyes no woman could ever compete with her stunning beauty, quick wit, intelligent mind, and graceful charm. "Hey, beautiful! Couldn't leave you alone! You might come to your senses and realize you could do way better than me!"
Heather smiled coyly as she wound her arms around his waist. "Better than you? Who? Adonis? Apollo? John Wayne?"
Jack peered around his best friend's shoulder, having been standing next to him and being quietly ignored by the two lovebirds. "Ah, come on! This jarhead? I just don't get why you threw me over for that! What do you see in him when there's me to be had!"
Sergeant Brooke Hathaway tapped him on the shoulder. Jack turning to face her, the woman Marine looked him up and down, then likewise with Richard, shaking her head. "Sorry Charlie, but even I can tell he's got you beat."
Jack, ever the comedian, took off his cover and held it to his heart. "Brooke! My sweetness! Say it ain't so!"
Pushing past Jack and snaking around Richard, Brooke smiled and hugged Heather. "Hey, beautiful! Still sure I can't tear you away from this clown? I can really make it worth your while!" She arched her eyebrows at Heather in a comically seductive way.
While Heather was much more curvaceous, Brooke was no less attractive. At five foot eight, she stood taller than Jack even without the aid of her two-inch heels. Her legs long and muscular, her waist tapering nicely into rock-hard abdominals, her shoulder-length ebony hair curly and framing her face perfectly, and her lips full and beautiful.
"You make an awfully tempting offer, Brooke..." she said in her low throaty voice. Releasing her and returning to Richard, she hooked an arm through one of his. "...but alas my heart is already spoken for."
Jack turned to his best friend. "Say Rich, you wouldn't mind if Heather took a little break from you, would you? Just a short one? Like say for an hour? Oh, I don't mean for myself, but think of poor Brooke!"
Turning to his best friend, Richard smirked at him. "Yeah, I know who you're looking out for, Jack."
Pleading as the four made their way through the other guests, Jack begged, "Oh, come on Rich! Give a guy a break! Just let them go upstairs, alone, for ten minutes! I swear, you can even handcuff me to the front door! I just wanna know it happened!"
Brooke slugged Jack in the arm hard enough to bruise. "Can it, clown! I'm not your personal masturbation material."
"OK, OK. You know I was only kidding around." Turning to Heather Jack smiled sincerely. "So how've you been?"
She put her other arm through Jack's as they walked slowly. "Can't complain, Jack." Thinking of how to segue into what Brooke wanted to talk about, she asked innocently, "Seeing anyone?"
He jerked his thumb at Brooke and Richard. "No one but these two yahoos. Alas, you were my last and final hope. My heart can never love another!"
Smiling, Brooke hoped to not give too much away. "Well, that's too bad. I was hoping you could help me with a little problem."
His smile melted immediately. "What's her name?"
Laughing, Heather reached the end table where she'd put her drink and the ones she'd already gotten for the trio. "Oh, Jack! Here I thought I'd ruined you for all other women!"
He nodded. "True, true, but what's her name Brooke? Her name!"
Looking at him, Brooke smiled. "Her name's Erica. She's sweet, but shy. I met her while waiting for Heather at the campus library. I kind of got my signals crossed and thought she was hitting on me, but she was really just wanting to ask about my service. She was doing some psychology paper on the effect of women in predominantly male occupied professions."
Wincing as he picked up a beer bottle, he opened it and handed it to her. "Please! Not another she-woman man-hater! I don't care how cute she is, they're more trouble than they're worth! You sure she wasn't hitting on you?"
Taking a drink, Brooke shook her head. "Positive. And she's not a left-wing wacko feminist, either. Her professor probably is, so it's the assignment she got, but she's actually quite nice, loves the armed forces, and even thanked me for my service."
Shaking his head as he took his own beer, Jack swigged it. "Then her old man's probably a swabbie at the base."
While Brooke laughed, Richard, who'd not been listening to the conversation, asked, "What about swabbies?"
Taking another drink, Jack grinned. "Nothing, Rich. Just go back to ogling your girlfriend."
Picking up his own beer, Richard glared at his best friend since age fourteen. "I wasn't ogling her, I was admiring her beautiful eyes!"
Nudging him in the shoulder, Jack quipped, "Sure, sure, Rich. Increase your scanning elevation about twenty-five degrees to find her eyes."
His comment brought a laugh to the three and a blush to Heather's cheeks before Brooke turned and looked toward the door and checked her watch.
Noticing the action, Jack shook his head. "Oh, no! You didn't! Brooke! Say it ain't so! You set me up without even asking?"
She shrugged as she took another drink. "You'll love her, Jack. I swear."
He nodded. "Uh-huh. How many eyebrows does she have?"
"Three, one for each eye." Brooke smiled sweetly. "But you'll never notice because the hump on her back will draw all your attention." Almost sensing more than hearing the front door open over the clamor of conversations and the music, she turned and smiled when she saw Erica look into the throng of partygoers. Handing her beer over to Heather, she didn't even look back. "Excuse me." she said as she headed for the door.
Thinking she might've come to the wrong address before she spotted Brooke coming toward her, Erica smiled and embraced her. "Hi! I thought I got the wrong place. This is your party?"
Slinging her arm over Erica's shoulders, Brooke grimaced. "Not exactly my party, but I was invited, so the invitation is yours as well. Come on!" She leaned in close to whisper, "Keep calm, girl!"
Making their way through the crowd, Brooke walked toward the trio with her guest. Heather and Richard were looking at each other with stars in their eyes; Richard's back turned to their approach.
Jack was the only one who saw them coming. The two getting closer, his heart skipped a beat. Suddenly the room seemed very quiet, the noise and laughter seeming to fade into the background. He wasn't even seeing Brooke anymore, just the girl she was with. She was thin, but not skinny, with well-rounded hips and bust and a narrow tapering waist. The T-shirt she wore under a see-through white jacket emphasized her gracious curves, and her jeans covered long legs that Jack could tell were well formed and sexy. Her shoulder-length red hair bounced with every step, framing her beautiful face and haunting green eyes.
For her part, Erica saw Jack at the same moment and her breath caught. He was not ruggedly handsome, nor especially well built or tall. His dirty-blonde hair was almost non-existent, cropped short and spiked up out of his head like tiny porcupine quills. His face was neither exceptionally attractive nor homely, hands callused and scrawny. It wasn't his looks that had always taken her breath away. It was him. Most especially now, with a room full of half naked women surrounding her Jack, his eyes were locked on her and only her as though she, Erica Hargrave, were the best looking woman in the room.
Brooke stopped in front of him. "Jack? This is Erica." Seeing the two staring into each other's eyes and not even noticing her, Brooke pursed her lips. "Well, I can see you two don't have any further need of me." she said as she turned toward Richard and Heather, trying keep them distracted to give the two a moment alone in a crowded room.
Erica spoke first. "Hi!"
"Um... hi!" Jack swallowed hard. Gathering his composure, but still unable to tear his eyes away from hers, he stammered as he held out his hand. "Jack, Jack Dunning. Lance Corporal, USMC."
She smiled and took his hand gently, only just then realizing that he didn't know who she was. "Erica... Erica Hargrave. Student. Stanford." Her eyes smiled along with her lips and she could feel her hand nervously sweating in his.
Just then, Jack heard from behind him, "Erica!?"
The young woman's eyes were torn away from Jack's enchanting stare when she heard the one voice that had been catching her attention her entire life. Looking over Jack's shoulder, she saw her brother looking at her in sheer astonishment. "Richie!? Brooke didn't say you were going to be here!"
Jack was confused as her full name hadn't even processed in his mind yet. In point of fact, Jack hadn't done much actual thinking since he first saw her. Suddenly, it all dawned on him, his eyes grew wide, and he looked at her again. "Erica... Hargrave? But... Rich's Erica?" The last time he'd seen his best buddy's little sister was over five years earlier at Richard's nineteenth birthday. He'd only showed up long enough to gather up his buddy for a night on the town. What he remembered of her was the image of a little girl. Now before him stood a vision of lovely young womanhood.
Her brother pushed Jack aside. "What are you doing here, Erica? You're not twenty-one yet! You can't be here!"
Brooke halfway interposed between the siblings. "She's my guest, Rich! And she turns legal in like a week, so back off!"
"That's OK, Brooke." Erica's eyes flared. "I can see I'm not going to be allowed to have any fun here tonight. Maybe you can take me to another party? I can be your date!"
Pulling Richard aside, Jack tried to convince him to let her stay. "Listen! Rich! Come on, man! Let it be! If she stays here, you can keep an eye on her, and so can Heather, Brooke, and I, right? If she leaves, God knows what trouble she could get into! Think, man!"
Turning back to his sister, Richard lowered his gaze. "Look, Erica. I'm sorry. Just forget I said anything, OK? I... I overreacted. Please stay." He looked up at her as he finished his plea.
Her fury at still being treated like a child by her older brother melted quickly. Never one to carry a grudge long, she eyed him suspiciously. "Fine! But I don't want Sergeant Ramrod killing my good time, is that clear?" She poked him in the chest as she finished.
Raising his hands defensively, Richard backed away. "I give! I give! Why don't I get you a beer?"
"I'll get it!" Jack offered, his voice nearly cracking comically. Turning to Erica, he smiled. "Don't move a muscle, my angel! I'll be back to worship the ground you walk on in a flash!"
Erica looked to Brooke and her brother with a wistful smile as Jack ran to the bar. "Isn't he funny?"
Brooke tousled her hair. "Unfortunately, looks aren't everything."
"Don't let his outward clownish charm fool you, sis." Richard warned. "He's still the same Jack Dunning you've known for years."
Biting her lower lip, Erica swayed gently. "He always seemed really sweet to me."
"The word you're looking for is 'desperate'." Brooke said as she took another drink. "We call him Corporal Strikeout for a reason."
Erica shook her head, inwardly hopeful. "Doesn't do well with the ladies then?"
"He does fine at first." Heather interjected. "But once girls stop laughing at his jokes, his lack of things like a car or money, and thereby his ability to take them out, tends to make them lose interest quickly."
Furrowing her brow, Erica fumed. "Well that's awful shallow of them!" Pausing, she asked, "Is he very bad with money?"
"Not really." Brooke shook her head. "He's just overly generous. He sends most of his pay to the place that's taking care of his mom."
Her heart melted, remembering the few times she'd met Mary Dunning and how torn up Jack had been about moving her into a home before he'd left Pittsburgh. "Oh! That's so sweet!"
"Yeah, other girls think it's sweet too." Richard smiled. "Until it's time for their second date and he still can't afford to take them anywhere, let alone have a car to take them in."
She slapped her brother in the chest. "You know, you could be a little more generous with your dough back home, Sergeant! Daddy's not getting any younger, and he's about killing himself trying to put me through school!"
He nearly choked on his beer. "Hey! I send what I can! More than Jack!"
His sister crossed her arms. "But he makes less! I bet he leaves less to spend on himself than you do!"
"You're right, he does!" Heather nodded. Turning to Richard, she smiled as she draped her arms over his shoulders and around his neck. "You really should help your family more, Richard. Your money doesn't impress me!"
"Good lord!" Brooke rolled her eyes. "If this gets sweeter, I'm gonna barf!"
Nearly running back to the foursome, Jack handed Erica a beer and smiled. "Here! My treat, my beauty!"
Nodding at Erica, Brooke joked, "If she's Beauty that makes you The Beast."
Putting the drink down, Erica smiled. "That's very sweet of you, but you don't need to buy me drinks! I think I'd like to stay clear-headed." Slipping her arm into Jack's, she looked around. "Is there someplace quiet we could talk?"
"You could take him upstairs!" Brooke smirked.
"Brooke!" Richard barked as he nearly turned white, knowing what most couples went upstairs to do. "Over my dead body!"
Erica stiffened her back. "Is that so, Richie?"
Lowering his voice desperately, he leaned in toward his sister's ear. "Are you crazy? Do you know what Mom and Dad would do to me if they found out I let you 'go upstairs' with Jack?" he emphasized with air quotes. "I'd never live to see morning! Mom'd kill me over the phone!"
Erica tilted her nose up. "Well, Mom and Dad aren't here, Richie! So unless you want me to just leave and take Jack somewhere more private, he and I are going to go upstairs!" She paused to let her brother squirm. "...and talk!"
At that, Erica took her brother's beer, took a swig from it, handed it back to him, and practically dragged Jack toward the staircase.
Looking back at his best friend, Jack just shrugged. "What can I do, Rich? Buttons' got me hooked!" referring to the nickname he'd given her on the first day they'd met when she was only ten and he was almost fourteen.
Richard looked over at Brooke as the two disappeared up the stairs. "What the hell, Brooke? You set my sister up with Jack?"
"Would you rather I set her up with Corporal Strikeout, or have her end up with someone like you, Sergeant Trouser Snake?"
Heather turned his head to face her. "Relax, darling. I'm sure she's perfectly safe with Jack. Now would you mind not thinking about your sister and turn your attention back to me? It's kind of creepy if I kiss you while you're thinking about your sister."
"Ha!" Brooke busted out laughing. "Maybe that's why he's so protective!"
He pushed Brooke's shoulder. "Cram it, Brooke! That's not even funny! I'm just looking out for her is all!"
Once more, Heather turned his head back towards her. "I'm over here, dear!"
As he finally returned his focus back to his girlfriend, Brooke sighed and took another drink. "Great job, Brooke." she said to herself as she looked up the stairs where Jack and Erica had gone and then to Heather and Richard starting to dance. "You've managed to help find love for everyone but you."
Heather shook her head to clear it. "You see, Erica... Brooke, your father Jack, and your Uncle Richard were already good friends when I met them. Brooke was the one who set your parents up on their first date. A few months later they were married, and then two years later you were born!"
The girl weakly smiled, unnerved by her aunt's story that showed she wasn't actually Erica Hargrave. She finally understood that, as her mother had told her, there was so much about her family that she didn't know. Maybe this Brooke lady can tell me more about dad... and me. she thought. "I think that would be OK." she said after a brief pause.
Her aunt nodded. "You can join Faith in the kitchen for lunch, sweetie. I'll call Brooke up and see what she says."
Erica hugged her aunt before heading to the kitchen. "Thank you, Aunt Heather. I love you!"
She hugged the girl back. "I love you too, sweetheart. Now scoot!" Heather watched the girl head through the dining room toward the kitchen, moving over to the couch and picking up the receiver for the old phone. She hadn't told Brooke yet of Erica's death, not knowing how to break the news. Dialing quickly before she lost her nerve, she didn't have to wait long before it was answered.
"Hello?" Jenny Hathaway answered.
"Hello, Jenny? This is Heather. Is Brooke available?" she queried.
"Oh, hi Heather! Yes, just a moment!"
Heather listened silently to the woman on the other end of the line.
"Honey? Heather's on the phone for you!" Jenny called out.
After a short wait, she heard the phone being handed off with a murmured comment.
"Oh, stop it! Heather is not my girlfriend! Hello?" Brooke answered.
"I'm not your what?" Heather probed.
"Oh God, that wife of mine! Anytime you call lately, she's taken to saying, 'Your girlfriend's on the phone!' Honestly!"
Heather could hear Jenny in the background. "Well she calls you enough to be her girlfriend! I think you talk to her more than you do me!"
Brooke lowered her tone. "Honey, I do you way more than I talk to her! Ow!"
Listening to their exchange, Heather had second thoughts about breaking the news to her best friend. "Brooke, if this is a bad time..."
"Nonsense! What's up?" Brooke asked happily.
Sighing, Heather prepared herself to break her friend's heart. "It's about Erica. I... I have some bad news."
Knowing exactly who Heather was talking about without having to be told, Brooke was silent a moment while she sat down, hearing the pain in her voice. "What's happened?"
Heather took a deep breath. "I don't know how to put this any easier, Brooke. I'm just going to say it. Erica... died... of leukemia... a few weeks ago. Her and Jack's... child... has come here to live with us."
The woman on the other end of the phone couldn't breathe. Both Jack and Richard had been her best friends in the Marine Corps and afterwards. Their loss was hard to take, but Erica was Richard's sister, Jack's wife, and one of her best friends. "No!" she whispered. With the discipline of her Corps training, she cleared her throat and wiped away the escaped tear, pushing aside her pain. "Are... are you OK?"
"Thank you dear, but if anyone is hurt most by this, it's their... child. Before Erica died, shortly before your wedding, her parents Frank and Judith were killed in a car accident. Eric's life has been thrown into chaos. Now he's here, thousands of miles from the only home he's ever known, orphaned, scared, lonely. I tell you Brooke, he's traumatized. Badly."
"I can only imagine!" Brooke replied. The line went silent for a moment while Brooke explained to her wife what was going on. After a moment, Heather heard an extension pick up.
"Heather? This is Jenny! I'm so sorry to hear what's happened! Erica was such a nice woman! How can we help?"
Heather explained. "Well, Eric arrived Tuesday evening, a week early and with nothing but the soaked and ruined clothes on his back. He lost all his luggage when he changed planes. We tried laundering what little he had, but the power went out before they could be washed and when we tried to dry them near the fire, they were burned beyond use. He was effectively left with nothing from his old life. No clothes, no pictures, nothing. It seems the medical bills for Erica took everything Jack and Erica ever had."
She paused a moment to let the situation sink in before explaining further. "We just gave him one of Faith's robes to wear for lack of anything better. To make a long story short, he's sort of... escaped... into a fantasy world where he's a twelve-year-old incarnation of his own mother. He... he thinks he's Erica." Static filled the line as she waited until one of them responded.
"Well... that's... um..." Brooke broke the silence.
"What can we do to help?" Jenny repeated her earlier question.
"I was hoping to bring 'Erica' over to see you Brooke, so you could help her."
Brooke knitted her brow. "You mean like... snap him out of it?"
Disagreeing, Jenny caught on quickly. "I don't think that's what Heather had in mind, love. I think she means for you to give him a makeover."
"Her." Heather corrected her only slightly.
"Um... OK." Pausing, Brooke asked, "Are you sure that's the right thing to do, Heather? We're talking about Jack's son!"
Answering for her, Jenny insisted, "Of course it is! We'd be happy to help."
Smiling, Heather replied, "Thank you, Jenny. Brooke? From a psychological point of view, this kind of temporary escapism is healthy in the long term. After a while, she'll come to terms with her grief, give up the fantasy, and want to go back to being Eric. She just can't handle it right now. It's... it's too painful. What she needs now is to feel safe, and right now that means being more at ease with her identity, more like a girl. Will you help?"
"Of course she'll help, Heather." Jenny answered. "Won't you, love?"
Brooke growled at her wife. "I can answer for myself, love!" Pausing a moment, she finally did. "I'll help, Heather. If you really think this is in his best interests, I'll do what I can."
"Thank you, Brooke!" Heather beamed. "I really appreciate your help with this! We'll be over at your place in say, half an hour?"
"That's fine, Heather. I'll get things ready. Anything in particular?"
She ticked off each item with her fingers. "Hair... cut, color, and style. Nails and any makeup and styling advice you can give her."
Brooke took notes. "OK. Hair. What color?"
"Do you remember Erica's hair color? That shade of red?"
"Yeah. I remember." Brooke nodded once more and swallowed hard, holding back her tears as a hundred happy and painful memories flooded her mind. "Let me think. Yeah, I have something that can work for that. It won't be wash away though, it's permanent hair dye. It'll be staying until it grows out, say twelve to twenty weeks at minimum. Is that alright?"
"It will be fine, Brooke. I don't see her giving up this fantasy for at least that long. She's just... lost. She's even lost her faith in God. She's so angry with Him that before she retreated into her fantasy, she was cursing His name. She has a lot of pain and loss to work through."
Brooke frowned so strongly that Heather could hear it over the phone. "I see. Well, I should have everything ready by the time you get here. We'll see you soon."
"Thanks ever so much, Brooke! Love you and see you soon! And thank you too, Jenny!"
She listened as Brooke hung up, hearing Jenny say, "See? I knew she was your girlfriend! 'Love you, Broo...'"
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Sitting in the back of her aunt's limousine, Heather across from her and Faith next to her, Erica's nerves were on edge knowing she was going to meet someone who knew her father... and her from her old life before she was reborn in the body of her son. The butterflies were gone, replaced with raging wildcats clamoring around inside her stomach.
Clearing her mind, she focused on who she 'really' was; Erica Hargrave. She was once more twelve years old, but living with her aunt Heather and cousin Faith. She now thought of her aunt as also her sister-in-law; that part of her fantasy shifting to adjust to her situation. She had actually joined with her own mother, Erica Hargrave, living her life over again, but was simultaneously still Erica Dunning, her own child.
When the car turned a corner, she felt the bump of leaving the paved road and making their way up a short, snowy, gravel driveway. Soon enough the car stopped and she waited while Fredrick got out and opened their door.
"Thank you, Fredrick." Heather said as she exited first.
"If you won't be needing me Madame, I'll wait in the car while you attend to your business with Mrs. Hathaway."
"No Fredrick, you head home. We'll be a few hours, so I'll call when we're ready to be picked up." Waiting as Faith followed her out, she watched a timid Erica slowly climb out of the car. Taking her hand, she led both girls up to the front door and rang the bell just as the car started to pull away.
Erica couldn't get her stomach to settle. While in the kitchen she'd eaten a PB and J sandwich that she was now thinking had been a mistake, certain it was going to come back up at any moment. After a moment's wait, she saw movement from within the small white two-story house. The door opened to reveal a lady dressed in a blue knee-length dress with a black waist panel. She was shorter than her aunt Heather, but still most of a foot taller than her or Faith. Curly brown shoulder-length hair framed her round face, which smiled down at her.
"Hi, Jenny!" her aunt greeted the lady. "Thanks for having us!"
"Come in! Come in!" she said quickly. "It's freezing out there!"
After the three ladies entered her home, she closed the door behind them. "Here, let me help you off with your coats." she offered, helping Erica with hers last. Once done, she crouched down and greeted her. "Well! You must be Erica! I've heard a lot about you!" She extended her hand to the girl. "I'm Jenny Hathaway, but you can just call me Aunt Jenny! I'm very pleased to meet you!"
Slowly taking Jenny's hand, Erica smiled shyly. "Pleased to meet you as well." she replied, almost too quiet to hear.
Once Heather hung up her and Faith's coats, the three followed Jenny into the kitchen where a taller woman waited. The woman smiled as they entered, her shoulder-length ebony hair falling in natural curls to stand in perfect contrast to her milky complexion. Wearing designer jeans that accentuated her athletic curves, a pretty white tank top partially covered by a simple cotton button-up blouse was left to hang open loosely in front.
"Good morning, Heather! Faith!" Brooke greeted them. "Pleased to meet you, Erica." She looked at the child standing before her and, seeing both her mother Erica and father Jack in the child, nearly brought her to tears. "Well... Erica, I... I understand you like your fun red hair so much you want your hair to look just like it? Why don't you come sit here and I'll see what we can do."
Erica smiled weakly as she sat in the chair and Brooke covered her with a cloth. "Thank you, Miss Hathaway."
"You can call me Aunt Brooke." she offered, gently pulling the play wig off Erica's head and examining the girl's natural hair color and length. My God! she thought. It's the exact same color as Jack's! Needing to compose herself, she turned to the girl's aunt. "Heather? I need to mix up the color. Can you give me a hand?"
Heather, having never touched hair color on her life, was stunned for a moment, but quickly caught on. "Oh! Sure, Brooke! I'd be happy to help! After all, you're helping me... and Erica!" She followed the brunette into her storage room where the Marine-turned-beautician kept all her salon products. After Brooke closed the door, she turned to her friend.
"Oh God, Heather!" she whispered, tears forming in her eyes. "I don't know if I can do this! He has Jack's hair!"
Taking both of Brooke's hands in hers, Heather tried to calm her down. "It's all right, Brooke! Calm down! Jack is not going to be mad at you, I swear! Erica needs this. She needs to feel comfortable living in this fantasy. She's hurting Brooke, far more than you or I, and she's much too young to handle it! I tried to fight it at first, tried to push her away from it, but she just can't handle being Eric right now. She can barely tolerate being Erica, but it makes her feel like her mother's still here with her. For now... it's enough."
Brooke ran her fingers through her hair, blowing out a breath through pursed lips. "You keep calling him her, even when he can't hear you!" she said angrily as a statement, but obviously intended as a question.
Her oldest friend frowned. "She already knows I want her to go back to being Jack and Erica's son, Brooke. I can't afford to slip up. If I do, it would be as though I were trying to tear down her fantasy before she's ready. She'd see it as an attack on her identity, so I have to think of her as though she's just a normal girl. If I think of her as Eric at all, I'll use 'him' by mistake and it will all come crashing down... with potentially disastrous results!"
Closing her eyes, Brooke took a deep breath. "You're sure this is the right thing to do? Won't this confuse him?"
Heather shook her head. "No. People can't be made to think they're another gender, Brooke. It's innate. So unless the potential for gender dysphoria was always in her, it's almost impossible to confuse her. Please, Brooke! If you can't do this, if you can't look at her and think of her as being a normal girl, as Jack and Erica's daughter, tell me now and I'll make an excuse as to why we have to leave. I can't let her face the kind of trauma challenging her fantasy would bring right now! Not this soon after... after Erica's death and being ripped away from the only life she's ever known!"
Turning away from Heather, Brooke crossed her arms to hold herself as though if she didn't she might fly apart. Steeling herself, she turned back toward her best friend's widow. "OK. I... I can do that. I can just think of her as Erica and Jack's daughter.... but you have to promise me that you won't allow this to get out of control. No turning hi... her... into a girl with hormones or anything like that!"
Putting her hands on Brooke's shoulders to help calm her, Heather nodded. "Brooke, I swear to you on my soul, I'll only let this continue while I think it's a healthy coping tool, not a minute longer. Even if she wants hormones or something more permanent, I won't allow it. I know that after a time she'll finally be able to process her pain, move on, and will want to be Eric again... but we can't push her to it! She has to return to it on her own."
Brooke sighed. "Alright, I'll trust you... for Jack's sake if nothing else. I still owe him one and I know it's gotta be killing him to see... her... hurting so badly." Composing herself, Brooke picked up the bottle of hair color. Taking a breath, she pasted a fake smile on her face and opened the door, heading back into her kitchen. "Sorry it took so long, Erica. I couldn't find the right color." Examining Erica's hair, she nodded to herself. "Yeah, I think this will take very nicely! Are you ready, sweetie?"
The girl nodded, eager but nervous. She watched Brooke mix the color into a bowl with a brush, then scoop some of the color onto it, and start painting it into her hair. After a short time, she felt a mild sting on her scalp.
"Aunt Brooke? Is it supposed to feel like this? Like a sunburn?"
The hairstylist nodded as she finished applying the color. "A little, sweetie. It might itch a little too, but you can't scratch it! Can you do that?" Seeing Erica nod slightly, Brooke finished the color and wrapped a plastic shower cap over the girl's hair. Then, coming around front, she looked at her and smiled. "How would you like pink nail polish to go with your dress?"
Erica smiled back genuinely and started to reflexively reach up to scratch her head that was starting to itch. Stopping herself, she was rewarded with another wide smile from Brooke, Jenny, and her aunt Heather.
While Brooke filed and shaped Erica's nails, Faith came up beside her. "Does it itch really bad?" she asked.
"Uh-huh!" Erica nodded vigorously. "I really wanna scratch it!"
"I bet you must have the most self control in the whole world! If I get an itch, I can't help but scratch... no matter what anyone says! Remember that time I got poison ivy, Mamma?"
Heather laughed. "Yes, dear! I do! I nearly had to tie your hands!"
Shaking her head in frustration, Erica twitched. "Can we talk about something else, please? All this itch talk is making it worse!"
Her aunt began talking to Jenny about the power outage and the hardships it was causing, heading out to the living room. Meanwhile, Faith wandered off to read the book she'd brought, bored with watching Brooke give her cousin a manicure. That left Erica alone with Brooke for the first time.
An awkward silence rose up between the two. Erica knew that the woman had known her father and wanted to ask questions about what he was like, but couldn't figure out how to broach the subject while she was herself the living spirit of Erica Hargrave, her father's wife.
For her part, Brooke simply bit her tongue, trying to keep herself from telling the child to 'man up' and go back to being Eric. After a short time, she could tell something was on Erica's mind, but was afraid to speak up.
"So, Erica. Did you know I knew your uncle Richard?" she asked as she buffed the girl's nails.
"Uh-huh." she nodded. "Aunt Heather told me. She said you also knew..." She struggled with the words, having difficulty coping with the concept that Jack Dunning was both her father and late husband to her older self.
Brooke looked up at the girl and realized she'd found a crack in Erica's fantasy and wanted to tear it open. "Yes, I also knew Jack. Jack Dunning. He married your uncle Richard's sister."
Erica's breath grew short, her fantasy threatening to fly apart at the seams and leave her bare and exposed. Trying to calm herself, she stammered out, "W-what was he l-like? J... Jack... D-Dunning."
Slowly, she stopped buffing Erica's nails. Looking at the child seated in front of her, she could see her shaking, close to a complete mental breakdown. Her heart ached to comfort her best friend's child, but she could see the emotional scars were too new; too raw to even touch, let alone begin to heal. Picking her words carefully, she smiled and resumed buffing her nails, trying to undo the damage she'd already done with just a few words.
"Well, I met your uncle Richard and Jack while we were all assigned to Alameda Naval Air Station back in the nineties. They'd been friends for years before that. They met in high school and went through Boot together. Richard was a born leader and Jack followed him! Richard was handsome and charming, Jack was quick-witted and funny. They made a good team. They both enlisted after high school, same as I did, to be able to afford college, but it ended up only Richard followed that dream." She switched to Erica's left hand before she continued. "After a four year cruise, Rich started at Menlo College because it was near Alameda and they had a business degree program."
"I think it was Labor Day in ninety-five when your uncle Richard met your aunt Heather. She was going to Stanford, that's close to Menlo, and there was a party Jack wanted to go to. Richard and I tagged along and your aunt Heather was there." She smiled and looked off into the distance. "Actually, Jack had already met Heather and found out she was going to that party, and was there to ask her out... but when Heather met Rich, it was all over."
She resumed buffing Erica's nails as she continued once more. "Jack was upset, but he loved Rich so much he was happy for them. Jack was always looking for the future Mrs. Dunning!" Brooke laughed. "But he had the worst luck with girls! Poor Jack! In fact, it was him that I met first. He was trying to ask me out, but then he asked out almost every girl he met... that is, until he saw Rich's sister all grown up."
Brooke finished buffing, picked up a milky white base coat, and started to cover the girl's nails. "I think she was the best thing to happen to Jack. She didn't care that he couldn't afford things. She only wanted to be with him. They used to spend time in the park feeding geese day-old bread and other silly and romantic things like that. I remember the last time Jack proposed to her. I say the last time because Jack proposed to her at the end of every date, including their first!" Brooke chuckled at the memory.
Jack walked out the door with Erica's arm hooked under his. It was three in the morning and the New Year's party had broken up nearly half an hour earlier. Richard and Heather were behind them, while Brooke waited at the bottom of the steps next to Richard's car.
"Come on Jack!" Brooke nagged. "We have to get back to The Bricks!"
He looked down at Brooke. "Will you be quiet for just a minute!" he barked. Turning to look back at Erica, Jack smiled. "I do have to go Buttons, but I want to ask you something first." He stopped and faced his best friend's sister, blocking the doorway.
Erica wore a smile that shone from her eyes. "What is it?"
"Will you marry me?" he grinned.
Richard shoved Jack's shoulder. "Come on Jack, quit fooling around! That's my sister!"
Clownishly, Jack stumbled sideways as Erica laughed. After her brother and Heather came out and walked between the two, Jack raced up to Erica as soon as they moved down the steps that led from the street to the door.
"I know it's sudden and all, but you've completely captivated my heart!" While he spoke, Jack exaggerated his every move to comic effect. Bending down on one knee, he took Erica's hand. "Please, my love! Marry me, and I'll take you away from all this!" Sweeping his hand in a great circle, he indicated the lavish grounds that surrounded them.
Erica snickered. "Why Jack! This is all so... so sudden!" she mimicked his comedic overacting. "However, I fear my father will not grant you my hand! I'm needed too much on the farm, what with my eighteen brothers and sisters to take care of! Not to mention my mother!"
He stood and looked at the ground, as if thinking. "That's right! Your mother... the dark fairy Maleficent! We'll elope, then!"
Coming up the steps, Richard grabbed his arm. "Come on, Casanova. You can propose to my sister tomorrow, after I tell her about you."
He jerked his arm free and stood in comic defiance. "Tell her what about me? I'm as good as anybody! Don't I need love, too?"
Erica moved up to Jack and took his arm again. "Oh, I think I already know what kind of man Jack is, Richie! The kind I like!"
Turning away, Richard walked back down the steps with Heather. "Great, just what the family needs... another mouth to feed!" As he reached the bottom, he turned to see his sister looking up at Jack with a giddy expression on her face as they followed. "Oh, Jack! Now look at what you've done! You've gone and made my sister all swoony!"
"Yeah?" Jack smiled. He looked down at Erica who was looking up at him. "What, over me?"
Nodding, Erica turned to face him. "Mmm hmm!" Putting her arms over his shoulders, she looked slightly up at him with stars in her eyes. "You know, I knew I was coming to meet you when Brooke 'introduced' us, right?" She smiled and lowered her voice, telling him of the same thing she'd told him when they were alone upstairs. "I have a confession to make. I've had a crush on you since I was ten!"
"Who? Me?" Jack answered back stupidly.
Richard tapped Jack on the shoulder while Brooke started Richard's car, then leaned over the roof. "Come on, lover boy. Tick-tock!" she shouted.
Pushing her brother away, Erica glared at him before turning back to Jack. "Back off a sec, Richie! I want to kiss my Jack goodnight!"
"Oh, Erica!" Richard groaned. "I don't want to see that!"
Never looking away from Jack, she shot back, "Then turn around!"
Heather pulled at his arm, turning him away from his sister and best friend. "Why don't you give me a proper goodnight as well and leave them be!"
Even as Heather pulled him down into a loving kiss, he tried to strain his neck sideways to watch over his little sister until Heather made him forget about his brotherly protectiveness.
Tilting her head sideways, Erica leaned up until her lips met Jack's. It was a simple kiss, neither passionate nor long, but one that made both of their hearts race.
Backing away from the kiss, Erica smiled. "Still better than I ever imagined it would be!"
Jack looked around, then pointed at his chest with his thumb. "Who, me?"
She nodded. "Keep asking me and I might surprise you!"
Stunned into idiocy, Jack stammered. "What? Who? Ask what?"
Erica laughed as she slowly pulled herself away from him. "You'll see! Goodnight, my handsome young knight!"
Unable to tear his eyes away from her as she turned to join Heather, walking towards Erica's car, Jack shook his head to clear it. "Wow!" he mumbled, watching Erica sway her hips as she walked away. Leaning slightly towards Richard, he spoke in a daze. "Rich? I know she's your sister, but I have to say it. She's hot!"
Grabbing Jack in a headlock, Richard dragged him toward the car where Brooke waited impatiently. "Don't get any ideas, Snuffy! I may face a General Court Martial, but I'll kill you where you stand if you mess with my little sister!"
Pulling free, Jack stumbled back and into a phony fighting stance. "Put 'em up! Put 'em up! I'll fight with one paw tied behind my back for her hand, even if it kills me, which I'm sure you'd be happy to do... again!" He bumped Richard's shoulder as he stopped his clowning and opened the rear passenger door and climbed in.
Brooke shook her head as she climbed into the driver's seat. "You know, I'm starting to regret setting you two up!"
She finished a child-appropriate version of her story and the base coat at the same time, putting Erica's right hand into a battery-powered nail dryer. While it dried, she began on the left hand. "Jack was always clowning, trying to make everybody laugh. He was great that way. If you were feeling down or upset, he'd go out of his way to help you forget for a moment."
Erica smiled, wishing she had the chance to know him. Slowly sadness crept over her face. "Aunt Brooke? Can I ask you something?"
Glancing up, Brooke didn't like the look on the girl's face, but just looked down at her nails again. "I'll do my best. What is it?"
Swallowing hard, Erica worked up the courage to ask her fateful question. "How... how did he die?"
Reliving the horrible memory of the day she found out, Brooke's voice turned clinical. "Jack and Richard were both killed when the HumVee they were in hit an IED... an explosive." Holding back the tears she added, "They were both killed instantly." Taking Erica's right hand out of the nail dryer, she put the left one in and started to apply the color coat, but her hands were shaking. Taking a breath, she cleared her mind and tried again, the shaking gone.
Several minutes passed without a word from either one. Finally Erica said quietly, "Thank you."
Looking up as Brooke finished the clear outer coat, she furrowed her brow. "For what, sweetie?"
"For telling me." Erica sighed. "No one would ever talk about it."
She smiled at the young girl. "Anytime, sweetie. Maybe someday, when you're ready, I'll tell you more about them." Brooke could barely maintain her composure. More than anything, she wanted to tell Erica about Jack; how he lived, what kind of man he was, and what her friendship with him had meant. She just couldn't figure out how to do it while Erica was lost in a fantasy world where she was her own mother.
"Done! Now we move to the sink and rinse out your hair." Brooke ordered. "Remember, don't let anything touch your nails. They're still a little wet."
Nodding, Erica followed the older woman to the sink. Stepping up onto a stool, she turned her head upside down over the sink and felt the warm water pour through her hair as Brooke's gloved fingers massaged out the coloring agent. Within a few minutes, Erica felt a towel wrap around her head and Brooke led her back to the chair.
After a while of clipping small amounts of hair to style it into a more feminine shape, Brooke picked up a curling iron and hairdryer and plugged them into a black box near her back door. "We have a generator, so we have some power. Not enough to run everything, but at least we aren't stuck in the dark ages!"
Erica sat and endured having her hair pulled, curled, brushed, and blown for fifteen minutes. Finally, Brooke gave Erica a hand mirror. "Well? What do you think?"
Once more the child was stunned by her mother's image reflected back at her, this time without the wig making her scalp itch. After a few minutes of getting some makeup advice and Brooke applying a minimal amount, the actual image that reflected back at her was nearly indistinguishable from that of her mother at that age. Looking up at Brooke, she smiled broadly. "Thank you, Aunt Brooke! It looks perfect!"
Brooke wiped a tear away, seeing for herself the remarkable resemblance between the twelve-year-old and photos of the young woman she knew as Erica Hargrave before becoming Erica Dunning. "You're very welcome, Erica! Now, let's go show everyone!"
Hopping down off the chair, Erica followed Brooke back out into the living room. Faith was the first to see and drew in a sharp breath.
"Erica! You look beautiful!" she exclaimed.
Her aunt Heather rose and examined the transformation. "Very nice work, Brooke! She looks lovely!"
Jenny was proud of her wife. "She is pretty amazing!" she remarked, coming up in front of her wife and wrapping her arms around her. Silently she mouthed, "Are you OK?" Brooke simply nodded and wiped another tear away.
After a call to let Fredrick know they were ready to be picked up, the five sat and talked, mostly the adults talking about old times. A short wait later, they heard the car pull up outside and the three thanked Brooke and Jenny for their hospitality.
Once the door was closed, Jenny took her wife once more in her arms. "I'm proud of you, love. I won't pretend to know what you're going through, but I do know that wasn't easy."
Brooke nodded. "It's fine. I'm just not sure it was the right thing to do. I mean... how can that be right? How..."
Jenny placed a finger on Brooke's lips, silencing her. "It was. I can't imagine the pain that girl's going through right now. If pretending to be her mom for a while helps her get through it, then it's for the best. I'm more worried about you, honey. Seeing her must have dredged up some serious feelings and terrible memories. I know how close you were to Jack... and Erica. I only got to meet them both at Heather's wedding, and again when they lost their second baby and found out she couldn't have any more, and then only Erica once more... at Arlington... but I know they meant so much to you."
She kissed Jenny delicately. "I'm OK... really. I just hope Jack isn't mad at me for helping to feminize his son. I... I pray he understands."
Jenny laid her head on Brooke's shoulder. "Probably a lot better than we do, love."
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Enjoying the ride in her aunt Heather's limousine, Erica was finally much more comfortable in her fantasy. Now fully immersed in being Erica Hargrave, she relished the view out the window, watching the countryside blanketed in snow glide by them. After a while she realized they'd been driving for far longer than the trip back to her aunt's home.
"Where are we going, Aunt Heather?" she asked innocently.
"Into town." she replied flatly. "I want to get you some things you'll need."
"Oh." the young girl responded. "Can I get my own toothbrush?"
Heather laughed. "Of course, sweetie! We'll also get you some clothes of your own so you don't have to keep borrowing Faith's."
"Mamma?" Faith asked. "What are you going to buy for her?"
Her mother answered nonchalantly. "Just some basics... underwear, day clothes, boots, a coat, toiletries... that sort of thing." Noticing the worried expression on her daughter's face, she shook her head and laughed lightly. "Oh, sweetie! Stop assuming the worst! They'll be nice... and pretty!"
A look of relief washed over Faith's countenance. Meanwhile, Erica felt like the butt of some joke she didn't get, her old life as Eric all but forgotten as her mind tried to blot out the numerous causes of pain that tormented her. Turning back to look out the window she smiled at the beauty surrounding her.
Driving for nearly an hour, the bare countryside started making way to more urban surroundings. Entering the city of Berlin, Erica noticed women wearing much more modern clothes and started to fret over her appearance. Looking over at her aunt Heather and Faith settled her nerves somewhat, seeing as they were as finely dressed as she was herself. "Aunt Heather? May I ask where we're going?"
Heather answered vaguely. "To a shop that does special order clothing, sweetie." Turning down another road finally led them to a small white building that looked more like someone's private residence than a business.
Faith finally brightened up. "Oh! We're going to Miss Fuller's shop!" she chirped. Looking over at Erica she smiled. "You'll like Miss Fuller! She's makes any clothes you can imagine!"
The car pulling to a stop, Heather corrected her daughter only slightly. "Well, she doesn't make everything, dear. She special orders many things. However, she does make special occasion dresses and other specialty items. She is, after all, a seamstress by trade."
Fredrick got out and opened their door, the three ladies exiting quickly. A cold breeze sent shivers up Erica's spine as they walked up to the front door, noticing a few people on the street giving them looks as they went in. Blushing, Erica entered last and was glad to be out of the cold, and the gaze of strangers. Looking around, it looked like the living room of someone's home, but with a front counter installed. Hand sketches of many different dresses, suits, and outfits decorated the walls, in addition to several large plants and a few chairs, giving the feel of a doctor's office or similar local.
She caught the sound of the small bell chime as the door closed, drawing the attention of the proprietress. "Just a minute!" she called out from somewhere upstairs. Footfalls coming down the steps, Erica finally saw the woman as she descended.
"Mrs. Hargrave! And Faith! So good to see you again!" The woman was marginally heavyset and round, but cheery and pleasant. She wore a simple dress of blue cotton with an apron draped around her neck that wasn't tied in back. Pins were stuck through the front of the apron in various places, and a pair of shears hung out from the front pocket. Her round face smiled at Heather, framed with brown curly hair pinned back behind her head.
Reaching the bottom of the steps, Janet Fuller noticed the third member of their party. "Well! Who is this, then?"
Heather pulled Erica in front of her. "This is my niece Erica, Miss Fuller. Her parents are both gone now, so she'll be staying with us for some time and I'll need to get her a proper wardrobe."
The seamstress examined Erica. "I recognize that dress she's got on. I made that for Faith just this spring!"
"Yes, she only arrived on Tuesday with almost nothing to her name. Her old clothes were... ruined, so Faith was kind enough to share. I want her to feel comfortable and see to it she wants for nothing from now on."
Janet looked at Erica closely. "My, she is pretty. That red hair really brings out the green in her eyes." Leaning down, she took a tape measure out of her apron. "Well let's see..." She measured Erica's height and other simple measurements before straightening up. "Well, she's very close to Faith's measurements. Do you want a style similar to what Faith prefers?"
"Not necessarily, Janet." Heather shook her head. "Erica is free to pick her own style, like Faith's or not. I just want her to have her own clothes and not feel like she's getting Faith's hand-me-downs. Do you see?"
Nodding, Janet Fuller looked up at the taller woman. "I understand. Well, lets get started then. Follow me, Erica." She turned and walked around behind the counter and led the girl into what appeared to be something like a den redecorated into a fitting room. When Heather and Faith started to enter, Janet stopped them. "You can wait here. I'm sure she'd like some privacy while she changes into a fitting gown." Drawing a curtain that gave them a sense of seclusion, she turned and faced the nervous girl. "Now then. Go behind that changing screen there, take off your dress, and put this on." she ordered kindly, handing the timid girl a fitting dress.
Nervously, Erica walked behind the changing screen and unzipped her dress while listening to Janet moving about the room. Finally down to just Faith's tights, undies, and training bra, she dropped the fitting gown over her head and it settled into place around her. Peaking out she murmured, "Done, Miss Fuller."
"Very well, child," she replied. "Come on out and step up onto the platform." Erica complied, nervously holding her arms across her chest. Stepping up, she watched as Miss Fuller knelt down in front of her and started pinning the simple gown.
While she pinned, the thinness of the fabric covering Erica allowed her to see things that confirmed her suspicions. In a soft tone, she started probing gently. "So, your name's Erica? Is that what you like to be called?" Seeing her nod, she continued. "Well Erica, I can tell you're a special girl." Dropping her voice to a whisper she added, "Don't worry! You're very pretty as a girl! No one will ever be able to tell!"
Erica's eyes grew wide as she realized that Miss Fuller somehow knew the secret of her former life.
Seeing fear in the girl's eyes, she smiled. "It's alright! I understand! You see, my younger sister is the same as you! We all used to think she was a boy, too. Do you like Faith's pretty dresses?"
Nodding some, she wasn't so much afraid as near to a mental breakdown at the challenge to her identity. Trying to shake off the distress, Erica followed it up with a shrug as she finally spoke. "I... I guess. I mean, she has a lot of really pretty dresses, but nothing like jeans or stuff that are easier to play in, ya know?"
A pin sticking between her teeth, Janet nodded back. "Yes, don't I know it! Now hold still a moment." She turned Erica in place and ran a tape measure around her waist, then up to circle her chest, then around her hips. "Well, you're a little larger around the middle than Faith, and I can see you haven't started getting your womanhood yet, but don't let that fret you, dear. Are you taking any pills yet?"
The girl's face scrunched up in confusion. "Pills?" she asked innocently.
"Never mind, dear." She waved a hand dismissively. "Your aunt would know about them. Maybe your doctor wants you to wait until you're older." Finishing with a measure around Erica's forehead, she tapped the girl on the butt. "OK, go and take that gown off and get back into your dress, sweetie. Bring the fitting gown back out with you when you're done. Careful not to pull any of the pins out or stick yourself!"
Tentatively going back behind the screen, she cautiously removed the gown and laid it aside. She could hear whispering near the door as she donned Faith's dress once more. Just as she was getting to the point of needing help, she overheard her aunt Heather.
"No, Janet. She won't be doing any of that. Her being Erica isn't permanent. Just a coping mechanism."
She stiffened her back as she realized they must have been talking about her. Not permanent? I am Erica Hargrave! I am! And I always will be! Anger rising, she came back around the changing screen. "I'm almost done, Miss Fuller. Would you help me with my dress?"
Moving quickly back to the girl, she smiled. "Sure, dear! Let me get that for you." Closing up the zipper, she quickly retied the sashes into a pretty bow. "There! All fixed again! So let's go out and look at some styles and we'll get you all situated. OK, sweetie?"
Raising her chin defiantly, she followed Janet back out to her office, sitting on a couch. Heather and Faith joined her a moment later; Erica moving slightly away from her aunt as she sat next to her.
While the seamstress was in the back getting her stylebooks, Heather could feel Erica's anger coming off the girl in waves. Realizing she must have overheard their hushed conversation, she closed her eyes and chastised herself for being so careless. Gathering her composure, she was more determined than ever to make Erica feel welcome in her home, however she needed to be at the moment.
Clearing her throat, she tapped Erica on the shoulder and tried to sound just as loving as though Erica was her own daughter. "Erica, sweetie? I've been thinking about school. Do you want to go to regular school, or would you prefer to be home-schooled? Whichever you chose would be fine with me."
Erica was still fuming, but slowly became conflicted. She talks about me like I'm going to change my mind about who I am, but she obviously loves me and wants me to be happy... She looked at herself in the mirror that made up the entire wall opposite her and once more was satisfied to see the ghost of her young mother staring back at her. Her new hairstyle perfected the image and made her anger toward her aunt melt away. Aunt Heather didn't have to treat me to a makeover. She must have done it because she loves me and wants me to be Erica... why else? Maybe I misunderstood. Clearing her throat, she smiled weakly up at her aunt. "Whichever you think is best, Aunt Heather. I trust you."
Hearing Erica put her fate in her hands, and seeing the anger wash away, Heather smiled back at her sweetly. "Alright. If you don't mind, I'd like you to stay as close to me as possible for a while. Would you mind being home-schooled? It means harder work than public school, and you won't meet many children to make friends with, but you'll learn a lot of things they won't teach in school; things you might enjoy more! I'll get you any material that interests you that isn't already in our library. Would you like that?"
Erica's weak smile was replaced with a happy one as she nodded. "I know Faith goes to regular school, but I think I would like to stay home with you for now." Pausing, her smile dropped as she built up the courage to ask her a question. "Aunt Heather? May I have a special dress just for school time? The kind girls wear in private schools? I know it's kind of silly, but I like the idea. I think it would help me stay focused on schoolwork more, even though I'll be at home."
Stunned, Heather's breath caught a moment before she smiled and took a tissue out of her purse to dry away the forming tears.
"Did I say something wrong?" Erica's eyes widened. "I don't have to get a school dress! Honest! I'm happy with anything you let me have!"
Her aunt shook her head in denial. "It's not that, sweetie. It's just that... that's the first time you've called this place 'home'! It just makes me happy to know that you can feel like this place is your home!"
Listening quietly to her cousin and mother, Faith saw a lull in their conversation and asked curiously, "Mamma? Do I have to keep going to regular school too? May I be home-schooled like Erica?"
Her mother finished dabbing at her eyes. "Well, I suppose it would be alright. Since I'll be setting up schooling for one of you, two wouldn't be any harder. I am worried that you won't get enough social interaction not going to school, but for the time being, and since you're both in the same grade, you can go to school with Erica at home until next year. We'll set up a part of the library for you two to study in. How does that sound?"
Faith smiled and hopped up and down in her seat. "Oh, thank you, Mamma! May I have a school dress, too?"
The two looking at her expectantly, Heather gave in. "I suppose it would be alright. We'll talk to Miss Fuller when she comes back in, alright?"
As if on cue, Janet came out from the back. "Well, I got a few stylebooks and we can go through them and see what you like, Erica!"
"I'll also want to see about some school uniforms. I'll want to order several for both of the girls."
Janet smiled a toothy grin, seeing that this was going to be a lucrative day with her best customer. "Alright then! Does the school have specific requirements and colors? They usually do."
She shook her head and explained what their plans were to Janet while Erica and Faith looked through the stylebooks. Within thirty minutes Erica was once more in the fitting room to try on a few off-the-rack dresses that Miss Fuller had on hand in her size. She was used to seeing girls wearing jeans and shorts, but now that she had the opportunity, she found them unappealing and in fact made her uneasy, too close to boy's wear.
Three hours later, after a trip to the local department store for nightgowns, undergarments, shoes, boots, jackets, a few skirts, matching blouses, and some clip-on earrings that Erica seemed to like, Faith tapped her mother on the elbow as they were making their way back out to the car.
"Mamma? Halloween is this Sunday and Erica's going to need something to wear. We're still going to the Halloween party, aren't we?"
"Why yes, dear." Heather nodded. "Honestly with all that's been going on it had slipped my mind." Turning to Erica she asked, "Is there something in particular you'd like to go as, sweetie?"
Erica fidgeted as they walked, unsure of her answer. "Well... what are you two going as?" she asked tentatively.
"I'm going as a nurse this year!" Faith beamed. "Mamma's going as Glinda, the Good Witch. I was gonna be Dorothy, but I changed my mind."
Looking over at her aunt, Erica blushed. "If it would be OK, could I be your Dorothy, Aunt Heather?"
She smiled as Fredrick opened the car door. "I would love for you to be my Dorothy, sweetheart! Fredrick? We'll need to go back to Miss Fuller's before we head home."
The three talked in the back of Heather's limousine while Fredrick drove them back to where they'd started. Janet was surprised to see them again, but thrilled when she learned that the Dorothy costume she'd made for Faith wasn't going to go to waste.
"I'll have to make a few adjustments to fit Erica's measurements, but the rest you can take with you now. I'll have the dress ready by Saturday."
Heather nodded. "That will be fine, Janet! I'll have Fredrick come get it when it's ready."
Her eyes bulged as she remembered something. "Oh! I wanted to tell you! I was able to order all the school dresses you wanted for Erica and Faith from the outlet I buy from! They'll be delivered Monday morning! My son will be running a few errands for me up that way, so I can just have them brought to you as soon as they get here and I've cleaned them! Now, let me go get the accessories for that costume!"
It took a few minutes to re-fit Erica for Ruby Slippers, the ones purchased for Faith being slightly too small. Janet had substitutes in many sizes, but they were all tap shoes. "It's really the only call for red glittery girl's shoes!" she commented.
"I guess they'll have to do." Heather shrugged. "We don't have time to order anything and get it by Sunday. Go ahead and put them on my bill, Janet."
She grinned at yet another sale. "Alright then. I'll see you girls later! And Erica? You look lovely, dear!"
Wearing one of the off-the-rack outfits that they'd bought from her earlier, Erica looked down at the pretty white long-sleeved blouse with lace around the high neckline and the long black pleated skirt and black ankle boots. "Thank you, Miss Fuller." Erica blushed.
Between herself, her aunt, and Miss Fuller, they had settled on a femininely conservative look for most of Erica's wardrobe. Mid-calf A-line dresses and skirts with a simple style and older cut would make Erica look a little older than her true age of twelve. It was what she told her aunt was the reason she liked them. That it was her mother's preferred style, the real reason Erica had pushed for it over Faith's objections, she'd kept to herself.
After they'd left and were headed home, Erica looked over at her aunt. "Would you mind if I ask you a personal question, Aunt Heather?"
Looking at her niece, she furrowed her brow. "You may ask, but I may not answer. What is it, sweetie?"
Erica looked down at her skirt. "I really love my new clothes and everything else Aunt Heather, but... isn't all this a little bit expensive?"
"My parents were very wealthy, Erica." Heather blushed. "While I never intended to need it, when they passed on, I inherited quite a lot of money from them." She looked out the window as she continued. "After I graduated college, I worked as a therapist. I helped people with their problems, overcoming their fears, and with getting over severe trauma. I enjoyed my work and continued it for years after Faith was born. Your uncle Richard loved being a 'stay-at-home father' and retired from his job."
Her tone turning melancholy, Heather continued after a short pause. "When he left for active duty again, I knew I had to make Faith my highest priority while he was away and took a sabbatical from work. That's a kind of long vacation." she explained on seeing Erica's confusion. "When he... when he didn't come home, I just never went back. I never needed or used any of the money I'd inherited, so it had grown to more than I would ever need, or even likely spend, in this lifetime."
Looking out the window, mirroring her aunt's posture, Erica's voice turned sorrowful. "I'm sorry if that made you feel sad, Aunt Heather."
She looked at her niece and smiled; her eyes damp with unshed tears. "It's fine, dear. I just miss your uncle Richard terribly at times. The point is, you need never worry or fret over what I decide to buy for you, sweetie. You let me worry about it!"
"Mamma is very generous." Faith added. "She gives a whole lot to people that need it. Don't you, Mamma?"
Her mother dried her eyes with a handkerchief. "It's not something to brag about, dear. If you give charitably, it should be private or anonymous. If people know how charitable you are, then the accolades become your reward. The real reward should be doing what you know to be right... helping people. My reward should be in the next life, not this one."
She flumped back in her seat. "I wasn't bragging, Mamma. It just makes me proud of you."
Heather explained to the two girls. "Yes dear, but I don't want you two to share that fact with others. I only tell you so you'll know how you should use your wealth when you grow up and it becomes your responsibility."
Faith conceded. "Yes, Mamma."
The remainder of their trip back was spent in near silence with only the hum of the engine and the road vibrations filling the void. Pulling up to the house just after five, the sun was getting low in the sky and the temperature was dropping quickly.
"Alright you two." Heather ordered as they got out. "I want you to help bring Erica's things in, go upstairs, get clean for dinner, and be down by six. Understood?"
The two practically ran to the trunk of the car as soon as the door was opened, eager to take everything upstairs even if they had to carry them all themselves. Making their way up the stairway to their room, Fredrick behind them carrying the majority of their things, Faith turned to Erica.
"I still think the dresses you picked were too grown up, Erica. I'll look like a little girl compared to you... and we're the same age!"
Erica shrugged as they reached the upper landing. "I just think I need my own style. If I wore dresses just like yours, everyone would think I don't have my own clothes. Besides, I like the dresses I picked! Yours are prettier, but I think mine are more... well... more me!"
Opening the door to their room, Faith waited while Fredrick placed the packages and bags on the bed and left, closing the door behind him. The two then spent the next twenty minutes unpacking everything and another half an hour re-organizing Faith's wardrobes to fit it all. When at last they finished, the sun having already set, they ran to wash up and barely made it down in time for dinner.
Cook brought out their dinner of lasagna and steamed vegetables while the three chatted about the upcoming holiday.
Faith fidgeted with her feet under the table. "Mamma? I think I want to change my nurse outfit a little. Can I change it to be a therapist costume?"
"Therapists don't wear anything special, dear. Just normal clothes."
Her daughter looked disappointed. "Oh."
Erica looked at her cousin. "I think nurses are just as important as doctors, Faith. Without nurses, doctors couldn't do their job."
The reinforcement cheered Faith up quite a bit. "I think so, too!"
"So... there's a Halloween Party?" Erica moved on as she turned once more to her aunt. "Where is it, Aunt Heather? Here?"
"It's at a neighbor's house." Heather answered as she placed her napkin on her lap. "The Dempsey Ranch. They have seventeen acres near Lake Francis. They have a lovely ranch house and barn near the lake and enough grazing area to keep a dozen ponies. Every year they throw a Halloween party for invited guests. Your uncle Richard was very good friends with Mr. Dempsey, and his wife Emma and I grew quite close in that time."
After Cook made her way back into the kitchen, the three bowed their heads in prayer. This time however, Erica found herself really praying; her anger at God feeling distant, as though it were part of a dream. When she said, "Amen." she smiled genuinely and waited for her aunt to begin before starting herself.
Making her way through dinner, she tried to remember why she'd been angry with God in the first place. I have a beautiful home, pretty clothes, and a family that loves me. Why was I mad at God? She wracked her brain, trying to remember, but it just wouldn't come to her. Finally shrugging her shoulders, she finished her dinner just as Faith was about to clear her plate.
Heather was even more worried than before. While she watched Erica eat, she noticed that her niece was different. She seems too happy... as though she's retreated so far into her fantasy that she doesn't even remember who she is or what her problems have been. After they finished, Heather waited while her daughter and Erica were unseated, then made her usual way to the loveseat. When the girls approached her, she motioned to the couch for them to sit. The firelight mingled with the gaslights to cast a somber mood over the room.
"What is it, Mamma?" Faith asked.
"Tomorrow is Friday." she began. "I'll be out of the house for some time, taking care of some things that need my attention." Looking at Erica, she watched her reactions. "I need to set up for you to begin home-schooling after the holiday, and I'll be gone until dinner time. In the interim..."
The lights came to life with a flicker, having never been switched off.
"Well, then!" Heather let out a relieved sigh. "Back from turn-of-the-century living!"
Faith jumped off the couch. "Hurray! The power's back!" she shouted gleefully.
While Fredrick began dowsing the gaslights, Heather resumed her discussion. "Please sit back down, dear. Thank you. Now as I was saying, in the interim I want you two to help Franchesca set up your study area in the library. Make sure you have plenty of workspace for books, papers, writing utensils, everything you would have at your desk at school."
"Faith? I'll be going to your school to collect your things and let your teachers and principal know not to expect you Monday. I want you both to be on your best behavior tomorrow. Do what Franchesca and Cook tell you to do and help out with whatever they need. Now that the power is back on, they'll be very busy trying to catch up on work they've not been able to do these last two days. Any questions?" she asked.
Erica raised her hand. "Aunt Heather? May I take some time to go on the internet tomorrow? I won't take too long. I promise."
Heather nodded and smiled. "Of course, sweetheart. Just ask Franchesca."
Smiling back, Erica said, "Thank you, Aunt Heather! I promise I'll be super helpful tomorrow!"
"Alright, give me a kiss and then off to your room. I'll be up in a while to tuck you in."
After the two girls kissed her, they practically ran upstairs, laughing and talking about the Halloween party. "You'll see, Erica! It's so much fun! They do dances, bobbing for apples, the apple sack race, pin the wart on the witch, and they tell ghost stories! They also have a pumpkin patch, a hayride, and you can feed apples to the ponies and even ride one!"
Erica smiled, but then had a thought as they reached their room. Her smile melting away, she asked hesitantly, "Faith? You said they do dances. That's just for the grown-ups, right?"
Shaking her head, Faith dropped onto her side of the bed. "No, it's for everyone!"
"Um... Faith? I... I don't know how to dance!"
Faith stood up again rapidly and looked at her with a stunned expression. "You're kidding! Everyone knows how to dance!"
Dropping onto her own side of their bed, Erica shook her head. "Not me. I never learned how. I was going to learn this summer because I knew there were school dances once I got into Middle School, but there weren't any in Elementary school, so I hadn't learned yet."
Half-forgotten memories of her mother Erica promising to teach her how to dance before she got sick flitted into and out of the child's mind. Unable to reconcile them with her life as Erica, she dismissed them quickly. One thing struck her as odd though. In her memories, her mother was telling that to her daughter, not her son.
"Oh... OK. Well, I can teach you! It's not that hard!" Getting up off the bed, Faith went around and practically dragged her cousin out into the middle of their room. "So you put your left hand on my shoulder and put your right hand out like this." Faith demonstrated the position and then waited for Erica to mimic it. Switching to lead, she took Erica's right hand in her left and gently placed the other on Erica's hip. "OK, now look down at our feet. We'll do a simple box step to start."
After a few minutes, and several instances of colliding feet, Erica smiled as Faith danced her in a square while singing 'Daddy's Little Girl', the song she'd learned to dance the box step to.
"This is fun!" Erica almost squealed.
Faith stopped. "OK, so that's the easiest step. Let's try the waltz, 'cuz they do that a lot at the party. Same basic idea, but you hold each other different and you turn as you go." Moving into the closed position, Faith slipped her arm fully around Erica's waist, making the younger girl blush at being so close. After a few false starts, Erica was following her cousin in circles around the room to Faith humming 'The Blue Danube'.
Sitting on her side of the bed, Erica was winded from the experience. "Dancing is hard work! I feel like I've just run the quarter mile!"
Her cousin dropped on the bed next to her. "Yeah, but you get used to it. We better get our baths going though, before Mamma comes up and sees we aren't ready for bed!"
After separating and taking her nightgown across the hall, Erica relaxed in the tub of the guest bathroom. Just as she started to scrub, she was imagining being at the party and someone asking her to dance. Suddenly her eyes shot open and she sat forward. Quietly, she whispered to herself, "Oh my God! It'll probably be a boy that wants to dance with me!" Her excitement at looking forward to dancing at the party vanished in a heartbeat. I just can't dance with a boy! she thought. It would be... gross!
Finishing her bath quickly, she dried and dressed, sullenly making her way back to her bedroom. Now terrified at the looming party, she considered asking her aunt if she could stay home and give out candy to trick-or-treaters, but realized that her aunt had already spent the money for her costume and it would be rude to back out now. Sitting at the vanity to brush out her hair, she tried to think of what she should do. Before she could formulate an idea, Faith came out and joined her.
"Are you OK, Erica?" Faith asked, seeing the worried look on her face.
Sighing, Erica turned around in the seat. "I thought of something in my bath. If I go to the party, boys will ask me to dance!"
Faith tilted her head in her usual way. "Of course! That's the whole idea!"
She resumed brushing her hair, this time rapidly in frustration at Faith's lack of understanding. "You don't get it Faith! I don't want to dance with a boy!"
About to say something, Faith closed her mouth and puzzled over the situation. "Oh. So you only like girls then? Like Aunts Jenny and Brooke?"
Blowing a breath out discouragingly, Erica looked off at nothing. "I think so? Maybe? I don't know though, ya know?"
Her cousin began combing through her own hair. "Hmmm. I think we should ask Mamma. She'll know what to do about it."
Standing and heading to the bathroom to brush her teeth, Erica sighed once more. "I guess you're right, but it's kind of embarrassing."
A short time later, just as the two started climbing into bed, the expected knock came from their door. Heather opened it slowly and drifted into the room, smiling at her girls. "All ready for bed?" she asked.
Faith looked to her mother. "Mamma? Erica has a problem, but she's embarrassed to talk about it."
"Faith!?" Erica growled through gritted teeth as she shot her cousin a glare.
Holding up her hand to forestall an argument, her aunt interrupted. "Now Erica, I'm glad Faith told me... and you should be, too. I can't help you with things if I don't know anything's wrong, now can I?" She then asked delicately, "Would you prefer to talk to me about it in private?"
Erica shrugged. "No, I guess it's fine. Faith already knows. It's just... well... Ugh!" Overcome with embarrassment, she dropped back onto her pillow and covered her face with her blanket and sheet.
Having none of that, Heather walked around the bed and pulled the blanket down, exposing her young niece's face once more. "Now Erica, you have nothing to be embarrassed about! You can talk to me about anything, sweetie! You know I love you and only want to help you, however I can. So tell me... what's bothering you?"
Pinching her eyes closed tightly, she took a deep breath and gathered her courage, venting out her problem in one rapid sentence. "Faith told me that there would be dancing at the party and I told her that I didn't know how to dance so she taught me how and it was a whole lot of fun so I was starting to really look forward to it but then when I was thinking about it I realized that it would be boys asking me to dance but I don't like boys that way and so now I don't even want to go but I know you already bought my costume and everything so I know I have to go and now I just don't know what to do!"
Her aunt mulled over the issue, taking a moment to parse out the whole of Erica's longwinded explanation. "I see. Well then, that is a problem, isn't it?" Looking at her niece, she then asked point blank, "So... you don't like boys. Do you like girls?"
Erica wanted to crawl under the floor to hide. Instead, she grabbed her pillow, turned on her stomach, pulled the pillow down tightly over the back of her head, and nodded vigorously enough that Heather could see her nodding, even through the pillow.
Smiling knowingly, Heather looked at her buried niece. "Oh! I see! Well that's nothing to be embarrassed about, sweetie! Come here." she ordered.
Slowly, Erica crawled out from under her pillow and turned to face her aunt. As Heather pulled her into a loving hug, she rocked her niece gently in her arms and stroked her hair. Seeing an opportunity to help the child through some of her trauma, she formulated an idea.
"You remember Aunt Brooke? Well, she was your father Jack and my husband Richard's best friend! Now, you know she doesn't like boys, right?" Feeling Erica nod, she continued. "Well, did you know she went to dances with them and would dance with them both? She especially liked dancing with your daddy, Jack. She danced with him after your daddy and mommy's wedding."
Unbelieving, Erica leaned back and regarded her aunt. "She did?"
"Yes!" her aunt smiled. "Just because you dance with someone, doesn't mean you have to like them a lot. Lots of people go dancing and end up dancing with total strangers, and they still have a good time!" Heather could almost see the girl's thoughts rolling around her head, the child not even aware that she had managed to sneak in the fact that Jack was her father, Erica was her mother, and the consequence of both; that she wasn't Erica Hargrave.
Something about what her aunt was telling her refused to compute. She understood the words, but the idea refused to gel. Shaking her head to clear out the confusion, she changed back to the original subject. "So... even if a boy asks me to dance, it's still OK, even if I don't like boys?"
Heather nodded. "Yes, sweetie. Dancing isn't an invitation to date, it's a harmless social activity. You're still very young. I'll keep an eye on you. Does that help?" She hoped that the thought of dancing with a boy and bringing up dating would start to force the child's natural masculinity to finally reject the notion of being a girl, thus starting to break down the fantasy of being her own mother.
Her niece started to shake her head, like she'd just eaten something she found revolting. "Alright, Aunt Heather. I guess, if you say so."
"See?" Faith beamed. "I told you Mamma would help!"
Her mother released Erica and stood. "Alright, prayers and bed, ladies." Seeing both of them close their eyes and pray silently, she watched her niece most closely. Seeing that she still had a worried look on her face, she felt she could almost guess what the young girl was praying for. God, please don't let any boys ask to dance with me! She smiled knowingly as she waited from them to finish.
Seeing them both open their eyes and say "Amen.", Heather waited while they lay down and covered up. Kissing her niece on the forehead, then going around the bed to kiss her daughter the same way, she finally moved to the doorway and clicked off the lights.
"Goodnight, girls. Sweet dreams." she said softly.
"Goodnight, Mamma." Faith said through a yawn.
"Goodnight, Aunt Heather." grumbled Erica.
As the door closed, Erica closed her eyes and started to imagine what she would do at the party if a boy did ask her to dance. Her first thoughts were to punch his lights out, but she made herself imagine dancing with him. All it did was leave a sick feeling in her stomach as though she'd just devoured a rancid lemon. No matter how she tried to see it, she just couldn't see herself enjoying a dance with a boy the way she had with Faith.
After a moment, her thoughts drifted and the boy was replaced with April. A smile crept across her lips as she imagined April dancing the whole night with her... sweeping her across the floor over and over with Erica following her lead.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
CAUTION - emotional pain/open emotional wounds
--
Sitting at the vanity in her room, Erica watched the mirror while her aunt finished braiding her hair into two pigtails that came down the side of her head. The costume had been dropped off the day before and fit perfectly. With the shoes, dress, red braided pigtails, and a picnic basket with a small stuffed Cairn Terrier sticking up out of one side, she was the perfect image of Dorothy Gale. Watching her aunt tying off the blue ribbons at the end of her pigtails, she smiled at the reflection, still happy to see her young mother reflected back at her, even through her costume.
"There!" Heather exclaimed. "All perfect! Now don't pull on the ribbons or they'll come undone and your braids will come out, alright dear? I need to go change into my costume, so I'll be downstairs in a while."
"Yes, Aunt Heather!" Erica chirped. Picking up her basket, she practically skipped out into the hallway. As soon as she reached the marble hallway, she heard her footsteps louder than ever as each step was accompanied with a sharp double 'Click!' from her sparkly red shoes. The sound made her almost giddy, it made her feel so girly and feminine.
Walking toward the stairs, she met Franchesca coming the other way.
"Don't scrape your feet on the floor in those things, girl!" she barked. "If you scrape up the floor, it'll take me a week to buff it out!"
Lightening her step, she nodded her head at the maid. "Yes, Miss Franchesca." Erica watched as the grumbling woman sped her way past her to her aunt's bedroom, no doubt to assist with dressing her. Making her way down the stairs, she had to step carefully as she noticed that the shoes lacked any sort of tread and were a little slippery on the marble flooring.
Faith was adjusting her nurse's cap for the tenth time in the entryway mirror when she saw her cousin stepping carefully down the stairs. "Oh, Erica!" she cried. "You look beautiful! I'm so glad you're Mamma's Dorothy! You look way better in it than I did!"
Blushing as she reached the bottom step, Erica looked down. "Thanks Faith! I really do love the dress! And the shoes! They're just perfect!"
Looking at the basket, Faith giggled. "Miss Fuller did a great job with your Toto! It really looks like the dog from the movie!"
"Yeah, I think it really sells the whole costume!" Twirling around, Erica watched the skirt of her dress flare out before falling back to her legs. Looking at her cousin she remarked, "Your costume looks really neat! But should you have a stethoscope? I thought only doctors used those?"
"No, nurses use them, too." Faith answered with a shake of her head. "They use them before the doctor to take a patient's heart beat and blood pressure."
"I guess so." Erica shrugged. "Is that a real one or just a toy?"
"It's a real one! Mamma took it out of the first aid kit!" Faith put the ends in her ears and stepped up to her cousin. "OK, let me hear your heartbeat, Dorothy!" Placing the stethoscope on her cousin's upper left chest, she giggled. "I can hear it! Your heart beat's fast, Erica... I mean... Dorothy!"
Looking down shyly, she skipped her foot across the marble floor and marveled at the sound it made. "I guess I'm a little nervous. I'll be meeting lots of new people tonight."
The sun getting low in the sky, the two girls bantered back and forth for half an hour before they heard someone coming. Erica's eyes widened and her jaw dropped as she saw her aunt descending like Glinda in her bubble, as smooth as the silk in the woman's dress, which was an exact copy of the one worn by the Good Witch of the North in the classic movie.
"Wow!" Erica breathed out slowly. "Aunt Heather, you look beautiful!"
Heather blushed at the compliment as she reached the bottom of the stairs. "Thank you, Dorothy Gale!" she joked, waving her wand over her niece. "You are most definitely, a good witch!"
The comment made Faith giggle. "You do look very pretty, Mamma!"
"Thank you, dear." she hummed.
A moment later, Fredrick appeared from the kitchen, dressed in a fine chauffeur's jacket and cap. "Are you ready to depart, Madame? Miss Faith? Miss Dorothy?"
The girl in pigtails giggled and curtsied lightly. "Thank you, Fredrick! Is it time to follow the yellow brick road?"
He allowed himself a slight smile. "Indeed, Miss. However I believe that we shall not be going to Oz this evening. May I?" he asked, extending his hand to the young girl.
Taking the offered hand and blushing, she let him escort her out the door and to the waiting limousine, followed by her aunt and cousin. Just as Cook was about to close the door, Franchesca yelled from the staircase.
"Don't you three dare move a muscle!" she bellowed, racing down the stairs. "I swear, you people don't know nothin' about anythin'! Just wait there!" she ordered as she readied her camera. "Alright, now you girls stand in front of Mrs. Hargrave. Fredrick! You get yourself out of the picture! This is for them, not you!" she barked.
Moving to the side, he stood patiently while Franchesca snapped pictures in rapid succession. Then, having Faith move to the side, took several of Erica and her aunt by themselves. Once she seemed satisfied, Erica spoke up.
"Miss Franchesca? Could you take a picture with me and Fredrick?"
His eyebrows shot up in his faint note of surprise. "Me, Miss Erica?"
She proudly stepped over toward him. "Yes you, Fredrick! And it's Miss Dorothy, if you please! After all, you are our carriage driver for the evening, even if it isn't pulled by the Horse of a Different Color!" she smiled as she gestured toward the car.
A lump formed in Fredrick's throat. "I'd be honored, Miss Dorothy." he intoned formally as he stood ramrod straight.
With Erica standing in front of the huge man, he placed his hands protectively on her shoulders while Franchesca took a few pictures. Once done, the girl took Fredrick by the hand and pulled him toward the maid. "Now Fredrick, would you take one of me and Franchesca?"
Franchesca balked. "What, me? Looking like this? Are you out of your cotton picking mind, missy?"
Looking up at the maid with pleading eyes, Erica melted the maid's heart with one word. "Please?"
"Oh, alright!" she gave in. "But be quick about it, Fredrick! They don't have all night and it's getting cold out!"
Taking the camera while Erica turned and stood in front of the woman, Fredrick took a few pictures of Erica standing in front of a very stern looking Franchesca with the house in the background. When they finished, Erica turned to her and said, "Thank you, Aunt Em!"
Franchesca blinked rapidly in surprise; her mouth hanging open. "Aunt Em!? Why..." Her fury was lost in the sweetness of the sentiment. Huffing as she tried to be mad, eventually she just stormed back to the house, refusing to take the camera from Fredrick. "Keep it! You might think about taking some pictures with it tonight, if you can be bothered to remember!"
Theresa waited by the front door, smiling as Franchesca stomped her way up the steps. "Why, Francine! Are you tearing up?"
The middle-aged woman shook her head. "Of course not! It's just cold out! And don't call me that! My name's Franchesca, if you please!"
The two watched as Erica, Faith, and Heather climbed into the car, followed by Fredrick getting in the front seat. Cook waved at the three of them as they drove off. "I hope they have a good time." she wished.
While the trio rode to the party, Erica began to fidget with her braids.
"Careful sweetie, you don't want to pull them out." her aunt warned again.
Dropping her hands into her lap, she let out a deep breath, hoping it would take the nervousness out of her with it. "Yes, Aunt Heather. I guess I'm still a little nervous."
Her aunt smiled at her. "I'm sure you'll have a lovely time." Noticing her distracted daughter she asked, "Faith? Are you alright?"
Snapping her head around away from the window, Faith looked at her. "Huh?" she asked distractedly. "Oh, I'm fine, Mamma. Just thinking."
"About what, dear?"
Faith adjusted her nurse's cap once again. "Just wondering if anyone will think it's weird that you two are dressed for The Wizard of Oz and I'm just a plain old nurse." She adjusted the dark half-cape she wore that was now bunched up behind her back.
Her mother looked at her lovingly. "You look lovely, dear. Stop worrying! Your costume is perfect for you."
"Yes, Mamma." she replied uncertainly, turning to the window once more.
Erica tried to cheer her up. "Faith? I think you look prettier than I do. I almost wish we could trade!"
"Oh no, Erica!" she exclaimed as she turned back to face her cousin. "You look much better as Dorothy than I did! You don't even need a wig!"
Tugging at her braids, Erica sighed. "I wish my hair was a little longer, though. I guess I just need to be patient."
"You can be my patient!" Faith giggled.
The two others in the car groaned at the pun as they sped toward the party.
The car pulled off the highway, lurching down the dirt road toward the Dempsey's house. Erica could see lights around the outside of the barn, glowing in a thousand brilliant orange twinkling points. The huge doors were closed, but she could see light spilling out from every window, making the building shine on the scattered spots of snow surrounding it.
The sun had only gone down a few minutes before and several children were still roaming around the corral with the ponies. A small wagon could be seen pulling to a stop next to the barn, several teenagers clambering down from the back that was loaded with hay for them to sit on, while more waited beside it for their turn... each holding hands with another. A shriek penetrated the exterior of the car as they pulled to a stop, the shrill happy cry of one of the children running through the frosty pumpkin patch.
Once Fredrick opened the car door, Heather emerged first, followed by Faith. Erica suddenly found herself terrified to leave the security of the limousine and only started to exit after her aunt told her to come along. The cold air assaulted her nose, along with the scent of horses, hay, and wood smoke coming from the chimney of the main house. She could almost taste the pumpkin pie that lingered on the air as they approached the barn. She was vaguely aware of her aunt exchanging greetings with several people as they made their way, feeling the crunch of frozen dirt underneath her shoes.
She was also aware that their approach was garnering a lot of attention from those outside. She watched blankly as several groups of people turned to each other, obviously talking about the trio as they would huddle together and talk amongst themselves with occasional glances their way. Blushing and looking away, she moved closer to her aunt and took her free hand. She heard Faith greet several other children, making comments on their costumes and thanking them for their compliments on hers.
Following her aunt into the barn, Erica's eyes had to adjust to the bright atmosphere. Lights decorated every part of the building, lighting every corner and crevice in a cheery way. A long table covered in food sat along the wall to her right while a dance floor and speakers took up the area to her left, pumping out the lively recorded tune of an Irish fiddle. Ahead were tables and chairs, most empty, where guests could sit and enjoy the hospitality, while simple log benches lined the far wall.
Heather smiled brightly as one of their hosts approached. "Michael! It's so good of you to invite us again!"
Michael Dempsey approached the three, eating up the distance in a few broad steps. "Heather! Sure'n it's glad Ah am ye' could come!" Having emigrated from Ireland only twelve years earlier, his brogue was still thick, Erica straining to understand him. "So what's this, now? Two iníon? Ah could o' sworn ye' had only one las' time Ah checked!"
Laughing, Heather explained their third guest. "Michael, I'd like you to meet my niece, Erica. She's come to live with us." Pulling the girl out in front of herself, she watched as Mr. Dempsey lowered himself down to Erica's eye level.
"Erica, eh? Sure'n yer name won't be Katherine or Sinead? What part o' Eire do ye' come from? With hair like that, she's dotey and must be Gaelic! You wouldn't be chancin' me arm, now would ye'?"
Furrowing her brow, Erica stammered, "I... um... huh?"
Michael laughed merrily and slapped his knee. "S'alright, darlin'. Me name's Michael and Ah'll be happy ta' know ye', Erica." He extended his hand to the girl and shook it gently as she took his. Straightening up with a groan, he looked around at the guests. "Well, me Mot air back in th' Gaff fixin' up more ta' eat. That gal be up ta' ninety every year fir this!"
Having gotten used to his brogue, Heather understood and looked back toward the main house where his wife was preparing more food for their guests. "Will Emma be joining us later?" she asked, having to shout a little over the music that seemed to be getting louder by the minute.
"Ah should think so." Michael grinned before he looked at Faith. "Faith, me darlin'! Now don't ye' look deadly! You gun take care o' me in me old age, cailín óg? Sure I could use nursin' from a dote like you!" Lowering his voice so only she could hear him, he added, "Jus' dun be tellin' me Mot! She's fiery jealous o' pretty girseach makin' time wi' her fella!"
"Sure, Mr. Dempsey!" Faith blushed. "Do you really like my costume?"
The man patted her on the shoulder, not able to pat her head due to her cap. "Aye, girseach! Savage ta' be sure!" Looking back up at Heather, he nodded as his smile faded. "Well, if'n you be excusin' me, I need th' Jacks!"
As he made his way out of the barn, Erica turned to her aunt. "Aunt Heather? Did you understand anything he just said?"
"Yes, sweetie." she answered. "But I've known Michael for many years. His wife Emma and I are very good friends, so I've managed to learn a little Irish Gaelic over time. He asked you what part of Ireland you come from, said you were cute, and that your red hair means you must be from Ireland. Then he asked if you were trying to fool him."
Erica gulped. "Fool him?"
"Into thinking you weren't Irish, sweetie." she explained. "As for the rest... well... let's just say he's been enjoying the party a bit much!"
Leading the two girls to an empty bench alongside the far side of the barn, they were stopped and greeted several more times by other guests who all seemed enchanted by the shy new addition to Heather's family. Erica didn't say much, other than the occasional "Thank you." accompanied by blushing at their compliments in regards to her costume.
Sitting down on the log bench, its surface sanded and polished until it shone, less than a minute went by before Heather was approached once more. Erica saw the man walking up wearing a black tuxedo, complete with a cane, top hat, and a small black domino mask. He was tall and thin with dark wavy hair that was matched with a small but neat mustache.
"Heather?" he greeted her. "Would you care to join me?" indicating the dance floor.
She smiled politely and nodded, letting him help her back to her feet. "John? First I would like you to meet my niece, Erica. Erica? This is John William. He's an acquaintance of mine."
Erica only nodded to him shyly.
John bowed to her with perfection. "Charmed, I'm sure. Shall we, Heather?"
While he escorted her to the dance floor, Faith leaned in and whispered to Erica. "He's always wanting to take Mamma out on dates, but she won't go with him. She says he's too slick."
Looking over at the two of them dancing, Erica glowered. "So why is she dancing with him then?" she asked.
"Mamma says dancing is just for fun and he is a good dancer." Faith shrugged. "Besides, it's considered rude to refuse a request to dance." Just then, a preteen boy dressed as a vampire walked up in front of the girls.
"Hi, Greg." Faith greeted him nonchalantly before turning her attention back to Erica.
"H-Hi!" he nervously stammered out. "Faith? You wouldn't care to dance, would you?"
She turned back and smiled genuinely at him. "I'd be happy to, Greg!" she replied, extending her hand for him to help her up. Making her way to the dance floor, she looked back at her cousin and smiled.
Now sitting alone and watching her cousin and aunt dance, Erica's thoughts drifted to two days earlier when her cousin first taught her how to dance. She smiled at the memory of her dream about dancing with April, but it melted when she remembered the following day.
Erica almost ran up the stairs after eating breakfast and saying goodbye to her aunt. She knew Franchesca would want a lot of help, and she was determined to be as helpful as possible. Approaching her aunt's open bedroom door, she saw the maid inside making the bed.
"Good morning, Miss Franchesca." she greeted her cheerily. "Would you like help with anything?"
Franchesca looked at the girl standing in the doorway. Her brow furrowed in suspicion. "Just what are you up to, young lady?" she interrogated. "The only time anyone offers to help me around here is when they want something. So what is it?"
Clasping her hands in front of her skirt, Erica looked down at her feet. "Well, I was hoping, if you wouldn't mind later, after I help you, if you would let me use your computer to go online and check email and things?"
The maid nodded. "Ah ha! So that's it! I knew there had to be something!" She was finishing straightening the bed covers when she looked over at the hopeful girl waiting expectantly. "Well, don't just stand there, girl! Go into the bath, gather up the laundry, take it downstairs, and add it to the laundry pile! Sort it into light colors, darks, delicates, and bleachable whites. Got it? Oh, and make sure you set aside any hand wash items separate from the others."
Erica smiled and lightly bobbed. "Yes, Miss Franchesca!" Rushing into the bathroom, she did as instructed and was soon on her way down the stairs with her arms loaded with her aunt's laundry. Faith was sitting in the living room reading when she saw her cousin.
"Erica?" she inquired. "What are you doing?"
She paused and looked around the laundry bundle in her arms at her cousin. "Helping Franchesca. What does it look like I'm doing? Painting?"
Faith tilted her head. "But why?"
Pausing again after only taking one more step down the stairs, Erica sighed. "Because she needs help!"
Shaking her head slightly in confusion, Faith pointed out, "But you're doing her job."
Sighing frustratedly after one more step down, Erica turned to her again. "That's the point Faith! I'm helping her now so she can help me later."
"Help you with what?" Faith asked, still confused.
She didn't answer for a moment so she could get more than one step down per question, otherwise at the rate she was going it would be noon before she even reached the bottom step. Once at the bottom, Erica turned her body to the side to look at Faith around the clothes piled in her arms. "With getting online. I want to check email and stuff and Franchesca is the only one with a computer."
"Freddie has one, too." Faith advised.
Her cousin started toward the laundry room. "But Fredrick isn't here." she retorted, shaking her head as Faith finally shrugged and went back to her book. Carrying the bundle through the kitchen and into the laundry room, Erica began sorting it as instructed. Within half an hour she had all the loads sorted and felt very accomplished when Franchesca came in.
The maid inspected the piles and nodded in satisfaction. "That'll do. Now get into that library and start clearing out the desk in the northeast corner."
Erica started to leave, then stopped and turned back to the maid. "Which way is northeast?" she asked innocently.
Rolling her eyes, she pointed in the four cardinal directions. "South! West! North! East! Northeast is the corner that's around the corner and to the right when you go in the library door! Don't you know anything?"
Theresa barged in following her harsh instructions. "Now Francine, don't bark at the girl! She's only trying to be helpful! How in blue blazes should she know which way is north here? She's only lived here three days!"
"She knows which way the sun comes up doesn't she?" Franchesca barked at Cook. "She should since it comes in her bedroom window every morning! That's East the world around... and don't call me Francine!"
The cook waved a hand dismissively. "Oh, quiet! Go on, Erica. Tend to your task and I'll see to it Faith and Franchesca are in to help you shortly."
The maid put her hands on her hips defiantly as Erica left the laundry room and ran out the kitchen door to the dining room. "Oh? And who put you in charge of the household? You can just be in charge of that kitchen! Leave the rest of the house to me!"
Lifting her nose in the air, Theresa looked down her nose at the harsh maid. "In that case girlie, you can cook your own meals and find a way to do it that doesn't come into that kitchen!" Turning, she sashayed out of the laundry room haughtily.
Fuming as she pursued Cook, Franchesca wagged a finger at her. "Now listen here, you! Just because..." She was interrupted as she stepped through the open archway into the kitchen.
"Stop!" Theresa shouted. "Not one step further until you've helped that girl fix up the library! Don't think I was kidding when I said you could scrounge up your own food until you do! Now, out!" she yelled, wielded her wooden stirring spoon like a battle-axe, and chased the maid back into the laundry. "Out, out, out!"
"Well!" breathed Francesca in frustration. "Of all the... you can't... Ooooo!" She stomped her foot in frustration and charged back into the laundry to quickly start the first load.
Turning to the right as she entered the library, Erica found the desk and saw it was covered in books, papers, pens, boxes, and assorted office supplies. Sighing, she dived into the mess. Before anyone had made it into the room to assist, she'd emptied the entire desktop and returned every book to its proper place on the shelves. The boxes of office supplies sorted, she found places for them in the desk drawers and cleared the loose papers into a single pile. Erica had just sat down when Franchesca came in with Faith in tow.
"What are you doing missy! Loafing on the job?"
"Oh no, Miss Franchesca!" Erica stood quickly. "I just finished the desk! All that's left is this pile of papers I collected off of it. A grownup will have to decide what gets done with those."
She looked at the desk and started going through the drawers while Faith looked at her cousin in amazement.
"You did all that by yourself?" the older girl asked.
"Uh-huh!" Erica nodded. "I'm really good at organizing!" she joked, making reference to Faith's comments two days earlier.
The maid finished by wiping her finger across the desk. "Well, it's still dirty, but I'll take care of that. You two, clear out! I still have a lot of work to catch up on!"
Standing and waiting as Faith left the library, Erica looked at the woman. "Miss Franchesca?" she asked hopefully.
Looking up, she scowled. "What are you still doing here?" Realizing after a moment that the girl was waiting for an answer to her earlier request, she nodded knowingly. "Oh. Well, I'll come get you when I have time, girl."
She twisted back and forth in place slightly, twirling the hem of her skirt. "Is there anything else I can help you with, then?"
Losing patience, she leaned on the desk. "Yes! You can help me by skedaddling! Shoo!" She waved her hands at Erica dismissively.
Several hours passed while Erica sat and read 'Rebecca of Sunnybrook Farm'. She was deep into the story when she heard from the top of the stairs, "Well? I thought you wanted to use my computer?" asked Franchesca. "Change your mind?"
Erica closed the book and stood quickly. "No, Miss Franchesca! Coming!" She walked quickly up the stairs and joined the maid as she walked past her and Faith's room.
"Now I want to make this clear. You can use my computer for twenty minutes! Got that? No more! I get a twenty minute break and I won't have you in my room when I'm not there!" As Franchesca spoke, the two made their way to the end of the hall near her aunt's bedroom door and turned left down a smaller hallway with four doors, two on each side. Franchesca opened the first one on the right and Erica followed her in.
The room was decently sized, about the size of most bedrooms Erica had lived in, but much smaller than her and Faith's shared room. The double bed took up most of the room, with cedar nightstands on either side of it. The room was immaculate with not a speck of dust anywhere and no clutter. The wall opposite the bed had a matching dresser, wardrobe, and a desk instead of a vanity. The only piece that looked out of place was the chair for the desk, which was more like an office chair than fine furniture.
"Alright!" Franchesca barked. "You can sit there and do what you need to do. I'll be watching from my bed while I relax... so no funny business! I don't want to see anything inappropriate on that screen, you hear?"
Erica nodded and smiled. "Yes, Miss Franchesca! I promise!" Quickly sitting and grabbing the mouse, she opened up a browser and entered in her email homepage. While April's parents could stop her from calling, texting, and emailing using her cell phone, they couldn't stop April from using her school email account. Checking her messages, she was worried that she hadn't gotten anything from April. Hoping that she would have found a way to reach out to her, she started drafting an email to go to April's school address.
"Dear April,
I am OK. I arrived in New Hampshire Tuesday afternoon and there was a long cab ride to my aunt's house, so I didn't get in until it was getting dark. Right after I got here, the power went out and stayed out until last night. There's no cell service here, so Internet and an old phone are the only ways I have to reach you. (and Internet doesn't work if the power's out) I tried calling you on Wednesday, but your parents wouldn't let me talk to you. They said you were sad and told me never to call you again because it would just make you sadder. They changed your cell number and email, but I know you can still get email from me at school. I miss you very much!
Things are OK here. I got to see snow yesterday! Real snow! My cousin Faith and I made snow angels and built a snowman! My aunt is nice and so are Fredrick, (he's the butler and chauffeur) Cook, (who does all the cooking) and Franchesca, too. (she does the cleaning and works really hard... she's strict, but I know she's nice)
I don't know how often I can write. I want to tell you SO much! Things are REALLY different here. We're going to a Halloween party on Sunday and everyone wears a costume. Even grown-ups! I'm going to be Dorothy from The Wizard of Oz! The house is really old and even when the power went out we still had lights because the house uses a light called a gaslight that works without electricity. They're all built into the walls like normal lights, but they get turned on and off like a camping lantern! It's kind of cool!
I hope you aren't sad when you get my message. I don't want you to be sad, but I know how you feel. I was so sad when I had to go and still hurt inside a lot from missing you. You're the best friend I ever had and always will be!
I don't have a lot of time. Franchesca was nice enough to let me use her computer on her break, but I don't want to take too much of her time. So I'll try to write you again soon.
Love,
Erica"
She smiled as she sent the email and glanced at the time. Erica saw she still had several minutes left, so she brought up Facebook and looked at her contact list, but April wasn't on it and there was a notification that she'd unfriended her. Crestfallen that April's parents had gotten to this too, she noticed a few odd things. Perplexed, she looked at the pictures of her old life on her homepage and felt a twinge of discomfort when she saw the death notice written by Eric and all the condolences for her loss from her grown up friends. Shaking her head dismissively, she took comfort in knowing that her email would get to April through the school.
Just as she was closing Facebook, she saw a notice in her email inbox. Excited, she switched to it and read the subject line. Her smile vanished when she saw it was a notice telling her that her email couldn't be delivered.
Franchesca had been watching the entire time, holding back tears at the girl's inability to reach out to her friend and take small comfort in that last connection to her life as it had been. Shaking herself, she got up off her bed and decided she would help in the only way she knew how, by eliminating the reminder of her sadness.
"Alright, missy! That's enough." she growled. "Close it down and get on with your own things. My break's almost over and I have a schedule to keep!"
Dejected, Erica stood up and started shuffling toward the door. "Yes, Miss Franchesca." she mumbled.
Exiting the room, Franchesca stopped the young girl and turned her around to face her. "Erica, I want you to know, I... well..." Unable to formulate the right words, she wrapped her arms around Erica and held her tightly while the child silently cried on the woman's shoulder. She soothed away her sadness with comforting pets on the girl's head. "It's alright, dear. I know. It's all confusing and it hurts, but it'll all be alright."
After a short time, Erica stopped crying and nodded at the older woman. "Th-thank you, Miss F-Franchesca. I... I'll be alright."
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
CAUTION - emotional pain/open emotional wounds
--
Lost in the sorrow of her memories, Erica didn't even notice the boy who stood in front of her.
"Helloo?" he said for the third time, waving his hand in front of her sad and distant eyes.
Snapping out of her reverie, Erica finally looked up at the young man in front of her. He was heavyset, but not obese, and his short flame-red hair topped his round face, fitting with the outlandish hat he wore. His costume was The Mad Hatter from the live action film that had just been released earlier that year; a mad assortment of colors and patterns of cloth. "Um... hi." she responded shyly.
"Ah'm Mike Junior." he said, holding out his hand after wiping some cake crumbs off of it. "Mamaí and Daid air th' ones giving this party. Ah don't thin' Ah've seen ye' here a'fore. Are ye' new?"
His accent was an odd mixture of Irish brogue she'd heard from the boy's father earlier and the typical northeastern accent she'd started getting used to from the people she'd met since arriving. Taking his hand and giving it a soft shake, she replied, "My... my name's Erica... Hargrave." She pointed at her aunt, still dancing with John William. "That's my aunt Heather."
Mike sat next to her. "So ye' must be'n Faith's cousin, then. Ah heard Daid talkin' ta' Mamaí about ye'. He says ye' must be from Eire."
She shook her head, her short braids and ribbons tickling her shoulders. "Do you mean Ireland? No, I'm from Southern California."
His eyes widened. "Ya' mean like Hollywood? Did ye' ever see any famous TV or movie stars?"
Shaking her head once more, Erica giggled. "No! I'm from Newport Beach... that's fifty miles from Hollywood!"
The boy's face dropped. "Oh. S-sorry. Ah din' mean ta'..." His voice trailed off and he hung his head embarrassedly. "Ach! I kin be such a awful eejit! Ye' must be thinkin' Ah'm some kind o' thick!"
"Not at all!" Erica comforted him. "It's just a question!"
Anxiously, he looked over at the girl. "Say, would ye care ta' dance? Ah'm nay very good, but Ah won't be steppin' on yer feet!"
Stiffening, Erica remembered what Faith had told her about refusing a dance. Not wanting to hurt his feelings, she took a breath and nodded. "Alright, but I'm not very good, either. I just know the box step and waltz."
He stood and held out his hand to her. "Well then, we're matched!"
Taking his hand, Erica let him escort her to the dance floor. She assumed the position Faith had taught her, only to see Mike start to assume the lead position backwards.
"Ach! S'cuse me!" he mumbled as he reversed positions.
She smiled at his nervousness, comforted that he was as uncomfortable as she was, and waited for him to start. She watched him listening for the beat and counting to himself. At the start of the next measure, he began with a simple box step that fit the three-four beat of the song. Moving in a slow square, she could see he was focused on nothing but counting, his eyes looking down to the left and his lips counting silently. Trying to make him more comfortable, she tried distracting him.
"Hey, Mike! I bet we look weird! Dorothy dancing with the Mad Hatter?" she joked. "I bet some people might think I'm Alice!"
His concentration broken, he looked at his partner for the first time since they'd begun. "Huh? Ach! Ah suppose so!" Looking around at the other dancers, he nodded toward her cousin. "Get a load o' them, though... a vampire an' a nurse! Wot? She th' one what gets his meals fir 'im?"
Erica laughed and nodded toward another pair. "Look at them! A cowgirl and a zombie! Too weird!"
The two spent a minute pointing out odd pairings before Erica turned to look at him directly. "Hey, Mike? Did you notice something else?"
"Wot?" he looked back.
"You stopped counting, but we never stopped dancing!" she grinned.
Blushing, Mike looked down. "Aye, Ah told ya' Ah wasn't very good!"
"But you never stepped on my feet!" she giggled.
Eventually the music ended and most of the dancers made their way off the floor. The two were headed back to their bench talking about the Dempsey's ponies when they ran into a group of three older boys blocking their way.
"Well, if it isn't the little Mick-ey!" the tallest of them said in a snide tone. Turning to Erica he flashed a charming grin at her. "Is this oaf bothering you, Miss?"
Looking him over, Erica could tell he was handsome, athletic, and thought it made him irresistible. Furrowing her brow, she took Mike's hand, making her dance partner's eyes bug out. "No, he's not! Who are you to ask?"
The boy straightened up and looked at his buddies incredulously. "Who am I? I guess you must be new! I'm Chet... Chet Mansfield!" he stated as though that should mean something to the girl. His face turning cruel, he then glared down at Mike and lowered his tone. "And you were just leaving! Right, pipsqueak?"
Her grip on Mike's hand tightened and she put her other hand on his shoulder, just as she started to feel Mike start to move away. "If he is, then we both are, dork! Come on, Mike!" Erica pulled on his arm and almost dragged him toward the bench they'd been sitting at as the three boys stood stunned. Her blood boiling mad, she could feel the adrenaline pumping and the overwhelming desire to knock Chet's block off.
"Erica!" Mike hollered. "Ah thin' yer pullin' mah arm oot th' socket!"
She stopped and looked back at the three boys who started talking and then looking over their shoulders at the two. "Sorry, Mike." Erica said as she tried to calm herself. "I just can't stand smart aleck guys that think they're God's gift! Oooo! It burns me up! I wish April were here! She'd tear those wise guys up one side and down the other!"
Confused but curious, Mike asked, "April?"
She sighed as she turned her back to the boys and interposed herself between them and Mike. "She's my best friend back in Newport Beach. I really miss her and wish she was here right now! I'm not usually that brave! In fact, I've never stood up to a bully in my life!"
"Well, Ah thin' yer awesome!" Mike smiled at her. "No one tells off Chet like that! All th' girseach think he's dotey!"
She tilted her head the way she'd adopted from Faith as she resumed slowly leading him back to their bench where Faith and her aunt were sitting once again. "What's a girseach? And what's dotey?"
He trailed along, glad that she was no longer pulling on his arm, but very aware that she still held his hand. "Wot? Ach! Girseach is a girl and dotey means cute." Mike swallowed hard and gathered his nerve. "L-like you! A dotey girseach ta' be sure!"
Erica paused a moment as she slowly realized that she had managed to get this poor boy all wound up over her. "Oh!" she exclaimed. "You think I'm cute? No! I'm just ordinary. Faith is the cute one!"
"Nay, Erica!" he shook his head. "Ah thin' yer class! I know Chet'd sure like ya' ta' be his cailín!" Realizing she was about to ask, he explained. "If somthin' is class, it's really good, like awesome... and um... someone's cailín... is... um... their girlfriend." Mike blushed as he added, "Ah know Ah wish ye' ware mine." His eyes looked down as he finished, certain that this pretty new girl was about to laugh in his face.
What it did do was make Erica stop and cause her jaw to drop. No one, boy or girl, had ever shown her any interest that she knew of. While Erica knew she liked girls, it gave her pause as she tried to imagine dating this cute and interesting boy and had to repress a shudder. Closing her mouth, she tried to let him down gently. "Um, that's really sweet of you Mike. If I liked boys, I'd probably want to be your... um... cailín? Is that it?"
Mike nodded. "Aye, that it is." Sure that she was just trying to get rid of him, he asked point blank. "Do ye' not date boys, yet?"
"I don't date at all, yet." she shook her head. "But when I start dating, it won't be boys." she tried hinting a little more bluntly.
After a moment's contemplation, his eyes opened wide. "Oi! Yer aerach?" Seeing her confused look, he explained once more. "Um... ye' like girls?"
"Nothing personal." Erica nodded unashamedly.
Noticing she was still holding his hand, Mike looked down at them in confusion. "Then why did ye'..."
She laughed as they resumed their slow walk back. "Because I still like you! Better than that snob Chet, anyway! I just don't like like you! You're interesting and nice... for a guy." Finally reaching her aunt, she released his hand. "Aunt Heather? Faith? Do you know Mike?"
"Nice ta' be see'n ye again, Mrs. Hargrave. Faith." He bowed slightly to her aunt. Turning to Erica, he smiled. "Thank ye' fir th' dance, Erica. Kin Ah be gettin' ye' a drink? Or cake?"
Smiling as she sat by Heather, Faith on her aunt's other side, Erica answered, "Thank you, Mike. Punch would be... um... class!" Seeing the boy smile at her use of Irish slang, she watched him speed off to the refreshment table.
Watching the exchange with interest and more than a little concern, Heather turned to her niece. "So, did you enjoy dancing with Mike?"
"It was OK, I guess." Erica shrugged. "I more liked talking with him, though. He's a nice guy. He started teaching me a few Irish words, and he also likes some of the same things I do... horses in particular."
Her aunt leaned down and whispered a gentle warning into her ear. "He seems to be quite taken with you, Erica. How does that make you feel?"
"It's fine." she shrugged. "I know he does. He told me. I told him I don't like boys though, and he was fine with it. He didn't seem to care, anyway."
Still worried, Heather watched the Dempsey boy rushing back with Erica's punch. "I don't think he cares, sweetie. In fact, I think he doesn't care so much, he's still taken with you in spite of it! You need to be careful, dear. You could easily hurt his feelings."
Mike handed Erica a plastic cup with an orange punch in it. "Yer drink, m'lady!" he said while bowing to her with a toothy grin.
She took the drink with a shy, "Thank you." and sipped it, the flavor similar to orange soda and tickling her nose. When another song began, she saw Chet making his way up to the foursome. "Oh, no!" Erica mumbled.
The popular boy stopped in front of Faith and bowed to her, extending his hand. "May I have the pleasure?" he asked smoothly, glancing sideways to Erica who was trying to bore a hole in his head with her glare.
Smiling, completely unaware of Chet's earlier cruel remarks, Faith took his hand. "I'd be delighted, Chet!" she said as she stood.
Watching him with her head lowered, Erica's eyes were thin as slits as he escorted Faith to the dance floor. "Oily snake!" she muttered.
Heather looked from her daughter to her niece. "Who? Chet Mansfield? He's a fine boy, Erica!"
She glared at them starting to dance. "He's a two-faced, oily snake that thinks he's all that! He probably only asked Faith to dance to get under my skin... the jerk!"
"I'm sure you're mistaken." Heather scoffed. "Did something happen between you two?"
"Chet the Chump threatened Mike." Erica snarled as she crossed her arms angrily, her eyes never leaving the bully across the room. "Oh, not in a blatantly obvious way, but he made it clear that he wanted Mike to leave me alone with him! As if!" Mike only just taking a seat next to her, she turned to him. "Mike? Would you like to dance again?"
The boy turned white as a sheet as he stumbled back to his feet. "Um, sure Erica! Ah'd be happy ta'!" Extending a hand to her, his fingers were nearly crushed as Erica gripped them tightly and stood back up.
"Excuse me, Aunt Heather." she fumed as she took the lead in dragging the boy back to the dance floor. Assuming her position, she waited for Mike to take his, but was surprised when he stood there silently. "What's the matter, Mike?"
Shuffling, he looked at her. "Ah git th' fealin' tha' ye' don't sah much as want ta' dance wi' me as much as ye wan' ta' show up Chet."
Realizing he was right and how that must have made him feel, understanding how right her aunt was, Erica calmed down and looked at the floor. "You're right Mike, and I'm sorry. I actually would like to dance with you again... if you like... but I understand if you would rather just find someone else."
Mike smiled as he shook his head. "Nay, Erica. Ah wouldn't." He stepped up close and took her hand, letting his other slip around her back, starting to waltz with the others.
She seriously tried to keep her focus on Mike, but every time Faith and Chet moved into view she couldn't help but look over his shoulder at them. Realizing she was still being unfair to Mike, Erica made herself listen to what he was saying, mostly talking about his parent's ranch and their horses. After a while, she found it easier to listen and comment and wasn't even noticing her cousin any longer. When the dance ended, they started back to her aunt, but were stopped when Chet cut in front of them.
"Oh, sorry Mick-ey." Chet snidely faux-apologized. "You're so short and round, I thought you were one of the tables!"
Finally overcome with anger and loathing, Erica had reached her boiling point. Rearing back, she poured out all her pent-up emotions into one act, letting fly with an amazingly fast and strong right jab into Chet's lower abdomen that doubled him over. "Serves you right, jerk!" she screamed at him with all the fury in her heart pouring out freely.
Quickly, they were surrounded with adults trying to find out what had happened. Faith turned and watched her cousin descend into complete panic. She tried to make her way over to Erica, but couldn't reach her before the terrified girl ran for the barn door.
Just reaching the forming crowd to find out what was going on, Heather spotted her daughter. Grabbing Faith's arm, she pulled her aside. "What happened?"
"Erica punched Chet in the stomach! Laid him out, too!"
Closing her eyes, Heather tried to compose herself. Taking a deep breath, she looked around just in time to see Erica run out the barn door. "Wait here." her mother ordered as she hurried off after her niece.
Faith stood by numbly as her mother and Mike both ran after Erica.
His small size allowing him to move more easily through the crowd, Mike reached the door and was out and hot on Erica's heels before Heather had even made it halfway. "Erica!" he called out after her. "Slow up, girseach!"
Tears streamed down her cheeks as Erica ran through the cold evening air, not even caring if she drew attention. When she heard Mike's voice call out to her, she collapsed to the ground and began to cry in earnest. She wasn't hurt physically, no one had even laid a finger on her, but her stomach was balled up like a rock, as though she had been the one punched in the gut.
Running up to her, Mike quickly removed his multicolored coat and dropped it over her shoulders while she sat kneeling on her hands and knees in the frozen dirt. "Erica?" he asked concerned. "Air ye' a'right?"
She shook her head slowly. "No, Mike! I'm not! He just... he made me so mad when he insulted you! I don't even know why I did it! I just..." Tears began to flow once again just as her aunt approached.
Mike looked over at Heather as she crouched down next to her niece. "Sweetheart? Are you alright?" she woman asked concernedly.
Looking up at her, Erica shook her head. "Why does everyone keep asking me that? Chet was the one that got punched! By me! I punched someone!" she cried in stunned disbelief at her own actions.
Slowly, she helped Erica back to her feet. "Yes sweetie, but obviously something is wrong or it wouldn't have happened." Heather knew exactly what the problem was. Her niece had begun to see Chet, a boy that rubbed her the wrong way, as an object of all her pent up rage and frustration with the world. Just as she'd tried to transfer to herself the target of Eric's anger, Chet must have done something to cause Erica to pour it onto him instead. "Did he do something to you? Or to Mike? Did he say something?"
Beginning to shiver as she nodded, despite Mike's coat, Erica tried three times to answer, but it just wouldn't come out of her mouth, as though the ability to speak had somehow been robbed from her.
Shivering without his coat, Mike tapped Heather on the shoulder. "Ah thin' Ah kin explain, Mrs. Hargrave." he offered. "We ware makin' oor way off th' dance floor when Chet cut in front o' us an' made a rude remark... towards meself." He lowered his head ashamedly, thinking he was the cause of Erica's grief.
Heather gathered the two in her arms and started toward the main house. "I see. Why don't we go in and get warm. Then we'll talk. Alright, sweetie?" Erica nodded as she fought back another torrent of tears.
Entering his home, Mike ran to the kitchen. "Mamaí? I need some hot cider!"
Emma Dempsey stood up from crouching in front of the oven. "Where 'air yer' coat, boy!" she barked at him. "You'll catch yer death runnin' around out there half-naked!"
The twelve-year-old rolled his eyes at his mother's protectiveness. "Mamaí! First, Ah airn't half-naked! Second, Ah needed ta' give mah coat ta' Erica. Third, that's why Ah need th' hot cider. Where'd ye' put it?"
His mother put her fists on her hips. "Erica who? An' dun be givin' me none o' yer' lip, boyo!"
Seeing the cider bowl on the counter behind her, he grabbed three cups and tried to make his way around his mother while he explained. The more he talked, the more his mother's face melted from angry to concerned. "Mamaí! Kin Ah git by ye'? They'll be waitin'!"
Moving to the side, she was flustered. "So am Ah te' understand tha' the boyo insulted ye' and she's th' one tha' put him doon?" Mike nodded as he was about to scoop up a cup of cider when his mother's hand whacked him in the back of the head. "Eejit! Ware were ye'? Hidin' behind her skirt?" Taking the cups from him, she shook her head. "Git back in there an' see ta' oor guests. Ah'll be takin' these ta' Heather an' her niece!"
Running for the living room where the two went after coming in after him, he nodded towards his mother. "Ye' dun need ta' tell me twice!"
As Mike rejoined the two in front of the fire, he stood back and waited while Erica sobbed into her aunt's shoulder. It looked odd due to their costumes, but heartbreaking. For the life of him, he couldn't figure how such a small thing could cause so much anguish for her.
Emma entered and pushed past her son. "Heather? Here, take these." She offered the cups of hot cider. "Is th' girseach ta' be a'right?"
"She'll be fine." Heather nodded. "Just a stressful situation that released a lot of pent up anger and hurt." Seeing the confusion on Emma's face, she explained. "Erica's mother just died a month ago, and her father was killed with my Richard while serving. That's why she's come to live here with us."
The Irish immigrant's heart ached for Erica. "Th' poor girseach!" she exclaimed in a near whisper.
Just then, Michael came in from the cold along with an irate looking man. He nodded at his wife before approaching the two ladies huddling by the fire. "Mr. Mansfield is wantin' ta' talk wi' ya', Mrs. Hargrave." Pausing a moment he added, "If ye' can spare a tick."
Releasing the broken child, Heather rose graciously and turned to Chet's father. "I want to sincerely apologize for Erica's behavior, Mr. Mansfield."
Roger Mansfield stepped in front of Michael to confront her. "That heathen of yours made a laughing stock of my boy!"
Crossing arms, Emma scoffed. "Ha! 'Bout time someone did, ye' old fahrt!"
Flummoxed, he tried to respond, but Emma tore into him. "Tha' boyo air a brat, Mr. Mansfield! Ye' shoulda taken' him o'r yer knee a few times ta' beat th' cocky oot o' him! But what kin ye' expect... th' apple ne'r falls far from th' tree!"
Her husband's eyes widened. "Emma! Now look here..."
Emma glared at him, stopping him mid sentence.
"You have no right to tell me how to raise my son!" Roger stiffened.
Storming in front of him, Emma glared up at his frightened face. "Ah have every right ta' call em' like Ah see em' in mah own gaff! Yer' brat ware tormentin' mah boy! Erica stood up ta' him an' I say, 'good on her'! An' last Ah say, 'Git!' Ye nay be welcome in me gaff nay more! Oot!" She pointed past his shoulder toward the door making Roger flinch, sure that she was about to slap him out of her house.
Roger left in a huff before Michael turned to his wife. "Tha' ware nay hospitable, Emma!"
She grumped in return. "Some kinds o' loud-mouths ought not deserve hospitality, Mister Dempsey!" Turning to Heather, her voice softened to a hush. "How air she?"
"Upset, but really she'll be fine." Heather sighed. "I think it would be best if we were on our way, though. We don't want to disturb your other guests any further than we already have and you can't stay here all night. You have a party to see to."
"Now none o' that!" Emma shook her finger. "Ah'll grab th' roast, Michael kin take th' cider, an' we'll all go back ta' th' party ta'gether!"
Sitting in front of the fire, only dimly aware of her surroundings, Erica's thoughts were a cloud of jumbled memories, all conflicting with her assumed identity. Even as she kept telling herself, I'm Erica Hargrave! I am! memories of her mother's funeral and half remembered nights waking up crying at the death of her father clashed together with her new life, threatening to send her spiraling off into madness.
Slowly coming back into herself, Erica heard the last of the conversation. Finally, she calmed down and stood up. Turning to Mike, who never left her side, she slowly handed him his coat.
"Thank you, Mike. I hope I didn't embarrass you."
Taking his coat back, Mike shook his head. "Ach! Nay, Erica! 'Tis fine. If anythin', Ah'm grateful to ye' fir standin' up fir me."
"An' next time ye' kin stand up fir yerself!" Emma shot her son a glare. "Ah'll nay have a wee scared rabbit fir a Mack!"
Squaring her shoulders, Erica defended the boy. "It's not like that, Mrs. Dempsey!" Looking over at Mike, she smiled. "Mike was trying to avoid being rude to one of your guests. Chet really didn't do anything. It was just words. I shouldn't have overreacted. It's my fault."
She approached Erica and took her in her arms. "Thank ye' jus' th' same, girseach! Mike could be usin' more friends like you!"
While the four made their way back to the party, they talked about the ranch and how they'd gotten by during the power outage. Entering, a noticeable hush fell over the guests until Michael broke the tension.
"Air this a party air not!" he bellowed happily. Waiting for Emma to put down the roast, he took her by the hand and escorted her to the dance floor. In doing so, the mood shifted back to being light and entertaining.
Faith almost ran over to her mother. "Mamma! You should have seen Chet! His daddy took him out of here crying and holding his stomach!"
Lowering her gaze, Erica blushed. "I... um... I didn't punch him in the stomach, though."
Turning to her cousin, Faith's eyes widened. "You did so! I saw you!"
The embarrassed girl shook her head. "I hit lower than that." Looking up at the shocked faces around her, Erica held up her hands defensively. "I didn't mean to! It's just... well he's a lot taller than I am and... well..."
Heather had to restrain herself with every fiber of her being to keep from laughing out loud. Faith cocked her head, not understanding the subtle difference for a boy between a gut punch and one in the groin. Mike shrank back and crossed his legs, trying not to think about what had happened to poor Chet.
As the evening wore on, Erica noticed that while her aunt and Faith were asked to dance several times, all the boys avoided her like the plague and looked at her with a mild amount of fear in their eyes. She noticed too that the girls avoided her, casting dirty looks her way as though she'd committed some unpardonable sin by hitting the cutest boy around, making him leave early. Mike in contrast, doted on her all evening, getting her drinks, snacks, and even asking her to dance several more times.
When it came time for the games, Erica teamed with her aunt for most of them, their matching costumes making a cute pair. Other times she paired with Mike or sat them out while Mike would regale her with stories about his parents' lives in Ireland. She loved listening to him. His accent wasn't too thick, so she could follow his elaborate stories; sure that at most only half could be true.
Later, as people started telling ghost stories, the lights were turned down and Erica noticed that most of the younger guests started pairing up boy-girl. Unsure what to do, and seeing Mike alone and not wanting him to feel left out, she sat with him and held his hand. Innocently, she really started thinking of him as a good friend and only wanted him to be happy, and her presence seemed to make him quite happy. She never noticed the lovelorn looks he gave her as they sat in the dark close together, fingers intertwined.
At long last the evening came to an end and people started saying their good-byes and departing. When it was their turn, Heather smiled and hugged Emma warmly. "Thank you for a wonderful evening! I do want to apologize again for Erica's behavior. Just know that it's not typical for her."
Dismissing her apology with a wave of her hand, Emma snorted. "Ach! Go on then! It's fine! Perhaps it'll make th' brat think twice aboot bein' such a snot ta' others! I jes' wish it had been me own Mack who'd done th' deed!"
Erica hugged the elder Michael and thanked him for the food and games. Then turning to little Mike, she saw him shyly blushing and extending out his hand to shake hers. Steeling herself, she pushed past his hand and hugged him, making the boy unsure what to do about it. When she planted a kiss on his cheek, he turned three shades of red and stopped breathing, which made Erica giggle. Finally his father whacked him on his back, forcing the boy to resume breathing.
"Yer lettin' this girseach git ta' ya boy! Better be watchin' that!"
She smiled at Mike. "Thank you for showing me a good time, Mike." Dropping into a posture similar to Emma's when she was bawling out Mr. Mansfield and an Irish brogue she'd started picking up through the night, she added, "An din' be worrien' aboot gettin' ah cailín! Ye'll be havin' plenty o' time fir that, yet!" She was happy to see it made him laugh, along with his mother and father.
Starting toward the car, Heather took both girls in her arms as they walked. No words were exchanged, but Erica could tell that her aunt was pensive, which made Erica wonder what she might do to punish her for fighting, especially since she'd started it.
Fredrick held the car door for them as they climbed in and sat. Once they were underway, Erica looked across at her aunt and cleared her throat.
Heather stopped her musings and looked over at her niece. "Yes, sweetie?"
Gulping, Erica took a breath. "I know I'll need to be punished for hitting Chet, Aunt Heather. I'm ready."
"But I'm not, sweetheart." she shook her head. "I honestly don't know what to do about it." she added, looking out the window at the dark of the night.
Faith, who'd been uncharacteristically silent, finally spoke up. "So where did you punch him, then?"
Breaking the tension like an explosive, Heather couldn't stop herself from laughing out loud this time. Her laugher triggered the other two to start laughing and soon Heather found herself trying to explain to her daughter what it meant for a boy to be hit where Chet had been struck. By the time the three had reached their home, Erica was in much better spirits and her aunt was more sure than ever what she needed to do about her niece's unresolved anger and pain.
Franchesca was at the door and took Heather's coat while Fredrick parked in the garage. "Did you have a good time, ma'am?" she asked rotely.
Cocking her head, she nodded slightly. "Yes... we certainly had an interesting time. Thank you."
Helping Erica off with her coat, Cook saw the girl blush and turn away at her aunt's description of the night. "What happened?"
"Erica punched Chet Mansfield in the groin!" Faith blurted it out while Fredrick came in and took her coat. After a few minutes of explanation, mostly from Heather, the two girls ran upstairs to wash and change for bed, it being well after their normal bedtime.
Holding her hand out toward Fredrick, Franchesca inquired in a growl, "Well? Where's my camera?"
Handing her the device, he silently nodded at the maid.
"Did you get any good pictures?" she asked as she started to look at them.
"One of monumental importance and impact." he replied as he hung his own jacket and started putting on his butler's coat. "When you find it, you might consider just erasing it as it could be used in evidence against Miss Erica, should the Mansfields decide to sue."
Franchesca furrowed her brow and quickly started scanning through the photos, finally coming to a stop on a picture that made her draw in a breath. There in front of her, recorded for all time, was sweet little Erica with her fist buried in Chet's upper groin.
Looking over Franchesca's shoulder, Theresa nodded. "Good for her!" she shouted.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
CAUTION - emotional pain/open emotional wounds
--
Sitting in the library, Erica stared out the window as the snow fell all around the house. She knew she needed to get back to her studies, but her mind just wouldn't settle. Her thoughts drifted as freely as the snowflakes that fell past the large window, taking her from one memory of the last few months to the next. Finally shaking her head to make herself focus, she re-read her essay on early New Hampshire history. Reviewing her notes, she finished the closing and set the papers aside, glad that her work was done before Christmas break.
Rising from her seat, she stretched like a cat and placed her work in the folder to give her aunt. Turning out the desk light, she was mildly jealous of Faith's ease with completing writing assignments. Over the last month, Faith had continually beaten Erica at finishing them, giving Faith more free time. She knew it was petty, so she dismissed the thought out of hand.
She'd also noticed how Faith had started changing as of late. Her moods were unpredictable and chaotic. Her aunt Heather had explained that it was just hormones, but Erica couldn't understand why her own moods were not as volatile and were instead more subdued. Slowly ascending the stairs to their shared room, she pondered the problem. Other than the one time I punched Chet, I haven't noticed me being like Faith gets!
Erica had tried her best to make up for her one serious lapse in judgement, doing chores, helping both Cook and Franchesca with as many things as she was able to between studies. Her aunt had never brought up the incident again, seeming to have completely dismissed it. Maybe she thinks I've done enough to make up for it.
Entering their room, she saw Faith sitting near the foot of their bed on Erica's side. "Hi." she greeted her cousin quietly.
Faith shot her cousin a look that could freeze air. "Hi." she barked back.
Sick of dancing around whatever it was that had gotten her cousin mad at her, Erica sat on Faith's side of the bed and faced her. "Can we talk?" she asked delicately.
Dropping onto her back, Faith looked up at the ceiling. "There's nothing to talk about." Silence sat between them like a drift of snow.
Mimicking her cousin, Erica sighed and lay back on the bed, her head next to Faith's. Unsure what else to say, she lay there silently.
Finally, her moody cousin broke the silence. "Maybe it's time you move to your room." she stated bluntly.
Too heartbroken at the idea to even put up a fight, Erica only noticed the tear after it fell from her eye. "If that's what you want." she said quietly.
"It is." Faith snipped as she rolled off the bed. "I'll tell Mamma." Without another word, Faith stormed out of the room, nearly slamming their door.
Able to do nothing but lay there, tears ran down into her ears as she slowly sank into apathy once more. Everything hurt too much and, no matter what, it seemed she couldn't escape the pain of her existence. Over the last six weeks Heather had worked with her several days a week, helping her cope with her sadness and anger, eventually discarding the notion that she was Erica Hargrave. Telling her aunt that she still wasn't ready to go back to being Eric, instead she became Erica Bella Dunning, her own person.
Slowly, she stood up and walked over to the vanity, taking a seat and looking at her reflection. She could still see her mother looking back at her, but somehow it looked hollow; vacant, like a shadow rather than a ghost or reflection. She watched the redness of her eyes deepen as more tears formed. Taking a tissue, she wiped them and started going through the drawers to take out the few things that were hers.
A gentle knock interrupted her busywork, making her look up to see her aunt entering. "Mind some company?" she asked delicately.
Shaking her head, Erica let out a ragged breath, trying to contain the sadness that consumed her. "It's fine, Aunt Heather." She stopped her task and watched her aunt move over to the bed and sit, patting the mattress. Moving over to the bed, Erica sat down next to her slowly and sadly, leaning in to rest her head against her aunt's shoulder.
Heather ran her fingers through Erica's pretty hair, it having grown out so much that Brooke had colored it once more. "Faith told me she wants a room to herself again. I wanted to talk with you about that."
"It's fine, I guess." she retorted with a shrug. "It's what Faith wants, so I guess it'll make her happy again."
Her aunt nodded. "Alright. Do you understand why?"
Shaking her head slowly, Erica dropped backwards onto the bed to stare at the ceiling as she'd done earlier. "Not really, Aunt Heather. It just seems like everything I do makes her mad. I don't understand it. She doesn't ever want to play with me anymore. I know it's snowy and has been for two weeks, but she seems like she doesn't want to do anything with me, even inside. I just wish I knew what I did wrong."
Heather pulled her niece up and hugged her gently. "You didn't do anything wrong, sweetie. Faith is just going through a hard time right now. Her body is changing and her mind is, too. She's starting to grow up."
She took comfort in holding her aunt. "So it'll happen to me too, someday?"
Dancing around the subject delicately, Heather gave only a half answer. "Not exactly the same way, dear. Everybody is different, so we all go through this part of life in a different way."
They sat there in silence while Heather petted her head to comfort her. Ever since the Halloween party, Heather had been steadily chipping away at Erica's vault of pain she'd locked behind her fantasy. Before Faith's recent moodiness, Heather even had hope that Erica might be nearing a time when she could finally fully face her grief and return to her life as Eric. Now with yet another trauma pounding on her delicate psyche, she seemed to be retreating further and further back into what Heather believed to be the child's fantasy of being a girl.
Out of nowhere, Faith stormed into the room. "So? Do I get my own room again or what?" she barked at her mother.
Looking sternly at her daughter, understanding her issues didn't excuse her rudeness. "Faith! You have to understand this is very hard for Erica. She's gotten used to having you around. Separating you will be difficult."
She rolled her eyes at her mother. "So... is that a yes?" she sniped.
"Faith!" Heather exclaimed. "Don't you dare take that tone with me!"
Seeing her mother angry wasn't something she was used to. It shocked Faith so much she jumped. Stubbornly pushing back, she sneered at her mother. "Just tell me when his stuff is out of my room so I can sleep in peace for once!" At that she stormed out.
Heather was stunned at Faith's callous outburst, but not nearly as much so as Erica. Heather looked down at the stricken girl, who looked to be in shock to the point she wasn't even breathing. Erica stared at the doorway as though it were a gaping maw about to consume her soul. Her aunt was torn between wanting to console Erica and chasing down Faith to make her apologize. Finally, she turned to Erica and looked her in the eyes.
"Erica? I love you, just the way you are. I don't care what Faith said, you are my niece and I love you. Do you understand me?"
Shaken from her state of shock, she nodded at her aunt as tears silently ran down her cheeks and she began breathing again. Moving forward, she hugged her aunt as though clinging to a life ring, the woman's loving embrace the only thing keeping her from drowning in a sea of pain.
Pulling back, she looked once more in the girl's eyes. "I need to go talk to Faith. What she said was inexcusable. Will you be OK for a minute without me?" Seeing a slight nod from the girl, she stood up and backed toward the door. "I'll be back soon." she added before turning to pursue her child.
Sitting in the lonely confines of what had been her room for the last two months, Erica looked at the things around her that gave her comfort. Their shared vanity, the neatly arranged row of stuffed animals along the toy box at the foot of their bed. As her eyes turned toward the box of dolls she started hearing yelling from downstairs. Her aunt's muffled and unintelligible voice, mixed with that of Faith's, rang through the building like echoes of the storm that had greeted her arrival at her new home.
After a short time, the yelling stopped and silence sat over the house once more, thick as fog. Erica knew she should get up to start collecting her things, but she couldn't make her body obey. Instead she just sat, unable to even rise. Sinking rapidly into a near catatonic state, she floated through memories that were some of the best of her life since coming to live with her aunt.
Turning as they tried to keep up, Faith shouted, "Come on slow-pokes!"
Erica held out her hand to Mike as they climbed over the log. Their hike through the woods to the north of her aunt Heather's house had taken them up a hill through thickly wooded forest. Faith knew the path well, having walked it many times, but Erica and Mike were lagging behind.
"Wait up!" Erica yelled. Turning toward Mike, she laughed as he flopped onto the ground into a pile of leaves that had been gathered together by the wind. The frost of the week before had melted into a warm Indian Summer. The three children had known that soon their outdoor activities would be confined to snowball fights and other winter activities for many months, so they took advantage of the temporary warm weather as much as possible, spending every weekend day out exploring nature.
Mike lay on the fallen leaves and panted for breath. "Tha' cousin... air yours... mus' be... part mountain goat!" he exclaimed.
Falling into the leaf pile beside him, Erica giggled. Finally she looked up at her cousin who had back-tracked and stood over them with her hands on her hips looking like Cook when Franchesca invaded her kitchen.
"Aren't you two coming?" she asked.
Erica laughed as she stood back up and gave her hand to Mike. "Yeah, we air comin' col ceathrar!" she said, imitating Mike's brogue.
Taking his best friend's hand, Mike pulled himself up. "Ye' sure'n ye aren't from Eire, girseach? Ye' sound like me mamaí!"
"Well, if you two are quite through, can we get moving?" Faith scowled at the two. "I'd like to get to the pond before it gets too late!"
"Yes, Faith." Erica sighed. "Lead the way!"
The three continued to hike up the hill while Erica and Mike lagged behind a bit. "So, you're going back to Eire for Christmas?" she asked, turning to him.
Mike nodded. "Aye. Mamaí misses her siúrs an' she wants ta' spend it back in 'er home town this year."
Erica nodded in understanding. "Well, I'll miss you while you're gone. Will you write me? I've never gotten a letter from another country before!"
"I will ya!" he laughed. Seeing her scowl at him for implying that he wouldn't, he swallowed hard and nodded, "Aye, I'll do that."
Cresting the slight rise, Faith stopped and finally smiled. "Here it is!" she yelled. "Come on, you two!"
The two friends jogged up the hill to stand next to Faith, breathing heavily from their run. Erica looked down at the pond that had formed in the slight depression from the melting snow. A few birds that had not flown south for the coming winter flew over the water, giving it a serene feeling that this place was untouched and pure.
The trio ran down the short hill to the edge of the water and took in the beauty of the view. Splitting up, Erica and Faith started walking around the pond to the left while Mike went to the right. It was small enough that they could yell across it to each other without difficulty, if needed.
While Faith walked along slowly with her cousin, she looked over at her. "Erica? Why did you invite Mike along? I wanted to show this to you."
She shrugged as she picked up a small rock and tossed it in the pond. "I don't know. I just thought he might like it, too."
"But I wanted to spend time with just us!" Faith whined. "You're always spending time with Mike! It's like he's your boyfriend!"
Stopping, Erica looked at her cousin. "He is not!" Lowering her voice she added, "You know I don't like boys that way! Yeah, I know he's got a crush on me, but so what? He's nice, sweet, and interesting to talk to, but he's not my boyfriend! I mean... eww!"
Faith turned and looked at her. "You're making him think he's got a chance, Erica."
"A chance at what?"
"Ugh!" Faith rolled her eyes. "A chance at you, nitwit! And that's another thing. You used to always talk about April being your best friend. Now it's Mike all the time!"
Lowering her head, Erica's voice turned melancholy. "I... I don't like to think about April. It hurts." She fiddled with her fingers as she tried not to think about the pain in her heart from missing the girl she'd gown up with.
Her cousin saw she was struggling and became impatient. "It's OK, Erica. You can just say it."
She looked back up. "Say what?"
"That you're in love with April." Faith said sadly as she turned back to their walk around the pond.
Erica felt her face flush at hearing the words. Starting to move again, she easily caught back up with her cousin. "How did you know?" she whispered after a moment.
Rolling her eyes again, Faith looked away. "It's so obvious, Erica! Every time you talk about her I can see little broken hearts around your head!"
"Oh." was her only reply. After a moment, she looked over at Faith. "I didn't know you knew."
Faith sighed. "It's just that I hate to see you so heartbroken over it, is all. I mean, I know that before you left you were just friends, and now that you're so far away from her you wanted it to be more. It's just all so sad."
Erica nodded silently. As the two reached the side of the pond, they both looked over at Mike who was shouting to them.
"Oi! Ah found a bone!" he cried.
Faith giggled as they waved at him. "I'll bet he did!" she murmured.
"Huh?" Erica looked at her confusedly.
Shaking her head, Faith dismissed the question. "Never mind. I guess it's only funny to me!"
Reaching the far side and meeting back up with Mike, he was very animated about his discovery. "Ah thin' it ware a deer! Look here!" He held out a piece of hoof.
Faith stepped back. "Eww! Put that away, Mike! God, boys are so gross!"
Disappointed, Erica had wanted to humor her friend and look at it. Trying to salvage a good time out of their walk, she made a suggestion. "Why don't we walk back around the way Mike came. That way he can show us where he found it and we can see the rest of the pond!"
Rolling her eyes once more Faith spat, "Fine!" and started walking ahead, but Erica quickly caught up to her.
Lowering her voice to a whisper she asked, "Is something bothering you?"
Faith stopped and turned to Mike. "Could you give us a moment?" she asked. "I promise we won't take long."
Mike smiled. "Sure! Ah'll jes walk oot th' other way a wee bit. Come ta' think o' it, Ah thin' Ah'd like ta see th' oo'r side. Ah'll meet ya back where'n we started, a'right?" He turned and headed back the way they had come.
When Faith was sure he was out of easy hearing range, she sighed and looked at Erica. "I guess I'm just jealous is all. I mean, when you got here, April was your best friend. Then Mike became your best friend. I guess I thought..." Her voice broke as it trailed off into silence.
Taking hold of Faith's hand, they started walking again and Erica turned to her. "Faith, you're the best friend I've ever had! You're always there for me, helping me, giving good advice. You know how much you mean to me."
She sighed and leaned her shoulder against Erica's. "I know, but you never want to spend time with just me. You did at first when you got here, but now it's like you're afraid to or something."
Her cousin shrugged as she tried to hedge her answer. "It's not that. It's just that... well... you and I are different about some things. Don't get me wrong, I think you're great! In fact I think you're just about perfect!" she said dreamily. Swallowing hard, Erica was worried that too much of her true feelings had shown through. "If I considered anyone my best friend, it would be you." she tried to recover.
Faith stopped and looked at her. "Do you mean that Erica? For real?"
"For real." Erica nodded shyly, glad that Faith had obviously not picked up on the real meaning of her expression of admiration for her cousin, that she'd grown to care for Faith far more than she should for them being cousins.
The two didn't say anything more as they made their way around the pond, just walking in companionable silence and holding hands. When they met up with Mike on the other side, Faith seemed much more at ease with having him around and even included him in their conversations. Erica was truly happy. Her two best friends were happily together with her; a true trio.
It was one of the best days of Erica's life.
Faith looked up at her mother. "What do you mean?" she asked.
Trying to explain, Heather sighed. While Faith was no longer shouting at her, she still wasn't listening. "Faith, you may well have undermined all of the last two months of therapy I've been doing with your cousin! Don't you see? You've broken her world... again, and just when she was getting ready to leave her fantasies of her own accord! Damn you, Faith!"
It shocked her to hear her mother swear. In fact she was sure it was the first time her mother had ever sworn in front of her. "Mamma!"
Heather was beyond frustrated. She had spent weeks getting Erica to admit she wasn't her own mother and felt certain she was close to giving up her feminine persona and return to being the boy he'd always been. Now her daughter, on an emotional whim with terrible timing, had undone almost all of her progress. Turning away from Faith, she struggled to figure out a way to undo the damage. At last she turned to her daughter and sat next to her.
"Dear, you know I understand how you feel lately, but don't you think you could set that aside for just a short while and try to help me? Otherwise I just don't know what may happen! Your cousin could end up hurting herself if she doesn't give up these fantasies of being a girl! It's already gone on far too long!"
Faith crossed her arms and looked away. "Seems like you care more about getting Eric back than you do your own daughter!" she quipped angrily.
Reaching out, Heather made Faith look at her. "Now you know that's not true, Faith! I love you both. You have to remember though just how hurt she is. How would you feel if you lost me the way she lost her mother?"
Her anger began to wane as she listened, but not her resolve. "Mamma, I do understand, but Erica is just... ugh!" She stood and walked away from her mother and crossed her arms again. "She's not a little girl anymore, Mamma. She's starting to grow up... and not into a woman! You're going to have to do something about that!" she hinted.
Standing, she crossed the room, walking up delicately behind her daughter. "Faith..." Heather made her turn around and face her. "Dear, has... has Erica done anything... inappropriate?"
Faith stiffened and stormed away from her mother. "Of course she hasn't!" she yelled. "How could you even think...!" Her voice trailed off as she lacked the words to express just how upset even the accusation made her.
Looking at Faith, Heather put her hands on her hips. "Well you made it sound as if..."
"Oh, Mamma, I did not!" Faith interrupted. "You just try to read into everything I say, even when I'm just saying something simple!"
Her mother shook her head. "You haven't said anything simple in weeks, dear... and don't interrupt!"
Closing her eyes, Faith mentally counted to ten, trying to keep from losing her temper again. "Mamma, that's just so unfair! You don't understand!"
"Mothers never do, dear." she shot back calmly. "That is, until you grow up and realize they understood everything, all too well."
Faith sat down, exhausted from fighting with her. "Mamma! Just give me a straight answer! Can I have my own room back, or are you going to do something about Erica?"
Slowly, Heather stepped in front of her daughter and went down to her knees to face her directly. "Faith darling, you know I want to give you everything you want or need. Why is this so important to you all of a sudden? Two months ago you were begging me to let her share your room! What's changed? What's happened that suddenly makes you want your cousin to be away from you?"
She couldn't look her mother in the eye. She looked down and then to the side. "I guess I've changed." Gathering her courage, she sighed and tried to force the issue. "I can't share a room with someone that's going to be a teenage boy soon, Mamma. Something has to be done." she hinted again.
After a few moments, Heather finally let out an exasperated sigh. "Alright, Faith." she relented. "I'll see to it Erica's things are moved to her room, but you know this is going to hurt her. Badly. What are you going to tell her?"
Faith looked at her mother's eyes, reflections of her own, with a stunned expression as she'd not been expecting this turn of events, nor for her mother to put the responsibility on her. "Me? You want me to tell her?"
She stood and started to leave. "Yes, Faith. You. If this is what you need, you need to make your cousin understand it." With nothing more to say, she left the room to find Franchesca and make preparations for the change.
Slowly, Faith opened the door to their room, knocking lightly as she did so. Seeing Erica sitting motionless on the bed, she cleared her throat and softly said, "Hi." When she'd pushed for separate rooms, the last thing she'd expected was to get what she said she wanted. To then have to hurt Erica on top of it was pouring salt in the wound. When Erica didn't even look her way, she quietly came in and stepped in front of her cousin, looking into Erica's green eyes that were glazed over as though she were blind. She didn't even seem to see Faith standing right in front of her.
After a moment, she moved around and sat on the bed next to her. Not seeing any sign that Erica was even aware of her presence, she truly understood how badly she'd hurt her cousin. It's like she's not even here... like she's lost inside herself. She tried to take Erica's hand, but even after doing so it sat limp in hers, the same as if she were asleep. Finally, she rested her head on Erica's shoulder and hooked her arm under the slightly younger girl's limp limb. Sitting like that for several minutes, she tried to come up with the words that would explain things. Finally giving up, she just started to talk about whatever came to her mind.
"I really liked the short story you wrote last week." she started. "It was really good. You don't write as fast as me, but you write a lot better." Not seeing any change, she just continued. "I think you have a real talent for writing." More silence filled the room until Faith couldn't stand it anymore. "Erica! I need to talk to you! Won't you please listen?"
Somewhere in her mind, Erica was vaguely aware of Faith's presence, but she just couldn't figure out how to reply. Faith? she thought, unable to make her thoughts reach her lips. Faith? I don't know what I did wrong, but can you forgive me? Please? Still unable to make her body respond, Erica started screaming the words in her mind, but to no avail. Nothing she did seemed to connect her mind with her body. Finally, she turned inward and began to pray... pray that she might find her way back... that she might be happy once more in her new home... that Faith wouldn't hate her for whatever it was she'd done wrong.
Starting to see tears forming in her cousin's eyes, but nothing else, no sign that she was there, Faith became frantic. "Erica! You're scaring me! Please! Just say something! Yell at me! I deserve it! Please! I'm sorry, OK? I didn't mean it! Please, just... just don't leave me!" she began to cry.
Erica's hand slowly responded, moving to take her cousin's, griping it lightly.
Faith's eyes widened at the first sign of life from her tormented cousin. "Erica?" Faith asked hopefully as her tears abated.
Two green eyes slowly tracked around to face Faith, her head gradually following them. Erica tried to speak, but words would still not come out. Her lips moved, but no sound came forth.
Practically tackling Erica in a hug, tears rolled down Faith's face. "Erica! I'm so sorry! I didn't mean what I said before! I swear! Please forgive me! I know you're not a boy, and I don't want you to go!"
Feeling her cousin's tears on her neck, Erica could only manage to hug her, words still not making it from her mind to her lips.
Babbling now, Faith tried to explain why she'd done what she'd done. "You've been such a Godsend to me, Erica! I never thought I'd ever need someone near me so much in all my life! It... it sacred me how much I need you to never go away! You're the best friend I could ever have!" Not ready to admit the full truth yet, she thought up an excuse. "I... I tried to push you away before you left me! I'm so sorry, Erica!"
Finally, words came loose of her tongue, words she'd been trying desperately to say since Faith entered the room. "I... I... I..."
"Yes? What is it, Erica?" Faith wiped her eyes. "Just say what you need to... it's OK. Even if you hate me, just please be OK!"
Erica took a breath and tried again. "I... understand... if... you... hate me, Faith, but..."
The smaller girl interrupted her. "I don't hate you Erica! I love you! So much! I... just..." She paused and made herself say part of what she felt. "I don't want you to ever leave me! I don't want you to ever go back to Southern California, or back to being Eric! I know that's terrible of me, but it's the truth! Please, Erica! Never go back? I know you want to because April is there and you love her, but please? Say you'll never go? That you'll never leave me?"
Erica smiled weakly and shook her head. "N.... never!"
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
CAUTION - cousin incest (non-sexual)
CAUTION - severe emotional pain/open emotional wounds
--
Christmas came with all the happiness, love, and family it's supposed to have. Faith had called off the move, but that was to be short lived. As the long winter wore on, Heather decided that, for Erica's own good, she needed to move into the guest room and make it her own. She offered to let the girl chose her own decor, but Erica sadly accepted the room as it was.
Her first night alone in Hargrave House came in April, just as the snow was giving way to rain. Erica hadn't even gotten to sleep when she felt that someone was in the room with her. Nervously, she looked up and saw Faith standing next to her bed.
"Faith? Are you OK?" she asked, rubbing her eyes.
The girl hugged herself and shook her head. "I... I can't sleep! Can I lay with you a while?"
Nodding, Erica was unable to say no to the girl. Lifting the covers, Faith quickly slid into her bed and snuggled her back up against Erica, almost shivering as though it were that first freezing cold night all over again.
After the two settled in, Faith rolled over to face her cousin. Whispering like they used to before they would fall asleep together, she needed to talk to her. "Erica? I... want you to know. I think I understand why you need to have your own room now. I turn thirteen next week and you turn thirteen in a few months. I think Mamma doesn't like the idea of two teenagers sharing the same room... and I think I understand why now."
Erica was tired, but listening to Faith was more important. "OK, so why?"
Biting her lip, Faith tried to figure out a way to say it without upsetting her cousin. "OK, do you remember that second morning after you got here, when we were getting dressed and you got all embarrassed when I kissed your cheek?" Seeing Erica nod shyly in remembrance, she continued. "Well, remember how you felt?" Erica's cheeks flushed and she nodded again. Seeing that she was going to have to spell it out, Faith took Erica's hand to steady herself. "I... I think, um... I think you were, um... getting..." She looked away and made herself say it out loud. "...turned on... by me." Looking back, she gazed into Erica's lovely eyes and her heart fluttered.
Eyes growing wide, Erica furrowed her brow and began yelling in a whisper, "Faith! No! I wouldn't! I... I couldn't! You're my cousin! That's just so... so... wrong! What do you think, I'm some sort of perv?"
Hearing Erica call herself a perv for being attracted to her cousin stung, but Faith shook her head. "No, Erica! Not at all! I know you weren't perving on me, but I think Mamma is afraid that we might... well... I mean now that we're getting older and I'm starting to get... developed... that we might... uh... you know!"
She recoiled from her cousin, the idea of giving in to her physical attraction toward her tying her stomach in a knot. "Faith! Is that what Aunt Heather thinks? That because I like girls that we might... um... you know... fool around? With each other?"
"I think so." she nodded. Faith paused a moment before asking the real question on her mind. "Would you want to?"
Erica shook her head in denial. "Are you kidding? I mean, I like girls, but you don't! Besides, we're cousins! This is New Hampshire, not Kentucky!"
The comment made Faith giggle. "You know, I think Mike would like to see if you go both ways!"
The girl's terrified look dissolved into one of mirth. "Don't I know it! God, he's so crushing on me! I feel bad for him though, because it's never gonna happen!"
Faith stopped giggling. "You mean, you aren't even curious to try? Just to see what it's like? I mean, with a boy?"
"Eww!" Erica stuck out her tongue. "No way! Boys are gross! Besides, I haven't even tried it with a girl yet, and I know I like girls!"
Gripping Erica's hand a little tighter, Faith admitted one of her truths. "I am. Curious, that is. About girls. About what it might be like."
Her cousin's smile disappeared as her heart hammered in her ears. "Faith, I love you... more than I could ever say... but..."
She let Erica's hand go and drew it up to herself. "I know. I knew before I came in here." After a moment's silence, she continued. "Did you know that day when we went up to the pond, I was planning on kissing you?"
Erica felt her heart beat rise quickly. "Um... no."
Her cousin nodded shyly. "Uh-huh. That's really why I was upset that you brought your boyfriend along!"
"He's not my boyfriend!" Erica almost laughed. "God, you're worse than Aunt Jenny is with Aunt Brooke!"
Giggling, Faith tried to quiet herself. Suddenly becoming serious, she looked Erica directly in the eyes. "I wanted you to know, I think I've had a crush on you since the first time I saw you. I know it's wrong, and nothing will ever happen, but I wanted you to know. I think, somehow, I needed you to know. That's all. I... I also wanted you to know that it's you that I'm crushing on. Erica."
Faith sighed as she admitted her worst failing. "That's why before Christmas when I could tell that Mamma was about to make it so you wouldn't have to be Erica anymore, I said those awful things to you. I... I wanted to force Mamma into either start giving you hormones so you could never go back to being Eric or else let you get hurt. I never thought she'd actually do it. Now, here you are in your own room anyway. I'm sorry."
Reaching out her hand to Faith, Erica took hers and smiled. "I think I understand." Her own worry now heavy on her mind, she needed to share just as openly as Faith had done. "Um... I've been thinking. I know I've kinda started puberty. I know that it's going to start changing me so I won't look like my mom so much anymore."
Taking a deep breath, she made herself say the words. "I'm going to start becoming a guy soon, and I hate it, but it seems there's nothing I can do about it. I never want to stop being Erica, but I think at some point I'm going to have to. Aunt Heather won't let me take hormones. I know because... I um... I asked her... a few weeks ago. It just seems... so unfair!"
Faith felt a tear roll down her cheek. "Life's not fair." she said simply, recalling the advice Erica had given her shortly after arriving.
The two sat in silence until finally sleep took them both. They lay like that, facing one another, holding hands, all through the night.
July came and they celebrated Erica's thirteenth birthday. Her aunt had surprised her with a computer of her own, plus one of the new tablets. While they still lacked cell service, it gave Erica a way to express her interest in writing by creating her own blog, submitting poetry to various places, and eventually getting a small following on social media with the website, 'newhampshire-vs-california.com'. She would write about the differences between Southern California and Northern New England, as well as their similarities.
On the first anniversary of her arrival at Hargrave House, Heather took Erica aside and spoke to her about her future.
"We need to talk." Heather started, sitting at Erica's vanity while the terrified girl sat on her bed. "I think you know what about, sweetie."
She nodded. Puberty was taking its toll on her and soon she wouldn't be able to pass as a young girl anymore. "I know, Aunt Heather."
Heather sighed and leaned forward to brush the girl's bangs out from in front of her eyes. "I... I've given this a lot of thought. I hate it, but it seems the only solution." Taking a breath, she said what she'd decided. "I know it's breaking my promise to you, but I think you should go away to school. Away somewhere where no one has ever heard of Erica. Somewhere you can be Eric Dunning again and it won't be socially awkward for you."
Feeling the tears coming, Erica knew that once again she was about to be ripped from the home and life she had known, this time to be completely alone. Trying to avoid it, she choked back the tears. "There's another way."
She knew what the young girl was implying and shook her head. "I'm sorry, sweetie! I know that right now you want so bad to be a girl and grow into a lovely young woman, and I know you would! You'd make me so proud! But I just... I can't! You don't understand what it means! You'd never be able to have children!" Now her aunt's turn to cry, tears traced down her face.
"I know it's hypocritical of me to deny you this when I was the first person to stand up for your aunt Brooke. Believe me, if there was any way to give you what you want without denying you your ability to have children someday, I would, but you're just too young to understand how this will change the rest of your life. I cannot in good conscience let you do that to yourself... any more than I could stand idly by while you used drugs or alcohol! You're just too... too damn young to know!"
Erica found herself in the strange position of comforting her aunt. After all the times over the past year that she'd been the one being comforted, her aunt now sobbed into her shoulder the same as Erica had sobbed into hers.
So it was a week later that Erica Dunning died a second time. She'd gotten to see Mike one last time at the annual Halloween party. Mike knew that she was going away to school, but not where or why. He'd wanted to see her off when the cab came for her, but Erica insisted he just let Halloween night be their last time together. When she left the party, she kissed him on the cheek just as she'd done the year before, this time as a parting gift for the boy who liked her far more than she could ever return.
Refusing to see off the person that would take Erica's place, Faith said her good-byes the night before in the privacy of Erica's bedroom.
While Erica brushed out her beautiful hair one last time, knowing it would all be gone the next day, she watched the last vestiges of her young mother in the mirror echoing her actions once more. Near to tears, she heard the knock on her door. "Come in." she said barely restraining her emotions.
Tiptoeing into Erica's room, Faith silently closed the door behind her. Her mother had already bid them both goodnight, so she knew they wouldn't be disturbed until the next terrible sunrise. "Mind some company?" Faith asked hopefully.
"You shouldn't be here, Faith." Erica warned as she resumed brushing. "Aunt Heather would be furious to know you're here instead of in bed."
"I don't care!" Faith grumbled quietly. "She can ground me for the rest of time and I'd still stay." Moving up close to Erica, she watched entranced as her cousin brushed out her hair, almost forgetting why she came in.
When Erica finished and put down the ornate wooden hairbrush, she watched her young mother staring back at her a moment. At last turning away from her personal ghost, Erica looked down at the floor and then up at Faith. "You really shouldn't be here." she said softly. "It... it's not a good idea, us being alone together like this."
Stepping closer, Faith took a breath and gathered her courage. "Erica? Would you do me a favor?"
Smiling sweetly, Erica nodded. "Of course, Faith! I'd do anything for you!"
Her heart skipping a beat, she pushed forward. Pulling her hands out from behind her back, she held out the same nightgown that she'd nearly forced Erica to wear her first night. "Would... um... would you wear this tonight?"
Noticing at last that Faith was wearing the same blue nightgown from that first night, Erica smiled wistfully. "For you? Anything!" she sighed. Looking at it, she cocked an eyebrow at Faith. "If I can get it on, that is! I've grown like four inches since last year!"
Giggling together a moment, Faith nodded. "I know. Will you try?" Getting up Erica started heading for her bathroom when Faith reached out and gently grabbed her elbow to stop her. "No. Change here. Please?"
Her mouth opening to say that she shouldn't, Erica knew exactly why Faith would ask and that saying no would take away part of the whole reason she'd asked. Biting her lip, she simply nodded as she wordlessly put the borrowed nightgown on her vanity. Slowly pulling her larger satin gown up her body, she at last pulled it over her head and stood nearly naked in front of her cousin with only a pair of white panties coving her. Pausing a moment, she let Faith look.
Flushed, and with her heart racing, Faith watched her slowly strip in front of her eyes. Her breath caught as Erica stood in front of her baring most of her lithe body. When at last Erica picked up the borrowed nightgown and pulled it over her head, she started to breath again as it covered her cousin's body one more time.
Pulling it tightly down over her skin, Erica finally exhaled as well. "There." she sighed. "It... it's a little tight."
Stepping even closer, Faith smiled. "You still look beautiful in it." she said breathily. "If anything, even more so than the first time!"
"Faith?" Erica said softly. "Why?"
"Don't you know?" she answered with another step closer, now less than a foot away. "I think you do, Erica."
"It's w-wrong." Erica stammered. "We're cousins, Faith."
"I don't care." Faith said with another half step closer. "I... I love you, Erica... and I think you love me."
Turning away, Erica felt a tear fall down her cheek. "I... I can't!" she sobbed. "I'm going away tomorrow, Faith!" she justified. "I... I'm going to... b... become... a... a man!" Tears streaming down her face, Erica tried to hold them back, but they came anyway. "How can you even look at me!"
Stepping up until she could wrap her arms around Erica, Faith pressed her growing body against her cousin's back and held her from behind. "Because right now, tonight, you're still my Erica." Turning her to face one another, she wiped Erica's tears away while one hand still held her. "Don't cry." she begged.
"I... I can't help it, Faith!" she quietly blubbered. Finally giving in, she reached out and wrapped her arms around Faith. "Oh, Faith! Hold me?"
As they held each other desperately, both cried onto each other's shoulders. After several minutes, their emotions spent, they backed away from each other as Erica grabbed some tissues off her vanity and handed one to Faith. "Here." she said simply.
"Thanks." Faith sniffed. Drying their eyes, they smiled weakly at one another. Gathering her courage once more, she asked, "Erica? Can... may I sleep with you tonight? Like we used to?"
Looking at her lovesick cousin, Erica shook her head. "We... we shouldn't, Faith." she sighed. "What if we... um... do... something we shouldn't?"
Stepping close, Faith looked hopeful at the suggestion. "We could... if you want to. I love you, Erica! Don't you love me?"
Restraining herself, Erica swallowed and nodded. "Yes. You know I do..."
Sighing, Faith stepped back away. "... but we're cousins." she admitted.
"Plus, we're still only thirteen!" Erica added.
"I could promise that we won't." she offered in compromise. "Just... one more night with you? Just to lay near you one more time before..." She couldn't bring herself to say what was about to happen to her the next day.
Desperate for the closeness she craved before being sent away, Erica nodded. "OK, but you promise? Just sleeping together? Nothing else?"
"If I can sleep." Faith sighed. "I don't want to. It'll make morning come that much sooner. But, yeah... I... I promise."
Sighing, she looked one last time at the vanity's mirror, but her mother's ghost was gone. In its place was her own reflection. After a year of living with her young mother looking back at her from every mirror, she was finally able to see only her true self.
Moving into bed, Erica settled onto her back while Faith joined her there. While the two settled in, Faith turned to face Erica.
"I meant what I said, Erica." she whispered. "I love you."
"I know." she replied. "More than you should." Hesitating, she turned and faced Faith. "I... I love you, too... much more than as just my cousin."
"I'll never love anyone else, Erica." Faith cried quietly. "Like Mamma will never love anyone but Daddy!" She moved closer and took Erica in her arms and held her. "I'll love you and only you forever! I promise!"
Erica held Faith in return, listening and nodding in response. She knew it wasn't true, Faith would move on and love someone who would be allowed to return her love, but it felt good just to hear it. "I love you, Faith!"
The night passed slowly as neither slept much. They simply held each other until dawn threatened to break. Just before the sun rose, Faith woke Erica from the restless sleep she'd slipped into.
"Erica?" she whispered. "It... it's time."
"No!" Erica cried. "I won't let you go!"
"You have to..." Faith admonished. The younger girl slowly pulled away before Faith leaned in closely. "...so I can do this." She tilted her head slightly and let her lips brush against Erica's. With a rush of fervor, and seeing Erica not pulling away, Faith poured all the love and affection that she'd built up over the past twelve months into that simple kiss.
Erica felt Faith's lips touch hers and, for that moment, all of her pain and anguish vanished and she felt whole again. Letting Faith continue, not wanting it to ever end, she reveled in the closeness and hated that it had come so late in their time together. When at last Faith slowly pulled away and the pain and loneliness in her heart returned, Erica began to weep for the life she longed for with all her heart, but knew she would never be allowed to have.
"Goodbye, my sweet Erica." Faith cried softly as she pulled away. Climbing out of Erica's bed, she made herself return to her own, there to cry alone until exhaustion claimed her.
Soon enough, the sun rose and Erica got up to go downstairs where her aunt waited with Brooke, there to cut away her beautiful hair. The girl hadn't packed anything as Erica wouldn't be taking any of her clothes. Her new ones had been ordered and sent on ahead to the school, sight unseen.
Erica didn't even want to see what they looked like. They wouldn't be her pretty dresses and outfits, so she didn't care. In that moment, she hated her aunt for sending her away, for destroying the beautiful home they'd had together and making her go back to being a boy for the sake of a future she didn't even want.
When she saw the anguish in Heather's eyes though, and even in Brooke's who, with unspoken words, had made clear that she disapproved of Erica's girlish nature, she couldn't stay angry though. She was just sad. Brooke cried silent tears together with the ones that fell from Erica's eyes as she sheared off the girl's beautiful hair down to a close-cropped boy's cut. She kept one perfect curl, as did her aunt, so they could have something to look at and remember the girl Erica was and the woman she might have been.
Cook and Franchesca couldn't watch, so they busied themselves with tasks and made themselves scarce. Franchesca angrily went about her work, while Theresa chose to imagine Erica leaving for a glamorous girl's school in one of her prettiest dresses. The reality was much more somber, witnessed only by the stoic Fredrick, Heather, and the cab driver there to take her away.
Standing and waiting as Fredrick put her essentials bag in the cab for her, the man never uttered a word as he placed a single hand on her shoulder, paused a moment without even looking down, and then walked back to the house. When the cab driver got in to wait for his passenger, the only ones left outside were Erica and Heather.
She walked up to the child she'd grown to love more than life itself, just as fiercely and completely as her own daughter. She looked utterly alien to Heather's eyes now, dressed in a fine tailored dark suit and boy's haircut. She could still see the girl standing there, tears held back by sheer willpower, but with a dead, vacant look in her eyes. Heather embraced her one more time, allowing the tears to flow from her eyes for the both of them.
Softly, Heather whispered as she held Erica so tight she threatened to squeeze the life out of her. "You will always be my daughter, Erica! No matter what! I love you, sweetheart!" Finally, releasing her to enter the cab, she could stand no more and ran into the house; tears falling like the threatening rain soon would.
Watching out the rear window of the cab as it started to pull away, she saw the drapes in the upstairs window part. She knew it was Faith's window, the same one from which she'd seen her first morning snow. She watched as Faith appeared, still wearing the same nightgown she'd worn the night before, her lovely face marred with tears. Faith hadn't seen her get in the cab. She didn't want to. She'd waited until she could only see the car pulling silently away into the gloomy afternoon light. Watching it depart, she could only utter a single word.
"Erica..."
The cab took her to the airport where she was escorted to the First Class section of the plane that would take her away from the life she'd loved. Met at her destination by a limousine, it swiftly carried her to the exclusive boarding school where no one would ever hear of Erica Dunning.
The next years were a blur. School and study filled her life and nothing else. No one came on holidays and she never went anywhere other than school functions. The school staff found it sad that this fine upstanding and studious 'boy' with a gift for the written word had no one to love and be loved by. However, they were paid the extra fees for year-round boarding, so did their best to at very least make the child comfortable. It was a hollow and empty existence.
Heather had seen to it that her charge would want for nothing. The finest tailored clothes, the best car for a sixteenth birthday present, gifts every Christmas and birthday, but things didn't matter to Erica. Her writing was all that mattered anymore. Heart and soul poured into every page, pages that could make her teachers cry at the heartbreak and depth of feeling they contained.
A therapist, a former collogue of Heather's, was available, and they spoke weekly. She made numerous notes and kept in contact with Heather so she would know that the child she so loved was at least getting by. Heather asked several times to come to the school to visit, but each time the offer was returned with a cold, "It's probably for the best that you didn't, Mrs. Hargrave." from the child she'd sent away.
Letters were delivered, read, and responded to... each with no name. She never signed her name to anything, just the valediction "Love,". For the lost and lonely child, names were just reminders of how much she'd lost.
School finally ended and graduation came, but none of her family attended. She'd coldly disinvited them. With a heart like an empty shell, a diploma was given and taken with the simple words, "Congratulations, Dunning." Over the years, the staff had learned not to ever use her legal first name. It was only ever "Good morning, Dunning" or "Good afternoon, Dunning." First names only led to silence. So the well-paid staff adapted and made do.
Five years passed after Erica left their lives. Heather went about her daily routine, as did Fredrick, Theresa, and Franchesca. Faith however, was another matter. She had totally closed herself off from everyone in her life. Gone was the happy girl, the sad girl, and the frustratingly unreasonable girl. All that was left was a shell; a body that did what she was told and showed no interest in anything.
Heather tried sending her back to school, but it only made her worse. She was given to crying for what seemed to be no reason at all. After patient questioning it would end up that something had been said or discussed that Erica had once said, talked about, or written. After less than a semester, Heather returned Faith to home-school where at least she would be close and she could be there for her when the tears fell, as they so very often did.
While life went on, Hargrave House was no longer the warm home it once had been. Theresa could barely speak to her employer. She knew Heather was doing what she felt was right, but couldn't stomach her employer's disregard for Erica's broken heart in sending her away. She took no joy in her job; joy that she knew was denied to the poor child who had made a year of their lives brighter than it had been since Richard's death.
Franchesca sat in her room and read Erica's letters to her from school over and over whenever she was not working. She'd made a point of keeping up Erica's 'New Hampshire vs. California' website, taking a pseudonym and writing new articles after long hours searching for new things to compare and contrast about the two states.
Fredrick seemed the most unchanged in his behavior, but the life was gone from his eyes. He continued to treat Heather with the respect of her position, but no more than absolutely necessary. His feelings were closed off and surrounded by a brick wall.
Faith stopped attending church once she turned sixteen and she was given the choice. Heather prayed every night for her daughter, as well as for guidance; some sign that what she'd done had been for the best and was in accordance with His will. Nothing ever came of it, but she knew that didn't mean anything. God had stopped burning bushes long ago.
Heather also stopped trying to make her daughter keep a schedule. She resigned herself to just let the girl be and hope that she would get past her pain. She asked the ex-collogue of hers who'd taken over her local practice to be Faith's therapist when it became clear that Heather was the last person Faith would talk to about her problems.
Each morning Faith would wake and lie in her bed, trying to get up the will to get dressed and go eat, resolving that this day would be better than the last, but would inevitably make her way down in ratty pajamas no sooner than ten or eleven. Long gone were her pretty dresses, replaced instead with off the shelf yoga pants and baggy sweatshirts.
She made herself stay fit, walking the woods often and visiting places she'd gone with Erica, but nothing she did brought joy to her. She tried dating to make a serious effort to get over her heartbreak, she even thought she might be in love with a girl she'd known from elementary school who'd come out earlier that last year, but everyone she dated, boy or girl, just made her feel worse. It was always as though she were cheating on Erica. She knew it wasn't logical, but she couldn't get over the feelings.
Heather's friends and acquaintances, especially those at their church, often asked about 'that adorable little precocious Erica' and wondered why she never came home from boarding school, even for holidays. Heather would always make excuses that Erica was far too busy and had declined all her invitations home; that her education had become her life, and Heather had no intention of letting anything, even a family holiday, stand in the way of her future. Eventually people stopped asking as rumors began to spread that Heather had never really cared for the orphaned niece who'd been thrust upon her, sending her away as soon as she could.
They stopped going to the annual Dempsey Halloween party after the first year without Erica. Faith refused to wear a costume that year, and turned down every request to dance. A lovesick Mike would barely speak to the Hargraves, leaving a cloud to hang over the celebration that year. While everyone knew why the mood was so somber, no one would talk about it openly. Heather made her apologies the following year, and advised the Dempseys that they would no longer attend the annual celebration as she had no desire to let Erica's absence darken what was supposed to be a happy and joyous occasion.
Mike grew into his own after they stopped coming and finally started dating, ending up in a serious relationship with Faith's old friend Jennifer Wilks. Everyone 'knew' they would get married as soon as they finished high school, but Jennifer left New Hampshire shortly after graduation to pursue a life in Boston, leaving a broken and rejected Mike alone to work his parents' ranch with no feeling left in him.
Brooke took it harder than any of them. She blamed herself that Erica was forced away; that her insistence at extracting the promise from Heather that 'Erica' would only ever be a coping tool and nothing more had driven Heather into taking the only other option; sending her away. Heather tried to convince her that the decision was only partly to do with the promise she'd made to Brooke, but she wouldn't hear it. She knew that Erica had been aware of her disapproval, and it drove her mad with guilt and regret.
The economic downturn didn't help matters. Brooke was forced to close her shop except for select appointments with regulars, and even they started drying up after a while. She started drinking to dull the emotional pain, and her relationship with Jenny became strained to the breaking point.
One morning after a severe bender, Jenny gave Brooke an ultimatum, quit drinking and join AA or she was leaving and filing for divorce. Brooke did as she asked, but their relationship was uneasy. They still loved each other, but the same cloud hung over their home as over Hargrave House.
Time sped past; their sleepy end of the country growing more and more sparse as an increasing number of Coös County residents either left to seek their fortunes elsewhere, or died where they'd lived. By the time Faith graduated, over a thousand people had left the area... one way or the other.
Life, while it had gone on, seemed to be slowly leaving them all behind.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
CAUTION - emotional pain/open emotional wounds
--
Waiting for her name to be called, Erica was nervous. Even though it was a simple outpatient procedure, she knew there was no going back. The money her aunt Heather had sent her every month had been squirreled away, invested, and turned into a tidy sum that was paying for her new life.
None of her teachers ever understood how she could write so eloquently on subjects that seemed so far beyond her years. She won writing contests that added to her growing sum and used that money to start her own business at sixteen; a publishing house with herself as sole author. Her main target audience were others like herself; boys and girls trapped in a body not their own. She wrote stories about it, about coming to terms with it, dealing with family, friends, loved ones, employers, doctors, lawyers...
She wrote tragedies about girls who tried to become men, not because they felt they were, but because 'men had it easy', until they got their first taste of male competitiveness and ruthlessness in the real world. Where being a man meant no one cared if you lived or starved, or were even openly discriminated against because they were now a man who had 'all the advantages'.
She wrote comedies about boys who had to spend their vacation pretending to be a girl because their older sister's clothes were the only ones packed.
She wrote love stories; romance novels centered around people like herself and the thrilling highs and terrible lows that came of trying to find true love when the obstacles seemed so impossibly insurmountable.
She wrote about it from every angle; the good, the bad, and the truly ugly. Rape, molestation, sex slavery, botched operations, regrets after transition and wanting to go back, ruined marriages, suicide, transitioning teens and pre-teens and the havoc their rash and youthful choice smote on the ruin of their later lives, murder, and lonely death by neglect. She wrote it all.
She also wrote of God's love for all people, including those like herself. How no one was too lost to be saved, and how everyone was precious in His sight. She wrote about her own loss of faith over the death of her parents, how through that loss she became part of a beautiful family that loved her, and how they guided her back to His love. She wrote how she reconciled the evil of the world... including the hate spread by false teachings of His word... with God's love for us, using a simple lesson passed on by Heather from her father. It was her only non-fiction book and became a best seller the month she graduated.
Through it all, she waited for her eighteenth birthday. The day it came, she started hormone therapy, having already taken care of the legal needs beforehand. She paid to bank her reproductive material against future need, then threw herself into transition with abandon. Now she sat waiting for her breast surgery, the one to feminize her facial structure like she'd had before testosterone had mangled it having been done months earlier.
That, along with a voice feminization surgery to return her voice to the soft strains of her past, and laser hair removal, had all served to bring a little peace to her tortured soul. Within only a few months she had made herself completely as she saw herself in her mind's eye; free to be the woman she'd ached to become since age twelve. Her name had also changed on her birthday. Legally and forever, she would be Erica Bella Dunning.
As she waited in the doctor's office, she received a text. Glancing at it, expecting it to be some message from her secretary June, her heart began to race when she saw it wasn't and who it was from. All the message said were three simple words.
"We found her."
Following the hyperlink, she read in horror the report from the private detective that she'd hired to find her long lost first love.
April Stone was diagnosed with clinical depression by her family doctor at age 13. She was prescribed anti-depressants, which led to a sleep disorder, for which she obtained tablets of Estazolam (a sleep aid that can worsen depression) from a street dealer.
She overdosed at age 15 and was committed to a psychiatric ward for observation. She was released under her parents' care 12 hours later when it was determined the overdose was accidental, not a suicide attempt. She continued psychiatric treatment until she reached the age of majority in January. At that point, she left home, moved to Flagstaff after getting her juvenile record sealed, and took a job as a waitress at a restaurant called Ed's Diner while she completed high school.
Miss Stone graduated on June 8th and is still living in Flagstaff in an apartment near her place of employment. She is unmarried and does not appear to be dating or seeing anyone socially. She has no apparent contact with her family, and maintains only a few social media accounts. She appears to intend to enroll in college at some point as she seems to have sent away for multiple pamphlets for many different institutions around the country. Her area of interest appears to be psychology.
She sees a volunteer therapist, Dr. Heart, one afternoon each week. We've determined by our own methods that she still suffers nightmares, depression, anxiety, and a fear of dying alone. Your previous name is mentioned repeatedly. A recent photo, taken July fourth, is attached in appendix A. Contact information, address, and location of employment are fully detailed in appendix B.
This concludes our investigation and we thank you for your business. Good luck!
Erica briefly considered rescheduling her procedure with this new information, but dismissed the idea and thought that if she were to go to April now it wouldn't be right. Knowing that April was working on fixing her issues, Erica knew she needed to do the same before seeing her. Making one concession to her need to connect as soon as possible, she texted a message to the cell number the detectives provided.
"I've missed you. I never really held it against you that you're a girl. -E"
Within seconds she got a reply.
"Eric?"
Blushing, she only sent a smiley followed by a heart.
"OMG! is it REALLY you?"
She tapped out a quick reply.
"It took me this long and a few private detectives to find you. I never stopped missing you."
Seconds passed before the reply came.
"how do I know it's really you?"
"'Me: You smell funny. You: It's just soap. Me: I use soap and that isn't it.' The day I moved in and my Mom went to the hospital. Convinced?"
"ERIC!!! where are you? your number is not one I know! 603? still New Hampshire?"
"Yes, but I don't live with my aunt anymore. I live on my own now. Long story. Maybe with a happy ending."
"I HAVE to see you! Tell me where you are and I'll find a way to book a flight!"
"I'd love to, but need time to get things sorted. I know all about what happened. Keep going to Dr. Heart. He sounds like he really wants to help you." Sending that, she quickly finished it. "Tied up the next few weeks. Can't get away! Sry! Next month I'll send a plane ticket. Round trip. I need to see you and for you to see me. You'll understand."
An interminable wait followed. Finally, she got her reply. "guess you got a good pvt eye! so embarrassed! made a mess of my life! month's a long wait, but so's 6 yrs. what's tying you up? working in a BDSM shop? ha ha"
Erica giggled as she replied, hoping now that they wouldn't call her name anytime soon. "Very funny! Tied up on business. Started it at 16 and it took off. Easy to do when you're heartbroken, no distractions like love to get in the way."
Hearing her name called, she quickly typed a goodbye. "They're calling me! Gotta run! Just got the P.I. report before I texted you, but had to tell you right away! Love you! -E"
Turning off her phone, she strode into the cosmetic surgeon's office.
Her mind drifted freely in a haze after the drugs put her to sleep. She saw memories of her life floating past her, both happy and terrible. It seemed to stretch off into eternity before she felt the sensation that she was no longer floating, but falling... falling helplessly into an abyss of darkness.
Erica stood in a dark place that felt like a dream, but at the same time didn't.
"It's no dream." he said.
Looking around for the person who spoke, she wondered who it was.
"Funny, I knew who it was... I just couldn't believe who it was." the man said, knowing her thoughts. "Let's save time. Yes, I can read your mind. If you want, just look for me and you can see me. Wish my old man had told me that! See Dad? No need to be all cryptic!"
Erica slowly found herself standing at the edge of a column of light surrounded by darkness with a vaguely familiar man opposite her.
"You look beautiful, Erica!" he said proudly.
She tilted her head like Faith used to. "Dad?"
"Yep!" Jack replied, looking down at the polo and khakis he seemed to be wearing. "Though I remember wearing BDUs the last time I had clothes."
"But you're..."
"Dead." Jack sighed and looked up at the darkness. "Damn, was I this thick-headed, Dad?" He looked back to her and smiled. "To answer the question that's just forming in your Grape, I'm here because you asked me to be here to answer the question that's been itching in the back of your brain-housing for six years. I don't want to ruin the moment for you, so I'll let you go ahead and ask."
She swallowed hard. "Um... well, I guess what I want to know is... will you still love me as your daughter instead of as your son?"
"Erica, I love you... daughter or son makes no difference." Jack half-smiled at her. "Though it was funny as hell watching you pretend to be Buttons!"
"Stop it, Jack!" his wife admonished. Beside him as though she'd been there all along, Erica's mother looked at their child. "Hi, sweetie! You look lovely! But then, I thought you did when I was your shadow that year, too."
"Mom?" Erica almost cried before she looked down at herself, seeing that she appeared exactly how she imagined her ideal self to be.
"Yes, sweetie. I'm sorry I had to leave you, but you'll understand why someday." she explained without explaining.
"I have to know!" Erica said stepping further into the light. "Am I making the right decision? Choosing to be a woman?"
Jack looked at his wife. "She thinks it was her choice!" he laughed and looked down. "Sorry, sweetie! You were submarined, same as everyone!"
"Jack," she growled. "She asked a serious question!" She looked back at their child. "To answer your question, as long as you're following your heart... yes. He loves us and wants us to be happy. Your book was right. You should listen to your own advice, sweetie."
The shaft of light began to slowly fade, Jack sighing and putting an arm around his wife. "Damn, that was fast! Wish you'd got the thousand-year treatment I got, just not how I got it. I'd love to spend a few lifetimes with you. Just remember that we love you... always."
"Forever, sweetie." her mother added. "Just the way you are, Erica..."
"Erica..."
"Erica?"
Her eyes fluttered opened to the sound of someone saying her name. Two hours had passed and her secretary June was standing over her calling out to her, there to pick her up and take her to her office where she could be watched for several more hours before finally going home.
Thinking as she sat in the back of her limousine, Erica pondered the odd dream. Was it a dream? she wondered before answering herself. Of course it was! Just my mind needing to feel like Mom and Dad would approve. Taking a pad, she jotted down some details for later use in a book.
Three weeks of on and off texting with April later, Erica felt up to meeting her face-to-face, but first she felt she had to tell April everything.
"You there A?" Erica texted her.
"for you, anytime E!"
"Can you talk on the phone right now? You're off work today, right?"
"sure, if you want to i'd love to hear your voice! probably sexy!"
"Some people think so. I'll call from this number so you know it's me."
"Did your voice change much?"
"In a way, yes. Calling."
Feeling the sweat on her hands as the phone rang, Erica felt like she was twelve all over again and going shopping in Berlin. After only one ring, it was answered.
"Eric?" April's voice sounded a little deeper to her ears, but Erica knew at once it was her.
"Yeah." she said in simple reply.
"You sound funny. Are you stuffed up?"
"No. April, I've been dying to tell you something... something big, but I've been afraid to." Erica closed her eyes and imagined April on the other end.
Shaking her head, April laughed. "Whatever it is, it can't be as bad as what I did! We must have a weird connection." Erica heard her giggle. "You almost sound like a woman!"
With her eyes still closed, Erica took a deep breath. "I am." she confessed. Dead air followed. A sinking feeling in her stomach threatened to consume her while she squeezed her eyes tighter shut.
April was confused. Sure that she'd misheard, or that something had been lost in the phone connection, she asked, "Sorry, you're what?"
Opening her eyes, Erica spoke plainly. "I'm a woman, April. It's a long story, but I'd like you to know all of it... if you'll let me share it with you."
"Eric? Is this some sort of joke? I mean, you were always doing things to make me smile or laugh, so... Eric don't BS me!"
Tears started to form in her eyes as she could see it all crumbling down. April would hate her. She'd despise her for destroying the boy she loved, replacing him with a freak. "It's no joke, April. I'm... I'm a woman. It's really me! Ask me anything! I can tell you what we had for lunch the first day of first grade! You had PB and J with a banana and a box of milk, and I had mustard tuna with pickle, chocolate milk, and three Oreos! I remember because that jerk Steve Reynolds tried to take my sandwich, but got grossed out by it! It's me, April! My... my name's Erica now... Erica Bella."
April almost dropped her phone. She had no doubt. No one but her best friend could know that level of detail. "Whoa! Did you say Erica? You took your mom's name?"
Tears started to roll down her cheek. Composing herself, she nodded her head. "Before I was born, Mom and Dad were going to call me that 'cause the doctor thought I was going to be a girl!" She sobbed into the phone before she pulled her emotions back enough to continue. "I guess the doctor was right after all! I... I just took the name I was supposed to have."
She was moving beyond stunned and directly into livid. "You son of a bitch! You jerked my heart strings for three weeks and you... you..."
Wiping her tears away, only to have them immediately replaced, Erica stammered her reply. "I... I tried not to! I... I just couldn't help myself! I fell in love with you when you tried to kiss me goodbye in LAX! I... I could see it in your eyes! You... you loved me!"
Pacing her living room like a caged tiger, April was fuming. "Of course I loved you! I nearly killed myself, I missed you so badly! You never called, you never wrote! What the actual hell... Eric!"
"I... I t-tried to call you, the day after I got there... b-but your p-parents..." she stammered, the pain from that day coming back as though it were yesterday.
Stopping, April remembered the afternoon the day after her best friend left. Shortly after she got home from school the phone had rung and she thought it might be 'Eric' based on her father's tone, but they had insisted that it wasn't. "Those bastards!" she fumed. "You know they made me unfriend you? They changed my cell number, made me delete my email... they even told the school I had to have a new email there, too! Claimed you were harassing me!"
"I... I know." Erica nodded through the tears. "I tried everything... but... Oh God, April! I'm so sorry!" She tried to stem the tide once more, but her tears kept falling. "You... you don't know what I went through! I lost everything! I lost Mom! You! I even lost what little luggage I had! When I got there I had nothing and because your parents sent me a week early, they weren't ready for me! Then the power went out for days... they had no cell service... no Internet... the roads were closed... I... I..."
Trying to explain, the more Erica did, the more upset she got. "I ended up having to wear my cousin Faith's clothes, and... oh God, April! That first time I looked in the mirror looking like a girl? I saw Mom looking back! It was like she was there! Alive again! I couldn't reach you, I was alone, and there was Mom!" Calming herself, she finished. "At first it was necessity, then it was an escape, then it was who I am... who I always was, really."
Her fury spent itself as April listened to the story of how Erica ended up so different. "Alright... Erica... so you've lived as a girl for the last six years?"
"No." Erica shook her head. "Just the first year, and again since I turned eighteen." She spent the next half hour detailing how she'd become known as Erica, how as she got older it was impossible to continue passing as a girl, and then how her aunt had sent her away to pretend to be Eric once more.
"When they sent me away, I was... dead, completely dead inside, April. I did what I had to, but nothing mattered anymore. I was forced to be 'Eric the orphan boy' and had no one who loved me. I... I hate them! My aunt... Faith... all of them." she continued, her voice hardening. "They didn't want me. I never went home after they sent me away and I refused visits from them. I wrote back out of respect for the letters they wrote to Eric, but since I wasn't him, I never signed them. As far as anyone was concerned then, Eric was a non-person... and Erica died when they sent her away. I was nobody."
April sat at her kitchen table to listen. "So... then what happened?"
"I started writing again." Erica sniffed. "It brought me back to myself. I was good, so I won some awards. I started my own publishing company using my prize money and my aunt's 'guilt money'." Erica laughed at the memory. "When I turned sixteen, she bought me a freaking Mercedes S-Class! Like I ever wanted her crap! That's what put me over the top, though. I sold it right back to the dealership, undriven, and used the money to publish my first book." Sighing, she looked around her office. "It was a hit, so now I'm a big-time independent publisher. Big deal."
Conflicted as she heard the boy she knew in the young woman that she was listening to, April shook her head in disbelief. "It is a big deal, Eric...a! I mean, aren't you a success now? You probably have like a million friends!"
"None." she shook her head solemnly. "Maybe one, if you count my secretary, June. She likes me, but like a good boss, not really like a friend. Success only brought me two things I ever wanted. The first was being able to become the woman I needed to be."
April paused a moment before asking, "And the second?"
"Your phone number." Erica practically sighed the last part out, unable to hide the sound a lovesick woman.
Smiling a little, she asked, "So you did all that, to... to find me?" April heard her old friend giggle over the phone.
"A little! I mean, you were like my goal. I needed to make enough money to hire enough detectives to find you, but I wanted to help people while doing it. I guess I have." Erica paused before finishing her thought, her voice dropping low and sad. "But none of that matters. I guess it was all for nothing."
"So I'm nothing then?" April barked. "What, because I'm just a waitress and you're some big-time publisher?"
"No!" Erica snapped back at her. "Because now that I found you, you don't want me!"
Slowly realizing how harsh she'd been, without even giving Erica a chance to explain, April took it down a notch. "Um... OK. Yeah, I was a bit of a bitch... but you can't just drop something like this on someone like that!"
"So how was I supposed to break it gently then?" Erica harrumphed.
"Well for starters you could..." Pausing, April tried to think of a gentle way to tell a long lost friend they changed sex. "Um... well... why were you hitting on me!?" she shouted.
"Because I love you!" Erica shouted back. "I think I've always loved you! Because I dream about you! Because I've never been with another woman because they aren't you!" She was angry, but glad to finally get those things out in the open.
April was dumbstruck. "Uh... really?"
Still fuming, Erica barked in reply. "Yes!" Making herself count to ten, she tried to be calm again. "Yes, April. I meant every word, and every word I texted you was right from my very fragile heart."
She tried to imagine what her twelve year old sweetheart would look like as an eighteen year old woman, but couldn't match the two. "So... what do you look like now?" she asked curiously.
Erica tried to be serious, but her friend had just left too much open to let the opportunity pass. "Like Bo Derek... only hotter!"
Laughing genuinely for the first time in a long while, April smiled. "Oh... very funny! If I wasn't sure before, I'd know now... it's still you! But come on... seriously. Did your private eye get you a picture of me? They do that in the movies."
She laughed with April and looked at the photo of her once more. "July fourth. You were on your way home from work. Cute uniform!"
"Oh, God! I remember that day! It was hot, windy, and I was dog-tired from working a double! I musta looked like a junky!"
"Not at all. Sure, you look tired, but I can still see the beautiful girl I once knew in the woman I see."
Feeling herself getting the same feelings she used to get when she would imagine being with Eric, she shook it off quickly. "Oh! You're smooth!"
Shaking her head, Erica leaned back in her chair. "Just being honest."
April felt a mild tingle run down her spine at the idea that she could still make her childhood sweetheart look past the physical and see her. "So, since you know what I look like, it's only fair that you tell me what you look like... for real, I mean!"
Unsure how she'd take it, Erica told her anyway. "I look a lot like my mom, but with dirty-blonde hair. I guess I always did."
She tried to remember Mrs. Dunning, but the memory was too clouded and vague. "I... I'm sorry, Eric. Erica! Damn it! Sorry! I... I can't remember her. Most of my memories from back then feel like another lifetime. The meds they had me on kinda messed with my head."
Grabbing the photo she'd had taken the previous week for book covers, she messaged it to April. "Sent you a pic." she said simply.
Hearing her phone chime, she swiped a finger and her memories of Erica's mother suddenly jelled into place. "My God, Erica! You do look just like her... except the hair!"
"I know." Erica murmured.
"Oh. Right. You just said that." April kept looking at the photo and then finally saw the boy she used to know so well in her eyes. "Oh, wow!"
"What's wrong?" Erica asked concernedly.
"No! Nothing!" she answered. "I just... I see you... I mean... I see the you that I remember. It's your eyes. They have that same look in them that I saw that day at the airport. You look so sad! Oh, Erica! I'm so confused!"
"If you like, I could come see you... or I could fly you out here if you still want your vacation. My treat!"
Biting her lip, she weighed her options, unsure if she really wanted to see in person the woman who'd taken the place of her first love. "Well, I... I already asked for the time off, and I could use a break from this weather! Are you sure you still want to see me? After what I said?"
"I could never stay mad at you, April. Remember?"
Recalling the number of times she'd shaken 'Eric' out of being mad with just a smile, she laughed lightly and smiled once more. "Yeah, I do."
Taking a deep breath, Erica closed her eyes and saw April smiling at her, her bitterness toward April melting like those first snowflakes in her hand. "Alright then, your round trip ticket should be delivered tomorrow morning and your return flight will be for next Sunday, but you can trade it in for a later flight if you want to stay the whole two weeks... or... an earlier flight if you.. um... want to cut it short. Sound good?"
She smiled wistfully. "Yeah, it really does." Catching herself having strong feelings for a woman she effectively barely knew, she re-focused herself. "Um, I mean it sounds OK. So then... Saturday?"
A feeling of hope spread through Erica like a wave. "Saturday... at the airport... almost where we left off!"
The day came and Erica sat waiting impatiently at Manchester-Boston. The only flight she could get for April was connected through Salt Lake, so she felt bad that April had been stuck on a plane for over five hours, but felt every second with trepidation. She busied herself with work, using her tablet, until June texted to tell her that April's flight was disembarking. Standing quickly, she checked her makeup and hair for the fifth time and straightened out her business suit, pulling the skirt down and blousing her top a little. Satisfied that the outfit would do, she waited as she started to see departing passengers.
Suddenly, through the crowd, she spotted April. Putting on her best smile, looking to be in her twenties instead of eighteen due to her smart suit, Erica waited until her childhood friend's eyes connected with hers. April looked older than her eighteen years in a completely different sort of way; tired, care-worn, and beaten down by life. A simple top and jeans showed her figure to be fit, but her face was thin, pale, drawn, and anemic-looking.
Approaching, feeling more than a little intimidated by the powerful businesswoman waiting for her, at first she thought that Erica had sent someone to pick her up; her secretary or someone similar. As soon as she could see Erica's eyes though, she knew it was her one-time best friend. The two stood in front of one another for an eternity lasting only a few breaths, not saying anything. Finally, Erica broke the silence.
"Do... do you have any bags to claim?" Seeing only a nod from her long lost love, she watched as April searched her, as though she were looking for the zipper in the woman-suit, waiting for her old friend to open it and climb out. "OK. Well, do you want me to go with you to get them, or..."
Still unable believe that the woman standing in front of her was the same 'boy' she'd lived with for six months and had known her entire young life, April was stunned. This was the same person she'd dreamt about, fantasized about, and loved. "Um... whatever is fine. If you want..." she said absently.
Erica closed her eyes and waited for the blow. Now that she's here and can see me with her own eyes... Erica was certain April just wanted to go home and move on.
Noticing the look, April knew it all too well. It was the same look she'd seen on Erica's face preparing to hear bad news as a child. "No!" she cried. "No, Erica! I didn't.... oh, shit!" She looked down at her feet absently.
Opening her eyes suddenly, Erica saw the same little girl who'd just flunked her math test and was afraid to tell her parents. "No, April! It's OK! It's... um... oh, to hell with this!" She stepped forward and hugged her oldest friend tightly. "I missed you so much!" she almost cried.
April was stunned, but quickly returned the hug, tears forming in the corners of her eyes. "You have no idea how much I missed you!" As the two separated, she wiped her eyes. "Well, maybe you do!"
Shaking her head to clear it, Erica tried to smile. "Well then, lets go get your bags and I'll drive you to your hotel. I got you a suite at a place not far from here. I hope you like it!"
They walked in silence for a time, still very unsure of each other. April led the way, grabbing her suitcases and dropping them on the luggage cart that Erica had brought to her. April found herself looking around at everything else but her oldest friend; the rental car booth, the ticket counter, the people coming and going, anything to distract her from the reality that was so different from her fantasy reunion with her one true love. There were no bells, no music in her heart, no electric thrill of the first touch. It was just... awkward. Heading to exit the airport, she started toward the parking garage escalator, but was stopped when Erica called to her.
"April? My car's right outside."
Following her out, the visitor from Arizona looked for a car, but couldn't see anything past a white limousine. "Where?" She watched as Erica stood next to the limo while the driver got out and waited patiently. Slowly approaching, she laughed a little. "You rented a limo?"
Furrowing her brow, Erica shook her head. "Of course not! Eddie? Would you get Miss Stone's bags please? April? This is my driver, Eddie."
She saw the large black man in the gray suit tip his hat at her with a smile. "Ma'am!" he said as he took her suitcases and dropped them in the trunk.
April stood next to the back of the car stunned. "You have your own limo? Jesus, Erica! I mean, you said you were doing well, but..."
Slowly approaching her only friend in the world, she sighed sadly. "You might say I got used to it." She lowered her head in sorrowful memory of the happy life she all-too-briefly knew. "My aunt Heather had a butler and chauffeur named Fredrick. He was such a wonderful man. I miss him."
Seeing Erica's sorrow made the powerful businesswoman look small and helpless. April made her way over to her as Eddie opened the door for them both. Climbing in, the newcomer settled on the far side of the car while Erica sat on the passenger side. There was enough room on her bench that she could have laid down and taken a nap. "I'm impressed!" she smiled. Sitting across from her, April seemed to be looking at everything but Erica.
"Th-thanks!" her long-lost love muttered. After the driver got in, the car slowly pulled away from the curb. Soon they were moving and a thick silence hung in the air. Erica closed her eyes and took a deep breath.
"Come on, E! Just spit it out." April said, recognizing the signs that Erica was trying to get up the nerve to say something.
Her breath fell out of her like someone had just popped a balloon. Smiling, she nodded. "You know me too well, April. I guess this was all just a big mistake. I know you're... disturbed... seeing me this way." Seeing her about to object, she held up a hand like her aunt Heather used to do to forestall an objection. "I know... it doesn't matter so long as I'm happy, right? You're fine with it, right? You and I both know that's not true."
Feeling insulted, April lashed out. "Where do you get off..."
Erica was hurting. Here she was, finally with the one girl she never stopped loving, and April couldn't even look at her. "Just stop!" she shouted. "Alright? Spare me the bullshit! I know it bothers you, April! You know me so well you can tell when I want to say something difficult? Well, I know you just as well! You're acting like that day that creepy guy followed us home from school! Like I'm some sort of perv out looking to score with little girls, or something! Just say it!"
"Alright!" she screamed back. "I admit it! It creeps me the hell out! Jesus, E! I can see you in there! I can hear you in the words you use. In the way you talk... in your eyes... hell, even the way you dress! You always were a conservative dresser, and here you still are!" She paused a moment before smiling a little mischievously. "You are hot, though!"
Her blood up to boiling, Erica couldn't help herself when April smirked. Before she realized it, Erica had started laughing. Soon, both of them were. After a moment, the laughter died and silence hung in the air again. Not wanting to let it linger, Erica looked at her oldest friend.
"I'm sorry." was all she could say.
April looked away, ashamed of herself. "What do you have to be sorry for? I'm the one with the problem! I should be happy for you..." Her voice trailed off, unable to give words to her feelings.
"...but?" Erica asked. Seeing April close her eyes and repress her tears, she knew the rest. "...but you wanted Eric, and I'm not him. I never was. See? That's why I'm sorry, April. I... I failed you. I... I can't be the way you can want me to be... and now... now..." She took another deep breath and said what they were both thinking. "I'm not the person you thought you loved."
April felt the tear escape her eye. "God damn it!" she yelled at herself for letting her feelings show. She learned before she turned fourteen that she needed to repress her feelings, to bury them so far down they didn't show. Now Erica was trying to dig them up again. Old scars of pain, loss, yearning, and guilt bubbled to the surface and she railed against it. "Yes! You killed my Eric! He's dead! Gone! You're just an imitation! God, my parents were right! I should have just moved on and forgotten about you! This was all just a huge mistake!"
Erica's heart shattered. With her family gone, her one hope for happiness left in the world was gone. In its place sat a void that couldn't be filled. Her heart ached for April's love, but she now understood it could never be. Too much time had passed and they were each so changed by the absence of the other that their former selves were simply gone. Any hope for reclaiming their lost love was futile. Erica had known it could happen; likely would happen. She'd written about this exact same situation time and again. She'd only hoped that somehow their love could overcome it.
The hurt welled up inside so powerfully that she wanted to cry it all away. She tried to stem the tide of sorrow as April obviously had done, to spare the woman she loved the pain of seeing her reduced to tears at the hateful words. Unfortunately, while April had been hardened by life to hide her feelings in order to get by, Erica had learned to cope by expressing them and letting them flow freely. She had no way of stopping the flood of tears; no cofferdam of anger to fall back on. She could never truly hate someone she cared about, even if they hated her. The once again lost orphan girl managed to hold her tears back just long enough to turn away before they began pouring down her face.
April couldn't watch as the wounds she'd inflicted tore her one-time best friend and first true love apart. Part of her despised Erica for being weak, for letting her feelings show and not burying them as she had done. She hated that Erica wasn't strong enough to spare her the knowledge that she had just destroyed her best friend's dreams. The rest of her was at war with the anger. You're a cruel, hard, and bitter woman that doesn't deserve someone like Erica! She tried to hold on to her anger, but the tide had turned. Her anger washed inward in a sea of guilt and remorse until all that was left was the pain of watching her dearest friend cry.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
It was a bright Wednesday morning, five days from Halloween. Heather sat in her loveseat reading Keats, while Faith was upstairs alone in her room, as usual. While Cook puttered in the kitchen and Franchesca updated Erica's website before starting the laundry, Fredrick busied himself with preventative maintenance on the limousine. It seemed like just another day.
It was. Just as was the day before, and the day before that. Just like the thousands of days that ran together in a seemingly indistinguishable string of sameness over the last five years. When at last the sun began to set, right as Heather was heading up the stairs to go and try and coax Faith down to dinner, she heard a car pull up their driveway.
Not expecting anyone, Heather's heart raced for a moment, hoping it might be who she longed to see driving up to her house, but the hope died in her quickly, knowing it never would be. He's never coming back. she accepted. I abandoned him and he hates me. I deserve no less. Still wondering who would be coming to see her though, she slowly started back down the steps just as Fredrick opened the front door in response to the gentle knocking.
As the door opened, she could see two ladies standing outside. From her perspective, she could only see them from the waist down. Stepping down the staircase, her view of the two slowly moved up their bodies until she saw their faces and her heart skipped a beat.
"Erica!?" she gasped as she began to run down the rest of the stairs and around the corner toward the door.
Standing just outside, her shoulder-length red hair curled to perfection, Erica had grown up, but not so much as to prevent her aunt from knowing it was her. She was taller, over five-foot ten, two of those inches aided by the heels she wore, and her outfit accentuated her very feminine curves, but she could still see the girl she once knew in the woman at her door.
Heather stood mutely as Cook, Franchesca, and Faith all started heading toward the door at hearing the name that hadn't been spoken openly in the house for almost five years. Not waiting for the others, her aunt finally gathered her composure. "Won't you come in, sweetheart?" She tried to say it with nothing but love and joy in her heart, but fear crowded its way into her voice. "Please?"
Looking at her aunt, Erica hardly recognized her. The once elegant lady who shone like a diamond had been turned into a middle-aged woman with gray hair slowly fading away her lovely blond coif and a pale complexion that was replacing her once healthy pink hue. Finally, she managed to squeak out, "Mamma?"
Overwhelmed with simultaneous grief and joy, Heather broke down. She fell to the floor, simply unable to keep her own feet.
Immediately, Erica and Fredrick moved to her just as all the others reached the entryway. Chaos ensued as five voices all vied for Heather's attention, trying to see if she was all right, needed a doctor, help to a chair, a glass of water, or to go lie down. The only one not speaking was Faith, who was mute with shock. She could only stand at the lower landing of the steps and stare at the girl she'd loved from the day they'd met... then at the young woman who'd so obviously taken her place at Erica's side.
Faith didn't need Erica to explain. She knew from the day Erica was forced to leave that she would find love. It was too easy to love her. She'd likely had a dozen girlfriends over the years. She'd never written home about any, but Faith knew in her bones with each letter what Erica must have left out. The girl next to her gave the proof that her feelings had been right all along. Erica didn't need her, had never needed her, the way she needed Erica. It hurt, but she wouldn't blame her. She couldn't. She loved her too much.
The chaos only died when a shrill whistle silenced them all. Everyone looked back at Faith as she took her fingers out of her mouth.
"Freddie? Get Mamma off the floor and take her to the loveseat. Cook? Get her a glass of water. In fact, bring a pitcher and glasses. Franchesca? Run and grab the first aid kit and bring it to me. Erica? Close the door and see your guest to the living room." When she saw the stunned faces looking back at her, shocked that Faith had said more in one minute than she'd said the entire previous week, she shouted to break the spell. "Move!"
At that, each went to their assigned tasks. Soon Heather was seated and recovering her composure as Cook poured her a glass of lemon water and handed it to her shakily. While Faith took a seat next to her mother and across from Erica and her guest, the woman of the house finally spoke up.
"Erica? W-What happened to you? We stopped getting letters from you months ago! My God! You called me Mamma! You don't hate me? Say something, sweetheart! Please!"
Holding up a hand for silence, Faith took out the same stethoscope she'd worn all those years ago as a prop, bidding everyone be quiet, including her mother, while she checked her mother's heart. In her efforts to get over the pain of losing her love, Faith had tried embracing nursing and had been studying it for years on her own. While she was not an RN, and couldn't be until she went to college and got her degree, she knew enough to identify a potential heart attack. Sighing with relief, she turned to everyone. "She's fine! Just an emotional shock." She leveled her gaze at her cousin.
"I... I'm sorry, Mamma." Erica blushed. "I didn't mean to... I mean... that is..." Tears welled up in her eyes as she looked around the room at all the people still in the world who she'd ever loved. Finally, she managed to almost whisper, "I'm home! Home!" Moving quickly, she crossed over to her aunt and hugged her as though she might vanish from in front of her eyes if she let go. "Oh God, Mamma! I missed you so much!"
Heather held her and rocked her just like she had when she was twelve. "Shhh! It's all right, sweetheart! I've got you!"
Wanting to touch Erica's arm, just like she had the night April's parents had broken her heart and severed the best friends' ties seemingly forever, Faith nervously glanced over at the woman sitting across from her and saw her smiling back. Taking that as a cue, she silently ran her hand along Erica's smooth arm, just to let her cousin know she was there.
Touching Erica frightened her, stirring feelings she'd long ago buried and tried to forget. Feelings that were now boiling to the surface with such strength it took all her will to keep from grabbing Erica and kissing her in front of God and everybody. She pushed them back down for her cousin's sake. She knew nothing good would come of it and quite a lot of bad likely would, most probably her and Erica never seeing each other again. Faith loved her too much to do that.
Finally, Erica released her aunt and settled back on her heels. Taking a silk hanky from her tiny black purse, she dabbed at her eyes and started to laugh. "God, I must look terrible! I wanted to look so perfect for you!"
Smiling, Heather touched Erica's lovely hair. "You look fine, sweetie! Better than I ever imagined!" Taking the tissue being offered by Fredrick, she smiled up at him with a simple "Thank you." and started drying her eyes. After a moment, she turned to Erica. "Please, sweetie! Sit down! You must be tired after that drive! Are either of you hungry? Cook was only throwing together some leftovers, but I'm sure she'd be happy to..."
Her niece held up a hand, stopping her aunt. "Leftovers... would be fine, Mamma." Erica's voice sounded light and happy. While Cook headed for the kitchen to prepare food for two more, Erica looked up. "Fredrick? I know I sort of disrupted tonight's schedule. I don't want to delay things further, so would you escort us to the dining room?"
He raised an eyebrow, briefly glanced at Heather, then bowed crisply. "Very well, Miss Erica." A smile crept over his lips, not even trying to hide it. Helping Erica and her guest up, he then did the same for Faith and Heather. Escorting them into the next room while Franchesca ran to the kitchen ahead of them to help Cook bring out plates and silverware, Fredrick bowed to her. "Apologies, Miss Erica. We have not been accustomed to eating in the dining room for some time. Most meals are served in the kitchen now." he stated with a hint of disdain, holding out the chair at the head of the table.
Heather raised her chin proudly, her manor at odds with her casual attire. "Thank you, Fredrick." Taking her seat at the head of the table, Erica paused while he pulled out a chair across from her usual seat for her guest before taking her usual place next to Faith, waiting for Fredrick to seat them.
"Well," her aunt began, "I guess we have a lot to catch up on! Erica sweetheart, would you please introduce your guest?"
Her smile melted at the realization that she'd never even made any introductions before being seated. "Oh! In all the excitement, I forgot!" Smiling once more, she giggled, "Everyone? I'd like you to meet April!"
Heather drew in a sharp breath. "Your friend from California? Good Lord, sweetie... how...?"
Taking a moment, Erica tried to explain. "A private detective found her for me. We reconnected a few months ago." She looked across the table to April and smiled shyly.
Looking from one to the other, her aunt sighed as she lay her napkin across her lap. "Well, that is good news! April? Welcome to Hargrave House! I do hope you'll both be staying for the evening? There's just so much to talk about!"
Cook came in carrying a steaming pot of stew, smiling at Erica as she sat it in the middle of the table. Turning toward the kitchen, she stopped when Erica grabbed her arm gently.
"Cook? When you're done, won't you please join us?" she asked.
Flabbergasted, Theresa could barely form words to reply. "No, dearie! You need to catch up with your family!"
"You all are my family!" Erica smiled. "You too, Franchesca! Fredrick?"
The two looked at one another, maid and butler. Finally, Franchesca turned and scowled. "That just wouldn't be proper! You know that, girl!"
Rising from her seat, Erica walked up to the maid, hugged her, and then took her by the hand and held out a chair for her. Making herself look serious, she intoned gracefully, "I insist!"
Blustering, Franchesca wagged her finger at the girl. "Why I! Why you! Now listen!" Seeing that none of her growling was even phasing the young woman, she flattened her face and narrowed her eyes, trying to make a dent, but Erica stood firm. After a moment she finally said, "Oooo!" and took the far-left seat from Heather, two chairs down from April.
Standing, April held out the chair next to her. "Please?" was all she said.
Slowly making her way around the table, Theresa sat in the offered chair. "Thank you, dearie!" Looking up at Fredrick, she could see him stiffen his back in resolve. "Fred? Sit!" she barked, pointing at the chair at the end of the table, opposite their employer.
Walking up to him, Erica's eyes were soft and pleading. "Please, Fredrick? I know you don't think it's proper, but... there are some things I need to tell you." She turned and looked at those already seated. "All of you." Turning back to him she begged, "Please? For me? Just this once?"
Fredrick knew before her plea that he was going to cave, but let her finish. "Very well, Miss Erica." he said evenly, his voice betraying his feelings as it quavered slightly when he spoke her name. Moving to Erica's chair, he held it for her until she was once more seated. He then moved to the end of the table and slowly sat himself. "How very odd." he noted.
Laughter broke around the table as the seven sat together for the first time. Erica watched Cook serve up stew into everyone's bowls, then retrieve a plate of rolls from the kitchen before she returned to her seat. Looking up towards her aunt, Erica cleared her throat as Heather nearly took a bite. "Mamma?" she asked confusedly.
Their tradition of saying grace having been abandoned years ago, Heather turned crimson. "Oh! You wouldn't mind? I just thought..." Heather then looked at her daughter pensively.
"It's alright, Mamma." Faith sighed. Bowing her head for the first time in years, she pretended to pray just as Erica had so long ago.
Looking around the table after saying grace, Heather sighed happily. "Well, everyone eat up!" Taking her own first bite, she watched as Erica and April began. Dear Lord! Thank you for bringing my Erica back to me! I was a fool! She fought back tears of joy as she joined the rest of the family.
While they ate, only light small talk interrupted the meal. Erica looked at Cook sitting next to April. "You have no idea how much I missed your cooking!" she complimented. "This is so good!"
"Why thank you, dearie!" Theresa blushed. "That's very thoughtful of you!"
Enjoying her first home-cooked meal in longer than she could remember, April's own mother not having made a full meal since before Erica had moved in with them, relying on frozen food and eating out, she listened to the family talk happily. It made her smile, but looking around the table, her eyes met Faith's stare. Their mutual gazes locked, April could see so much in the vibrant blue eyes across from her. Jealousy, pain, and longing, but also elation and happiness for her cousin. The two seemed to know each other's thoughts; each one knowing and aware of how obvious their own feelings about Erica were to one another. Finally, Faith looked down at her bowl in shame just as April did the same.
Faith was confused. She had looked into April's eyes, but she didn't see the joy she'd expected to find, knowing what she and Erica must have shared with one another. Instead she saw embarrassment, guilt, and the pain that Faith knew all too well. The moment Erica had introduced her, Faith had seen their loving reunion in her mind's eye as though she'd been there. Their soft embrace, the first kiss of their true love, romantic dinners by candlelight, and their frantic first night of passion. It had been all so clear to her, but she saw none of that in April's gaze; just that same dreadful emptiness she saw in her own reflection.
When at last the seven finished their simple meal together, Erica looked at each of them in turn. "I wanted to talk to you all about some things... some things that have happened to me." She turned to her aunt Heather and looked at her sorrowful expression. "I know what you did, sending me away, was probably the hardest thing you've ever done, Mamma. I want you to know it was the right thing to do."
Her aunt shook her head in dismay. "No, Erica! It... it was a mistake! I... I should never have sent you away!" She fought back her tears as the guilt nearly tore her to pieces.
Moving quickly, Erica stood and moved to her aunt, dropping to one knee beside her chair. "No, Mamma! It wasn't! It needed to be done! I needed that time to know myself! To be certain that this is what I wanted!" She lowered her gaze to the floor. "You took on yourself all the responsibility, blame, and anger that came from doing the right thing instead of the easy thing... and you did it for me." Looking back into Heather's tearful eyes, she repeated three words spoken so long ago. "No greater love..."
Faith stood up furiously. "Bullshit!" Silence washed over the room as she glared at Erica. "How can you say that? She sent you away! Abandoned you! Made you live like a boy! God, Erica! You should hate her!" She looked her mother dead in the eyes. "I know I do! She destroyed our home!"
Standing, Erica stared her cousin down. "I could hate her! I did for a while, but... I... I can't! Don't you understand Faith? She had to do it!"
Turning away from them, Faith was livid with Erica for not hating her mother, crossing her arms in defiant resolve. "There was another option!"
Shaking her head, Erica sighed. "No, Faith. There really wasn't. Not for me."
Turning her head slightly, the older girl huffed. "She could have put you on hormones! Let you become the woman you wanted to be! Then you could have stayed here!" Turning to face her forbidden love, her eyes swelled with tears as her voice dropped to a near whisper. "Stayed with me."
Her words went through the room like a shockwave. Each one of them at some point had suspected Faith harbored more feelings for Erica than she should, but her words gave their suspicions truth. Cook drew in a breath.
"Faith!" Heather gasped as she looked at her daughter with eyes wide.
"What, Mother?" Faith snapped. "You knew! Before you abandoned her, you knew! You all knew!" Her eyes scanned the room at the shocked faces looking back at her. Finally, she stormed out, increasing to a run as the six heard her steps go up the stairs, followed by the slam of her bedroom door.
Erica recovered quickly. "She's wrong." Looking at her stricken aunt, she continued. "I needed the time you sent me away, Mamma. I didn't know it then, and hated you for it, but I know now." She looked around the room at the others. "I know most of you have probably hated her too, at one time or another, but you really shouldn't. If Mamma had let me stay, put me on hormones or whatever, I never would have done the things I've done that helped so many... and helped me find April."
Her aunt blinked and looked up at her. "Whatever do you mean, dear?"
Returning to her seat, Erica explained the things she'd done with her time; her writing, her business, the books she'd published, and the hundreds of thousands of letters she'd received telling how her words had transformed lives, and in some cases, saved them. Finally, she looked back at her aunt. "None of that would have been possible if you hadn't done what you did... what I needed you to do because it was what was right for me."
April reached over and took Erica's hand, giving it a squeeze. Her aunt noticed and asked what everyone present was dying to know. "Sweetheart? Are you two..." Her voice trailed off, waiting for Erica to finish for her.
The two looked at each other shyly. April turned to Erica's aunt and smiled sweetly. "Not exactly, Mrs. Hargrave."
"What does 'not exactly' mean?" Franchesca scowled as usual. "You either are, or you aren't! Which is it?"
Erica held up a hand to forestall further confusion. "We're not, but we're open to the idea." she explained as she looked back at April.
Nodding in agreement, April looked at the others. "It was hard... I mean, coming to terms with Erica being a girl, but in the end she was still the same person I'd loved my whole life..." She looked back at Erica and squeezed her hand. "...and still do!"
Theresa shook her head. "So you are together, then?"
Shaking her head, Erica turned to her. "Only in the sense that we're spending time with one another and seeing where things go. No expectations, no commitments, just getting to know one another, all over again. If we still love each other after that, well then... we'll deal with that when we come to it." She looked at April. "After all, I just don't know if I can stand living with someone who picks her teeth at the dining room table!"
April pulled her fingers from her mouth. "What? I had some roast stuck between my teeth!"
It made everyone laugh, but soon Erica turned to each of them in turn. "Fredrick? I... I know you have your own ideas about what's right and proper, and I know my father was a wonderful man, but... I needed to tell you that you're the closest thing to a father I ever knew."
Standing solemnly and bowing slightly, Fredrick choked up at the sentiment. "Thank you, Madame Erica. I... I'm honored."
Rising and walking up to him, Erica wrapped him in her arms, still unable to reach all the way around his bulk. "I love you, Fredrick!"
Returning the embrace, his countenance softened, but he never spoke.
Turning to Franchesca, Erica smiled. "And you! You may fool most people, but I know just how caring you are! I've watched the website! You've done wonderfully at keeping that silly thing going all these years!"
"Silly!" Franchesca balked. "I'll have you know the newsletter alone has a hundred thousand subscriptions! Lots of people love that site!" Adjusting her seat, she looked at the people staring back at her. "Couldn't just leave it to rot!"
Coming up behind her, Erica hugged the neck of the maid from behind, still in her seat. "I love you, Franchesca! You're always taking care of me!"
"I... You're welcome. I love you too, dear." she replied, patting Erica's hands.
Straightening up once more, she looked over at Theresa. "Cook? You were looking out for me from the start, weren't you? It took me a while, but I finally figured out it was you that made it so I could stay Erica. You helped me find a part of myself I never knew was there all along. I'll always love you, for that alone!" She waited while Theresa stood, taking each other into a loving hug.
"I just wanted you to be happy, dearie!" Theresa sighed. "You were so lost! I just couldn't let you suffer! Not when there was something I could do about it! I love you, girl!" After a minute of holding one another, the woman resumed her seat, wiping her eyes while Erica turned to her aunt.
"Mamma?" she said quietly. "Do you know why I call you that now?"
Heather barely kept the tears from her eyes. "I... I think so." Blowing her nose, she laughed lightly as she hadn't done for years. "Tell me anyway?"
Kneeling down next to her, Erica placed her hands together on her aunt's lap. "When you saw me off that day, you told me I would always be your daughter. It was what I'd wanted to hear you say for so long! It may have started off as pretending, but I always knew I wasn't like any boys I knew. I... I just didn't know why." Wiping her own tears away, she smiled. "And don't worry! I think Mom and Dad still love you, almost as much as I do!"
Tears rolled down Heather's face. "Oh, baby!" she cried, hugging Erica as she stood. They held each other a while, no one daring to interrupt.
Finally, they released one another and Erica looked up toward Faith's room. "I... think I need to talk to Faith alone for a while." She looked around the room at her loved ones. "If you'll all excuse me?"
Everyone rose to their feet as April nodded and said, "Go on, E. Talk to her."
Smiling back, she looked around one more time before walking to the stairs.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Reaching the stairs and ascending, Erica recalled the first time she'd done so, scared and alone. Now as she went up them, she felt only the fear, this time that Faith was beyond reach. That of all the people she'd helped over the years, the one who needed it the most would be the one who she could help the least. Slowly walking down the all too familiar hallway, she reached the door to their once shared room. Knocking gently, she waited.
"Go away!" Faith shouted, not caring who was at the door.
Trying to open it, Erica found it locked. She sighed and turned her back to the door, leaning against it and sliding down until she was seated against it. "Faith? Please? Let me in. I... I need to talk to you. Don't make me do it through a door."
Sitting on her bed, Faith's legs were drawn up to her chest, her arms wrapped around them. Tears soaked her face as she looked up toward the door. "Go away, Erica! I don't want to talk to you!"
Closing her eyes, Erica held back the hurt. Becoming more determined, she lowered her tone. "Faith... I'm not leaving. I'm going to sit out here until you open the door so we can talk. And you know how stubborn I can be!"
Rolling her eyes, Faith remembered how Erica used to stubbornly insist on doing her own schoolwork, even when it took her hours longer and she'd offered to let her copy from her papers. The memory made her laugh, not because it was funny, but because it seemed so innocent and stupid now. Rolling off her bed, she padded over to the door and turned the lock, returning to her bed without a word.
Rising, Erica opened the door and stepped inside. Her eyes adjusted to the darkness, seeing that the room had changed so much it was unrecognizable. Gone were the toys, extra wardrobes, and their once-shared canopy bed. In their place were all new modern furniture and a disorganized assortment of books, clothes, and junk. It was as though the Faith she had known growing up had vanished and a stranger had taken her place. She slowly walked around the bed, looking at her cousin with concern and affection that only they two could understand. Taking a seat on what used to be her side of the bed, Erica half turned toward her. "I... I still love you."
Faith couldn't stand it. She began to sob into her knees. "How... how can you say that to me! How can you even look at me! I'm a disgusting perv that should be locked up!"
Climbing all the way up on the bed, Erica walked on her knees over to Faith, touching her shoulders from behind.
"Don't touch me!" Faith shouted, throwing off her cousin's arms with a shrug.
Determined, Erica grabbed her from behind and wrapped her arms around Faith's waist. Feeling her try to pull away, Erica locked her arms and grabbed her own elbows. "I won't, Faith! I won't let you chase me away!"
Panicking, Faith started to thrash, twisting and turning, trying to get Erica to release her. "No! Let go of me! Damn it Erica! Let me go!" She pushed down on Erica's locked arms, trying to force them apart. When that failed she started beating them with her fists. "Let! Me! Go!"
"No!" she shouted back. Erica held on for dear life and rested her head against Faith's back. Enduring the pain Faith was inflicting on both her arms and her heart, she held fast. "I'm not letting you go, Faith! Ever! Now stop it, damn it! You're hurting me!"
"Then let go!" she growled. Trying once more to force Erica's arms off of her, she pushed down on her cousin's hands, making them slip off her elbows. When Erica tried to re-fasten the grip, Faith grabbed Erica's wrists and pulled them out from around her.
Seeing that she was about to lose her grip, Erica reversed and grabbed Faith's wrists instead. Having been taught wrestling in school, she used it to her advantage and pulled Faith off balance, making the both of them tumble backwards onto the bed. Rolling over, Erica leapt on Faith's prone form and pinned her hands to either side of her head. Her skirt strained as she straddled her cousin and put her entire weight down on Faith's stomach. "Are you done now, Faith?" she asked.
"Get off of me!" Faith yelled. "Damn you! Get off me, Eric!"
Her cousin refused to budge. "No! And I don't care what names you call me! You're going to sit there and you're going to listen!"
Faith stopped struggling, seeing determined authority in Erica's beautiful green eyes. She half smiled and changed tactics, moving sensuously under her cousin, wrapping her legs around Erica's calves. "Well, we could always just not talk!" she purred.
She shook her head resolutely and lowered her tone to a hush. "That won't work either, Faith."
Desperately caught between hating that Erica had her immobilized and loving the fact that their bodies were pressed so close together, Faith started to cry. "Please, Erica! Please don't torture me like this!"
Erica lightened her grip slightly. "Will you talk to me?" Seeing a nod from her she added, "Promise?" When Faith just nodded, she shook her head. "No, you have to actually promise! Like we used to!"
Rolling her eyes, she relented. "Fine! I swear I'll talk to you! Alright?" The moment Erica started to release her, she quickly turned the tables and flipped her cousin over on her back. Now pinning Erica in place, Faith glared down at her. "So let's talk." She slid her body up and down Erica's in a slow undulating release of her long held passion. "Are you sleeping with her?"
Trying to dislodge Faith, she knew it was futile. Faith may not have taken wrestling, but she was a fast learner and Erica had just shown her how to pin someone so they were incapable of escape; especially on the soft mattress that gave no good leverage to push off against. "What are you talking about?"
"I'm talking about your girlfriend." Faith spat back. "Your precious April!"
Sighing and laying her head back, Erica looked up at the ceiling. "No, we aren't sleeping together. We're not even really dating, just... seeing where it goes! Now will you let me up?"
"No!" Faith shook her head. "Do you love her?"
She looked up in Faith's eyes. Knowing that lying would be a waste of time, she nodded. "Yes. I've always loved her. You know that."
Her breath only now starting to slow, Faith lowered her voice to a whisper. "Do you still love me? The way you love her?"
Closing her eyes, Erica held her breath. Letting it all out at once she uttered one fateful word in a whisper. "Yes."
"Then be with me! Here! Now! There's no law against it!" Faith pleaded. "I love you!" She started to lower her face toward Erica's, but stopped just short of kissing her. "I... I can't!" she cried. Rolling over and releasing her cousin, Faith covered her crying eyes with one hand while the other beat helplessly against the mattress. "Oh God, Erica! I want you so bad... but I... I just can't! I can't make you give up everything... the family, your life, April... just for me! Because I know you, and you would, wouldn't you?"
Erica quickly moved and pulled Faith up into her arms. Her cousin clung to her and poured her soul out on Erica's shoulder while she rocked Faith, held her, and just listened.
"I wish you'd never come back!" she cried. "I... I wish you'd just been Eric so I wouldn't love you! I wish... oh, God! I wish I didn't feel like this! I wish I could go back and change it! I wish Mamma hadn't sent you away!"
Faith cried on her shoulder while Erica just sat silently and waited. When at last her cousin's tears were spent, Erica pulled her away and looked Faith in her eyes. "I know. I know just how bad this hurts. You're still the only girl who's ever kissed me because I... I wouldn't let anyone else."
A shocked expression crossed Faith's countenance as she looked in Erica's eyes and saw how tortured she was, nearly sending her back to tears. "Oh, Erica! You... you never...?"
Slowly Erica shook her head, her colored curls bouncing lightly. "I had the opportunity, but..." She looked down at her lap. "...and then I just tried hating you. Hating you for loving me. For making me feel guilty for wanting love." She looked back up at Faith's horrified eyes. "But I couldn't. I could no more hate you for loving me than I could hate Mamma for sending me away. It's what had to be, Faith!"
Faith just backed away. "How can you not hate her for what she did? She abandoned you! She tore this family apart! It's been hell here without you!" She told her of all the hurt and anguish since her leaving; about Brooke and Jenny, Mike and Jennifer, and the hopeless atmosphere of Hargrave House. "So how can you sit there and tell me that what she did was for the best?"
Looking away, Erica tried to explain. "Faith, if Mamma had let me stay, she would have had to put me on hormones."
"What's so terrible about that?" Faith scoffed. "You're on them now, aren't you? What difference does it make?"
"Yes, but if she'd have done it then I never would have been able to have children. Now I have that option and I still get to be me! Don't you see? She took on all the responsibility of doing the hard thing, making the hard choice for the right reasons, and she did it for me... for my benefit. She let everyone hate her and think the worst of her so I could have a happier life! She sacrificed everything for me! Even her own happiness!"
Pausing she allowed the thought to sink in. "I know what people have been saying about her. That she got rid of me. That she saw me as a burden and resented having to take care of the 'poor orphan girl' who came to stay with her. Have you even once heard her deny it? She let everyone think the worst of her so they wouldn't think the worst of me!"
"So maybe she was right!" Faith shouted. "But was it worth it? Was it worth all the pain and suffering she caused just so you can maybe have kids?"
"It's more than that." Erica explained. She paced Faith's floor while telling her of the books she had written and the thousands of letters sent by people saying how their lives had been made better from them. Finally sitting on the bed once more, she turned to her cousin. "None of that would have been possible if I'd stayed here! So it's not just about me being able to have kids someday, Faith. It had to be this way! It's the way it was meant to be!"
Sniffing, Faith asked, "So... what... you went to a sperm bank or something?"
She tried to suppress it, but the giggle came out anyway. "Out of all that, that's your takeaway?"
The two stared at each other and both started to giggle like they were pre-teens all over again. Faith covered her face. "Oh, God! I can just see the look on the doctor's face when you went in to make a deposit instead of a withdrawal! Looking like that!"
Erica lost her balance and rolled onto her side laughing. Gathering her wits, she shook her head. "No! I didn't look like this, yet! I... had changed my name already though, which caused a bit of confusion!"
Suddenly Faith stopped laughing. "You mean, you looked like..." Erica simply nodded. "Oh, and you... so did you have surgery or something?"
"Something like that." she explained. "Cost me a lot, but I like the results! What do you think?" Erica spread her arms out as if to show herself off.
Looking up and down Erica's body, she could see nothing that would give away that the woman before her was anything but a natural born woman. Her hips and thighs were shapely, her legs smooth and sexy, a narrow waist tapering up to C-cup breasts, thin and delicate arms, a beautiful complexion, perfect teeth, nicely rounded jaw line, no Adam's Apple, and a voice like a songbird. "I think you're breathtakingly beautiful, just like you always were." she said eventually, her breath starting to grow ragged with desire.
Starting to move toward Erica, she stopped. Though her cousin showed no sign that she would stop her, Faith knew she had to stop herself. Looking away, she could only apologize. "I... Sorry, Erica. I didn't mean... I let myself get carried away. I'll try not to let it happen again." Clearing her throat, she made herself look back at Erica. "You do look beautiful, though." Laughing gently she added, "If Mike could only see you now! He'd flip!"
Erica rolled her eyes. "Oh, God! Mike! Ah swear, Ah thin' even if he'd a known, he'd still be wantin' me ta' be his Mot! I feel so bad for him though. Jennifer really did a number on him, huh?"
"I'm surprised he didn't leave for the city." Faith nodded. "A lot of the kids we knew back then did."
Their conversation stalling for a moment, the two just looked at each other. Eventually Erica broke the quiet. "You look good, by the way."
Smiling shyly, Faith shook her head. "In a baggy sweatshirt and yoga pants? I look like I'm pushing thirty!"
"No!" Erica denied. Waiting a moment she quipped, "Twenty-five tops!"
"Oh, yeah?" Faith shot back with a smile. She picked up a pillow and bopped Erica on the head with it.
"Oh... you've done it now, girl!" Erica grinned. Grabbing another pillow, she swung and missed.
Squaring off against Faith like they did her first day, each one looked for an opportunity to attack. Faith jumped off the back of the bed, shifting her weight back and forth between her feet. "Come on! Is that the best you got?"
Climbing down, Erica was careful never to break eye contact. "Oh, I've got lots more where that came from!" Moving sideways across the floor, the two circling each other, she waited until Faith was between herself and the bed. When Faith swung her pillow out to try and tag her, Erica ducked under it and moved in. Using her pillow like a battering ram, she pushed Faith back onto the foot of the bed, letting the pillow loose to free her hands. She was about to tickle her when she heard Faith stop laughing and gasp. "What's wrong?" she asked.
Faith had a wild look in her eyes. Her breath became ragged and her chest heaved with need. Looking up at Erica once more on top of her, she saw the concern in her eyes change to understanding, then desire, and finally guilt.
Starting to push herself up, Faith grabbed Erica's arms and held her in place. "Tell me you don't want me just as badly!"
Held fast, Erica closed her eyes. Opening them with a sincere and desperate look in them, she answered honestly. "Of course I do, Faith. But then what?"
Not ready to give up, Faith released her and watched as Erica backed away from the bed as though it would swallow her. "I could tell then... and I can tell now... you want me just as badly as I want you!"
Erica turned away and crossed her arms, holding herself. "I know! I admit it! I do!" She was near to tears at the thought of hurting either Faith or April, but she knew whichever course she chose, one of them would suffer. Turning to face Faith, she was surprised when she was no longer on the bed and was now standing less than a foot in front of her.
"Are you going to make me choose, Faith? Between you and April? Between you and Mamma? You know she wouldn't stand for it! She'd throw us both out and never speak to either of us again! What then? You go back with me to Concord? We can't get married there! Even if we went somewhere where it's legal, New Hampshire won't recognize it! We can't have children! Is that what you want, Faith? Half a life? Scandal? My business ruined? I'd end up resenting you for..." Her argument was interrupted by Faith's lips.
She had simply stepped forward and kissed Erica. She didn't even need to grab her. Within a second, Faith's right hand was behind Erica's head caressing the nape of her neck as her left drifted down her love's back to gently caress her rear. Erica's hands moved to Faith's hips, pulling the two of them tightly together. Their kiss opened as Faith parted her lips and gently let her tongue slip along Erica's teeth.
They stood together like that for several minutes, touching groping, kissing, and loving. Finally, Faith pulled away and stepped back to sit on the foot of her bed, leaving Erica standing alone. Looking down at the floor, Faith stammered, "I... I'm sorry. I just... I guess I just needed to know that I took the chance... that I knew... that..."
Moving quickly, Erica swept Faith into her arms, kissing her as she lifted her up off the bed. Once more they made out with reckless abandon, Erica kissing Faith all over her face, then down her neck. She held Erica's head against her, deeply inhaling the scent of her.
"Oh God, Erica! Please!" Feeling Erica's kisses slowing and moving lower toward her collar and forward toward her breasts, Faith gathered every shred of self-control she had and pushed Erica away. "No... I... I can't let you do this!"
The two teenagers looked into each other's fiery eyes, each seeing the passion for the other, but this time it was Faith who looked away.
Erica dropped to the floor on her knees. "So what is it then? You just wanted to make me admit I want you just as badly? And now that I have, you want to break my heart as much as yours has been broken? Is that it?"
Rolling over on her bed, Faith cried. "I'm sorry! I'm sorry! I'm sorry!" Sobbing for a time, she finally looked up to see Erica sitting on the floor with her legs tucked to the side of her. She had a vacant look on her face, like she had become catatonic once more. "Erica? You alright?"
Looking down at the floor she sat on, guilt washed over Erica like a tidal wave. "I... I think it would be best if we don't spend any time alone with each other. I... I can't trust myself."
Nodding, Faith agreed. "You're right." Wiping her eyes, then her lips and neck, she stood and went into her bathroom, cleaning herself up of any evidence of their passionate embrace. When she came out, she saw Erica still sitting in the same spot, not moving. Going over to her, she grabbed Erica's hands and made her stand up. "Come on, Erica! Get up!" When her cousin finally got her legs under her, Faith started leading her to the bathroom, grabbing Erica's purse on the way. "Come on, sweetie! Pull yourself together."
While Erica stood in front of the mirror, her makeup smeared by their necking, she looked at Faith in the mirror. "I would have let you have me." she said, finally looking down into her purse for her compact and lipstick. "I still would. Even now."
"I know." Faith nodded. "That's why I made us stop."
Taking a cleansing breath, Erica looked back at her reflection. "I... I understand. I think." She started to fix her makeup to leave no trace of their make-out session.
Faith looked down as Erica worked. "I just couldn't let you throw away your life... even if it meant I could finally... Oh, God! Life really isn't fair, is it?" Looking up to see a simple shake of the head from Erica, Faith walked up behind her and rested her head on Erica's right shoulder, her hands snaking around her cousin's waist in a not-so-platonic hug. It was intimate enough that Faith felt her cousin shiver with excitement, so she backed off again.
Once Erica was done to her own satisfaction, she turned and looked at Faith. Walking up to her, she took both of Faith's hands in hers, squeezed them, then kissed Faith on the cheek, slow and loving.
"Why'd you do that?" Faith asked, her hand moving to her cheek.
"Because you needed it." Erica replied sweetly. Taking Faith by the hand, she led her out of the bathroom to sit once more on Faith's bed. "Are we OK now?" she asked after a pensive moment.
"I think so." Faith sighed. "May I ask you some things? I mean, if anything makes you uncomfortable, you don't have to answer, but... I guess I just want to know some things before I'll be OK with everything. Alright?"
"I'm an open book to you, Faith." Erica agreed. "Ask away."
Getting a mischievous grin, Faith asked, "Are those real?" glancing down at Erica's chest.
Laughing, Erica quipped, "No! They're an illusion! I just use the right makeup and it only looks like I have a C cup!"
"Very funny!" Faith rolled her eyes in response. "I mean, did you have..."
"Uh-huh." Erica admitted. "I probably should have waited for some natural breast growth, but I just couldn't wait! Call it vanity if you like, but I'll get a reduction later as I grow in naturally."
"You better, or those puppies will be killing your back when you're forty!"
The two laughed earnestly before Faith moved to another question. "So anything else? Face? Lipo?" She glanced at Erica's skirt. "Down there?" Looking at Erica she grinned lustily and waggled her eyebrows.
Erica shook her head and laughed. "You're terrible! Face, yes... plus voice surgery... no lipo... and 'down there' has to wait a year. Most any reputable SRS surgeon won't do it until I've lived for at least a year as a woman."
"You lived a year as a girl here, didn't you?"
"Doesn't count." Erica noted. "It has to be a year under supervision as an adult. Oh, I could go to Thailand and get it done now, but I'm in no hurry." Looking over at her cousin, she tilted her head curiously. "Why?"
"Just fodder for fantasy, love." Faith admitted. "If I can't have you for real, I at least want to imagine you right when I'm..."
Blushing and turning away, Erica sighed. "Faith! I don't need to know that!"
"You asked!" Faith pointed out.
"Fair enough..." she admitted, "...but please, it's hard enough to control myself as it is without thinking of you..."
"...masturbating while thinking of you?" Faith finished her unspoken sentence seductively. "Honey, I've been doing that since I could!"
Erica took a deep breath again. "OK... so there's that. Anything else?"
Thinking for a moment she asked, "Have you ever... done the same thing? I mean, thought about me?"
Guiltily, Erica nodded. "A lot, actually. Probably more than I should have!"
"Is there a healthy amount of sexual fantasy to have about your cousin?"
"If there is, I bet Mamma would know!" Erica quipped. "But I sure won't be the one to ask her!"
"That's another thing." Faith noted. "Why are you calling her Mamma now instead of 'Aunt Heather'?"
Closing her eyes, Erica recounted the day she left. "From that moment on, she wasn't 'Aunt Heather' anymore. She was just 'Mamma'." Looking over at Faith she admitted, "I used to be so jealous of you! You were beautiful, happy..." Pausing a moment, she finally said the words. "...and a real girl with a real mother who was alive and not a figment of your imagination."
Standing up, Faith walked a distance away, her back to Erica and her hands in her back pockets. "I wasn't a very good daughter to her after she made you leave. I hated her so much for that! I don't know that I can fix the damage."
Rising and moving to Faith, Erica rested a hand lightly on Faith's shoulder. "You can! You know Mamma! She'll always forgive you!"
Shuddering at Erica's touch, she reached up and put her hand over Erica's, trapping it in place. She wanted to say something, and almost did, her mouth opening to speak, but knew no good would come of it, so she patted Erica's hand and slipped free of her touch. Walking over to her vanity chair, she sat and lowered her head.
Reaching a hand toward her, Erica smiled. "Come on. Let's go downstairs and talk it out."
Faith shook her head. "I... I can't face them. Not after admitting that I... I..."
"...that you love me?" Erica finished for her. "You said it yourself, it was hardly a secret." Moving closer, Erica still held her hand out. "Come on. You can't stay up here forever and there's no time like the present, right?"
Looking up at her smiling and devastatingly sexy cousin, Faith managed a false smile and took the offered hand. "I guess it's time to pay the piper." she said as she stood up.
Pulling Faith up into her arms, Erica held her warmly, affectionately, and longer than would be considered appropriate. Pulling back slightly, she looked into Faith's eyes. "One more for the road?" she offered, her smile genuine, warm, and inviting.
Leaning forward, desperate to feel Erica's lips on her own once more, Faith stopped herself. "I... I want to so much, but... if we did... I wouldn't be able to stop myself from wanting more, a lot more."
Sighing, Erica closed her eyes and looked down and away as she pulled back. "You're right. I guess I need to learn to check myself." Looking back to Faith, Erica asked, "Before we go down, can I ask what you think of April? I always wanted you to get to know her."
"She seems... nice." Faith lied. Really she hated the girl for being what she perceived as the biggest obstacle standing between her and Erica. She was certain that if April had never come back into Erica's life, she would have succumbed to their earlier passions and by now the two of them would have been basking in the afterglow of carnal bliss. She just couldn't ever tell Erica that.
Almost as though she could read Faith's mind, Erica laughed. "You know, if it wasn't for April coming into my life, I never would have come back."
Cocking her head in her typical way, Faith was surprised. "Really? Why?"
"April was the one that convinced me I needed to come back, that I had to see you all again and let you know that I was OK... and tell you all what you mean to me..." She paused and turned to look into Faith's eyes. "...and how much I love you."
Her cousin's eyes widened as she finally understood. "Did... did you tell April about... um... us? About 'the kiss' and my crush on you?"
Looking down, Erica nodded. "I had to. If she and I were to have any chance together, I needed to be completely honest with her." She looked back up into Faith's eyes. "No secrets."
Her cousin stepped back. "So... you came up here... and she knows how you feel about me... and me about you... and she was OK with that?"
"She loves me." Erica said simply.
Faith shook her head and looked away. "I don't know if I could have done that if I were in her place. I mean, I'd have been terrified that you would... that you might... give in."
Nodding, Erica grimaced. "I did. If you hadn't stopped me, I would have... well... I don't really know what I would have done... but we would have gone too far, for certain." she let out a sigh. "And now I'm going to have to tell her that, too. Well, later anyway."
Shaking her head vigorously, Faith tried to dissuade her. "No, Erica! Don't! She could leave you if you tell her!"
"She'll know the second she sees me, to be honest." Erica noted. "April could always see right through to the heart of me."
Faith started pacing the room. "Tell her I forced myself on you! Tell her... tell her you tried to stop me but I overpowered you and you only stopped..."
"Faith!" Erica interrupted. "I can't! Even if I could get away with it, I'd know I lied to her forever! It would taint everything between us from then on in the light of a lie! I'd spend the rest of my life in fear that she would learn the truth... that I... that I couldn't... resist you."
"Damn it, Erica! You have to! You have to tell her with such conviction that you believe it! Eventually it'll just become the truth! If you tell her you couldn't stop yourself, she'll never trust you around another woman again!"
Sighing, Erica ran her hand under her hair along the nape of her neck, massaging the muscles there. "I'm pretty sure she expected it. I think she wanted to see if you would stop it, which you did. She knows you're a special case for me... a once in a lifetime kind of love that I find irresistible. She knows I've never been tempted by anyone else, even when you two were both lost to me for what would seem to be the rest of our lives."
Sitting down again, Faith looked at Erica in a mild amount of awe. "You meant it when you said you've never... I mean... not even a one-night stand? Just for sex? Not even just to do it with someone?"
She shook her head slowly. "Not even a kiss."
Her cousin rose quickly, a look of hunger on her face. "Oh, God! Erica, that's so..." She leaned forward like she was about to move toward her, but stopped as a look crossed her face, almost as if Erica could see her thinking, What am I doing? Instead, Faith sighed and moved toward the door. "Sorry! Oh God, am I sorry! I... think it's time for us to go downstairs. You're right... I can't trust myself around you alone. It's too easy to give in to temptation."
"I think it's for the best." Erica nodded in agreement. She took a cleansing breath before opening her eyes and putting on a smile. "Shall we?"
As Faith opened the door, she turned and looked at Erica walking up behind her. "Erica? I... just want you to know... if... if you ever find yourself alone... I mean, if it doesn't work out with April, and... um... you need somebody..."
Smiling, Erica nodded quickly. "I know. And who knows, maybe someday I'll take you up on that offer!" Faith looked at her with longing, biting her lip as Erica winked at her seductively.
Shuddering, Faith quickly walked out of her room and out into the hallway. Taking a cleansing breath of her own, she heard Erica close the door behind her. "Alright, time to face the music." Looking over her shoulder, she smiled at Erica. "Together?"
Erica walked up beside her and took her hand. "Together!"
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Following her cousin down the stairs, Erica reached the bottom and looked out into the living room to see her aunt talking with April; Cook and Franchesca listening from the couch while Fredrick stood by the dining room entryway impassively. She smiled at the sight of April and her aunt, the two talking freely and seeming to enjoy each other's company.
Faith walking ahead of her, she saw April look at her cousin, then into her own eyes. Shame burned in them and Erica watched April's face cloud over. Trying to say so much without a word, Erica subtly shook her head. Her oldest friend's expression changed to a mild confusion, then smiling back at something Heather said, returning to look at the woman once more.
Stopping a short distance from her mother, Faith waited for a pause in the conversation. "Mamma? I want to apologize. I had no right to blame you or... or to... to hate you for doing what you knew had to be done." She looked at Erica who nodded encouragingly. Turning once more to her mother, she smiled weakly. "Erica told me about the things she's done, things that would've never happened if she'd stayed here." She looked down ashamed. "I... I was selfish for wanting her to stay."
Heather regarded her daughter, then Erica. She had figured out in a short time of Erica's arrival from California that Faith had an unfamilial affection for her cousin. It had been why she eventually made them sleep in separate rooms and part of why she had talked herself into sending Erica away. Her greatest fear had always been that as they matured they would end up sleeping together. While she wasn't sure of the damage it would do to Erica's mental health, or Faith's, she knew it couldn't have helped. "It's alright, dear." she answered.
Standing up, April looked at the three of them nervously. "I think I'll make myself scarce so you can talk freely. I know family issues can be a little uncomfortable to discuss when a stranger's around, so I'll just see my..."
"No! Please stay!" Faith interrupted her. "In a way, you've always been a part of this family! You've always been a part of Erica's life. So much so, that sometimes I feel as if I knew you myself!" Faith walked slowly into the living room and sat next to her mother once more. "I swear! Erica could spend hours talking about you! It... it sometimes made me a little jealous that you were such a big part of her growing up."
Smiling sweetly, April still searched Faith's eyes to try and puzzle out what had happened upstairs. She'd heard yelling, then moving around, then yelling again, and then that terrible silence. She had listened with one ear while trying to listen to Heather with the other, doing a poor job at both. Finally, she had to just ignore what could be happening upstairs and focus on getting to know Erica's family.
It was easy to see what Erica had fallen in love with in this home. Heather's intellect was keen, but she wasn't a braggart or stuck up about it. The fact that she employed three people to cook and clean for her said she had been born to money, but she had a very down-to-earth feel about her, and the 'help' seemed more like extended family than just hired workers.
"I feel the same way about all of you!" April replied. "You were such a big influence on her life, I wish I could have moved here with her!"
Stepping in, Erica took a seat next to her. She felt her first love shift slightly away from her, just enough to look like she was 'making room'. "April really had a hard time with her folks after I was gone." she explained.
Her aunt nodded, seeing the mild tension between the two. "So I understood, sweetie. I still can't fathom why they felt it necessary to cut you two off from one another so harshly. It wasn't necessary and certainly was an unhealthy situation for you both."
"At first they told me that if we kept in touch it would have just drawn out the hurt." April explained. "In the end, when I was leaving home, they finally admitted the truth. They never liked Erica... or her mother. I know they didn't like the gold star in the front window of Erica's house. They complained about it a lot. I think they were also afraid that I'd end up a teen mother." Looking over at Erica who sat shyly beside her, she smiled. "Who knows? Maybe they were right!"
"Ha!" Franchesca scoffed. "I know my little Erica! She's always been a good girl... and she loved you even then!"
Bumping shoulders with her, Theresa added, "I think that's exactly what they were afraid of, dearie!"
Heather turned to her guest. "I don't know them, but I know people. It sounds as if they were very controlling... more than parents need be."
Only half listening, Erica looked over at Faith seeing a distant look in her eyes. Thoughts of what they might have done had Erica stayed ran through her head, certain that Faith was thinking the same thing. Blushing, she looked to her aunt. "Mamma? I assume the guest room is still available?"
"Why, sweetie!" her aunt blinked. "That's not a guest room anymore! That's your room, and it always will be, as far as I'm concerned."
She glanced at her watch and looked to April. "I know you're pretty tired. Why don't you take my old bed. I can be fine down here on the couch."
"No, E! This is your home! If anyone sleeps on the couch, it should be me!"
Faith was about to make a suggestion when her mother held up a hand to end the debate. "Enough! We're all adults here. Erica? You and April are perfectly welcome to share your room."
Fidgeting slightly, Erica explained as best as she could manage. "That's very understanding of you Mamma, but April and I have never... that is, we don't share..." Her voice trailed off, letting everyone figure out for themselves what she was getting at.
Looking at the two of them, Heather raised a brow. "Oh! I had just naturally assumed... oh, I am sorry! I didn't mean to make you feel awkward!" She turned to April. "When you told me that you had moved in with Erica, I..."
Smiling, April took Erica's hand. "It's perfectly fine, Mrs. Hargrave..."
"Please!" she asked. "Call me Heather!"
"Alright... Heather." April corrected herself. "I was just saying, you shouldn't feel bad. After all, our relationship is a bit weird! We're taking things slowly. OK, glacier-like!" she joked. "We've spent most of the last month living together, and we aren't even actually dating yet. We're both living in Erica's apartment, but we sleep in different rooms and I have my own bathroom."
Franchesca stood up. "You two are too young to even know what dating is! Take my word for it, you're dating! You're just doing it wrong!" At that she headed toward the stairs. "I'm going to run a duster around Erica's room and check the toiletries. You all carry on!"
"And I have a kitchen to clean." Theresa said rising. "Fred? You're helping!"
Fredrick raised an eyebrow. "Me? Help in the kitchen? My, what an auspicious day this is!"
As the two left the living room, Erica, Faith and Heather laughed. April could only look on confusedly.
"You have to understand," Erica explained through her laughter, "Cook doesn't let anyone touch anything in her kitchen! I once tried to rinse my own breakfast bowl and nearly got beaten with a wooden spoon!"
Faith's eyes widened. "Oh! And remember that time you got up early and tried to surprise her by making breakfast for her? God! I thought she was going to have a coronary!"
"So what happened?" April smiled at the cute stories. "Did you make a disaster or something?"
Giggling, Erica recalled the incident.
Moving down the stairs as silently as she could, Erica could barely see as the winter overcast had blocked even the moon and starlight. Reaching the bottom step, she turned and saw the faint glow filtering in from the living room windows.
Creeping into the kitchen, the girl turned on the light once the door had swung shut. Proud that she'd managed to get up, sneak downstairs, and make it to the kitchen unseen and unheard, she knew the rest would be a cinch. She'd settled on eggs over easy, bacon, and toast when she learned that it was Cook's favorite breakfast. Working quickly, she knew that Cook would get up and come down to spoil the surprise in less than an hour.
It had taken her three weeks to get a look in Cook's purse and read her ID to learn when her birthday was. Now it was here, January sixteenth, and Erica was going to do something nice for her.
Within twenty minutes, she had the bacon frying and the eggs cooking up nicely. Feeling smugly proud of herself, she had finally stopped paying attention to every creak and groan from the old house that had caused her to jump with fright, each one making her think Cook had caught her before she was ready. Turning around, she nearly dropped the spatula and gasped in fright. "Faith! What are you doing up!" Erica whispered.
"I got cold!" she muttered. "You were gone! What are you doing, anyway?"
Slowing her breath, Erica laughed quietly. "Today is Cook's birthday! I'm making her breakfast in bed!"
Grinning sleepily, Faith asked, "May I help?"
"Shhh!" Erica scowled. "You'll wake her up before I'm ready!"
"Sorry!" Faith whispered. "So, may I?"
"Sure, just watch the bacon while I get the milk out." Erica ordered.
Faith looked at the bacon. "What am I watching for?" she asked innocently.
Having learned to make eggs and bacon for her mom, Erica rolled her eyes and looked sideways at her cousin. "It's a good thing you're rich!" she remarked. "'Cuz otherwise when you grow up you'd starve!"
Crossing her arms, Faith glared at her. "It's not my fault! No one will teach me how to cook!"
Seeing she was upset, Erica sighed. "I'm sorry, Faith. Here! I'll teach you!" She spent the next five minutes explaining what she was doing and why. "See? It's not really that hard!"
"It's actually kinda fun!" Faith giggled. "I wish Cook would teach me! I'll bet she knows about a million recipes!"
When the eggs finally finished cooking just right, Erica carefully scooped the two onto the fine china plate. Putting two pieces of bacon next to them while Faith buttered the toast, she smiled. "I wish we had a flower to put on the tray."
"Why?" Faith asked.
Erica explained as she placed a glass of milk next to the tumbler of orange juice. "It's sort of tradition. When you take someone breakfast in bed, you're supposed to put a flower on the tray, sometimes in a tiny vase."
Getting an idea, Faith smiled. "I'll be right back!" she whispered as she put down the half-buttered toast and took off through the house.
"Faith! Quiet or she'll hear you!" Erica yelled with a whisper. Grumbling, she finished the toast Faith had abandoned and, after putting it on the tray, picked it up and started toward the kitchen door. "Great! Now that I can actually use her help, Faith isn't here!" she said to herself. Turning around, she backed into the door and pushed it open slowly with her behind.
Making her way through the dining room and then the living room approaching the stairs, Faith came dashing out of the library and nearly ran into her. "Careful!" Erica barked, wincing at her own loudness.
"I made this real quick!" Holding something out, Erica could see it was an origami rose.
"That's perfect, Faith!" Erica smiled. "Put it on the tray next to the plate!" After she did, Erica started slowly stepping toward the stairs.
"Let me go ahead of you." Faith insisted. "That way I can open her door!"
"Good idea!" she whispered. Erica had to admit, having Faith's help made things easier and a lot more fun. When Erica reached the top of the steps, she whispered, "Go down the hall and see if her door is still closed." Watching Faith silently jog ahead of her, she carefully walked down the long hallway. Noticing the tray was starting to get heavy and not wanting to drop it, Erica put it down in the middle of the hallway to rest her arms.
"Erica? She's still asleep!" Faith whispered as she came jogging back down the hall.
She stopped Faith just inches from stepping into the middle of the tray. "No!"
Faith looked down, barely able to see the tray in the middle of the floor. "What's it doing there?" she whispered.
"It got heavy!" Erica explained. "I needed to rest."
"Oh." Faith smiled. "May I carry it the rest of the way?"
"Oh, sure!" Erica grumbled. "I do all the work and then you take it across the finish line!"
"Hey! I made the flower!"
"And I cooked it and carried it all the way up here!"
"So? Just 'cuz you're weak and out of shape and you can't finish the job!"
While the two stood arguing at full volume, the lights in the hallway clicked on. Immediately they stopped talking as Cook came out to see what the commotion was. "What in the world..." She looked down at the two pre-teens and the tray behind them. "Alright." she demanded. "What's this?"
Erica looked down at the floor and fidgeted with her fingers. "It's um... breakfast for you?" she answered.
Smiling broadly, Faith shouted, "Happy Birthday!"
Theresa was flummoxed into speechlessness as Fredrick, Franchesca, and Heather all ran out into the hallway to find out what was going on.
Dancing in the hallway, Faith sang 'Happy Birthday' while Erica turned red. "I... I made you breakfast in bed. I wanted it to be a surprise!"
The family's cook was touched, until realization set in. "You mean you've been fiddling around in my kitchen? Without supervision? You could have burned the house down!" Her shouting caused Faith to stop singing before reaching the end of the song.
Tying her robe as she approached, Heather tried to defuse the situation. "Cook, I think Erica was just wanting to show how much she cares for you." Looking down at the rapidly growing girl, her heart ached at the sight, knowing that far too soon her fantasy would have to come to an end... one way or another. "Erica sweetie, how did you know what to do?"
She stammered out a reply. "I... I... used... I used to... make it for my mom."
"I made the flower for you, Cook." Faith noted shyly.
Her mother smiled. "That's nice, dear. It's a lovely flower!"
"I helped cook the bacon, too!"
Theresa blustered. "Your mother may have taught you how to cook, but she didn't teach you how to cook in my kitchen!" Looking down at the tray, she saw its contents. "Is that eggs?" she barked.
"Y-yes ma'am." Erica half smiled. "I... I know they're your f-favorite... eggs over easy!"
"Yes, but what am I to do about eggs now that you've used them? I needed those for the soufflé tomorrow!" Seeing hurt in the girl's eyes, her anger melted instantly. "I'm sorry, dearie. It was a lovely thought. Thank you!"
Picking up the tray, Erica offered it to her. "H-happy Birthday... Theresa."
Taking it, she smiled down at the girl. "That's Cook to you, dearie! Now if you'll all excuse me, I have a breakfast to go eat!"
Erica smiled while Theresa headed back towards her own room, thinking about going downstairs to clean up the breakfast dishes when she heard Cook call out from down the hallway.
"And don't you dare touch those dishes!"
The three laughed along with April as they finished telling the story.
Wiping a tear of laughter out of her eye, Erica composed herself. "I swear, right when she said that, I was just thinking of doing the dishes for her! It was eerie! Like she could read my mind or something!"
When at last the laughter died down, Heather stood slowly. "Well, I think this would be a good time to turn in. I'll leave the sleeping arrangements up to you three. You're old enough to figure something out." Turning to her niece, she hugged Erica tightly. "I'm so glad you came home, sweetie! We've all missed you... very much!"
Returning the embrace, she felt like she was a little girl all over again. "Thank you, Mamma. For everything."
Releasing her, Heather turned to April. "I'm so glad you found one another, my dear. It is truly wonderful to finally meet you!"
Blushing, April smiled and, unsure, extended a hand. "It's lovely meeting you, too... Heather. Thank you for taking care of Erica growing up."
Still full of guilt for having sent the daughter of her heart away and not adopting her as she felt she should have done, Heather wiped a tear from her eye. Pushing April's hand aside, she took the young woman into a gentle hug before silently turning to the daughter of her body. "Faith?"
"Mamma?" she replied. Tears threatening to break free again, she ran into her mother's arms. "I'm sorry, Mamma! So sorry! I... I love you!"
Her mother cried with her. "It's OK, dear! I understand! I love you, too."
Handing a tissue to each of them once they'd separated, Erica let them dry their eyes before saying, "Goodnight, Mamma." While her aunt headed up the stairs, Erica looked at April, then Faith. "Well, what are we going to do?"
"I'm sleeping here." April took charge. "You two can go to your rooms!"
"I... I have an idea, if you two aren't comfortable sharing a room yet." Faith offered. When the two looked to her, she turned to Erica's guest. "You and I could share my room, April. It's a king with lots of space."
"It's up to you." Erica said, looking at April.
Unsure, she looked at Faith suspiciously. "I get the feeling you just want to keep an eye on me to make sure I don't sneak into Erica's bed tonight."
Shaking her head, Faith swallowed hard. "A-actually, I was thinking it would be for you to keep an eye on me." She looked at Erica longingly. "So you know that I won't." Looking at April once more, she gave her a hesitant hug and stepped back. "I... I'll leave it up to you two. Goodnight." Faith left quickly without even giving her cousin a goodnight hug.
The two now left alone, Erica sighed. "Well, it's your call."
She looked at Erica and smiled. "I could always follow your aunt's advice and sleep with you!" She put her arms around Erica's neck.
Pulling her down to sit on the couch with her once more, Erica took a breath. "April, about earlier. I... I need to tell you what happened."
"What did happen up there?" April looked at her quizzically. "When you two came down, you both looked... um..." She stopped and just let Erica explain.
Taking April's hands in hers, she sighed. "She... she kissed me. Like a serious kiss." she closed her eyes. "Like a lover's kiss."
"I see." April answered. "And you let her?" When Erica simply nodded in reply, she probed further. "Did you kiss her back?"
"Yes." Erica replied ashamedly. "She stopped it from going too far, though."
"How far did it get?" she asked, half not wanting to hear the answer.
"Just kissing... but..." Erica stammered out the rest. "...I couldn't... I tried..."
Using a finger, April lifted Erica's gaze up and placed it on her love's lips to still her stammering reply. "You don't have to say it. I know. You couldn't stop. You didn't want to. And you didn't want her to stop, either. Did you?"
She shook her head and screwed up her face, trying to hold back the tears. "No! I failed you! I don't know how she can do this to me... make me forget everything! Make me forget you." She took another breath, slowing the flow of shameful tears. "She just makes me feel so... beautiful."
April ran her fingers through Erica's hair, sighing in exasperation. "We talked about this, E. You need to work this out with her. You can't move forward until you know what you really want." She leaned in and kissed Erica's cheek sweetly. "You know I love you, and I know you love me. I can wait. I've waited six years... what's a few more days?"
"April... I... I know what you're saying, but I know what I want." Erica looked into her lovely gray eyes. "Faith and I don't trust each other alone. We can't resist the temptation." Looking away, she began justifying their agreement. "Besides, what kind of future could we have? Never able to live the lives we would want together? It just... it wouldn't work! We've decided to just never be alone... never let temptation have a chance to make us do something we'd all regret."
"You can say that all you want E," April lectured, "but the heart wants what the heart wants. What are you going to do if circumstances force you two to be alone with one another? Run away? What happens when your aunt passes? You'll have to spend a lot of time with her going over the details. Are you just going to forsake that and let Faith deal with it? Alone?"
Shaking her head, she sighed and looked at Erica. "You need to resolve this. I'll be here 'til it's settled. If that's only as a friend, then that's what I'll be." Pulling Erica up to stand next to her and embrace her lovingly she added, "And if it's as something more... I'll happily be there for that, too!"
"I love you, April." Erica smiled. "Always have and always will."
"And I love you, Erica." April sighed. "Always have and always will!"
The two hugged and started up the stairs together. Looking around, Erica shook her head as they did. "God, it's so funny. I only lived here a year, and it's like I never left... like I've always lived here."
Snaking her arm around Erica's waist, April smiled. "From a certain point of view, Erica never lived anywhere else. She was born and grew up here."
"I'm really messed up, aren't I?" Erica laughed and put her arm around April's shoulder.
"Most definitely!" April quipped.
Reaching the top of the stairs, Erica saw their bags in front of her bedroom door. "So then... where are you going to sleep?"
She spiraled out of Erica's arm and walked backwards toward the bedroom. "Where I'm sleeping isn't the question. Where you're sleeping is." Nodding toward Erica's bedroom door, she smiled. "Come on! We'll take the bags in your room, unpack, and then figure things out!"
Following April into her old room, even as Erica stepped in, it was as though time had turned in on itself. The room was the same as the first day she'd arrived, not a single thing different or out of place. Entering and closing the door behind her, Erica pointed up at the gaslights along the wall. "Those are what I was telling you about! Real gaslights! I remember how scared I was that first night when the power went out! Then Fredrick went around and lit all the lamps and it was like turning back the clock a century!"
Opening her suitcase, April took the contents out and opened a drawer. "Um... honey? I think your aunt forgot something."
Walking over, she looked inside and almost died of embarrassment. "Oh, Lord!" She withdrew a pair of panties she'd worn when she was thirteen. "I wonder..." Erica walked over to the wardrobe and drew the doors open.
"Is this the way to Narnia?" April joked as she looked at the dresses, skirts, and blouses in Erica's wardrobe. "Wow! You had good taste at thirteen!"
Erica pulled down one of her old school uniforms and showed it to April. "I asked Mamma to get me these for home-school. I wore them every day! It made me feel proper and elegant, like the daughter of a wealthy aristocrat!"
Nodding in approval, April raised an eyebrow. "Well weren't you?"
"I suppose I was, in a way." Erica admitted. Returning the dress, she closed the wardrobe. "There should be room in my bottom drawer. I almost never used it." Moving back to the dresser, she opened the drawer and froze.
Reaching in, she pulled out Faith's nightgown, the same one she'd worn her first and last nights in her adopted home. Smelling it brought back a flood of memories. "I forgot. I put this in here that last morning. I... I guess no one's been in the drawers since." She smiled wistfully and set it aside. "Here... there's plenty of room."
Starting to put her clothes in the drawer along with Erica, April saw her reaction to the child's nightgown. "It's Faith's, isn't it?"
Without pausing in putting away her things, Erica nodded. "I borrowed it from her that first night. It's the first nightgown I ever wore."
She picked it up and sniffed it and suddenly could see the best friend she once knew. "It smells like you... I mean, like the old you I remember."
Nodding without looking at April, Erica finished unpacking. "I know." Standing up with a fresh nightgown and underwear in hand, she walked over to her toiletries bag and retrieved her toothbrush, paste, and mouthwash. "Did you want a shower before or after me?"
Shaking her head, April got out her flannel pajamas. "No, I'm bushed. I'll take mine in the morning."
"Breakfast is at seven." Erica noted with a shrug as she headed for the bathroom. "Plan accordingly."
"Seven!" April shouted. "What is this, a farm?"
Turning and leaning out of the bathroom door smiling at her, Erica shook her head. "No. It's an estate."
"Oh!" April responded snootily. "Well then, We guess We shall rise at six to shower ourselves and get properly attired to dine!"
"To break our fast, April." Erica joked back. "If you're going to poke fun, at least do it right!"
Twenty minutes later, Erica entered her room once more, hair wrapped in a towel and a terrycloth robe covering her nightgown. "April?"
"Yea?"
Flipping her head over, Erica rubbed her hair. "Could I get a hand?"
"Sure, babe." April replied, setting aside the book she was reading and padding over to the vanity, pausing to stare at it as Erica took a seat. "Wow! she exclaimed. "Just how rich is your aunt, hun?"
Erica tossed her towel into the bathroom, shrugging. "I actually don't know. Very, I guess. The only thing she ever told me was that she had more than she could ever spend and not to worry about it."
"I guess!" April noted, antiques being a hobby of hers. "Honey, this vanity is worth more than my car!"
Shrugging, Erica just brushed out her hair. "She had it since before I came to live here. It might be part of the house's original furniture. I really don't know, though. It might be a family heirloom. Her parents were wealthy, too."
Picking up the brush, April took over. "And she let a twelve year old use it?"
"It's not like I was carving my initials into everything!" Erica giggled. "I was a good girl!" She smiled at April's reflection in her old vanity where she'd first and last seen her mother's youthful reflection.
Switching to a heated curling brush, April mused. "So what did twelve-year-old you do for fun around here? I know there's no cell service and you didn't get your computer 'til you were thirteen."
"In the fall we went on hikes a lot." Erica answered as April brushed and dried her hair. "Once winter set in, we played in the snow and inside, mostly with Faith's toys until I got some of my own for Christmas. By the time spring got here, I was moved into this room and mostly entertained myself with books and writing my first stories. Then summer came and Faith, Mike, and I spent a lot of time playing outside." Erica sighed as she remembered how wonderful that last summer had been. "When I turned thirteen, I spent a lot of time on my computer... looking for you."
"Summer five years ago?" April rolled her eyes. "God! I think I was in my Goth stage then! Can't you just see me, dressed in all black, brooding about everything? I think even if you had seen a picture of me, you wouldn't have recognized it!"
"I bet you were still adorable, though!" Erica flirted. Turning to look in April's eyes, she sighed. "I tried so hard for so long to find you and reach out to you. I... I really needed you. I wanted you to tell me what to do. I knew I wanted to be a girl... I guess I always was inside and just never knew what it was, but I couldn't keep it up much longer. I... I wanted you to tell me... tell me what was the right thing to do."
April turned Erica back around and continued brushing. "If you had asked me then, I would have told you to go take a long walk off a short pier! I was so angry with you then. I thought you'd forgotten about me. It's what my parents kept telling me... that that's why you never called or wrote. Done!"
She stood and wrapped her arms around April's neck. "Thank you! And I could never forget you, even if it took me a lifetime to find you!"
"Aww! Aren't you so sweet!" Kissing Erica on the nose, April sighed. "Now I think you should go across the hall and see what's what."
Terror crept across Erica's face. "I... I can't! April! I don't want to! I... I want to stay here, and I want you to stay here... with me!" Seeing April about to object she added, "We don't have to do anything! Not even kiss! I just... I want to be near you." Looking down at her feet, she sighed wistfully. "Maybe wake up in each other's arms?"
She shook her head. "That sounds really nice, but you're just not ready, E."
"We can just leave!" Erica suggested. "Just... just go back to the apartment! Eventually I'll get over it!"
April laughed. "It's not a cold, Erica! It's love! You can't just 'get over it'! You have to face it... learn from it... understand what it really is... and then you'll know what to do. I won't need to tell you. You'll just know. Then I'll know what I need to do."
"Can't I just wait a few years? It's probably just hormones!"
"For six years, Erica? Through puberty... twice?"
She nodded in grudging acceptance. "Right. 'You can't run from trouble..."
"...there ain't no place that far!'" they recited together.
"Right!" April nodded. "Now go! I'm going to take my book downstairs and relax on the couch. I'll see you in the morning."
Untying her robe, Erica slipped it off and started for the bath to hang it up.
"Whoa!" April cried looking at Erica's white satin nightgown. "You going in dressed like that? She'll jump your bones before you can close the door! Hell, I might!"
Blushing, Erica looked at her nightgown. "Too much?"
"Put the robe back on!" April ordered. "Jeez! Slut!"
"Runaway!"
"Tranny!"
"Junky!"
"Hey! Low blow, E!"
Slipping back into her robe, Erica tied it closed. "You wanna talk about low blows, I need to tell you about Chet Mansfield sometime!"
April shook her head. "Somehow I get the feeling I won't like this story..."
"Depends on your point of view." Erica noted. Turning around to show herself she asked, "Better?"
"Much." April kissed her nose again. Turning serious, she said, "Now go talk to her. If you need me, you know where I'll be."
After April left, Erica walked around her room for several minutes gathering her courage. Steeling herself, she opened her door. Looking across the hallway at the door that used to be her own, she froze in fear for a moment before she forced herself onward.
Erica was determined to face Faith, stand strong for April's sake, and prove that no matter how much her body craved her cousin, her heart could conquer the desire with April's love.
Unfortunately, her heart was on desire's side.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Faith heard a faint knock on the door. "Come in, April." she said dismissively, thinking that she had decided to keep an eye on her through the night after all. Walking back into her bathroom, she called back over her shoulder. "I'll be out in a few, alright?"
Entering as Faith closed the bathroom door, Erica waited patiently. First sitting at Faith's vanity, she decided that if she really wanted to test herself, she should sit on Faith's bed. Moving quickly, she sat down and waited again. As she lingered, she began to think that maybe it was too explicitly sexual to be sitting on Faith's bed in nothing but a robe and nightgown. She was about to move back to the vanity when Faith came out.
"April, I was hoping we'd get a chance to talk." Faith began as she came out, not looking at her guest. "I wanted to tell you that Erica and I..." Looking up, and seeing who was sitting on her bed, she jumped. "Erica!"
"What about us?" Erica asked shyly.
Quickly tiptoeing over to her, Faith lowered her voice to a conspiratorial whisper. "Erica! Are you crazy? What are you doing here!? I thought we agreed being alone together was a bad idea! What if April comes in?"
"She sent me here." Erica stated calmly. "What were you going to tell her?"
"I..." Faith moved closer to Erica, stopped, turned away, and wrapped her arms around herself. "I was going to tell her that you and I were OK and that she didn't have anything to worry about. Now I'm not so sure."
Erica slowly stood and walked up behind Faith. "Hold me?" she asked.
A tear of frustration rolled down Faith's cheek. "I... I can't! Don't you understand, Erica? If I do... I... I don't know what will happen!"
"Neither do I," Erica replied softly, "but I know I missed you, that I love you, and that I want to hold you and know that everything is going to be OK between us." She placed her hand on Faith's shoulder. "Please?"
She turned around slowly. They were still very close in height, Erica only half an inch taller. Looking up slightly into Erica's beautiful green eyes, Faith tried to speak, but words wouldn't form. Her mouth moved inarticulately as she was overcome with desire.
Erica slowly opened her arms and wrapped them around Faith, pulling her in tightly. "I... I missed you." she whispered.
Tears flowed down her cheeks like running water. "I missed you too, Erica! Oh God, did I miss you!"
They stood there holding one another for what seemed like hours. Neither of them speaking, they just reveled in the comfort of each other. Finally, Faith's tears stopped and she stepped back. "I... Erica I... I still want you." she warned. "You should go."
"Never." Erica replied. "I will always be here for you, Faith. As God is my witness, I will."
Pulling back, Faith's face hardened. "I... I don't believe in God." she said. "Not anymore."
She stepped back and sat on Faith's bed. "Why? Because life got hard?"
"No! Because if God was real and loved me, He wouldn't let me feel like this!" she nearly shouted.
"Really?" Erica challenged her point. "You think that God just goes around making people feel whatever He wants them to feel? If that were true the whole world would be one giant paradise! But it's not! It's messy, complicated, and full of mistakes! But they're our mistakes Faith! Not His! He doesn't condemn us... we condemn ourselves!"
"See? That's why I can't believe in Him! If He is real, he's a sadistic bastard that likes watching us suffer!"
Shaking her head sadly, Erica almost laughed at how similar Faith's words were to her own thoughts when she was twelve. "We make our own choices, Faith. You, me, Mamma, April... everyone. We chose to be kind or cruel, generous or greedy, hateful..." She paused to rise and walk over to Faith. "...or loving." She leaned in and kissed Faith tenderly.
Moaning as she felt Erica's lips once more, she slid her hands around her cousin's waist, then pulled back, carefully taking Erica's robe tie into her hands. Pulling slowly, she undid the knot and released it, letting Erica's robe fall open. Sliding her hands up over Erica's shoulders, she pushed the robe gently off, letting it pool at Erica's feet. Looking down, she drew in a breath at the stunning beauty before her. "Oh God, Erica! I... I don't think I can stop myself! I... I want you too badly!"
Erica took Faith's hands. "Then I will. Where you're weak, I'll be strong. Where I'm weak, you can be strong." Erica moved them over to sit on her bed. Looking into Faith's eyes, Erica smiled. "I love you, Faith. I want you to be happy, and God loves us both and wants us to be happy. If I have to let you take me tonight to prove it to you, I will. Gladly."
Looking at her cousin, the smile she saw warmed Faith's heart. She wanted desperately to just push Erica down on her bed and take her, use her, and love her. When she tried to move though, she found she couldn't. No matter how badly she wanted to, she just sat there and stared at Erica, frozen and powerless.
Tempted to leave, Erica paused and sat on Faith's bed, extending a hand to her. "I... I want to talk to you... about April."
Feeling a pang of jealousy, Faith pushed it aside and took Erica's hand. "Um... OK. What about her?"
Trying not to hurt Faith's easily bruised feelings, Erica chose her words carefully. "I... I love her, Faith... and she loves me. So much so that she risked losing me to you, made me come to you tonight, just so I could be sure of what I really want."
Swallowing against the fear, Faith looked at the beautiful girl sitting on her bed in nothing but a sexy nightgown. "So then... what do you want?"
"You." she began. "Your happiness, most of all. I... I couldn't stand if I hurt you... but... I love April, too. I know she loves me and don't want to hurt her either, but it seems that no matter what I chose, one of you gets hurt."
Sighing sympathetically, Faith looked down at her sadly. "It's OK, Erica. You should chose April. Mamma would never let us be together, anyway. I... I'll be alright. I mean, we'd still be family."
Gripping Faith's hand, Erica shook her head. "It's not that easy, Faith. I love you and want you, just as much as you do. That's not just going to just go away, for either of us. If it was, it would have happened years ago."
Tempted to drag Erica into bed to finish what they'd started earlier, to cross that line, Faith made herself pull her hand away. "No, Erica. You can't. We can't. You can have a future with April. A family. If we..." Collecting herself at the thought of Erica and her having a family of their own, Faith forcibly shook the image from her mind. "We just can't. I can't let you lose April! Not again! I love you too much to let you lose her!"
"Either way, I won't lose April." Erica shook her head happily. "She's already told me that she'd be there for me no matter what I decided, even if it was just as a friend. So really, it just comes down to what I really want... and if you still want me. I... I know being with me would make life harder, for us both, but if you're willing to endure the hardships, then so am I. We can move to another state! We could get married in nearly half the country where it's legal! I... well, I'm still legally male... for now... so even that can't stop us!"
"Erica!" Faith whined. "You're forgetting about Mamma! She'd never give us her blessing! We'd move out of state and never see her again! You just got her back! I can't do that to you!"
Sighing fatefully, Erica saw that Faith wasn't going to budge. Suddenly a thought that ran through her head that made her giggle slightly. Before she realized it, she found herself saying, "Too bad we..."
Faith sat next to her quickly. "Too bad we what?" she probed.
Shaking her head dismissively, Erica smiled. "Nothing. Just a stupid idea. It would never work... it never does."
Now almost begging, Faith began to insist. "Please! Just tell me!"
Rolling her eyes, she sighed. "OK, fine! I was thinking that if you could be happy with having me only when I visit, knowing the rest of the time that I'm with April, and if she could be happy that way, it would 'magically' solve everything. See? Stupid idea, huh? People try it all the time, but it never works out. Jealousy's a real thing!"
Without the slightest hesitation, Faith nodded. "OK. I agree."
Smiling at her, Erica sighed. "I'm glad you understand. I knew you would never seriously consider..."
"No." Faith interrupted. "I mean, I agree to the idea of sharing you with April... if she's willing, that is."
Stunned at the sudden reversal, Erica shook her head. "No, Faith! Weren't you listening? People have tried this before! It always ends badly! No! Besides, April would never agree to that!"
"How do you know?" Faith debated. "You thought I would disagree."
Thinking how to argue that point, Erica paused before answering. "Because she loves me and..."
"...wants you to be happy." Faith interrupted. "So much so she risked losing you to me by making you come here tonight. Sounds pretty selfless to me." Changing tactics, Faith pressed the point. "She obviously isn't freaked out at the idea of you and I being a couple, even though we're cousins. Do you think you picking me over her would make her stop loving you?"
"No." Erica answered hesitantly. "That's why..."
"So what makes you so sure she wouldn't agree?"
Unable to answer, Erica shook her head. "Faith... you know I love you. I know you love me, too. Do you still want me?"
"Of course I do!" Faith admitted freely.
"Then forget that stupid idea of mine and..."
"It's not a stupid idea, Erica!" Faith continued her argument. "It's a wonderful idea! We should do it! Don't you see? It's the only way you'll ever be truly happy! I can't let you give up April for me... but I couldn't stand the idea of hurting you by rejecting you... and I'd be happy to see you happy with her!"
"It won't work, Faith." Erica sighed. "Eventually you'd resent April's time with me... or April would resent my time with you."
Silence hung between them for almost long enough to become awkward. Eventually Faith asked, "Will you hold me like you used to?"
"Of course!" Erica smiled as she lay down on the bed and waited while Faith crawled up next to her so they were facing one another. Extending her hand until Faith took it, the two intertwined their fingers together and smiled back at each other happily, if somewhat nervously as though they were thirteen all over again and sharing their last night in bed together.
Lowering her voice to a whisper, Faith asked, "If I tell you something, do you promise not to get mad?" Seeing Erica nod and smile at the shared memory, Faith shook her head. "No you have to promise!"
"OK, I promise not to get mad!" Erica whispered.
"I think you're beautiful! I'm glad you came to me tonight!"
"Faith? If I tell you a secret, do you promise not to tell?"
"I promise! What is it?"
"It's really nice to be in bed with you again. You're kind, and beautiful, and you give me a feeling like I'm the most desirable woman in the world! But remember you promised not to tell anyone... especially not Mamma!"
"I wanted to tell you something." Faith continued. "I know why you needed to go away. I've wanted you almost the entire time I've known you. I've dreamed about you. Felt you taking me... loving me... and I you. Sometimes, before you got your own room, I would lie awake at night and hold you as you slept and pretended we were married. You've been the star of nearly every sexual fantasy I've ever had. I think that's the main reason why Mamma sent you away." Faith gripped Erica's hand a little tighter as she scootched closer. "I am. Curious, that is. About being with you. About what it might be like."
Erica's smile never faltered. "Faith, I love you. More than I could ever say."
Noticing that this time Erica didn't say 'But', Faith's breath caught. "Erica... please don't tease! I... I don't think I could stand it if you rejected me!"
"Who says I would, Faith?" Erica responded breathily. "I meant what I said. If you want me, and taking me is how you want me to show you how much I love you... and how much God loves us, then I'm yours to have."
Remembering something from the night her mother split them into separate rooms, Faith took on a serious tone and changed the subject slightly. "I've wanted to tell you something else for some time. Remember when I told you that I turned you on and you said you weren't a perv? It hurt that you said that... because I was turned on and it made me feel like a perv for it."
"Oh, Faith!" Erica sighed. "I'm sorry! I was a stupid little girl and thought that you'd hate me if I admitted the truth... that I was attracted to you... and still am. I was so scared that you'd get mad at me again!"
Scootching closer, Faith was now so close that their clasped hands were touching both of their breasts at the same time and their faces were only inches apart. "I remember that night you promised never to leave me."
"Sometimes I wish I hadn't." Erica admitted. "But then I never really left you... we were separated. I no more left you willingly than I left April willingly. Besides, I think in the end it was for the best. We both needed that time. To see if what we had was real or just..." She paused and leaned in until her lips were less than an inch from Faith's. "I think five years is long enough to tell that what we feel isn't just a childish crush."
Leaning forward to close the gap, Faith let their lips gently brush against one another. After a moment she smiled. "I like this! I... I think I could be happy just having you like this every once in a while. Just to know that you love me this much... trust me this much. That I could take you and nothing or no one could stop me. That for this moment, you're really my Erica. You have to ask April about your idea. The worst she can say is 'no'."
Sighing in resignation, Erica nodded. "OK... I'll ask." looking up with a smile, she added, "You know what?" Seeing Faith shake her head, Erica continued. "This... what we have right now? It was worth what it took to get us here. God does know best!"
Rolling Erica over, Faith cuddled up against her back, her arm draped over Erica's slender waist and her hand nestled between Erica's perfect breasts, gripping her nightgown like she used to do. After a short time they fell asleep like that, Faith waking several times just to see that it wasn't a dream, that Erica was really there and loved her. This is enough... and it was worth it! she realized, running her hands over Erica's smooth and perfect body. Relishing the sensuous way her cousin responded to her touch as she slept, Faith knew then that no matter what else she did in life, that loving Erica was not only right, but the way things were meant to be.
Just before six, Erica awoke out of habit. Faith was sound asleep and she didn't want to disturb her, but knew that their night had to end. She knew now what she wanted out of a relationship with Faith. It had never been just about sex; it was about intimacy. The closeness, shared affection, and love... the true romantic love they had for one another... sweet and beautiful. Turning over to face her, Erica luxuriated in the feel of Faith's arms wrapping around her waist and her legs intertwining with her own.
"Faith." she said just above a whisper.
Her eyes slowly fluttering open, she smiled and pulled Erica tightly against her, letting their bodies do what they yearned for. "Good morning, love!" she moaned before kissing Erica slowly and sensuously once more.
Closing her eyes, Erica relished the adoration Faith showered on her. Having had major body image issues for years, it was beyond flattering to have a beautiful young woman so desire her that even the fact that they were related couldn't stop her need to have her. When Faith's tongue slid past her lips, she yielded to the intrusion willingly, reveling in the feel of unbridled passion while Faith's hands roamed up and down her back delicately, making every nerve in her body tingle with desire.
Feeling her breasts press firmly but delicately against Erica's, Faith moaned through her nose and began running her hand down over the slightly younger woman's rear. Caressing the skin through the satin panties that were all that stood between her fingers and Erica's blissful release, the nightgown having ridden up in the night, she knew then how desperately she wanted Erica. More than ever in her life. Pulling her hips tightly up to Erica's with their intertwined legs, she was nearly overcome with the passion.
Suddenly aware of how serious they were getting, the two stopped and looked deeply in one another's eyes. Each seeing the desperate desire of the other so obviously, but knowing if they went any further they would cross an invisible line from cousins to lovers, they both made themselves turn away from the burning ache in their bodies that was screaming for them to cross that line, consequences be damned.
Backing off slowly, Faith continued to caress Erica's exposed skin and kissed her gently once more, letting the fire in her belly die down to a slow ember. When as last Faith's craving for Erica's body began to be sated, she slipped her legs free and pulled her arm back to herself. "I... I want more, but I can be happy with just this... for now!" she smiled.
Erica's breath was still deep and deliberate, each intake of air trying to stem the tide of need in her own body. "I know what you mean, Faith." she gasped. "I... I've never... never been so tempted to let someone have me as I am right now! I want you to take me! To use me for your pleasure!"
"But?" Faith intuited Erica's hesitancy.
"No... no buts, Faith." she smiled. "If you want to take me, you can. I'll... I'll let you. I love you that much, even though I want to wait."
Tempted nearly beyond her ability to resist, Faith began to move forward again, ready to roll Erica on her back, strip her naked, and spend a few hours learning every sensitive part of the woman's body. She would have too, had it not been for the voice in the back of her head screaming at her to stop... to not hurt her beloved Erica that way.
Sighing frustratedly, Faith moaned her need into submission. "No... I, I just can't do that... not yet, anyway. You... you're not ready." Smiling wickedly, Faith slipped her body up against Erica's sensuously once more, sliding her legs up and down Erica's smooth skin. "But the second you are, nothing is going to stop me!"
Smiling back at her, Erica loved the feel of Faith's tempting flesh against her own. "Good! I promise, you'll be the first to know!" Pausing a moment, the young woman's smile turned mirthful. "OK, maybe the second!" she giggled as she pressed her own body up against Faith's, letting the smooth satin of her nightgown that covered her breasts slide over Faith's chest once more, causing her cousin's body to shudder in need. Running her fingers through Faith's blonde curls slowly and seductively, Erica was barely able to make herself stop.
Disentangling from Faith's loving embrace, she slowly slipped out of the bed and retrieved the discarded robe from where Faith had let it drop to the floor. "I love you, Faith." she said just above a whisper. "More than words can ever express! When I'm ready, I fully intend to show you just how much!" At that, she slipped out the door and back to her own room.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Erica waited outside her bathroom door. "Hurry up, April! We're going to be late!" She heard the water turn off and the shower curtain open. Waiting a minute, she saw the door open as April exited, wrapped in a towel and smiling gaily as she pulled off the shower cap.
"There!" she said. "Bathroom's all yours!"
"Oh, thank you so very much, dear!" Erica quipped. "We have about five minutes to get downstairs and you still need to get dressed!" Entering the bathroom while April dressed, she brushed her teeth, rinsed, and ran out to the vanity to finish her makeup. "Hurry! They'll be here any minute!"
Hearing a knock at the front door made the two pause and look at one another. Racing furiously, April dashed into the rest of her clothes, giggling crazily, while Erica finished her face and touched up her hair.
Standing and heading for the bedroom door, Erica watched April drop her dress over her slender body. Giving her dark hair a flip, it settled into place perfectly, a quality Erica loved, and envied, about her. "Ready?" she asked as April slipped her shoes on.
"Ready!" she cried as she ran over to join Erica at the door.
Exiting into the upstairs hall, they linked hands and smiled at one another. Approaching the top of the stairs, Erica could feel April's arm tense.
"Nervous?" She asked as they started down the stairs.
"Just a lot!" April nodded vigorously.
Descending, Erica saw Brooke and Jenny just taking off their coats and handing them to Fredrick.
Brooke looked up at the two coming down the stairs together. "Erica!" she cried. Meeting the two at the bottom of the steps, she couldn't believe her eyes. She looks... happy! Brook smiled. Opening her arms, she took Erica into a quick hug. "Oh, girl! I missed you!"
Her honorary niece returned the sentiment. "I missed you, too!" Repeating the process with Jenny, she stood back a little. "Aunt Brooke? Aunt Jenny? I'd like you to meet April!"
The teen was hugged by them both before she had a chance to speak. Finally, she turned to Brooke. "I understand you knew Erica's father, Jack."
She nodded solemnly. "I did. He was a good man. My best friend."
Looking at Erica, April smiled. "He must have been. His daughter is amazing!"
Just then, Heather walked in from the living room. "Brooke! Jenny! I'm so glad you two could make it!" she greeted them.
Erica was happy to see the bright shine of the woman she'd known as a child once more. Gone were the sweatpants and simple top. Her aunt had dressed for dinner as she used to.
While Fredrick escorted the five ladies to the dining room, they were joined by Faith, who'd managed to find a simple but elegant black dress in her tangled mess of a room.
"Sorry I'm late, Mamma!" she apologized. "I... I had trouble finding something to wear!"
Taking her seat, Heather shook her head. "We'll have to fix that." she commented.
Hugging Faith, they kissed each other on the cheek. "You look great, Faith!" Erica complimented her.
"Please!" Faith rolled her eyes. "I look like I dragged this dress out of the bottom of my wardrobe... because I did! You two look lovely, though!"
She blushed and said, "Thanks!" while April just smiled.
After they were all seated, Cook came out twice, serving April, Erica, and Faith after Heather and their guests were served. When everyone but Faith looked up toward Heather to say grace, she just looked at Faith with sadness in her eyes.
Shyly, Faith lowered her head with the rest of the table. Then, just as Heather was about to speak, Faith shocked them all as she spoke. "Dear Lord, thank you for the blessings you have seen fit to bestow upon us, and make us truly thankful for them. In the name of our Lord, Jesus Christ, Amen."
Stunned silence followed until Heather smiled and repeated, "Amen!"
Slowly the others followed suit before Erica looked over at her cousin. "Faith! I'm... well... OK, that was a thing!"
Laughter erupted before Heather bade everyone enjoy their meal.
Making small talk through their shared meal, Brooke looked across the table at April sitting next to Erica, with Faith between Erica and her mother; the girls' usual places switched. She watched them for some time, eating and talking, obviously at ease with each other, and envied them their comfort. Finally, after being unable to tell just by looking, Brooke had to say something.
"Erica, I was wondering something. Are you and April..."
Looking at her father's best friend with a puzzled expression, Erica couldn't resist the temptation. "Are we... happy? ...healthy? ...boinking?"
Stunned as Erica cracked a half grin and everyone else laughed, it was then that Brooke finally saw so much of Jack in Erica, even though she looked nearly the same as the girl's mother did the day they'd met. "No, you clown! Are you a couple!?"
The two teens looked at one another smiling before they nodded together.
Dropping her fork, Heather had expected their typical long-winded explanation. "When did this happen? Last night you two wouldn't even admit you were dating!"
"This morning, Mamma." Erica said, turning to face her. "Try and keep up!" Seeing her aunt was not pleased with her flippant answer, Erica elaborated seriously. "Sorry, Mamma. This morning, April and I sat down together and talked about our future together... what we wanted... what we needed... and eventually we decided it was time to take the next step."
Heather dabbed her mouth with her napkin. "Well, what changed?"
"Coming here." Erica answered. "Seeing you all." She looked at Faith sitting next to her. "Settling some issues. It's one of the main reasons why April talked me into coming home. To find out where I stood, if I even still had a family, and what I really wanted out of life."
"Well, I guess I owe a debt of thanks to April then." her aunt remarked. "Didn't you want to come home, sweetie?"
"Frankly, I... I thought you didn't want me to come home." Erica answered nervously honest. "I thought that maybe you only wanted... um... Eric... to come home. I... uh... I thought he was the only one you would accept in your home."
"Are you happy?" Brooke interrupted bluntly.
Turning to her, Erica smiled. "So happy that I'm glad of every part of my life! I wouldn't change a thing that got me here!" She reached across the table with her hand to her father's best friend. "I... I wanted to thank you for all that you did for me while I was growing up here, Aunt Brooke. It meant more than you'll ever know... and I know it was really hard for you to do."
The girl's answer brought a chill to her spine, having come so very close to something Jack had told her often over the years that she'd known him.
Reaching under the table, Jenny took her wife's hand, squeezing it to get her attention. When Brooke turned to look at her, she said very simply, "Told you so!"
When at last the six finished dinner, they retired to the living room as usual. Faith took a seat next to her mother, while Erica and April took the couch. Brooke sat in the other loveseat with Jenny nearly sitting in her lap, smiling like a Cheshire cat.
Turning to Erica, Heather asked, "So, what are your plans you two? Will you be staying long?"
Looking at April, Erica then looked back to her aunt. "Well, we only have two weeks before we need to get back. I want to show April all the things around here that I remember so fondly. The town, the woods..." She perked up. "Do the Dempseys still have their annual Halloween party? That's only four days away!"
Faith and her mother looked at one another before Heather answered her. "Well sweetie, we haven't gone to any of them in the last four years. It... it just wasn't the same... without you. I honestly don't know if they still have them or not. I asked them to stop inviting us so we wouldn't have to keep declining."
"That's too bad." Erica sighed. "I really would have liked to see them and introduce them to April. They were all a pretty big part of my life here... almost a second family."
"I see Mike Dempsey every once in a while." Brooke offered. "Now that he's eighteen, he's running a lot of the ranch for his parents. They've been hard pressed to keep things going these last years, the economy hit everyone pretty hard around here, but I know they still have their yearly Halloween party." Seeing Erica's curious look, she explained. "I work at the market. Not enough customers to keep my salon running full time."
"Oh!" Erica exclaimed. "So he comes in to pick things up. How is he?"
"Getting along. Sad, but... keeping busy. Did you hear about he and the Wilks girl?"
"I told her." Faith noted.
Thinking a moment, Heather opined, "Erica dear, I'm sure that if you showed up at the party with April, the Dempseys would be happy to have you, costume or no!"
"Especially your boyfriend!" Faith smiled mischievously.
"Ugh!" Erica rolled her eyes. "Are you ever going to let that go, Faith?"
"No!" she replied exuberantly.
"Well, if we do go, we should get costumes." Erica noted. "Otherwise we'll look awfully out of place. Does Miss Fuller still have her shop?"
"Janet died last winter, dear." Heather answered, looking away. "She had a heart attack when she was alone in her shop. No one even knew for a few days. It was her son that found her, poor boy."
The mood threatening to turn somber, Faith got an idea. "Erica? Would you be willing to try something a little... unorthodox?"
"Probably not." April replied for her.
"Oh, come on!" Faith pressed the point. "You want to take April to the Halloween party, don't you?"
Her cousin nodded tentatively. "Yes... but you have a funny look in your eye... like that time you told me you saw an eagle's nest up in that tree and talked me into climbing it when you knew I wouldn't be able to get down!"
April turned to Faith. "Why on Earth would you do that?" she asked.
"She wouldn't tell me where she put my copy of 'Rebecca of Sunnybrook Farm'!" Faith justified herself.
"Well you wouldn't stop calling me Rebecca!" Erica countered with a smile.
"Girls!" Heather interrupted. "That's enough! Faith? If you have an idea, then please share it so we can see if it's workable... and appropriate!"
Faith laid out her idea. After some disagreement and discussion, the four finally agreed how to proceed while Brooke and Jenny just listened.
Four days later, they rode together in Heather's limo and talked about events in Erica's life after she came to stay with her aunt. Some of it was reminiscing, the rest was telling April just how precocious young Erica could be.
"You hit him in the nuts?" April said shocked.
Hiding behind her hand, Erica answered embarrassedly. "For the hundredth time, I didn't mean to! He was like two feet taller than me!"
April stared at Erica, her mouth hanging open. "You stood up to a bully for him? So is that why this Mike guy was crushing on you?"
Shaking her head, Faith grinned. "No, he was doing that almost from the start! I still say she did it because Chet insulted her date!"
Wanting to crawl under the floorboard to hide, Erica blushed heavily. "I was never anything but polite to him!"
"Well, you must have done something to push his buttons, E!" April joked.
"She stood up to Chet for him, then wouldn't dance with anyone else... the tease!" Faith ribbed her cousin. "I warned her! He followed her around for the next year like a lovesick Irish Setter!"
The car pulled off the highway and onto the Dempsey's driveway, lurching and making Faith bump her head on the top of the car.
"Shit! My hat!" Faith exclaimed.
"Language, dear!" her mother warned.
"Sorry, Mamma!" she said as she tried to get it back on, not being helped by the car's jarring movements.
Finally, the vehicle came to rest behind others parked around the Dempsey's yard. Faith reached out her hand and waited for Erica to give over her cell phone. Dialing the number she got from Brooke, Faith waited while it rang.
"Michael? Oh, Mike! Hi! This is Faith... Faith Hargrave." A long pause went by, Faith mouthing the words, "I can't understand anything he's saying!" Finally, she interrupted. "Yes... Yes... Mike... hold on a sec." Handing the phone to Erica she whispered, "Talk!"
"No!" Erica mouthed back at her, eyes wide in surprise.
"Erica! You're the only one that can understand what the heck he's saying!"
Taking a deep breath as she heard him saying "Hello?" over and over, she closed her eyes. "Mike? No, this isn't Faith. It's... um... it's Erica."
The entire car heard him shouting over the phone.
"Yes!... It's... Yes?... Well I... huh? Mike! Take it doon, man! Let a bhean óg get ah word in!" Finally getting him to quiet down, Erica lowered her voice. "Yes, it's great to hear your voice too, Mike. I was wondering, are you having your Halloween Party tonight? Uh-huh... well... Mike! Will ye' let me talk? I was wondering... Mike! Mike, let me finish! I was wondering if I could drop by with Aunt Heather, Faith, and a guest. Yes... alright. We'll see you soon! Bye!" Closing the call, Erica glared at Faith. "This was your plan all along, wasn't it? You knew he couldn't say no to me!"
Faith pressed her fingers to her breast as her voice turned smooth as butter. "Who? Me? Really, Erica... you do have a suspicious mind!"
Letting Fredrick know they were ready, they waited for him to open the door. Erica got out first, looking around the ranch and smiling as she took in a breath. Hay, horses, pumpkin pie, wood smoke, and frost! Some things never change! As the rest followed her out, they made their way to the Dempsey's front door, knocking on it just after hanging up with Mike.
Mike Dempsey was frantic. "Mamaí! Do Ah look a'right?"
Emma looked at her son like he'd lost his mind. "Are ya daft now? Ya look th' same as ye' did when ye' got dressed! How good kin ah pirate look? Will you go help yer daid oot in th' barn now? Before he gets so steamin' that he kinna walk straight?"
"But ye' dun understand Mamaí..." he replied as he heard knocking.
She held up her hand, forestalling further debate. "Git th' door an' then ya kin explain!"
He grumbled while heading toward the door, figuring that someone had slipped on the ice near the pumpkin patch again and needed to come in and sit for a while by the fire. "Oi, mate! Quit yer bangin'!" he shouted as the person knocked a second time. Flinging the door open, he started in on the intruder immediately. "Go on then..." His voice stopped cold as he saw who'd been knocking. "Jaysus!"
His eyes looked her up and down. He would have known her no matter what costume she wore, but the blue gingham dress and her hair in braids made her look not much different than the day they'd met when she'd worn a similar costume.
"Dia duit, Mike. Would ya be mindin' some company?" Erica smiled through her acquired brogue as she pushed past him.
Standing clear of the door in shock, he watched Erica enter, only vaguely aware that she was followed closely by a woman he didn't know in a princess gown, Faith in a nurse's uniform, and Heather in a Glinda costume only slightly different from the one she'd worn six years earlier. Closing it after them, he was still stunned speechless when his mother came storming out.
"Who will it be now?" she asked as she came from the kitchen. When Emma looked up and saw her guests, she drew in a sharp breath. "Heather, Faith! Erica! How in th' name o' Jaysus air ya!?" She ran forward and hugged Erica briefly and then turned to Heather. "Kin ya' be stayin' a bit fir a céilí a'fore ye' be headin' fer th' party?"
Heather smiled warmly. "Certainly, Emma! A visit would be nice!"
While the five ladies headed for the living room to chat in front of the fire, Mike caught Erica's arm. "Sure it's grand ta' be seein' ya', girseach!"
"Aye! But Ah'm nay a girseach na more, Mike! Come set wi' us! Ah want ya ta' be meetin' someone!"
"Who's that now?" he asked, following Erica with a curious smile.
Heather, Faith, Emma, and April took their seats as Erica walked up to stand in front of April. "Mike? Mamaí? Ah'd like ya' ta' be meetin' April!"
A perplexed expression ran over his face as he looked from Erica to April and back. After a moment, he started to remember the girl Erica had always talked about and his eyes grew wide. "Ya mean yer April? Th' girseach ya' lost back in Cali?"
"The same!" Erica beamed. "We reconnected a few months back and Ah wanted ta show her where Ah call home! Ah couldn't very well do that wi'out showin' her yer place! Ah must'a spent more time here than anywhere else but mah own gaff!"
"It's good ta' be finally puttin' a face ta' th' name!" Mike extended a hand.
Tentatively, April took his hand and shook it gently. Looking to Erica she asked, "Girseach?"
Sitting beside her, Erica took her free hand. "It means 'young girl'." Turning back to Mike, she could see him eyeing their joined hands. "Mike? Why don't you set? April? Kin ya' scootch doon?" Making room, Mike sat next to her.
"Where ya' bin, cailín?" Emma stared at Erica. "Ah haven't seen ya since ya' ware a chiseler!"
"Away ta' scoil, Mamaí." she answered. Mike's mother had always been so sweet to her that she'd started calling her the Irish word for mother shortly before she left. "Ah went ta' study writin'. Aintín Heather made sure'n Ah had th' best oideachas Ah could be gettin'. It ware grand!"
The Irish woman looked next to her at Heather ashamedly. "Ah feel Ah be needin' ta' apologize ta' ye, Heather. Ah'm scarlet ta' say Ah was belivin' th' things that people ware sayin' aboot ya'."
Heather took Emma's hand. "Pay it no mind, Emma. I'm just glad Erica got the chance to do what she wanted with her life!"
Nervously, Mike tried to change the subject. "So... how ware scoil then?"
"Ah ware aduantas, but after a time it ware class! Ah learned sah much!"
Tapping her on the shoulder gently, April looked confused. "I feel like I'm missing most of the story here and getting more than a bit lost! What's 'oideachas' and 'aduantas', honey?"
"Oideachas is an education." she answered easily, but struggled to define the other term. "Aduantas is hard to explain. It doesn't really have a word in English. It's the nervous feeling you get when you're someplace new, like when I came here, or when you moved to Concord with me?"
"So will ye' be stayin' on, A stór?" Emma asked hesitantly.
Erica bit her lip and looked at April. "Ah be wishin' Ah could, Mamaí... but we kin only be stayin' a week. Ah have ta' be gettin' back."
"Ah see." Emma pursed her lips.
"Ah'll be comin' back more, though!" the girl smiled. "Ah been missin' me gaff somethin' fierce! Ah'll be back fir Nollaig, an mebe Thanksgivin'! Will ye' be here then?"
Smiling back weakly, she nodded. "Aye, we will, bhean óg, but Ah think Mike had been hopin'..." she looked to her son.
"Ach, Mamaí!" Mike blushed. "Ah always knew Ah had nay chance wi' her! I told ye tha' she ware aerach!" he looked at Erica. "An' it looks like she already found her A rúnsearc!"
Looking back and forth between Mike and April, Erica noticed April's confused look and blushed. "Beloved."
"Oi!" Mike exclaimed. "How did ya be knowin' that one, bhean? Ah never taught ye' that! Ah thought Ah had ye!"
"Ah ware at scoil, ya plank ya, nay kippin' down! Ah studied Gaelic!"
"Dun be cheesed off!" Mike was visibly impressed. "Ah ware jus' askin'!"
Smiling at the exchange, Faith glanced at her watch. "Shouldn't we be joining the party, though?"
Emma stood up quickly. "Ach! Ah nearly firgot! Mike? Will ya be takin' 'em over then?"
Nodding, Mike stood up. "Aye, Mamaí. That I'll do."
When the four ladies made their way to the door, Emma hugged each of them. When she got to April, she stopped and eyed her carefully. "Air ya good ta' mah Erica?" she asked.
April smiled shyly. "I... I'd like to think so, Mrs. Dempsey."
Taking her into a tight hug, Emma sighed. "Then Ah give mah blessings ta ya! An call me Mamaí!" Pulling back, she admired April's good looks. "Ya' certainly air a catch! Ach! I was wantin' ta ask ya... what air ya dressed as?"
Looking over at Erica, April smiled. "We got our costumes last minute. I'm supposed to be Princess Ozma, but I don't think anyone will get it!"
Erica smiled as she turned to follow Mike out the door. "That's OK, A rúnsearc! We get it!"
The five of them entered the barn, Erica looking around to see that nothing had changed much other than there not being as many people present as the last time she'd been here. That last Halloween had been bittersweet for Erica. She'd decided that if it were to be her last Halloween as a girl, she would go full out and dressed as a fairy princess. It had also been the last time Faith had worn a costume, choosing to go as pirate wench, while her mother had been a twenties flapper.
Mike at last spotted his father, drinking a glass of Guinness. "Daid!" he called out, waving his arm.
The older Michael turned and his face fell ashen. "Jaysus!" he whispered. Putting down his beer, he crossed the room, his face masking fury. "Mike!" he barked quietly as he stopped in front of his son. "What'r they doin' here!"
"Daid! Look again!" he retorted.
Michael looked once more at Faith and Heather standing with a strange girl, then noticed that someone else was standing behind them. Craning his neck, his eyes grew wide as Erica came out from between them.
"Dia duit, Dadaí!" Erica greeted him. "'Tis good ta be seein' ya!"
"Erica!?" Looking from her to his son, he could see that Mike was happy they were here. Gathering his wits, he swept the girl into his arms. "'Tis good ta see ye too, me girseach!" Standing back after putting her down, he regarded her. "But ye nay be me girseach na more, air ya? Ya've grown inta a fine and darlin' bhean óg, ya have! Deadly ta be sure! Ach! Ah bet ye broke aboot a million hearts ba noo! Not th' least o' which is me own Mack!"
"Daid!" Mike whined. "Didn't Ah tell ye..."
"Hush now!" his father chided. Straightening up, he regarded the four ladies. "Ah... Ach! Ah ware fiery cheesed at yer aintín Heather fir sendin' ye away!" He looked at Heather who looked away ashamedly, still embarrassed at the pain she'd caused.
The girl he'd known for a year touched his arm. "Don't be, Dadaí! She ware good ta me and got me th' best oideachas Ah could get!" Looking back at her aunt, she smiled. "Ah owe her everythin'!"
Michael ran his hand along the back of his neck. "Ah... Ah guess Ah be owe'n ya an apology, Heather. Seems... Ah... seems ye done a'right by th' bhean óg." He stuck his hand out toward her.
Smiling, Heather took his hand gently. "Forget it, Michael! All water under the bridge! I'm just glad to see my baby home again!"
Clearing a table for the four ladies, Michael returned to his guests, leaving them to re-connect with many of the people they'd once been fast friends with. As Erica sat next to April, her smile melted when she saw someone approaching she didn't expect to see. "Oh, good Lord." she said frostily.
Chet kept his distance and just nodded. "I... um... I just came to pay my respects, Mrs. Hargrave... Faith... Erica." His eyes drifted to April and he grinned. "I don't believe I know this young lady though." Stepping up to her, he extended his hand. "Chet Mansfield!"
Smiling, April regarded him cautiously as she shook his hand. When he tried to kiss it, she pulled it back sharply and smiled mischievously. "Careful, Chet! Erica might slug you again!"
Fuming at his attempt to pick up April, Erica glared. "Goodbye, Chet!"
His hands dropping down in front of him, he bowed slightly and wordlessly made his way back to his mother.
Heather looked at her niece. "Sweetie, you really should apologize to him."
Shaking her head as she took the cup of punch that Mike brought her, Erica refused. "No way, Mamma! Now I'm thinking I didn't hit him hard enough!"
"Since when did ye start callin' her Mamma?" Mike looked at her curiously.
"Since th' day Ah left fir scoil." she replied, April taking the cup of punch from Erica's hand. "She may not be ma mother, but she ware as good ta me as Mamaí is ta you." When the next song began, Erica smiled at him. "Shall we? Fir old time's sake?"
Mike smiled as he stood and offered to help her stand. "Surely!"
The two making their way to the dance floor, Faith wistfully watched Erica happily dancing with much greater skill than she'd shown the last time she was in the Dempsey's barn. Turning, she saw April doing the same until April looked back at her, making her blush and turn away. Feeling a tap on her hand, she looked over to see April smiling at her.
"I wanted to thank you." April said before taking a drink.
Faith blinked. "Me? For what?"
"For coming up with this idea, so Erica could show me this part of her life that I missed." She paused and took another drink. "And for everything else. You know? Not making her have to choose?"
Looking back toward Erica, who seemed to be truly enjoying her time with Mike, Faith sighed. "You'd better love her!" she warned. "Hurt her, and you'll regret it!"
"Always have... and always will." April replied simply.
As the evening wore on, Erica sat between April and Mike while his father told ghost stories, smiling, laughing, and basking in the glow one gets sharing time with those you love. When they left that night, Erica kissed both father and son on the cheek, with April and then Faith behind her.
Mike stopped Erica just as she was about to leave. "Um... Ah want ye' ta know, if'n ye' ever be needin' anythin'... well... Ah'll always be a friend ta' ye'." Looking over at April, he nodded. "An' tha' goes fir ye', too!"
"Ya be like mah deartháir, Mike!" Erica hugged Mike warmly. "Th' same goes ta' ya!"
Walking to the car together, April turned to Erica. Before she could even ask, Erica simply said, "Brother." and kept walking with a smile as April stopped and stood in stunned silence.
Turning as she continued walking backwards toward their car, Erica's smile showed more than a hint of a seductive grin.
April started walking toward her, tilting her head. "Oh! Somehow I think that this trip is going to be one to remember!"
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Sitting at her vanity, Erica brushed out her hair. She loved that the braids she'd taken out had given her hair a cute wavy look. She'd braided her hair before her shower, blown it dry, then taken the braids down and brushed it out, just like the night of the Halloween party. "April? What do you think?" she asked, turning to look toward the bathroom.
April stood up from the old fashioned sink, her toothbrush still in her mouth, and looked out the door at Erica. "'Bout what?" she asked innocently around a toothbrush and a mouth full of toothpaste.
"My hair!" Erica groused. "God! Don't you even notice?"
She turned back to the sink to finish brushing and spit. Once her mouth was clear, she retorted, "Honey, I think it looks beautiful! I just didn't know what you were talking about is all!" returning to the sink after.
Coming up behind her, Erica leaned against the opposite wall, looking at April in the mirror. "I was thinking about braiding my hair sometimes when we get back home, just overnight. I like the way it looks after I brush it out."
"I like it!" April noted. Turning around, she walked up to Erica and wrapped her arms around her waist. "But then, I like everything about you!"
Draping her arms over April's shoulders and around her neck, Erica smiled. "I hope you had a good time tonight!"
She nodded. "Uh-huh! It was nice having one last dinner with just Faith and Heather... just the four of us. I feel like this last week has been one giant string of family reunions after another!"
"Anxious to get back to Concord tomorrow?" she asked.
"Don't get me wrong," April explained. "I love your family, and I'll miss them, but I'm also looking forward to some time by ourselves for a while."
The woman she held tried to look innocent. "Oh? And why is that?"
Pursing her lips, April's eyes half closed into slits. "Oh, you think you're so funny, do you? Well..." At that her gentle hold on Erica's waist changed to a firm grip as she dug her fingertips into Erica's tender flesh.
Erica jumped and squealed as April began furiously tickling her. "No! Stop it! April!" Laughter rang out from their shared bathroom and into the bedroom as April pursued the fleeing teen. Turning to face her, Erica took a defensive stance. "No! April? No tickling! Now, stop it!" she said, still trying to keep the mirth from her voice.
She slowed and held her hands up. "Alright, I'll stop. In exchange..."
"In exchange for what?" Erica asked hesitantly as she dropped her guard.
"A kiss!" April demanded.
Blushing, Erica sat on her bed and lowered her voice to a whisper. "I thought you wanted to wait until we got back?"
She smiled wickedly as she closed in on Erica. "I changed my mind. I want our first real kiss to be right here... in your bedroom... with your cousin across the hall... your aunt just downstairs... and Cook, Franchesca, and Fredrick right next door!"
Laughing a little, Erica's blush deepened. "April! Mamma could walk in any second to say goodnight!"
"And?"
"You can be just terrible sometimes, April! I don't want Mamma to see that!" Her smile grew wider as April continued to get closer.
"So... you're telling me 'No', then?" she asked.
"No! I mean, no, I'm not telling you 'No'... I mean..." Erica rolled her eyes and glanced around the room as though someone were about to catch them.
Carefully lowering herself to sit on the bed next to Erica, April slid over until their hips were touching. Reaching out, she pulled gently on Erica's shoulders to turn Erica to her, a hand then drifting up to caress Erica's wavy auburn hair, gently pushing it out from in front of her face. Leaning in seductively, she let her fingers trace around Erica's ear and down her neck, making her oldest and best friend lean toward her. When their lips were less than an inch apart, April closed her eyes and sighed out, "I love you."
Erica melted at the words. She only managed to get out, "I love..." before their lips joined for the first time. Caught by surprise, Erica's eyes shot open wide as she drew in a sharp breath through her nose, letting it out in a nasal moan; her eyes gently closing.
She'd wanted to wait for Erica to return the sentiment, but the moment the girl's breath hit April's lips she couldn't hold back her desire any longer. Plunging forward, she savored the moment she'd been dreaming about for over half a decade, held back only by Erica's uncertainty, and then by her own desire to make their first kiss as memorable as possible.
While the kiss lingered, April opened her mouth and let the tip of her tongue slip out and tenderly caress Erica's lips into opening like the petals of a flower. She moaned at the deliciousness of their intimacy, delicately probing the feel of her love's lips, teeth, and tongue. Gently she slid her hand back around Erica's neck and ran her fingers through her tinted hair, trapping her love in an erotic embrace.
Erica's mind exploded with feeling. Fear at being walked in on, joy at finally getting to be with her long lost love, desire to make April feel just as good as she was making her feel, exhilaration to see just how far this first kiss would go, and lusting for it to go a lot farther than it probably would or should. She mirrored April's hand, running her own up and into her love's dark hair. Relishing the feel of it, she found her free hand being taken by April's, their fingers interlocking in a romantic expression of what their hearts desired... to be one.
Slowly April pulled back, letting their first of many kisses end, as all things must. Their eyes opened as their lips parted, a smile creeping across both their faces as Erica exhaled dreamily.
"Oh, April! That was..." She tried in vain to put a word to the perfection of the moment. Deciding that no one word sufficed, she strung together a collection of them. "Magical! Incredible! Beautiful! Hot! Breathtaking! Lovely!" She took a deep breath and sighed. "Perfect! I love you! Always have..."
"...and always will!" April finished with her. Pulling back, she looked at Erica who seemed to be lost in a dream world. "Hey! Are you OK? Do you need a breather? Smelling salts? Stiff drink?"
Laughing, Erica leaned forward, giving her another loving kiss just like their first, taking her time and relishing the feel of their intimacy. Finally pulling back, she answered, "No! I'm fine! More than fine! I'm..."
"...in love?" Heather asked. She smiled as she watched her niece turn toward the door in surprise and quickly move away from April.
"Mamma!" Erica yelled. "Wha... wha... we... um... that is, we..."
"It's alright, sweetie!" Heather laughed. "I knocked, but when no one answered, I let myself in. If you want privacy, you need to lock the door!"
"How long were you standing there, Mamma?" Erica asked as she started flushing red.
"Just a short time is all. I think I came in at 'Breathtaking'. I'm sorry, sweetie! I didn't mean to interrupt!" Heather started to move out the doorway to close it behind her. "Why don't I go wait downstairs a while..."
Jumping off the bed, Erica stood next to her bedpost. "No! It's fine Mamma! We were just... um... we were just finished!"
Still standing in the doorway, she looked at Erica and sighed. "It's OK, sweetheart! I know what it's like to be young and in love! Just... here. Give me a quick kiss goodnight and I'll head off to bed and then you two can get back to..."
Standing up, April grabbed a pillow and her book. "It's alright, Heather. I was just getting ready to go down and read for a while."
"Are you sure?" Heather looked at the two with concern. "I just want you to know that I really am OK if you want to stay together in Erica's room. She's an adult and this is her home. You don't have to keep pretending on my account! I may be a lady, but I'm a woman, too!"
"There's no need, Heather! It's fine! Really! I just..." April looked over at Erica who still stood by her bedpost turning beet red. "Right before you came in, Erica and I just shared our first real kiss. That's all!"
"What?" Heather blinked dumbly. "Your... but you've been here now for close to two weeks and I thought... well, since you were dating now..."
"What?" Erica looked up. "You thought we... Mamma! In my old room?"
"Well naturally, sweetie! I didn't think you'd be sneaking off out of the house..." Heather paused. "Well wait a minute. Do you mean to say that... April? You've been actually sleeping on that old couch every night for the last two weeks?"
"Well, naturally!" April echoed her. "Did you think I was sneaking up here and then sneaking back down every morning?"
Heather crossed her arms defensively. "Well... quite frankly... yes!"
"Mamma!" Erica exclaimed in shock.
"What did you think, sweetie? That your cousin was born by immaculate conception?" her aunt asked bluntly. Seeing Erica turn even redder and look away, her smile melted as she began to worry. Is this my fault? she wondered. Did making her leave cause her to have intimacy issues?
Gently pushing past the older woman, April went out the open door. "I'll leave you two alone. I think you need to talk about some things!" Turning to Erica, she kissed air at her. "Love you, honey! Goodnight!"
While April headed down the hall toward the stairs, Heather stepped into the room and closed the door behind her. Moving over to the bed, she patted the mattress and waited for an embarrassed Erica to grudgingly sit next to her. "Alright, well I know you know about the birds and the bees, sweetie." She saw Erica bury her face in her hands.
"Mamma! It's embarrassing!" she nearly cried. "You saw me kissing April!"
"I'd assumed you'd done that already, sweetie... and a lot more!"
"How much more do you think we would do, Mamma? April and I have been dating less than two weeks!"
"Yes dear, but you've been in love for much longer than that, haven't you?" Heather asked as gently as she could.
Confused, Erica stood up and paced in front of her. "Yes, but... I mean... a couple should wait until they're married, shouldn't they?"
"Is that what you believe, sweetie?"
"Of course, Mamma!" Erica answered with frustration. She was trying to keep her voice down, but found it increasingly difficult. "You taught Faith and me to follow The Word! It's pretty clear on that point, isn't it?"
"Yes, sweetie." Heather smiled. "It's also very clear that we are all human and all fall short of the glory of God."
"I just... I don't want you to be disappointed in me, Mamma! You're acting like you were expecting me to... to... I want to make you proud of me!"
She reached out and took her niece's hand, guiding her to sit back on the bed. "I am proud of you, sweetheart! Immensely! But I know you're not perfect!" Feeling Erica relax a little, she decided to broach the subject. "Erica, I want to ask you something, and I want you to be honest with me."
"Of course, Mamma. Always."
Taking a deep breath she asked, "Are you still a virgin, dear?"
Erica looked at her aunt with a stunned expression. "Of course I am, Mamma! I've only been eighteen for four months, so I haven't been married yet!"
"Do you think I was a virgin when I met your Uncle Richard at twenty-one? Or even at eighteen?"
From the way she asked it, it slowly dawned on Erica that she might not have been. "Well... I guess I never really thought about it. I just assumed... Weren't you?"
Laughing, Heather put her arm around Erica's shoulders. "Hardly! And there's nothing wrong with that! If you love April, and she loves you, then it's a gift from God! I wouldn't expect you to wait until you had a legal ceremony, unless that's what you both really want." She choked back a tear as she finished her thought. "I... I just don't want you to waste the time you have together. You never know when it will end. Everything does."
She looked at her aunt and nodded solemnly. "You mean, like you and Uncle Richard? Or Mom and Dad?"
"Exactly." she answered, wiping a tear away. "I want you to have all the happiness this world can give you. Don't waste a second of it, sweetheart! Before you know it, it'll all be gone. You can't know when or how you and April will part ways. Maybe tomorrow, maybe in fifty years. Enjoy it! Of course, if it's important to you two to wait, then don't let anyone push you to it." She turned and pressed her forehead to Erica's. "Not even me!"
Smiling, Erica hugged her aunt, feeling like a little girl all over again. "Thank you, Mamma! You're the most wonderful mother in the world!"
"I sincerely doubt that sweetie, but thank you for the compliment just the same!" She kissed Erica on the cheek, stood up, and slowly walked over to Erica's door. "Goodnight, sweetheart. Do you want me to send April up?" she asked, hoping that her talk had made Erica less inhibited.
Sighing, Erica shook her head. "That's alright, Mamma. I'll go down and talk to her for a little bit though, if you don't mind."
"It's fine, dear! I'll make myself scarce! Goodnight!" Leaving for her bedroom, she left Erica's door slightly open.
Standing and stretching, Erica made her way to the door, opening it fully and looking out just as she heard her aunt's bedroom close. Tip-toeing into the hallway, she started for the stairs when Faith's door opened.
"Oh!" Faith exclaimed. "I... I didn't know if you were... I thought you would be in bed already."
"I was just going down to talk with April for a few minutes." Erica smiled. "I'll be going to bed in a little bit."
"Oh, alright." she replied. "Tell her goodnight for me?"
Reaching the stairs as Faith closed her door once more, Erica started down. Quiet as a church mouse, she crept into the living room. Spotting April laying on the loveseat by the bay window, a blanket and quilt covered her legs while she sat up reading her book. The only light was coming from the tiny table lamp behind her right shoulder.
The teen could tell someone had come down the stairs, but didn't turn to look until she could almost feel them approaching. Turning around, she saw Erica smiling at her. "Hey you! I thought you would have gone to bed already." she whispered.
Sitting on the edge of the couch while April set the book aside, Erica took her hands and held them lovingly. "Mamma wanted to have a talk."
"I know." April smiled. "Was it the sex talk?" she joked.
Shrugging to one side, Erica arched an eyebrow. "Sort of, I guess."
Her eyes bulged out as she almost swallowed her words. "Really!? She never had it with you before?"
"No. Oh, I know about sex. Mamma had us do a report on it when Faith reached menarche, but we never talked about love or romance before."
"Oh." April looked distant as her mirth died on her lips. "My mother never had any kind of talk like that with me. Just the sex talk. You know, where they tell you if you get knocked up before you turn eighteen they'll kill you, so use birth control pills and protection?"
"Mamma thought you and I were... um..."
"Yeah, I figured that out!" April giggled. "Ya wanna?"
"Do you?" Erica demurred.
Nearly growling, April wrapped her arms around Erica. "Yeah! I really do!" She sat forward and kissed Erica eagerly on the lips. Smiling as she sat back, she shook her head. "I think we can wait though, for a bit longer. We can talk about it when we get home tomorrow. Maybe then!" She waggled her eyebrows seductively at her lifelong love.
Smiling, Erica found herself slightly frightened by April's libido, as well as her own. "I... I wanted to tell you, I'd always planned on waiting until my wedding night. You know, the whole purity thing? But I... I want you to know that I... um... if you don't want to wait, since I love you and um... I guess I see us eventually..."
April swallowed hard. "Are you saying you want to get married?"
"Well... not right away!" Erica looked away. "I mean... not if you don't want to, but I mean... like... eventually? Yeah... I want to. Don't you?"
Unsure how to answer, April stalled. "Well, I guess I see myself getting married someday... not at eighteen, though!"
Erica's heart raced, sure that she'd misunderstood April's intentions all along and, faced with admitting it, April had never seriously considered spending their whole lives together. Tears started to form as she felt hurt, even though April had only said she didn't want to marry her now. But she didn't say she wanted to marry me later, either. God! I must be crazy! she beat herself up. Why would April want to marry me? She's beautiful and wonderful... and I'm just... me... the crazy girl that thought she was her own mother!
Seeing the hurt in Erica's eyes, April reached out with a hand and turned her face to her. "Honey, I wasn't saying I don't think about it! I think about it a lot! I've been imagining it for years! I think I first did when I was eight and we were playing house, and I've been thinking about it ever since!"
Sniffing to hold back the tears, she looked down at April's lap. "But?"
"But now I understand that marriage is much more important than just a fantasy or a thing to do. Do I want to marry you? God, yes! But will I rush into it without being absolutely certain it's the right thing for us? No. When I marry, it'll be for life. One time, never again. Isn't that what you want?"
"I guess you're right." Erica nodded. "I'm sorry, love. I... it's just... I just wanted to wait to be... um... be intimate... I mean like... um... go all the way, I guess?... until I'm at least engaged. Do you understand? It's... it's important to me."
"Oh." April replied disappointedly. "Um... well, I guess we'll need to do a lot of talking then, because... well... I really want to!" Yawning she added, "But not tonight! You go up to bed. I'll see you in the morning, alright?"
They both leaned forward and kissed just as passionately as the first time. Erica couldn't help but think of wedding bells, white gowns, rice, rings, kissing at the altar, and a lifetime of memories to come with her sweet April. April in turn was thinking of nights full of passion, romance, candles, carnal bliss, and her beautiful Erica lost in ecstasy. Neither knew just how different their dreams were.
Parting once more, Erica sighed lovingly while April growled with desire. Standing slowly, their hands linked, Erica sighed happily and said, "G'night, mah A rúnsearc! Is ceol mo chroí thú! You're the music of my heart!"
Moaning, April smiled while her body squirmed with want. "Goodnight, pretty girl!"
Just as Erica started to walk away, she stopped and turned. "Oh! Faith said to say goodnight, too! I saw her in the hall on the way down here."
"Say goodnight to her from me too, will you honey?" April asked as she picked up her book again. "Love you!"
"Love you!" Erica silently padded up the stairs, stopping once more to turn and look at the beautiful woman who loved her so much before climbing the rest of the way toward her waiting bed.
Opening her door, she slipped in quietly, taking off her satin robe. Draping it over the back of her vanity chair, she crept to her bed and lowered herself into it, relishing the comfort of her white satin nightgown against the peach satin sheets. Scooting back, she lowered the sheet and blanket over herself. Resting her head comfortably against the feather-filled satin pillow that smelled faintly of Japanese Cherry Blossoms, Erica sighed as she closed her eyes and relaxed.
She felt the hand on her hair first, fingers running through it gently and lovingly. Smiling, she purred in contentedness. Slowly, she felt the soft and warm body press against her back, full and perfect breasts pressing against her, taught and firm nipples poking gently into her shoulder blades signaling their arousal. A hand sensuously wrapped slowly over her round hip, down her firm thighs, back up again, then down along her tender tummy.
Tracing small circles through the satin and onto her sensitive skin, the hand traveled lower, threatening to invade the delicate secret between her legs. Her breath caught momentarily, erotic sensations bringing a slight wetness below. Then back up again, the hand slid up between her breasts, gently caressing the soft mounds to either side before finally coming to rest between them.
"April said to say goodnight." Erica purred.
"She is a wonderful girl, Erica." Faith sighed. "I'm so happy for you! I'm also grateful that she said you could be mine whenever you're here."
Snuggling closer together, Erica giggled. "She kissed me, Faith! A real kiss! Beautiful and romantic and loving... It was perfect!"
"Mmmm!" Faith smiled.
"Then Mamma walked in on us!" her voice turning sardonic. "She was nice about it, but thought April was sneaking up to sleep with me and... um..."
"Make love to you?" Faith asked. Erica nodded. "Has she?"
"No. We've only kissed three times, and that was all tonight. I told Mamma I wanted to wait until my wedding night. She said I didn't have to."
"Good! You don't! In fact you probably shouldn't." Faith admonished as she ran a fingertip along Erica's left breast.
Giggling slightly, Erica smiled again. "I think I want to wait until I'm at least engaged. Mamma said that if that's what I want, I shouldn't let anyone tell me it's wrong, even her. Why do you think I shouldn't wait?"
Moaning slightly, Faith pressed her body more firmly against Erica's. "Because God loves us and wants us to be happy! Remember?"
Reaching over her head, Erica ran her fingers through Faith's luxurious blonde curls. "But what if waiting makes me happy?"
"Not waiting would make you happier... much, much happier!" Faith cooed.
"God, your hair is so sexy!" Erica commented. "Faith? Have you...?"
"Done it?" she finished the unspoken question. "Not with a guy... but um..." Suddenly embarrassed, she stopped caressing Erica and rolled over, separating them. "I... I was trying to get over you. I dated some. Two guys and a girl. I never did anything but kissing with the guys, but... um..."
Rolling over to be closer, Erica ran her fingertips along Faith's shoulder. "It's alright, Faith. Whatever you did, it doesn't make me mad or anything. I was gone and you were trying to move on. That's normal and healthy. I'm glad you did, and... um... I'll understand when you find someone you can love. Like I did with April? I'll be happy for you both! You deserve love, Faith. Someone who... deserves you. Tell me about her."
"Who?"
"The girl you dated." Erica said. "Was she pretty? Prettier than me?"
Faith giggled. "No one's as pretty as you, Erica... not even you!"
"Come on! Be serious! I... I wanna know... like... who she was... what you did together. Did you love her?"
She felt the pangs of regret at the memory of it. "I thought I did. Her name was Tamara. I knew her from school from before you moved here. She came out when she turned sixteen. She was sweet, pretty, soft, and gentle... a lot like you. I think that was the biggest problem. She was too much like you. I thought... if I dated a girl like you, it would help me get over you, but all it did was make things worse. She ended up reminding me of you all the time. It made me feel like I was cheating on you... because I told you I'd never love anyone else ever again."
Kissing Faith's shoulder gently, Erica reassured her. "I didn't expect you'd stick to that, Faith. We were thirteen. Back then six years was half a lifetime!"
"Don't I know it! I... don't know how you could stand it, being alone all that time. You didn't even date at all?"
"No." Erica shook her head sadly. "I was... ugly. Not like I am now, at all. Ugly and gross! I stank like a teenage boy no matter what I tried to do!"
Rolling back over to face her, Faith smiled. "You could never be ugly to me, Erica. Even dressed like a boy with short hair and pimples, I would know who you were inside. My beautiful Erica!" She reached out and took Erica's hand. "But you wanted to know about Tam. She invited me to her sixteenth birthday party. Not many people came because she'd come out, but I wanted to be supportive, so I went, we had fun, I asked her out, we went out a few times, and then a few weeks later we started fooling around. Just... touching, you know... intimately. One night we got carried away and she wanted to... um... 'go downtown'. I told her she was my first, so she went slow and it was nice, but..." Faith's voice trailed off shakily.
Squeezing her hand, Erica looked at her reassuringly. "It's alright. Go on."
Faith started to cry. "I... I kept imagining it was you! I let her take me, but in my mind it was you! Afterwards, I cried... a lot. Tam thought she'd hurt me somehow, but I... I broke up with her the next day. I felt so bad. It wasn't fair to her. I... I should have stopped her." Pausing to wipe away a tear, she sighed. "Maybe you're right. Maybe it's better to wait. I just... I want so much for you to be happy, and I know April won't be the same for you as Tam was for me."
"Don't be so sure." Erica whispered. "I... I think when April... I... I don't know that we ever will. I mean, she wants to now, but I want to wait until we're engaged... and I think we might not..."
"It'll be OK." Faith whispered back. She slowly extended a fingertip and ran it along Erica's right cheek. "I know when you two are together for the first time, it'll be beautiful, sweet, and fun. You two are so into one another! I... I doubt I'll even enter your mind... and that's OK. I think it's better that way. It should just be about you two."
"Faith?"
"Yeah?"
"You're a hopeless romantic!" The two teens giggled together before Erica leaned forward and let their lips touch for a moment before becoming more passionate. Letting their hands roam wherever they felt like, the two lost themselves in the sharp pleasures of simple touches and deep soulful kisses until they threatened once more to cross the line from making out to making love.
Mere moments away from crossing that line, the two slowly backed off, Erica sighing. "This is really nice Faith... being close like this... because it's you and sweet and beautiful! I couldn't imagine actual sex being better!"
"Thank you!" Faith said grinning as her breath slowed from nearly climaxing just from Erica's intimate touches. "Now roll over and lets cuddle for a while."
Doing as Faith asked, Erica turned toward her vanity as her cousin slipped up sensuously behind her and they wrapped their smooth legs around one another. Faith's hand once more drifted up over Erica's hip and delicately traced its way up to her cousin's soft bosom, Erica gasping in ecstasy as Faith's hand caressed her taught nipples.
"Cuddling, huh?" Erica giggled. "Seems like someone wants to cross a line."
Faith sighed, desperate for Erica to finish what she'd started. "I... I admit it... I do want to cross that line. Right here... right now! Erica, I want you so badly I ache for it!"
"You know I'll give you whatever you want of me, Faith." Erica admitted before loosing the ability to speak and gasping once more as Faith's hand drifted down her tummy, gently slipping her fingernail just under the elastic waistband of Erica's panties through the satin nightgown. Tracing back and forth without delving further downward, she teased Erica's skin.
"I know you will." Faith cooed in Erica's ear, sending shivers down the younger girl's spine. "Do you know how close you had me, Erica? Another few seconds and we would have become lovers. Did you know that?"
Shivering at Faith's breathy questioning in her ear and the exquisite torture of Faith's hand giving rise to own pleasure, Erica nodded. "Y-yesss... I... I knew! I l-love seeing you th-that happy, Faith!"
"Are you ready to cross that line?" Faith dared as her fingers dipped lower into Erica's silk panties, barely touching a few pubic hairs. "Are you ready to be lovers, my beautiful Erica? Still want to wait until you're engaged?"
Reaching behind her head, Erica ran her fingers once more through Faith's golden locks. "Oh, Faith! I... I want to so badly! You know I do! I love you!" As Faith pressed her breasts into Erica's back, she slid her leg up and down Erica's legs, causing the satin nightgown she wore to rise up while her fingers slid out of her panties and traced up over her hip, hooking a thumb and pushing the tiny garment downward. "Oh, Faith!"
Laughing gently, her cousin slowed her assault. "Still think actual sex can't be better?" she teased. "Want me to show you?"
Nodding slowly, Erica prepared herself for whatever Faith asked of her.
Sliding her hand back up to Erica's breasts, she teased them for a few more moments before sighing and slipping her hand between them as her body relaxed. "Thank you for showing me that I can have you if I want to, love." she sighed. "Fair warning for next time though... I'm not going to stop!"
Erica awoke early as usual, rousing Faith by slowly and sensuously kissing her. When their lips separated, Erica smiled. "I meant what I said last night, Faith. I really do hope you can find someone to love. It would make me so happy for you! Whoever gets you is going to be one lucky person!"
Giggling, Faith ran her hands over her love one more time. "I think I can now... truly love someone, that is. I... I'm really glad you came home... and I can't wait for you to come home again!" she sighed, reminding Erica that their next visit would have no boundaries. Her fingers drifted over Erica's chest, causing the redhead to twitch and moan in pleasure.
Waiting for the sweet torture to ebb, Erica shivered when it finally did. "We're going to try for Thanksgiving weekend, then a long stay over Christmas." Erica sighed as she recovered her composure and returned the favor, letting her fingers drift over the naked body lying next to her and prying moans of desire from Faith's luscious lips. "I'll miss you."
"I think two weeks will be tolerable... it's better than five years! God! April must have gone crazy living without you for six!"
"She did, a little." Erica replied, relenting in her erotic assault, leaving Faith gasping for more. "I think she had an even harder time than we did."
"You have that effect on some of us!" Faith said as she ran a finger along Erica's arm. Sighing, she sat up, the sheet and cover falling down to expose her naked body. Erica rose to kiss her goodbye one last time before she and Faith parted ways once more, Faith closing her eyes and relishing the feel of Erica's fresh young breasts against her own while their mouths and bodies said wordlessly what was in their hearts.
Smiling, Faith took Erica's breasts in her hands through the thin fabric of her nightgown, running her thumbs over the sensitive nipples, making Erica quietly cry out in pleasure. "Just remember. I won't stop the next time I have you in my bed. There will be no lines. I'm going to show you how much I love you... and you'll finally and truly be mine." Slipping silently out of Erica's bed, Faith picked up her robe and slipped it over her arms, tying it as she left her cousin alone once again.
Laying in bed awake for another hour in a waking dream of what might have been... of the road not taken... then in blissful memory of their joyous parting a short time earlier and the eager anticipation of their next meeting, Erica found herself wishing it was already Thanksgiving.
Hearing the household start to wake, she rose and quietly slipped into her bathroom. Taking her essentials with her, she brushed her teeth quickly before getting partially dressed and slipping her robe on. Heading back out into the bedroom, she smiled.
"Good morning, Franchesca!" she chirped. "Busy day!"
"You ain't kiddin', sister!" she replied. "Between you two leaving and Faith going into town with your aunt, I'll be left with a half dozen rooms to clean, not the least of which is her pigsty! At least she won't be moping around here all day in yoga pants, getting in my way anymore!"
Erica pulled out the outfit she had chosen for the return trip as she listened to Franchesca. "I'm sure the fans of 'New Hampshire vs. California' will understand if this week's article is late, Fran."
She stopped making the bed and put her hands on her hips. "What did you just call me, young lady?"
Turning and smiling, Erica headed for the bathroom once more. "Fran!"
When she closed the door quickly behind her, Franchesca huffed, blustered, and finally threw up her hands in frustration. "Well go on, then! Call me what you like!" As she finished making Erica's bed, she smiled wistfully at the diminutive her favorite little girl had given her.
Shortly after breakfast, April and Erica were once more in the entryway, this time saying goodbye as they parted ways with Hargrave House.
"Call when you get in?" Heather asked. "I just don't want to worry, is all!"
Erica hugged her and kissed her on the cheek. "I will, Mamma." She turned to Franchesca and hugged her quickly. "Try not to miss me too much, Fran. Love you!"
Returning the hug she only said, "You be careful, young lady!"
Enveloping Erica in a bear hug, Theresa threatened to squeeze the air from her lungs. "Bye, girlie! Hurry home again, soon!"
"Thanksgiving, barring natural disaster!" Erica laughed. "Love you!" Turning to Fredrick, she smiled shyly and closed in for a gentle hug. "Love you too, Fredrick! Try and stay out of trouble!"
"Me, Miss Erica?" he huffed. "I should think you would benefit from that advice!" As they parted, he genuinely smiled. "Do come back soon!"
While April made her way through the others, Erica stopped in front of Faith. Folding into each other's arms, it was a chaste hug, but both of them felt differently about it and wanted so badly to make it much more. "I love you, Faith!" Erica cried.
"I love you too, Erica!" Faith returned, trying to stem the tide of both tears and yearning.
Pulling back and just holding Faith's arms, Erica smiled. "Remember! God loves us and wants us to be happy! All of us!"
Nodding as she freed a hand, Faith wiped her eyes. "I will! You remember it, too! Drive careful!"
Erica laughed as they released one another. "She will!"
With good-byes done, she and her lifelong love headed for April's car. With a four-hour drive ahead and the weather taking a turn for the worse, Heather watched pensively as Erica climbed into the passenger seat. "Be safe!" she shouted. "Come home soon!"
Closing her door, Erica waved through the open window. "We will! Love you! See you at Thanksgiving!"
The car speeding off down the driveway, the rest started inside to leave Faith standing alone to watch Erica drive away once more. Her heart was sad at watching her go, but the tears that fell silently from her eyes were not of sorrow or grief, but happiness. Happiness for her sweet cousin who had managed the impossible; to find true love not once... but twice... and yet somehow managed to make it all work.
Turning to enter the house once more, the car long out of sight, she thought of her future optimistically for the first time in years. Walking in as Fredrick closed the door behind her, she smiled. "Mamma? I'll be ready to go in a little bit." To town today... then school in January... Erica was right! Nurses are just as important as doctors!
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Erica and April entered their shared apartment in Concord, having just driven the four hours from Hargrave House. Erica had barely put down her suitcase when she felt a hand turn her around quickly. Just as she was about to ask what April wanted she felt the girl's lips press into her own with an urgent need. Surrendering to her own passions, Erica responded in kind, pulling April in close and relishing the feel of their bodies pressed together.
Feeling Erica respond to her advances, April pushed her up against the front door, closing it and pinning the girl in place so she could press all the more urgently against her body. After several minutes of groping and passionate kisses, April's need partially sated, she at last pulled back and looked in Erica's eyes. "Sorry!" she giggled.
"For what?" Erica smiled back. "For showing me you love me?" Gently pulling April close again, she kissed her slowly and romantically. "It could have waited until we were at least unpacked, though!"
Laughing together, April ran her fingers over Erica's cheeks. "I... I just couldn't wait any longer." she admitted. Backing away, and self-conscious of Erica's sensibilities, she took a deep ragged breath as her smile evaporated. "But, you want to wait."
"April, I... we need to talk."
Fear spreading through her whole body at those words, April turned away. "You're... you're going to leave me for Faith. Aren't you? You changed your mind and only want her." she exhaled, hugging herself.
"No!" Erica exclaimed. "April! I could never leave you!"
Not really listening, April started picking up her suitcase. "It's alright." she lied. "I... I understand. We can still be friends! I told you that..."
"April!" Erica shouted as she stormed in front of her oldest friend. "I said I'm not leaving you! I'll never leave you! I love you!" Lowering her voice, she gently took April's suitcase in hand and lowered it to the floor before taking her love's hands. "I just meant that there's some things we need to talk about. I promise I do not want to break up with you! Ever!"
Nodding rapidly, April took a breath and calmed her emotions. "O... OK."
"But first," Erica asked with a smile, "can we unpack? I need a shower!"
Mirth slowly spread between them before they both started to laugh. After a moment, April looked away embarrassedly. "I'm sorry, Erica. I... I guess I'm just a little insecure about..." Her voice trailed off, knowing that Erica understood her meaning.
Nodding, she sighed and backed away. "Second thoughts?"
"No!" April denied. "I... Erica, I could never make you choose! I don't want you to have to!" Looking at their joined hands, April was near to tears.
Seeing the fear in April's eyes as she looked away, Erica smiled and leaned down until their eyes met once more. "Hey! I love you! Come here." Erica led them both to the large plush couch occupying the middle of the living room. Sitting down, she waited until April joined her.
When after a moment Erica didn't say anything, April finally looked up at her. "What?"
Smiling, Erica shook her head. "I... I want you to know something, OK?" Taking a moment as she watched April nod in understanding, Erica took a breath. "I want you to know that, if... if I had to make a choice, I would choose you. OK? I decided that on the way here. It's what I really want!"
Looking away and blushing, April smiled weakly. "I'm not so sure."
"Well I am!" Erica stated flatly. "April, I love Faith. She helped me see who I really am... and loves me for just being me! But you loved me before even I knew who I was... when I was 'orphan boy Eric'... and when you found out I was Erica, you still loved me, and I never stopped loving you!" Pausing to let that sink in, she concluded, "So you see, if I had to choose, it wouldn't even take a moment to decide. I'd... I choose you, April."
Smiling slowly and shyly, April looked into Erica's eyes and saw her lifelong friend was telling her the truth. She could always tell. Wrapping her arms around Erica, she nearly cried at the beauty of the girl's love. "I... I'm sorry, Erica!" she lightly sobbed. "I... I should never doubt you!" Holding each other a moment in silence, she eventually pulled away to look her in the eyes again. "You don't need to choose, Erica! I... I'm happy that you and Faith can find happiness with each other! You both need each other so badly, I could never stand in the way of that!"
Sighing happily, Erica looked into April's eyes and also saw the honesty in her oldest friend. "Thank you!" she murmured. "Um... I guess now is as good a time as any to talk about what I wanted to say." Gathering her nerve, she closed her eyes and took a breath, but opened them to look April in the eyes as she spoke. "Faith wants to... um... go all the way... the next time we see each other... at Thanksgiving."
Perplexed, April furrowed her brow. "I... I thought you wanted to wait."
Nodding and looking down at their still joined hands, Erica shrugged. "I do, but... well... I've been doing some thinking since my talk with Mamma last night." Suddenly looking up with eyes wide, she gasped. "Mamma! I forgot to call her and let her know we're home!"
Laughing, April shook her head. "OK, you get a reprieve! Call your mom! I'll go put my things in the laundry! But after that..."
"After that I promise to explain!" Erica smiled.
Faith was walking through the living room when she heard the phone ring. Moving to pick it up, she saw Fredrick heading her way. "That's alright, Freddy! I'll get it!"
"As you wish, Miss Faith." he intoned with a nod and a vague smile, glad that the family was whole once more.
Picking up the handset on the old rotary phone, Faith cleared her throat. "Hello?"
Smiling at the sound of her voice, Erica lit up. "Faith! It's Erica!"
"Hi!" she replied. "Couldn't stand to not hear my voice for two weeks?"
"Ha ha!" Erica retorted as she watched April eyeing her with a sly grin as the young woman carried her bags toward the laundry for the maid to do the next day. "No... well, that's not true! Yes, I can't stand missing you that long, but I was actually calling to let Mamma know we're home safe."
"Oh, I see." Faith smirked. "Well then, I'll let Mamma know."
"Let me know what, dear?" Heather asked as she entered the room.
"Oh!" Faith jumped in a start, her mind racing over her flirting with Erica, afraid that somehow her mother knew just what she was thinking at that moment; thoughts which were decidedly unfamilial toward her cousin. "Mamma! Oh! It's Erica! She called to let us know they're home!"
Looking at Faith, she could see the tells of deception. More certain than ever that Erica and Faith had become intimate following their reconciliation and they were hiding it behind Erica's apparently chaste relationship with April, she cocked an eyebrow before answering. "Oh good! May I talk to her a moment, dear?"
Handing her mother the phone, Faith gulped in fear. Does she know? she wondered. "Here." she almost stammered.
"Hello?" Heather began. "Erica, sweetheart?"
"Mamma!" Erica cried in surprise, about to say something sweet and romantic to Faith. "Faith and I were just... um..."
"Yes, sweetheart." she answered, not waiting for the lie. "I just wanted to let you know that I'm glad you're home safe and look forward to seeing you and April over Thanksgiving! We all are!" she emphasized, watching Faith blush.
Blushing herself, knowing what Faith wanted to do over the holiday, Erica swallowed hard. "Um... us too! Can... can't wait!"
"We can't wait to see you then, as well!" Heather echoed as she watched Faith shyly look away. "Did you want to talk to Faith before you go, dear?"
"N... no, Mamma." Erica stammered. "That's OK! We already said our good-byes!"
Cupping her hand over the mouthpiece, Heather looked at her daughter sympathetically. "Faith dear, is there anything else you'd like to say... to your cousin?" She intentionally added the last part as a reminder for her daughter as to just who Erica was to Faith.
Nodding almost shamefully, she desperately wanted to hear Erica's voice just once more.
"Faith wants to say goodbye, sweetheart." Heather said, giving the lie to Erica's last statement. "I love you, Erica! Give my best to April as well!"
"I love you too, Mamma." Erica said guiltily. "Bye."
"Goodbye, sweetheart." Heather answered lovingly before handing the receiver to Faith. "Here you are, dear."
Taking it, Faith tentatively put it up to her ear. "Erica?"
"Faith... I..." Thinking about her aunt standing there and watching Faith as they said goodbye, her desire to be sappy and romantic suddenly seemed like a bad idea. "I... um... I love you, Faith. I guess I'll see you... soon." She hoped that mentioning their next encounter would convey her feelings.
Seeing her mother's knowing look, Faith raised her chin almost defiantly. "I love you too, Erica. I look forward to seeing you at Thanksgiving, too."
"Goodbye, love." Erica nearly whispered, almost afraid Heather might hear.
"Goodbye." Faith said softly in return before hanging up. Turning to face her mother, she waited to see what she'd say.
"Faith, we need to talk." Heather said gently. "Shall we use your room?"
I knew it was too good to last. Faith mused hopelessly. "Alright, Mamma." she answered embarrassedly as they headed toward the stairs.
Erica hung up the phone slowly after hearing Faith's goodbye. Getting up, she followed April in getting her own bags unpacked and into the laundry. Her aunt's voice over the phone seemed almost too polite. Opening her suitcase, her thoughts darkened. She knows! My God! Mamma knows!
Entering the bedroom once shared by the two teens, Faith took a seat on her bed as her mother sat at the girl's vanity. Looking everywhere but at Heather, Faith waited for the lecture.
"So..." Heather began simply. "Why don't you start by telling me what's going on."
Faith fidgeted with her fingers idly. "I... I don't know what you mean, Mamma." she lied badly.
Sighing, Heather pressed her fingers against her temples. "Faith, please don't treat me as though I'm a fool. You already confessed, in front of the whole household, that you've had feelings for your cousin Erica. Don't compound that with lies, please."
Frustrated, Faith stood and paced her room. "What do you want me to say, Mamma? That I love her? That she loves me? We do, and it's not going to just go away! It's real!"
"I know that, dear." Heather said calmly. "What have you done about it?"
Stopping to face her mother, Faith took a breath. "Nothing!" she lied again before correcting herself. "Well... nothing much."
"I see." Heather replied as she tried to maintain her composure. "Have you two been sleeping together?"
Biting her lip, Faith looked away from her mother. "That depends on what you mean by sleeping together."
"Having sex." Heather stated impatiently. "Please don't equivocate."
"No!" Faith denied. "Just... you know... actually sleeping together!"
Closing her eyes, Heather looked away from her daughter. "I see." Pausing as her trained ear heard the unspoken, she added. "And?"
"Mamma!" Faith protested. "Do you really want all the details?"
Pursing her lips, Heather looked at the floor. "No, I guess I really don't." Looking up at Faith once more, she stood and moved cautiously toward her. "Faith... I... I'm not going to lecture you about morality. You're a grown woman now, and you've been of the age of consent since you were sixteen. I know you love her. I've known you were attracted to her almost from the first."
Looking away embarrassedly, Faith heard her mother move closer until the woman took her hand. Pulling gently, Heather turned Faith to face her.
"Faith. I love you and don't want to see you get hurt." Heather explained. "I... I know that sending Erica away was hard on you both. If I could take it back, I would. You two obviously have a depth of feeling toward one another that is not likely to go away anytime soon. I just..." she paused as she held her feelings in check. "I don't want you to do something you'd regret later, dear. You know you can't have a full and complete relationship with her, don't you? A marriage? Family? Children?"
"I know, Mamma." Faith sniffed. "It's just..."
Nodding slowly, Heather sighed. "It's just that the heart wants what the heart wants, and nothing anyone says or does will change it." Seeing Faith look up at her, Heather smiled gently once more. "I... I can't give my blessing to you two. You know that, don't you?"
Smiling weakly, Faith nodded. "I know, Mamma." she mumbled before turning to embrace her and beginning to cry.
"It's alright, sweetheart." Heather consoled her child. "I know. I know."
"Oh, Mamma!" the younger girl cried. "I just love her so much! I... I always have! From the day she got here I've loved her! Almost from the first moment I saw her! Why?"
"I don't know, dear." Heather admitted. "Lord knows why any of us love who we love. Erica's mother was the same. She fell in love with your uncle Jack at age ten, and loved him with all her heart the rest of her life, even after he was gone." Smiling wistfully, she almost laughed at herself. "Maybe it's something about the Dunning family! They're too easy for us Hargraves to love! Even your uncle Jack! I loved him almost as much as your father!"
Laughing with her through her own tears, Faith pulled away from her mother and retrieved a tissue from her vanity, blowing her nose and wiping her eyes. "Mamma? I want you to know that I tried not to love her."
"Oh, sweetheart!" Heather exclaimed as she pulled Faith to sit next to her on Faith's bed. "You can't choose not to love someone. That's not up to us."
Nodding in understanding, Faith exhaled heavily. "I know... it's up to God." Sighing again, she fiddled with her tissue. "But why did He make me have to love her? Someone I can't have!"
"I don't know, dear." Heather shrugged. "Maybe she needed that love to sustain her until she could find April." Pausing, Heather broached a delicate subject. "Faith... about April. Erica has a chance at a good life with her. Do you intend to stand in their way?"
Blushing, Faith tore the tissue in half. "No. I'm glad Erica has April! I just want her to be happy, and April makes her happy."
Nodding, she watched Faith's reaction and knew there was more. "Go on."
"Mamma!" Faith whined as she stood and paced her room again. "I don't think you want to know the rest."
"If you want me to understand, I think I need to know the rest." Heather retorted, "Whether I want to know or not, this... thing... between you and your cousin could lead to an end far worse than even my sending her away did. Besides, I think I'm a fair and open-minded woman. Just talk to me. You should trust me, dear."
Unsure, Faith tossed the remains of her tissue in her wastebasket and pulled out a fresh one, only to start tearing it up in her hands right away. "Um... well... see, Erica had an idea..."
Sighing as she relaxed on the couch in a nightgown and robe after a good shower, Erica closed her eyes. The next thing she knew, she was being awakened by a kiss. Smiling, she opened her eyes to see April leaning over her with a grin of her own. "Hi!" she purred. "Sorry I dozed off."
"That's OK." April grinned as she sat on the edge of the couch next to her. "I liked waking you up! I nearly fell asleep in my tub!"
Sitting up to try and shake off the sleepiness, Erica wiped her face with her hands. "Um... so anyway, I was going to tell you about my talk with Mamma."
"The sex talk?" April smiled seductively.
"Yeah..." Erica answered as she looked away shyly.
Laughing, April slipped her hand into Erica's. "You're so cute when you get all embarrassed!" she giggled.
Rolling her eyes, Erica giggled back. "So anyway... um... she asked me if I was a... um... a virgin. When I told her I was, she told me that since we love each other, you and I, that it's a gift from God so it would be... um... OK... if we... um..." Stammering, Erica couldn't make herself say it.
"Make love?" April finished for her. Seeing Erica nod, she smiled. "Your mom's a wise woman, Erica! You should always follow a mother's advice!"
Laughing together a moment, Erica looked away shyly. "I... um... so I was thinking, if you... I mean... do you... you know... still want to? With me? I mean... if you still want to, I would like it... um... if we..."
Pulling Erica to her feet, April wrapped her arms around her best friend. "With you? Yes! Always!" Leaning in to kiss her gently and lovingly, April sighed when they were done. "But not tonight. We're both pretty tired, which is a terrible state to be in for this kind of discussion!"
Nodding in understanding, Erica only briefly considered the idea that April was dodging being with her now that she was willing before dismissing the idea as nonsense. April loves me and wants me. Erica reminded herself.
"So why don't we go to bed and pick this up first thing tomorrow?" April suggested. "That way we're rested and thinking clearly."
"You're right." Erica agreed disappointedly. "We shouldn't be discussing it at this hour." she noted the large clock over the fireplace that showed it to be after eleven. Straightening her robe, she embraced April again happily. "I love you, April!" she sighed.
"Always have and always will!" she answered back. "Come on!" Heading to Erica's bedroom door, they stopped at the entrance.
"See you in the morning!" Erica smiled.
"Mmm hmm!" April wordlessly answered.
Opening her bedroom door, Erica headed in, but was surprised when the door wouldn't close due to April being in the way. "Was there something else you needed?" she asked curiously.
"No!" April smiled back.
"OK." Erica nodded to her. "Goodnight!" Waiting for April to step back out into the hallway, her smile slowly melted. "Um... are you sure there's nothing you need? Did you want to ask me something?"
"As a matter of fact, yes." April answered as she squeezed past Erica, her breasts pressing against the room's owner as she moved into it. Pulling off her robe to reveal that she was wearing a short and sexy red negligée, April looked back at the shocked girl. "Which side do you sleep on?"
Erica blinked several times before she stammered out, "Um... my right side."
Nodding happily, April nonchalantly walked up to the right side of Erica's bed, pulled down the covers, slid gracefully under them, and lay down on her right side. "Coming to bed?" she asked simply.
Slowly, Erica made her way over to the opposite side of her bed until she could look down and see the teen's eyes were closed. "Um... April?"
Opening her eyes and smiling at her confused girlfriend, April patted the space in front of her. "Remember to turn out the light, honey!"
Gulping, Erica absently switched off the light, took off her robe, and slid under the pulled back covers. When at last she lay down and rolled onto her right side, she felt the bed move and soon April was snuggled against her back. Scarcely able to breathe, Erica lay there wide-eyed for a few moments that seemed to take hours before April spoke.
"I love you." she stated breathily against Erica's neck as her free arm snaked around Erica's waist and pulled the girl tightly against her body.
"I love you, too." Erica replied as she slowly began to relax into the familiar comfort of having another girl sleep next to her and hold her throughout the night. Sighing contentedly after a few minutes, she soon drifted off into a soothing sleep filled with visions of April making love to her.
She awoke to a familiar feeling. Lying on her back, Erica opened her eyes to see the ceiling as April slid up the front her body, causing her to inhale sharply at the pleasure.
"Good morning, love!" April cooed, almost lying on Erica's prone form. "Ready to have the rest of that talk?"
Clearing her throat, Erica smiled and then gasped as she felt April's hand slide up her thigh. "Um... talk?" she asked, still not fully awake.
"Yes." April said through a smile. "About you and I? About what we might do with one another? Together? Alone?"
Slowly recalling the previous night's discussion, her mind was ripped apart by the exquisite sensations April was inflicting on her. "Oh, April!" she gasped. "That feels..." Gasping again, she couldn't finish her thought before April lowered her lips down to Erica's, kissing her passionately as she let her fingers glide gently and slowly all over Erica's sensitive skin.
"I know." April answered happily as she ended the kiss and her fingers drifted places no one other than Faith had ever touched. "I was thinking about what you were telling me last night... about Faith?" She paused a moment as Erica shuddered with pleasure. "Are you going to let her take you?" Giving the poor girl a chance, April slowed her sensual assault and just let her free hand come to rest on Erica's slender waist.
Recovering the use of her lungs, Erica gasped and breathed heavily for a moment before looking up at April. "Um... do you want to be discussing her now? While we're... um..."
"Making out?" April smiled.
"Yeah! I mean... yes, while we're making out." Erica stammered.
Kissing Erica again even more passionately, she felt the helpless girl's fingers comb through her dark naturally curly hair, sending shivers down her own spine. "Oh, yes!" she sighed. "Do you want me to stop?" she asked.
"No..." Erica admitted, "...but maybe you should, so I can actually think!"
Laughing throatily, April rolled off her captive and lay next to her smiling. "Alright, party pooper!" she jokingly grumbled. "You win! Admittedly, I was trying to fix the decision."
"What do you mean?" Erica asked, furrowing her brow.
"I mean..." April explained lovingly, "...that I was going to make love to you, so you can make love to Faith when you see her at Thanksgiving."
"What?" Erica squeaked. "Why?"
"Because I love you, stupid!" April giggled.
"You love me stupid?" she asked confusedly.
"Yes!" April agreed. "I love you so much you become stupid, apparently!" Giggling until Erica finally joined in, April was happy to feel Erica's hand slipping into her own. "Seriously though, I... I don't want you to have any hesitation when Faith wants to take things to the next level. I... I want you to." she admitted.
Again she asked, "Why?"
Exasperated, April groaned. "Why? Because I love you and want you to be happy! I want you to be able to feel the joy she can give you without feeling so... so guilty about it!"
Rolling away from April, Erica gave voice to her shame. "I should feel guilty. She's my cousin!"
"And you love each other." April added. "What else matters?"
"Why doesn't it bother you!" Erica snapped. "It should! Even if she wasn't my cousin, it should bother you that I want to make love to another woman!"
Sighing, April rolled onto her back. "I'll admit I'm a little jealous."
"See? So then why..."
"Because I'd rather have ninety-nine percent of you than none at all!" April shouted. Calming down, she rolled back to face Erica again. "Erica, you love Faith. Nothing is going to change that, and I know it. So I can either have part of you, or none of you. Some of someone as special, beautiful, and wonderful as you is better than none."
Caught off-guard by the depth of love April was demonstrating, Erica swallowed hard. "You really love me that much, April?" she asked.
"Yes." she answered quickly and simply.
"And Faith being my cousin..."
"...doesn't bother me one bit!" April smiled. "I know, at first I thought you were both pervs, but then I saw how much you actually love each other. It's... it's beautiful, Erica!"
Smiling lovingly, the moment was shattered with April's next statement.
"Actually it's kinda hot!" she added. "Taboo! Like... like incest porn only..."
"April!" Erica shouted with an indignant look on her face.
Cracking up, April began laughing so hard she soon had Erica's serious countenance cracking to a smile, then giggles, and finally full laughter at her side.
"You're sick!" Erica giggled.
"I know! I am!" April admitted through laughter. "I'm so demented!"
Slowly, their giggles faded as they looked into each other's eyes. April moved first, propping herself on one arm as the other hand reached out and caressed Erica's cheek. "Seriously, I just want you to be happy. She makes you happy. Nothing else matters."
"You matter." Erica corrected her. "I don't think I could ever deserve you."
Moving closer, April let her hands drift down across Erica's soft breasts before roaming lower. "You don't have to deserve me, honey. We deserve each other." At that, she leaned down and they resumed their passionate kissing as April at last got her heart's greatest desire.
They finally became one.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Opening the door the same as he'd done thousands of times before, this time Fredrick cracked a smile at the person greeting him. "Welcome home, Miss Erica!" he said almost joyfully.
Erica swept into the house with April close behind, Fredrick helping her off with her coat as their luggage was delivered to the front door. "Thanks, Eddie! Fredrick? This is Eddie, my chauffeur."
Looking the man up and down as if inspecting his worthiness to drive Erica around, he nodded respectfully. "Eddie?" he inquired.
"Edward Green!" the large man said happily, extending a hand to him once they were free. "So you're Fredrick! You're a hard act to follow!"
Raising an eyebrow at his familiarity, Fredrick nevertheless shook the man's hand formally. "Indeed, sir. Is there anything else for Miss Erica or Miss April?"
Coming up alongside the giant man, Erica hugged him. "Oh, Fredrick! No, that's all!" Turning to her own driver, she nodded. "Thanks, Eddie! I'll see you on Sunday at three! Have a good holiday!"
"I'll be here!" he answered with a smile as he tipped his hat to his employer. "Happy Thanksgiving to you as well, ma'am!"
After the heavy door closed, Erica turned around to see her aunt sweeping down the stairs with Faith, both dressed in fine gowns. While Heather's was a lovely pale-blue floor-length chiffon Empire line with a modest neckline and long sleeves, Faith's was a deep crimson satin strapless A-line with a tea-length skirt and bustled half-wrap train that just touched the floor as she moved. Caught breathless by her beauty, Erica had to tear her eyes away from her cousin to look to her aunt who'd said something.
"The drive up was fine, Heather!" April answered for Erica. Looking at her awestruck girlfriend, she shook her head dismissively. The green satin evening gown Erica wore was conservative, but the way Erica wore it was enough to make a eunuch yearn. Her own black satin gown that Erica had bought tailor-made to fit her helped her at least feel like she fit in.
"Mamma!" Erica ran up and hugged Heather warmly as she reached the bottom of the stairs. "You look beautiful!"
"Erica, love!" Heather returned the embrace. "I'm glad you're home again!"
"Me too, Mamma!" she nearly cried. Finally releasing her, she looked around. "Where's Cook and Fran?"
"Working!" Franchesca yelled invisibly from around the top of the stairs. "Some of us still work for a living, missy!"
Turning at last to Faith, she swallowed. "Faith." she said nervously, trying to keep the desire out of her voice. While April hugged Heather hello, the two cousins looked at one another with hunger barely masked behind their eyes. Slowly, they stepped toward one another and embraced chastely, holding it for just a moment longer than prudent. "You look stunning!" Erica finally said as they parted.
"You're breathtaking, Erica!" Faith intoned wantonly.
Just then, Theresa came out to greet the two, wiping her hands on her apron, Erica pulled away from Faith and went to hug her. "Cook!" she shouted gaily.
"Now, now! None of that, dearie!" she barked, making Erica freeze in her steps. "That's a lovely gown you've got on and I'm covered in turkey goop for tomorrow's dinner!"
Smiling, Erica approached. "I don't care!" she stated as she hugged the large woman from the side, still trying to be careful not to ruin her dress.
Patting the girl's bare arms, Theresa relented. "I missed you too, dearie!"
Welcomes concluded, while Fredrick took their bags to Erica's room, her aunt led them all to the living room where she took her usual place on the love seat with Faith, Erica and April taking their place on the opposite love seat. "So you're staying until Sunday afternoon then, sweetheart?" she asked.
"Yes, Mamma." Erica politely answered. "I have to be back Monday morning for a book signing."
Smiling, Heather looked at her lovingly. "I'm so proud of you, dear!"
Blushing, she turned to Faith. "She's the one to be proud of, Mamma! Starting nursing college in the spring! I just write mule-puke that people pay me way too much money for!"
"Thanks, Erica!" Faith said, taking her turn to blush.
"I'm proud of both my girls!" Heather said with satisfaction. Looking from Erica to Faith, she sighed and put off discussing the uncomfortable situation until later. "We should be going soon. You got here just in time!"
"Couldn't get here sooner unless we rented a helicopter!" Erica giggled. "We left as soon as Mavis finished our hair!"
"Mavis?" Heather inquired.
"My hairdresser." Erica explained. Stopping, she corrected herself. "Sorry, our hairdresser!" she smiled as she looked at April.
"That's better, honey!" April sniffed.
"It is time, Madame Hargrave." Fredrick informed his employer with the punctuality of a Swiss clock.
The four rose together and headed toward the door. "Thank you, Fredrick." Heather said gracefully.
"Have fun, you four!" Theresa waved to them, glad to have the evening off cooking dinner to prepare for the next day's holiday feast.
A short time later they'd arrived at a local up-scale steakhouse. It was a beautiful autumn evening, only just starting to turn cool before the heavy snows sure to fall within weeks or days. Entering, they were quickly seated and wine was poured for Heather.
"May I have a sip, Mamma?" Erica asked mischievously.
"No you may not!" Heather laughed lightly.
"Just kidding!" she laughed in return. While April told Heather about her college plans, the two sharing an interest in psychology, Erica turned to Faith. "You look captivating tonight!"
Looking at Erica with barely restrained lust, Faith bit her lip and smiled. "I missed you too, Erica!" she giggled. "So, a book signing?"
"Yeah." Erica looked down shyly at her glass of water. "Nothing special, just a romance novel. It sold over a hundred thousand, though."
"I'm happy for you, Erica!" Faith sighed. Careful not to let her guard down, she straightened up some. "So April wants to be a therapist like Mamma?"
Nodding dreamily, Erica caught herself staring at Faith. "Um... yes. She wants to help people the way she was helped."
"She's a lucky girl." Faith sighed. "I mean... to have such drive."
Erica melted back into a warm smile. "She's not the only girl who can get lucky here tonight!" she said softly enough not to carry beyond the two.
Her mouth falling open at the brazenness of Erica's flirting, Faith found herself to be the one blushing and turning away, her need for Erica ramping up with each passing second.
When at last they headed for home, the women sat together in silence. Furtive glances between Faith and Erica in stolen moments were undercut by April's closeness to Erica and Heather's dower expression. Finally not able to take any more, Heather did something she almost never did.
Reaching the controls above her, she closed the window to the front seat.
"Now then." Heather sighed. "We four are alone and are mature adults. I feel we can be frank with one another."
"Mamma, I don't..." Erica began to object.
"Erica, please!" she interrupted. "I'm not a stupid woman! Please don't insult my intelligence by pretending that I don't have eyes or ears!" Seeing the three cowed, she sighed and looked away. "You and Faith are in love."
"Yes, Mamma." Erica confessed.
"You're also in love with April?" she asked to confirm.
"Yes. We're in love, Mrs. Hargrave. Erica and I." April answered formally.
Closing her eyes, Heather repressed her instinct to immediately condemn the three. "And you all agreed to this... arrangement? No coercion? No ultimatums, threats, or pressuring?" At that she pointedly looked at Erica.
"No, Mamma." Erica answered shyly. "It... um... it was my stupid idea."
Immediately, Faith rushed to defend her cousin. "I was the one that made Erica tell me her idea and agreed to it first!"
"Mrs. Hargrave?" April likewise stood up for Erica. "I'd rather have Erica most of the time than never. I want her to be happy, so I just couldn't make her choose one of us over the other! It's just not fair!"
"Life is rarely fair, young lady." Heather admonished.
"But it can be this time!" April countered. "If we choose it to be."
Sighing in frustration, Heather shook her head. "I should put my foot down and insist that Erica and Faith have nothing to do with one another!" she nearly shouted. Calming herself, she added her caveat. "However, you three are all consenting adults and I cannot make you forget this notion."
Erica looked at her aunt with tears in her eyes. "Mamma? If you tell me not to see Faith, I'll do what you say."
"What!" Faith shouted. "Erica, no!"
"Erica!" April looked at her. "You can't do that! You love each other!"
"Mamma!" Faith turned to Heather. "Please! Don't say it!"
Heather looked sternly at Erica who sat silently crying across from her and next to April. She was moments from saying the words when she found herself utterly unable to speak them. I... I just can't hurt her like that! Not again! she admonished herself. Even as Faith and April both assailed her with objections and pleas, she simply raised her hand and waited for them to stop. The car at last silent once more, her eyes never looked away from her niece. "Erica? Why would you do this?"
Looking up at her aunt with wet cheeks, Erica took in a ragged breath. "Because I could never do anything that would make you disappointed in me, Mamma! I... I love you too much!"
Her heart melting at the sentiment, Heather felt the tear slide down her cheek and quickly wiped it away. "I... I could never do that, sweetheart. I've already caused enough pain in your life." Seeing Erica about to justify Heather's decision to send her away, she forestalled it with one final argument. "I know I did it for what I believed to be your own good, but it did cause you both quite a lot of pain, I nearly lost you forever, and this situation is no different. I won't take the same chance twice."
Softening her countenance, Heather smiled weakly. "I just... I don't want to see you hurt." Turning to Faith, she shook her head. "Either of you! You two are too precious to me! If either of you got hurt like that again, I... I don't think I could take it!"
"Oh, Mamma!" Faith cried as she flung her arms around Heather. "I love you! I promise we'll be fine!"
Returning the affection, Heather wept openly. "Faith? Are you sure this is what you want? I... I just don't want you to regret this, baby! If you two have a bad breakup, I... I just couldn't choose between my girls! It would kill me to even try!"
"You'll never have to, Mamma!" Faith promised. "I swear!"
Getting past the emotional trauma after several minutes, Heather collected her thoughts. "Very well. Before I can... well... be OK with this, for lack of a better word, arrangement, I do have a few requirements you'd have to agree to abide by. Nothing unreasonable for three adults, just some guidelines to help smooth things over for everyone's best interest. Alright?"
"Yes, Mamma." Erica agreed before even hearing them. "What are they?"
Looking at the girl, Heather took a breath. "First of all, no one may know about it outside we four. That's for everyone's protection, including mine. Not Fredrick, not Theresa, not Franchesca... no one! If word of this got out, it would not only wreak havoc on your lives, but mine as well for allowing it! Agreed?"
Hearing all three agree, Heather continued. "Erica? You know this could potentially destroy your company if it got out, don't you?" Seeing her nod, Heather laid down her second condition. "If it does, I won't help you save your company. This is your choice, so you'll have to live with whatever consequences there are! Faith? Same to you. It will be extremely difficult to get a nursing job with this kind of scandal. If it gets out, you'll have to accept the result and I won't help you save your career. You too, April. Few would trust a therapist with this in her background. You three wouldn't get any help from me, save that you'll always be welcome in my home. Agreed?"
Seeing their assent once more, Heather moved on to her third rule. "I expect you two to be discreet!" she admonished Erica and Faith. "No public displays like I saw tonight! I may have to tolerate the situation, but I don't want to see it or hear about it? Is that understood? April? I expect you to make sure they are discreet! If you're so willing to let Erica have this... tryst... with Faith, then you'll have to see to it they're being discreet and safe. Agreed?"
Once more they acquiesced, Heather handing out her final decree. "Lastly, if at any point, any of you wishes for this... relationship... to end, it must! You must all agree that anyone involved can end it at any time for any reason, without argument or recriminations from either of the other two." Looking at Faith and Erica pointedly, she added, "That means if April no longer wishes to help you maintain the secrecy of your relationship, you must end it... willingly. Can you all agree to that?"
Looking at Faith and then April and seeing them nod, Erica answered for all three of them. "Agreed, Mamma. We promise it will only continue as long as all of us agree it should."
Nervously, Heather looked out the window. "Very well, then. I... I won't try to stop it." It was as far as she was willing to go. Turning to Erica again, she blushed slightly. "Sweetheart? I... I hate to ask something so private, but I must know. Are you... well... fertile still?"
Turning crimson, Erica shrank away from her aunt, but forced herself to answer. "N-no, Mamma. I... I'm not." Explaining briefly about what she'd done after turning eighteen, she was barely audible above the road noise.
"Well, there's that at least." Heather consoled herself. "Understand girls, I just don't want either of you two to get hurt by this. Love is a wonderful thing, but a relationship is more than just about love or sex... it's about a commitment to one another, one not to be taken lightly. Erica's relationship with April, while non-traditional, is at least socially accepted now and can be fulfilling in all the ways any other can. This... relationship... between you two will be very difficult. One or the other of you might want more down the road, more than the other is willing or able to give."
Taking the momentary lull, April stepped in. "Mrs. Hargrave, that's all true, but isn't it also true of any couple? I mean, take that Mike guy and his ex."
Examining the logic of it, Heather nodded and sighed in resignation. "Of course. You're right, April. Every relationship is a danger. This one just has extra dangers. A falling out between them would have effects for the family. Holidays and get-togethers would be fraught with the lasting effects. As long as you three can abide by your agreements though, I... I suppose I can learn to live with it." I'll have to. Heather mused silently.
By the time Fredrick had driven them home, the excitement and anticipation between Erica and Faith had been buried in the practical arrangements they'd agreed to. When the household began to turn in for the evening, Erica just having gotten out of her shower, she sat at her vanity brushing and drying her hair absently.
"April?" she asked curiously. Seeing her through the vanity mirror looking over at her from the bed, Erica put down her hot curling brush. "Um... are... are you sure you're OK with this? I mean, once we cross this line..."
"Erica." April sighed as she got up and walked over to stand behind her oldest friend, "We talked this to death! I swear to you I am one hundred percent behind you on this!" Pausing a moment, her gentle smile melted. "That is, if this is still what you want..."
Shrugging absently, Erica looked at her lap. "I guess I do, it's just..."
"Scared?" April half finished for her. Smiling as Erica nodded, she picked up the brush idly and ran it through Erica's hair. "I know this is a big step for you two. I really am happy for you, though."
Closing her eyes as she luxuriated in the feeling of April brushing her hair, Erica let out a cleansing breath. "I... I think I'm ready." she sighed.
Hearing a gentle knock on her door, Faith nearly jumped out of her skin. "C... come in?" she asked. When the door opened to reveal her mother coming to say goodnight, Faith relaxed. "Hi, Mamma." she said nervously.
Heather glided into her daughter's bedroom, the clutter of only a month earlier having been replaced by neat organization, reminiscent of Faith's youth. Sitting on the satin comforter next to her baby girl, Heather reached out a comforting hand to Faith. "I just came in to say goodnight, dear. You seem upset." she asked without asking.
Looking away embarrassedly, Faith took the offered hand and fidgeted with her other. "Not really upset. Just more... um... nervous?"
Perplexed, Heather tilted her head slightly and furrowed her thin eyebrows. "Nervous?" she asked quizzically. "What on earth would you have to be..." Realization dawned on her slowly as she pulled her offered hand back and looked away. "Oh! I... um... Of course. Erica's here and you know I won't interfere, so naturally..." Her voice trailed off before she turned back to look at Faith. "I... I am trying, dear." she stammered. "Are... are you sure about this, sweetheart? About only being able to be with her as... well... as a mistress? What about your own future? Don't you want a family someday?"
"Mamma!" Faith whined. "Yes! It's enough for me! Just knowing that she's mine, even for only a little while!" Laughing lightly, she added, "Like April said... I... I'd rather have some of her heart than none of it." Looking back at Heather, it was her turn to extend a comforting hand. When her mother took it, she smiled. "As for a family, I'm only eighteen, still! Who knows what the future has in store? Shouldn't I enjoy this while it lasts?"
Hearing a piece of her own advice to Erica from less than a month earlier, Heather nodded and looked down. "Of course. You're right, Faith. You know your own heart and... and I do want you two to be happy! I just wish..." Her voice cracked as she tried to come to terms with their love.
"...that we hadn't fallen in love with each other?" Faith finished for her.
Nodding quickly, Heather hesitated, thought a moment, then shook her head slowly. "No. I... I wouldn't take that away from either of you for anything, Faith! It's a beautiful thing, being in love!" Wiping away a tear for her lost husband, Heather took a breath and smiled. "I love you two so much! I... I just... I worry... that... that you might pass up a more... well... a more acceptable love, one you could express openly and freely, trying to hold on to one that you have to keep hidden."
Seeing Faith about to object, Heather shook her head dismissively. "I know! Erica loves you too much to stand in the way of your happiness. You two... um... you three... will work something out. I'll let it go." At that she got up, kissed Faith on the forehead, petted her hair a moment, and sighed, "Have a good... um... good night, dear. I love you."
"I love you too, Mamma!" Faith nearly cried as Heather drifted gracefully out her bedroom door, leaving her alone with her mother's thoughts.
Waiting patiently for her aunt to come say goodnight, Erica lay fidgeting in bed next to April, who sat up reading a new book; having finished her last one while Erica was showering. She'd tried reading Erica's novels a few times, but her tastes ran in a different direction and she didn't enjoy them, so Erica tried not to take it personally that she was reading a competitor's novel.
"Still nervous?" April asked without even looking away from her book.
"Sorry." Erica mumbled as she laced her fingers together and sat up next to April. "Love? Are you sure..."
"Erica!" April laughed as she put her book down and looked at her. "Will you stop asking me that? Yes! I'm sure! OK? Positive! Absolutely certain! One hundred and fifty percent in favor of it!" By the end of her tirade, she was giggling so hard Erica could barely understand her.
"I just..." Erica looked away. "I couldn't stand it if I hurt you. I can't take it back once she and I... um... you know..."
"Believe me, Erica!" April comforted her. "I want this for you! You're my best friend and I love you! How could I not want to see you happy?"
Erica nodded and swallowed hard as she heard the gentle knock from the door. "Come in, Mamma." she said with a sigh as she settled back down to lay on her pillow while April picked up her book and resumed reading.
Entering quietly, Heather moved over to Erica's side of the bed nearest the vanity and sat next to the girl she loved as much as Faith. "Just came in to say goodnight, sweetheart." Bending over and kissing Erica's cheek, she absently pushed the girl's bangs away from her eyes. "Need anything?"
"No, Mamma." Erica said softly. "Goodnight to you, too."
Taking a breath, Heather nearly tried to talk Erica out of her very obvious plans, but bit her tongue and simply smiled down at her. "Very well, sweetie. Sleep well." Pausing a moment, she added, "I... I think I'll listen to some music tonight." Rising to leave, she paused and turned to April. "Goodnight to you too, dear."
"Night, Heather!" April smiled as she tore her eyes away from her story.
As the woman left and April went back to her book, Erica's heart pounded in fear. "Um... I, uh... I think Mamma knows."
"Duh!" April answered with a giggle. "She's not stupid, Erica! You two basically have the green light from her, and have the opportunity. I don't think she's going to listen to music tonight out of a sudden need for culture!" Elbowing Erica until she looked at her, April smiled and looked toward the door. "Well? What are you waiting for? Go! I'll see you in the morning!"
Climbing out of bed, Erica made her way around it and kissed April on the forehead. "I love you." she stated simply. "Goodnight!"
Smiling back, April gestured for Erica to lean in closer. Giving her a quick peck on the cheek, she smiled. "Goodnight, honey! Have fun!" she giggled.
Suddenly flushed, Erica swallowed and nodded. "Yes, dear. Goodnight." Nervously, she made her way to her door and slowly pried it open. Hearing the soft strains of Tchaikovsky coming from her aunt's room, she quickly crossed the hall and, without knocking, slipped into the room she'd slept in so many times before turning thirteen. Turning around, she gasped as she saw Faith laying in her bed with the sheets pulled up to her neck.
The two stared at each other for what seemed to be hours before Erica slowly started toward the bed they would share once again. "Um... I wanted to say that you looked really sexy tonight, Faith." she said barely above a whisper.
"You too, Erica." Faith answered nervously. "So, coming to bed?"
Erica nodded and slowly removed her satin robe, draping it over the back of their once shared vanity chair. Clasping her hands and twisting them in knots, she slowly approached the bed.
"We don't have to..." Faith began as she looked away ashamedly.
Quickly moving up to the bed, Erica shook her head vigorously. "No! I mean... yes... I mean... not if you don't want to..."
"But I do!" Faith interrupted. "I mean... if you still want to..."
"I do!" Erica insisted as she slowly pulled back the covers. Seeing Faith smile sweetly, Erica relaxed and slipped into the bed next to her. "It's a little weird being on this side." she noted apprehensively.
"Do you wanna switch?" Faith asked.
"Well, I'm already in bed." Erica opined anxiously. "It would be silly to get out again, just to move over to the other side."
"Here." Faith offered, slipping down low and close up to her. "You... you can just... sorta... just slide over me." The shake in her voice gave away her feelings, no matter how hard she'd tried to ignore them.
Gulping, Erica nodded and rolled over until she was positioned just over Faith. Looking down at her as Faith looked up into her eyes, both saw the same yearning, but also no small amount of fear. Pausing only a moment, Erica continued to roll over until she was once more on the right side of the bed where she'd slept for almost six months. Turning over onto her right side to face Faith, she saw that her cousin was still lying on her back and breathing heavily. "Are... are you OK, Faith?" she asked concernedly.
"No!" she whispered in answer. "I mean..." Rolling over to face away from Erica, she was almost crying. "You're here... we're free to do whatever we want..." Her voice cracked as tears began to fall down her cheek.
"Do... do you want me to go?" Erica asked sadly.
"No!" she sobbed. "I... I don't know what I want, Erica!" she admitted. "I've always wanted you! And now... now that I have you... that we can..."
"...cross that line?" Erica continued for her.
Nodding, Faith wiped away the tears. "Yeah... now that we can... I don't know if we should."
"I know what you mean." Erica sighed, a single tear dripping down her right cheek until it was soaked into the pillow. "Mamma wanted to stop us, but... she can't... but maybe we should stop ourselves."
Faith began to sob uncontrollably until she felt Erica slide up next to her and take her in her arms. Rolling over quickly, Faith snaked her arms around Erica and cried as they held each other. After several minutes and her fears had run their course, Faith looked at Erica. "Thanks." she sniffed.
"You're welcome." she smiled contentedly. "You know I'd do anything for you, Faith. I love you."
Slipping down to rest her head on Erica's shoulder, Faith sighed and closed her eyes. "I... I know I said I wanted to... to make love to you tonight Erica, but..." At a loss for words, Faith simply tightened her hold on her love.
"...but you changed your mind?" Erica finished for her as she gently petted Faith's soft blonde curls.
"No..." Faith rebutted. "Well, not exactly anyway. I mean, I want to... and I know we did all that stuff so we could be together, but... um... it's just that it feels like it's expected of us now... like..."
"...we don't have a choice." the two chorused.
Giggling, Faith lifted her eyes to look at Erica. "You too?"
Nodding, Erica sighed sadly. "Yeah. I mean, April was practically pushing me out the door! I felt like she didn't want me to be near her. I felt a little... um... rejected."
"April loves you, Erica!" Faith defended her. "I should know. I can see it in her eyes. She just wants you to be happy."
"What about you?" she asked, looking into Faith's eyes.
Looking toward the far wall, Faith sighed out a single word. "Mamma."
Continuing to gently run her fingers through Faith's hair, Erica nodded in understanding. "I know."
"It's just... um... she's so afraid that we'll regret it later, but she was so understanding to not try and stop us, and now, it's like... she just left it up to us and is hoping we make the right decision without her having to make us stop." Faith rambled. "It makes me feel guilty that I don't want to."
"Me too." Erica agreed. Sitting up as Faith did the same, the two sat next to each other, their hands joined, and looked into each other's eyes. "I still love you Faith. You can have me if you still want me."
With her free hand, Faith caressed Erica's cheek, prompting the younger girl to turn her head and kiss Faith's fingers, her eyes closing. "You are so beautiful, Erica." Faith nearly whispered. "And right now I do have you. You're mine and I could do anything I want with you."
When Faith's hand withdrew from her face, Erica opened her eyes and looked at her cousin. "So what do you want of me?"
Smiling, Faith lay back down with her head on her pillow. "Right now, I want you to turn around, lay down next to me, and let me hold you and feel you next to me all night."
Smiling, Erica turned to face the far wall and settled under the warm blankets and satin sheets. When Faith spooned up next to her, the feel of her body pressing against her back, Erica sighed contentedly. As Faith's arm wrapped around her waist and slid up her belly to rest her hand between Erica's breasts, she closed her eyes and relished the adoration. "Thank you!" she purred quietly.
With her nose buried in Erica's hair, Faith inhaled deeply and groaned with contented need. "Mmmm... for what?"
"For desiring me this much!" Erica sighed, putting her free hand on Faith's hip. "God, do you know how good it feels to have you this close?"
"Yes." Faith answered breathily. "I do."
Holding each other, the two spent hours luxuriating in their nearness before sleep took them.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
The two were startled awake by knocking on Faith's door.
"Up and at 'em, Faith!" Franchesca barked through the door. Trying the knob, she'd found it locked. "Open up! I need to get the laundry started early, girl!"
Sitting up, Erica's eyes were the size of saucers. "Shit!" she whispered.
"Be there in a sec!" Faith shouted. Giggling as Erica scrambled to get out of her bed, Faith slid out calmly and tossed Erica her robe. "Here!" she whispered.
Catching it and tiptoeing towards the bathroom just as the maid knocked again, she closed the door a moment before Faith unlocked her door.
"Good morning." Faith said calmly as Franchesca swept into the room, making a beeline to the hamper.
"Morning." the woman scowled as she transferred the previous day's dirty clothes to her own basket. "I'll be up to collect the linens after you head down to breakfast." Seeing the teen standing in her robe and fidgeting, she narrowed her eyes suspiciously. "What're you up to?"
"Nothing!" Faith shrugged. "Just not awake yet." she forced a yawn.
Examining her a moment, Franchesca started toward the bathroom door. "Alright, you stick to that story!"
"Franchesca!" Faith drew in a breath. "What do you need in the bathroom? I put all my laundry in the basket! I haven't left any of it in the bath for the last two weeks!"
Stopping short, she sighed. "I need to check the linens to see what you need!"
"Can you do that later?" Faith asked as she quickly headed for the bathroom. "I need to use it right away!"
Squinting at her as Faith ran in the bathroom and closed the door, Franchesca huffed. "I don't know what's gotten into you, but be quick about it! I'll be back in five minutes!"
Listening at the door, Faith heard the maid depart her room. Breathing a sigh of relief, she turned around to see the room empty. "Erica?" she whispered. She was startled for a moment when she saw the shadow move in her tub.
"I hid in here!" Erica whispered with a slight giggle as she climbed out. Running into one another's arms, the two held one another and shared a brief kiss before Erica started toward the door. "I... I need to get back."
"I know." Faith sighed.
"Faith..." Erica stammered, pausing a moment at the door. "I... I love you."
Closing her eyes, Faith took a slow deep breath. "I know. I love you, too."
Reaching the door to Faith's room, she cracked it open and saw the hallway clear. Quickly making her way across the hall, she closed her bedroom door behind her, sighing in relief that no one had seen her, until she turned around to see Franchesca staring at her. "Fran!"
Her normally stern face was cold and hard. "How could you!" she asked just above a whisper. "How could you cheat on April! With your own cousin!" About to storm out, she was stymied when the teen backed against the door.
"Fran! Please! I can explain!"
"Explain what?" she growled quietly. "I loved you and took care of you! And this is the result? You sneaking around behind April's back?"
"It's not behind my back." April said calmly as she came out of the bathroom wearing a terrycloth robe. "I knew where she was last night. Only you, Cook, and Fredrick weren't supposed to know." Looking at Erica, April sighed. "I'm sorry, honey. I forgot to set an alarm to make sure you were back here before six. By the time I realized it, Franchesca was knocking on our door."
"I fell asleep before setting mine." Erica sighed. "Not that it would have done any good. I left my phone here on the vanity. That's the first time I've slept past six in a couple years."
Stunned, Franchesca looked back and forth. "You... you knew about this?"
Shrugging, April stepped closer only to have the maid step back. "Actually, I encouraged it." she admitted. "They're in love. Have been for years."
Her mind racing, Franchesca tried to grasp it all. All those years she'd known that Faith was lovesick over the loss of Erica, but she'd never even suspected that the feelings were reciprocal. Looking at Erica, the girl's head hanging guiltily, she stepped closer to her and whispered, "Erica! She's your cousin! It's wrong! What if your aunt found out! It'd be the death of her!"
"She knows." Erica mumbled. "She's known since the day April and I went back to Concord." Looking up at the woman she loved like family, the teen took a ragged breath. "I... I can't help it!"
"You most certainly can!" Franchesca barked quietly. Turning to April, her eyes turned soft. "I... I've been where you are, miss. My George cheated on me right before Heather and Richard moved in here. That's why I moved with 'em instead of staying there and being a happily married woman!"
"Erica isn't cheating on me!" April insisted.
"What do you call it then?" Franchesca asked with a hand on her hip and a laundry basket under the other arm. "They aren't passing the time of day!"
"It's not like that!" April explained, stepping forward again. "Erica has my permission to be with Faith!"
Turning back to the girl blocking the door, Franchesca shook her head sadly. "I thought I knew you better. How could you have sex with your cousin?"
Swallowing hard, Erica looked away from April. "Well, we haven't actually done that. We just slept together... like when we were little."
"What?" April and Franchesca said together.
Confused, Franchesca stepped closer to the door. "Erica? Look at me." As the girl's head and eyes moved up to look back into her own, Franchesca scrutinized them. "Alright, maybe I don't know what's goin' on, and maybe I don't wanna know! You say nothing happened. Fine. You look awful guilty for a girl that did nothing, though." Taking a breath, the maid tightened her lips into a line. "Move out of the way of the door, girl! I got work ta' do!"
Stepping forward, Erica came up to the woman with a pleading look in her eyes. "Please, Fran! Don't say anything to anyone about this! It's private!"
"Say what?" Franchesca scoffed. "I don't know what goes on and I don't spread rumors! Until I do know something I don't have anything to say!" Moving around the girl, she opened the door. "Don't dawdle getting ready for breakfast!" she snapped before closing the door harshly.
"Erica?" April looked at her love standing near the door. "Are you OK?"
"No!" the girl answered through restrained tears.
Moving close, April took her hand and led her to the bed. Sitting together, April continued to hold it while petting Erica's head with the other to calm the hysterical girl down. "Do you want to talk about what happened?"
Nodding, Erica got up to get a tissue before sitting back down next to her. "We... um... we didn't... we just went to bed."
"Why?" April asked incredulously. "What happened?"
"I don't think we're ready to cross that line!" Erica explained. "I mean, we want to, but last night was just too... it felt... forced. Like we were expected to. It would have been all wrong."
Wrapping her arm around Erica, April sighed and shook her head. "I guess it's partly my fault. I... I was being pushy... like always!"
"You aren't always pushy!" Erica rebutted as she dried her eyes and sniffed. "Just when you want your way!"
"Oh, very funny!" April laughed.
Getting dressed, the rest of the day passed happily, if awkwardly on a few occasions. Franchesca didn't say anything, but just kept looking at the two. Meanwhile, Heather was trying to read their perplexing body language. She was sure Erica slept in Faith's room, but the way they moved, sat, stood, and talked only spoke of quiet frustration instead of the relaxed attitude of lovers.
After a brief trip down to the Dempsey ranch to visit, the four sat down to dinner with Brooke and Jenny, Heather saying the prayer of thanks before looking up to smile at the five seated at the table.
"Well, I know what I'm thankful for this year!" Heather sighed happily. "Having my girls back! Both of you! That, and getting to know April! These last few weeks have been wonderful, being a family again!" Turning to Faith, she waited expectantly.
"Well, I guess I'm thankful to have Erica back in my life, our lives I mean, that we're all still here to be a family again, to April for making Erica happy, for getting into nursing college, and... um... to you Mamma, for being so forgiving. I haven't been as good as I should have been."
"Forgiven and forgotten, Faith!" Heather smiled, still noticing the girl's pensiveness. "Erica?"
"Yes, Mamma." the visibly tense teen answered. "I'm thankful that you all still love me, unconditionally." Looking at those at the table with her before turning her attention around the room to Fredrick, Cook, and Franchesca last with a mildly embarrassed blush. "I'm also thankful to be here, to have April back in my life, and... to be me again." Turning to April, she waited.
Looking at the five others sitting at the table looking at her, it took the girl a moment to realize they were waiting on her. "Oh! Me? Um... I guess I'm thankful to have Erica back, too... don't get a swelled head though!" she laughed along with the others. "Um... I guess that and getting to meet you all, knowing that Erica was loved and cared for after she left. That's all."
Taking a cleansing breath, Brooke looked at the three teens sitting across from her. "I'm thankful for a lot of things, but I think the one that stands out is getting to have a chance to know Erica." Her voice faltering, the retired Marine looked down. "I... I have a lot to make up for. When she lived here, I didn't take the time to know her. I didn't want to know her. When I see him, your dad's gonna give me an a... he's gonna have some words for me!" Looking up as the others at the table giggled, Brooke smiled. "I'm thankful of the chance, anyway."
Beaming happily, Jenny looked at the assembled family. "I'm thankful to have all of you in my life! April? You're a doll! I'm glad you two found each other! I'm also thankful that tomorrow I get to see my parents! They're finally coming back home from Asia, this time to stay!" Turning to Brooke, she smirked. "You're coming with me this time, love! Mom and Dad missed you last time!"
Rolling her eyes, Brooke sighed resignedly. "Yes, dear."
"Well then!" Heather smiled. "Happy Thanksgiving, everyone!" Diving into the meal, the six chatted and ate until they at last retired to the living room.
Looking over at her best friend's only child, Brooke smiled. "You look so much like your mother, Erica. There are times though that you're just like your father! You have his sense of humor... and his wisdom."
Blushing as April squeezed her hand, Erica looked back at her. "I'll take that as a compliment, Aunt Brooke."
"I meant to tell you, I read your book." she continued. "It's good."
"Which one?" Erica asked curiously.
"Your autobiography."
"Oh." she said as she looked away with her cheeks flushing. "I... um... I wrote that when I thought you all hated me... the real me, I mean. I tried not to make anyone look bad, but..."
"It's OK!" Brooke smiled. "You were right, and you made us all look good in the end, better than we were, anyway. I know you made it so no one would recognize that the person you wrote about in chapter twelve was me, but I knew. I... I wasn't very nice to you, and not nearly as understanding as I should have been. You're a remarkable young woman, Erica. I... I should have seen that sooner."
"It's alright, Aunt Brooke." Erica consoled her. "It all turned out the way it needed to."
Listening to the two, Jenny spoke up. "Erica, I just want you to know that Brooke felt very bad about how she treated you when you lived here. It ate her up inside for years afterward." Looking at her wife, she took a deep breath and got a stern look on her face. "I told her that you didn't seem like any boy I ever knew, but she had a lot of trouble accepting it."
"If it's any consolation Brooke," April offered, "I had a lot of trouble at first, too." Turning to Erica, she sighed sadly. "The first time I saw her I made her cry, I hurt her so badly. I... I didn't even stay a week. I flew back to Arizona early and tried to forget her, but she... she didn't give up on me."
"How did you two reconcile?" Heather asked.
Smiling wistfully, April shrugged a shoulder. "When I got back, I found out my boss replaced me. I got a call from her the next day. Her detectives hadn't been called off the job yet, so they told her what happened. Erica didn't just offer me money like I thought she was going to do, she... she made some calls and got me a job interview. She said she knew I didn't want anything to do with her, but she had to help in some way. That's when I knew she was the same person I grew up with. She offered to 'lose' my contact info after helping, but I felt bad that I'd treated her so mean and then when I got in trouble she was right there for me. We kept talking, and after a few weeks I realized that I was still in love with her."
Brooke looked at April guiltily. "I appreciate you trying to make me feel better about my own problems accepting Erica, but I had a year to accept it and still refused to see what was right in front of me." Turning to Erica, she grimaced. "I... I wanted Erica to be just like Jack. I missed my best friend so much that hoped I could get some of him back in his son. I'm sorry, Erica." Smiling, she added, "Turns out that's exactly who she is anyway... a little bit Jack... a little bit her mother Erica... and a lot just herself!"
When the evening turned late, the Hathaways headed for their own home while Hargrave House wound down for the night. Once more, Erica sat at her vanity brushing out her hair with April reading on the bed when Heather knocked lightly. "Come in, Mamma."
Silently, Heather made her way across the room to her niece. "Just came in to say goodnight and say Happy Thanksgiving once more!" she said softly. Seeing Erica smile as she brushed herself, Heather remembered the many times she'd seen the child Erica doing the same thing. "Could I help you, sweetie?" she offered as she'd done so many times five years earlier.
"I'd love that, Mamma!" she smiled. When Heather took the brush and ran it through her auburn hair, Erica sighed contentedly. "That feels so nice!"
"I remember you used to love me brushing your hair!" Heather reminisced. "Unless you had a bad tangle!"
Laughing lightly, Erica closed her eyes. "Yeah! You always made it better though, Mamma. Faith brushed out my hair most nights though, until..." An uncomfortable silence sprang up between the two as they remembered when Heather had forced the two girls into separate rooms.
Hearing the awkwardness unspoken, April got up. "You'll have to excuse me. I... I need to use the restroom." she lied as she headed toward it, closing the door behind her.
After a moment alone, Heather broke the silence. "Erica, I couldn't help but notice you and Faith seemed a little... pensive... today. Is everything OK?"
Shrugging, Erica wasn't sure how to answer.
"You... you don't have to talk to me about it." her aunt offered. "If you want to though, just know that I'll try to be understanding."
When Heather began brushing her hair once more in silence, Erica gathered her nerve. "Um... I slept in Faith's room last night. You know that, right?" Seeing her aunt nod in the vanity mirror, Erica closed her eyes and took a breath. "We... um... we didn't do anything. Just slept next to each other... like when we were little. It was nice."
Listening, Heather tried to keep her feelings in check. "I see. Well, that's fairly harmless. I take it you wanted... well... more?"
"We both did." Erica admitted. "But we... um... we couldn't."
Hearing the unspoken, the older woman stopped brushing. "I... I made you two feel guilty about your feelings for one another, didn't I?"
"It's not just that." she noted. "It was like we were expected to, so it wasn't just because it was what we wanted. We just couldn't. It didn't seem... right."
Resuming her useful distraction, Heather nodded in understanding as she worked a tangle out gently. "That makes sense, sweetie. You know how I feel about it. It's dangerous. That having been said, I don't want you two to feel that you need to deny your feelings for one another, so long as you abide by your agreements. No one can know about it, I won't help if it does get out, you must be discreet, and everyone has to agree."
"About that." Erica offered shyly. "Um... Franchesca saw me come back to my room this morning. She knows and we haven't even done anything."
Stopping her brushing as she processed the information, Heather resumed after a moment. "Well, she didn't seem disturbed today and she didn't say anything, so she might not know as much as you think, but it would be best if you three call this whole thing off. If you can't keep it a secret a day, it's inevitable that it will get out, and you all agreed that no one would know."
Looking down sadly, Erica nodded as a tear fell. "You're right. I'll tell them."
Seeing her niece quietly crying and just giving in like a broken child, Heather nearly cried herself, from guilt. "No. I'm sorry, sweetheart. I... I let myself use the situation to push my own agenda. I never had the right to demand anything of you three. It was wrong of me to try. It must be your decision." Putting down the brush, Heather gently laid her hands on Erica's shoulders reassuringly. "Ignore your old and inflexible aunt! You're all adults. You should do what you think is best." Kissing the girl on the top of her head, she started toward the door. "Goodnight, Erica. I love you."
"Love you too, Mamma." the girl echoed confusedly. "Goodnight."
Fifteen minutes later, Faith's door opened and closed, Erica locking it behind her just like the night before. "Hi." she said timidly.
Faith smiled at her weakly from her side of the bed nearest the door. "Hi. I... I thought that maybe you might not come tonight."
Approaching slowly, Erica nodded. "I... I almost didn't. I... I need to tell you something." Sitting at the vanity, Erica looked away as she continued. "Franchesca knows." she said simply.
"Oh God!" Faith gasped. "How?"
"She... she caught me going into my room this morning. I told Mamma about it when she came to say goodnight. At first, she said that we had to call it all off, and then said we should do whatever we want. She released us from our promises. She said she didn't have the right to make us promise anything."
"Do... do you want to call it off?" Faith asked nervously.
"No." she answered with a shrug. "Do you?"
Faith shook her head slowly. "What about April? What did she say?"
Smirking, Erica looked away again bashfully. "What you'd expect from her! 'Not a chance!' I think she likes the idea more than we do!"
Giggling together, Faith nodded toward the far side of the bed. "Coming?"
Taking her phone out of her robe pocket, Erica put it on the nightstand next to her side of the bed before disrobing and climbing in. "No more chances!"
Snuggling up against one another, the two settled into a comfortable position before resuming their conversation.
"Erica?" Faith began, her hand nestled once more between the girl's breasts. "Do you think we'll ever..." Her voice trailed off, knowing that her cousin already knew the rest of her question unasked.
With a sigh and a shrug, Erica took a moment to answer. "I... I don't know, Faith. We can... if you want to. When I'm here, I'm yours... always."
Smiling, the older teen sighed contentedly as her naked body pressed more firmly against Erica's. "Just knowing that is almost enough to make me not even need it. Almost!" she giggled.
Giggling with her, Erica felt Faith's hand begin to wander. "Almost!"
The next two days were much more relaxed. Each night, Erica would go to Faith's room, returning to her own just before six. When Sunday morning came, Erica woke before her alarm as usual and turned it off.
"Faith?" she tried to rouse the girl. "Faith, it's time."
"No!" she grumbled as she pulled Erica in tighter. "Just a few more minutes?"
Prying Faith's arms from around her, Erica sighed sadly. "Sorry, love. I have to get back to my room before anyone gets up."
Groaning, Faith struggled weakly before giving up. "I know. It's just that Christmas is almost four weeks away! I'm spoiled by you, now! I don't want you to go!"
Slipping out of bed, Erica picked up her robe and slipped into it. "I know, but we'll be staying through New Years, so we'll get ten days together!"
Smiling wickedly, Faith reached out and took Erica's hand, pulling her back close again to wrap her arms around the girl's waist. "I'm looking forward to the ten nights together!"
Loving the feel of Faith so close, Erica sighed happily. "Mmm! Only eight nights though, love. Remember? April gets me on Christmas Eve and New Years Eve."
Pouting, Faith released her. "Not fair! She gets you all the rest of the time!"
"I promised her that our first Christmas and New Year would be ours, love. You agreed!"
"I wanna take it back!" she smirked.
"Sorry, love." Erica sighed. "See you at breakfast!" Leaning down, she kissed Faith lovingly and tenderly, letting it linger a moment before pulling away and heading toward the door.
Groaning, Faith flopped onto her bed. "Oh... I'm gonna miss that almost as much as you being next to me all night!"
Smiling from the door, Erica waited until Faith turned to face her. "I love you." she intoned seriously. "Remember, right now, I'm yours... always."
"Mine always." she sighed wantonly. "I love you, too!"
Erica slipped into her own bedroom, seeing April splayed out across the bed and giggling at the sight. Quietly, she made her way into the bathroom, showered, and was out just as April started rousing. "Good morning, dear!" she sang.
"That's debatable." April growled. "It's freezing in here!"
"Go get in the shower." Erica offered. "Water's warm for you!"
Smiling weakly, the older girl stumbled toward the bath. "Thanks." Stopping as she passed Erica, she wrapped her arms around the girl's waist, giving her a quick kiss on the cheek. "Have a good night?"
Shrugging, Erica smiled. "A lady doesn't kiss and tell!"
"Uh-huh!" April smiled back. "I'll want details later! No secrets, right?" Letting the girl go, she swatted Erica gently on the rear as she headed for the warmth of the bathroom.
After breakfast, the ladies sat in the living room chatting while Franchesca re-packed Erica and April's bags. When Erica's car showed up at a quarter to three, they moved to the entryway to say their good-byes.
Holding Erica tightly, Heather sighed in both happiness and sadness; happy to have had the time together, but sad to see it end and lose her niece again for four weeks. "I miss you already, sweetheart!"
"Me too, Mamma!" she nearly cried. "Four weeks isn't that long though, and we'll be here from the twenty-third until the second, so we'll have lots of time together!"
"Take care of April, sweetie!" she lightly lectured. "To paraphrase something that your father used to say, 'That girl still needs you!'"
While Heather and Erica said goodbye, Faith and April did as well. With a brief embrace, the two smiled at one another.
"Have a good weekend?" April probed quietly.
Nodding with a smile, Faith looked down shyly. "Very! Thank you!"
April shrugged. "I'm just happy for you two, whatever you did."
Blushing, Faith stepped back. "Looking forward to seeing you two over Christmas!" she said in a normal tone.
"Me too." April nodded. Switching places as Fredrick and Eddie loaded the bags into Erica's car, April hugged Heather fiercely. "Thanks for having us, Heather!"
Returning the hug, she was slightly taken aback by the girl's affection, a change from the previous visit. "You two are always welcome at Hargrave House, April! Anytime!" Breaking off the hug, she regarded the young woman that she'd come to hold dear. "You'll take care of her, won't you?"
"Always have and always will, Heather!" she promised.
Holding Erica as though her life depended on it, Faith didn't want to let go. "Four weeks. I can last four weeks." she whispered in her cousin's ear.
"You better!" Erica whispered back. "Because I still need you!"
"Mine!" Faith nearly cried, kissing Erica's cheek tenderly.
"Yours always." she answered back.
Link: Lost Faith Title Page and Description
--
Typing furiously at her keyboard, tears poured down Erica's cheeks. The words she wrote were bittersweet, speaking of the love they could have had and the future denied by a single choice. The choice of one of them to give up on their love. They had overcome seemingly insurmountable odds. Torn apart so young, just as their love had begun to blossom, that they then found their way back to one another after so many years of pain apart was nothing short of a miracle.
She wrote of their stormy reunion, the words of anger back and forth, and then the faint glimmer of hope. Finally they'd kissed. Not much in itself, but the kisses after were so full of fire and passion that it threatened to consume them both. They'd wanted each other and admitted it, but it was doomed from the start. The things they wanted out of life just wouldn't mesh with the reality of one another. She'd been willing to give up everything and everyone for the girl she'd known her whole life, but it wasn't enough.
Standing at the doorway, a bag over her shoulder and a suitcase in her other hand, April's heart ached at the sight. "Erica? I..." She could see the tears flowing down the writer's face, landing in drops on her desk. She knew better than to try and say anything now, but she did anyway. "I... I'm going to take these down to my car. All packed." Erica didn't even seem to hear her. April turned and left, wishing there was some way to ease Erica's pain, but knew it would be futile. She would just have to work it out for herself.
Erica was only vaguely aware of April's departure. All there was in the world right then was her writing, and into this she buried herself. She continued to type away furiously, wiping tears from her cheeks as she went. Finally, she had said all there was to be said. She was done and it was done. There was nothing left but to hit send and move on.
A few minutes after she'd sent it, while Erica was wiping the tears away, her cell phone rang. The caller ID told her it was her aunt Heather. Grabbing a tissue, she blew her nose and tried to finish drying her eyes, answering the call as she did so.
"Hi, Mamma!" she said, barely able to hide the sound of her recent tears.
Heather knew her too well. "Sweetheart? Have you been crying? I got a message, well Franchesca got it on her computer. What's the problem? What's wrong?"
Suddenly April came back in, slamming the door behind her. "Erica!" she screamed, enough to make the weeping woman jump.
"Jaysus!" Erica exclaimed. "Hold on a second, Mamma! April! What?"
Her first love was fuming. "Erica! We're going to be late! It takes four hours to drive up to Mom's house! Your cousin will be there before we are if we don't leave now! You can finish that story of yours later! You only have one cousin and she only has one twenty-first birthday! I sent a message to your mom that we were leaving and you're making a liar out of me!"
Remembering that her aunt was on the phone, she put it back up to her ear. "Mamma? Sorry, April is champing at the bit to get us out of here. We're leaving right now! Love you!"
"Tell April to drive carefully, sweetie!" Heather sighed in exasperation. "I'd rather you be late than hurt... or worse!"
Erica stood and grabbed her purse. "Mamma says not to rush." She walked quickly up to April and kissed her. "Thank you for being patient with me!"
Grabbing Erica's phone out of her hand, April headed out the door. "Hello, Mom? We're just leaving now. I... I promise, Mom! We'll be fine! I can get us there on time and... Mom! I'm an excellent driver!" She shifted the heavy bundle in her hands again. Fast walking toward the car, she continued to listen to Heather as Erica took the things from her hands and put them in the back seat for her. "Yes, Mom! I... I know other drivers get crazy this time of year. What?... Oh Mom, she's fine! I swear! She was just writing! Look, I'm getting in the car right now. Here's Erica again." Shoving the phone back into Erica's hand, she ordered, "You talk to her!"
Heather listened as the daughter of her heart took the phone. "Erica! You tell that girl she needs to drive carefully! Precious cargo!"
"I will, Mamma." Erica replied as she sat in the passenger seat and looked in the back seat to check that everything was there and settled. "Good to go, love." Turning back to talk to her aunt, she sighed. "Mamma, don't worry! You know April! She wouldn't take any chances! She knows you'd kill her! OK, Mamma, I'm hanging up now so I can navigate for April. Love you! Call you when we're close! Bye!"
Disconnecting the call, she took a cleansing breath, closed her eyes, and slowly let it out.
While April headed for the freeway, she smiled at her wife. "Get it all out of your system, honey?"
"I'm sorry I made us run late, love. I was just so close to finishing..."
April finished for her. "Yeah, yeah... so close you just had to finish it right now! You have a tablet! You could have done the last of the work in the car and then sent it to editing!"
Erica shook her head. "I can't write in the car! I get carsick! You know that, love! Besides, I have other duties." She placed her hand on April's knee.
"Know what Mom would say if she saw you doing that while I'm driving?"
"Mmm, hmm!" Erica smiled. "But Mamma's not here!"
"Hands on your side, honey. I think they're needed elsewhere."
As if on cue, a cry arose from the back seat. "Sounds like she's hungry again." Erica noted.
"She's always hungry! I swear that kid can drink half my body weight every day!" April suddenly felt a familiar feeling. "Better give her the bottle quick or I'm gonna ruin my blouse!"
Erica rummaged through the diaper bag until she found the bottle of breast milk. Leaning over the back of her seat, she handed the screaming child what she wanted. "It's a'right." Erica soothed. "There ya go, babaí. Tá Mamaí anseo."
The baby girl settled down with her bottle and the sound of Erica's brogue, April waiting until she was turned back around. "You keep talking to her like that and everyone will think the Dempseys have a new daughter! You're going to ruin her speech patterns!"
"Hush now!" Erica chided. "An' what air wrong wi' a bit o' th' Irish tongue, A rúnsearc?"
Trying to be mad, April just couldn't stay that way when Erica was being so sweet. "You... are beautiful!" she replied.
Shaking her head, Erica looked out the window. "Matter of opinion." After a few moments, she turned to April. "Thank you, again."
"For what?"
"For putting up with my crazy hobby."
"I love you... all of you." she admitted. "Besides, that 'crazy hobby' puts meat on the table and a roof over our heads. Though sometimes I wish you could learn to settle back and let the other writers keep things going. You have enough of them now that you don't have to write anymore."
"See, that's where you're wrong dear." Erica shook her head. "I didn't create Reflection Publishing just to publish stories, I created it to publish my stories. The rest is just bonus. I write because I have to."
"But you get so emotional over them!" April whined. "Like this last one, you were pouring tears as you finished it! I thought I was going to have to take you to the hospital for severe dehydration!"
"I'm not that bad!" she looked away. "Besides, this hit really close to home."
"How close?" April asked, stealing a glance at her wife.
"Too close." Erica wiped a tear from her eye just thinking about it.
"Well... I hope you're taking a good long break this time. Having you hole up in your office for two weeks is murder on my sex life!"
Not listening, Erica turned back to look at her. "What, dear?"
"Never mind, honey. You still upset about your story?"
Sighing, Erica looked back out the window again. "Yeah. I hope it does some good for somebody."
"I'm sure it will, honey. It nearly always does."
Hours later as they got close to her mother's house, Erica called. "Mamma? We're about ten minutes out. Wanted to call before we lose service."
Heather breathed a sigh of relief. "Thank goodness! I'm glad you called, sweetie. I get so worried with you, April, and the baby on the road." Looking down at her watch, she scowled. "You made really good time. Too good! I wasn't expecting you for another twenty minutes! When April gets here I'm going to..."
"...tell her you love her, missed her, and are glad to see her. Right, Mamma?" Erica interrupted.
"Yes, sweetie." Taking a deep breath, she let it go. "I'll just be glad when you're all three here and safe at home! Oh... wait a minute... Alright. Sweetie? Franchesca just got a message from Faith. She's about ten minutes behind you."
"Faith is ten minutes behind us." she echoed to April.
"I'll stretch that to twelve before we get there." April replied, pressing the gas a little harder.
"Love, ten minutes is more than enough! Back off please? For the baby?"
"Alright, fine! We wouldn't be in this mess if..."
"...I could get out of the house on time. Yes... I know, love."
Heather listened to their exchange over the phone as it started to break up. "Sweetie? I think I'm losing you!"
Erica looked at her phone before putting it in her purse. "No signal."
Driving quietly for a minute, April realized something. "Hey, honey? How did Mom know Faith is ten minutes behind us?"
"She sent Franchesca a message."
"Well... how can she do that if she's driving?"
Erica paused a moment, considering the options. "Maybe she took a cab. It's been known to happen. We Hargraves are used to being driven around by our chauffeurs! The only reason Eddie isn't driving us is because this Sunday is Easter and he asked for the week off to be with his family in Philly... so you'll just have to do!"
"I am not your bloody chauffeur!" April shouted and laughed at the same time. "You just drive like my dead grandma! If you drove us instead of Eddie, we wouldn't be there until next week!"
Several minutes later they pulled up the driveway and stopped in front of the garage, Fredrick there waiting to open it as they pulled up. "Looks like Mamma wants us to park inside so Faith doesn't get suspicious."
"She was born suspicious!" April quipped.
"No, she was born stubborn, she learned suspicious from me!"
Pulling into the garage, April shut off the engine. "Can you get the baby and her things, honey? I'll get the rest."
Opening the rear passenger door, Erica saw their angel sleeping peacefully, an empty bottle crooked in her arm as though she was carrying it. Sighing with contentment, she lifted the entire car seat out and opened the handle, carrying it in along with the diaper bag and a small suitcase.
Coming through the front door, she paused a moment and smiled at all the people she knew who were there waiting for Faith. "Hi, everyone! Faith's just a few minutes behind us, so get ready!"
Mike walked up and took the diaper bag from her. "Here, let an expert git that, ya' ol' bean phósta!" Looking down at Erica and April's sleeping baby, he grinned before shaking his head in disbelief. "She shurin' takes after ya' both! Ah don't know how ye managed it deirfiúr, but Ah think she's grand!"
Smiling secretively, the twenty-year-old knew that Mike and the others had never known her as anything but Erica, and she had no intention of changing their perceptions. Unable to resist, she answered, "Careful selection at the sperm bank!"
"Ach!" Mike shuddered. "I dinna need ta be knowin' tha' much, eejit!"
Coming in with Fredrick, April was carrying their bags and presents for Faith. "Think you could stop gabbing and lend a hand, honey?"
She blushed and took one of the bags from April, carting them off to the library for the moment. When they finally joined the rest of the well-wishers, taking their newborn back from Mike so he could go back to his own child, Erica got a moment to take in the decorations. She smiled at the sign that read, 'Happy Birthday Faith!' and the one that hung under it saying, 'Happy Graduation!'
Noticing the signs as well, April tapped Erica on the shoulder. "Honey? I thought Faith got her Nursing Degree last semester?"
"She did, but she hasn't been home since then. Remember Thanksgiving and Christmas? Something about her being too busy. Nurses, you know."
Just then, they all heard a car pull up out front, making everyone get quiet. Sitting in the silence waiting, Erica looked at April and kissed her quickly. "I figured I should do that now. Faith might not give me a chance later!"
Faith stepped out of the car and went around to the trunk, waiting for it to be opened before pulling the suitcases out. Looking at her mother's house, she breathed a sigh of relief. "Home!" she sighed happily, if nervously.
Walking up to the door, she wasn't surprised when Fredrick opened it for her with his monotone, "Welcome home, Miss Faith." in the same even voice she'd been hearing her entire life.
"Thanks, Freddie!" she said as she walked in the door. "This..."
"Surprise!" everyone shouted. The cacophony of "Happy Birthday!"s mixed with "Happy Graduation!"s created a kind of bedlam that Faith could hardly understand any of the shouts. She stood in shock as a sea of family, friends, and loved ones smiled back at her gaping mouth.
Her mother was the first to reach her. "Happy Birthday, dear!" she said, hugging her tightly. "Were you surprised?"
Half-grinning, a quirk she'd picked up from Erica that she in turn inherited from her father Jack, Faith nodded. "You could say that, Mamma!"
Standing behind her aunt, Erica waited for Faith to see her, which took all of a single heartbeat. Suddenly the room seemed almost silent, Erica's heart beating as fast and hard as if she'd just run a marathon. April having taken the baby, Erica stepped forward and held Faith tightly. "Happy Birthday, love." she whispered in her ear. "I missed you so much!"
Near to tears at the sight of Erica, Faith held her desperately. It had been nearly nine months since they'd last seen each other over the Labor Day weekend. Since then, she'd not been able to get away to see Erica for several reasons; first on Thanksgiving with studying for finals, then with her new nursing job over Christmas. Now finally here, she was in Erica's arms and she had to hold back her desire in front of so many people.
She finally managed to squeak out, "Congratulations to you too... Mom!" When they'd last seen each other, April had just found out she was pregnant, and the two cousins had celebrated the news in their own private way.
Smiling, Erica corrected her slightly. "Uh-uh. April is Mom, I'm Mamaí!"
They held their embrace for just a moment longer than appropriate, finally separating so Faith could greet all her other guests. She immediately spotted Brooke and Jenny, Michael and Emma, Mike and his wife Marylyn, Greg and Betty, and a dozen others who she couldn't make out through the crowd. Turning to Erica, Faith took both her hands in her own. "Erica, I... I have something to tell you and it can't wait."
Even as she spoke, Erica looked over Faith's shoulder to see the timid girl still standing in the doorway. She was short, but trim and athletic looking. Her long dark hair seemed so black it took on an almost blue hue, her skin tan, but not dark, and her eyes seeming to be the darkest shade of brown Erica had ever seen. Looking back at Faith, she could see in her ever-vibrant blue eyes just who this young lady was to her love.
A lump rose in her throat at the thought that their relationship was now complicated by a fourth party; one who Erica didn't know and would likely spell the end of their time together. She found someone! Before that moment, Erica thought she knew what bittersweet meant, until she looked into Faith's elated and sad eyes reflecting the feeling of joy and sorrow in both of their hearts.
Taking Erica by the hand, Faith led her to the doorway as the crowd stopped shouting and cheering. "Erica? I'd like you to meet Cassey Walters. Cassey? This is my cousin, Erica!"
Cassey was more than nervous. She and Faith had been dating for six months and she'd gotten the idea that Erica was more than just a cousin to Faith. She seemed to be the girl's entire world until the two had met. It was always 'Erica says this' or 'Erica's done that', which started to make Cassey believe that Erica couldn't be a real person, or if she was she was some sort of angel descended from heaven.
Making her way over to the three standing in her open doorway, Heather stood next to Erica as Faith continued introductions. "And this is my mother, Heather Hargrave. Mamma? I'd like you to meet Cassey!"
Looking the young girl over, Heather guessed her to be younger than Faith, possibly only eighteen. Glancing at Faith, she saw a light in her daughter's eyes and smiled. Approaching Cassey to give her a warm welcome, she was shocked at the fear in Cassey's eyes, as though Heather were about to beat her with a yardstick. Gently extending her hand graciously, Heather waited for the girl to take it. "Welcome to Hargrave House, Cassey. Won't you come in?"
Over the next hour, Erica showed everyone but Faith and Cassey her and April's baby, the opportunity to introduce her cousin to her daughter never materializing. Frustrated and upset, she decided to take a short walk outside to clear her head. Walking around her 'mother's' front yard, she looked up at the stars with her hands shivering in her coat pockets.
The night was cold and completely clear. The first day of spring had come and gone nearly a month ago, but Coös County wouldn't know it for a few more weeks. While she gazed up at the crystal clear night sky, she heard the front door open and then close quickly. Turning, she saw Faith coming down the marble steps, walking slowly toward her with the sound of frosty gravel crunching beneath her feet. Turning back to look up at the stars, Erica shivered against the cold, as well as the empty feeling in her heart.
Cautiously, Faith walked up to the cousin who had become her sister in all but fact, and her love before that. Seeing no response, she just stood with her, staring into the night sky as Erica was doing, the frost tickling her nose. After a moment, Faith broke the silence.
"Sure is cold out tonight."
When Erica didn't respond, Faith looked down and sighed. "Erica? Please talk to me."
Erica sighed, mirroring Faith. "I've been trying for an hour. I never even got to say congratulations... for Cassey, I mean." Erica looked at her and tried her best to smile genuinely. "Does she make you happy?" Seeing Faith simply nod in reply, Erica did the same in return. "Well, then I can only wish all the best for you two. I... I truly mean that, Faith."
"Walk with me?"
The two started walking idly, looking at the yard, the stars, and everything except each other. Erica smiled as she saw the side yard where they'd made snow angels and their freakishly comical snowman so long ago. Laughing, she reminisced about it with Faith.
"I swear! I thought you were going to explode when you saw snow for the first time!" Faith laughed along with her.
"And that snowman! God! It was so pathetic looking!" Erica added.
Making their way through the side yard, their laughter slowed and Erica reached out a hand to Faith. Taking it, Faith walked hand in hand with her first love. "The baby looks adorable!" she commented. "She has your eyes!"
Erica stopped. "You saw the baby?"
"April showed her to me!" she nodded with a smile. "She's beautiful!"
"Oh." Erica started walking again.
"I'm sorry, Erica! You probably wanted to be the one to introduce me to my niece, didn't you?"
Nodding, Erica breathed out and watched her breath form a momentary cloud ahead of them. "It's alright. Today is your day. I just... I wanted... oh God, sometimes it's impossible to think around you! You have that effect on me!"
Giggling, Faith wrapped her arm around Erica's. "I know the feeling!"
Reaching the wooden bench in the corner of the yard, they sat and huddled together. "Look at us!" Erica mused. "House full of happy guests, happy about your birthday, happy about your graduation, April's baby, warmth and love everywhere, and where are we? Outside freezing in the cold!"
Looking at Erica warmly, Faith smiled contentedly. "Funny. It doesn't seem so cold when I look at you."
They sat back and held each other, looking at the stars. "I... I..." Erica sighed heavily in exasperation. "I was a little upset that you met someone and I didn't find out for so long."
Nodding, Faith clung to Erica tighter. "I know. I'm sorry. I... I just... I didn't know what to tell you at first, then I was too busy to tell you, then it was too late to tell you."
"It's alright, Faith. I understand. I really am happy for you! You deserve to be loved. May I ask something? Why does she seem so... timid? She acts like we're going to gang up on her at any minute and beat the tar out of her!"
Faith didn't answer right away. They sat in silence before she finally spoke.
"Cassey is... well, she comes from Florida. She came here to live with her uncle after her parents were killed in a car accident. She was in the car, but she survived with only minor injuries. Her uncle wasn't like Mamma was to you, though. He hated her... resented having her around. He... he did things to her, Erica. Bad things. Evil things."
"Oh God, Faith!"
"Yeah... I know. When we met, she'd just left home, a little like the way April did. She was taking night classes at the college and cleaning campus floors during the day. That's how I met her. She and I would talk occasionally, but she always ran off with some excuse when it got to asking about her. It took a while, but eventually I got her to open up."
"After a while, as we started to get closer, before I even knew it, I... I was falling in love with her." She looked away and laughed. "Was I relieved when she told me that she was, too!"
"You mean she was falling in love with herself, too?" Erica quipped.
Faith pushed against Erica's shoulder, laughing. "You know what I mean!"
Laughing along with Faith a moment, when at last their laughter died, Erica reached out and turned Faith to face her. "I still love you, Faith. I don't think that will ever change, but I know that this... changes things... between us."
Reaching out her cold hand, Faith ran her fingers across Erica's soft cheek. "I... I still love you too, Erica... and I don't think that will ever change either. I just... I don't want us to lose what we have with each other! So I'm afraid to tell her about us. About our... relationship. I'm afraid... afraid she'll..."
"Afraid she'll leave you?"
She shook her head sadly. "When you came back, I learned how to let you go, but you keep coming back to me! I'll always love you for that. I... I need it, maybe more than you know."
"But?"
"But that's not what I'm afraid of! I... I'm afraid that I'll lose you! I don't know what to do. I... I don't think I could stand to lose her... but... I don't want to lose you, either... and if I had to choose... I... I just couldn't!"
Erica held her hand, warming it with her own. "Well, you're going to have to tell her something eventually, right? Or were you planning on keeping this big of a secret from the woman you love for the rest of your lives?"
"One of the women I love, Erica."
"You know what I mean."
Faith took a deep breath and let it out slowly. "How... how did you tell April? About us, I mean."
"It wasn't easy." Erica explained. "I was telling her about my life at Hargrave House and... well... it just sort of came out. I told her about the day I left for school... and... um... the night before."
Swallowing hard, Faith asked, "How did she take it?"
"Not well." Erica answered. "At first she thought we were pervs, then she thought maybe just you were! It was why she went back to Arizona, but we kept talking. She kept asking about you, and I think eventually she realized that the heart wants what the heart wants and you just can't change it. That if after five years apart I was still in love with you, it probably was never going to go away and wasn't just physical attraction."
"In the end," Erica continued, "she accepted that you and I love each other and convinced me I had to come back, to find out what I really wanted."
"What if Cassey doesn't understand?"
"That's not really up to you, is it Faith? Unless you want to lie to your partner for the rest of your lives, she's going to either have to accept that there's a part of your heart that belongs to me, or move on to someone that suits her. Either that or you're going to have to choose. I... I don't envy you that. I know I never had to, but I got lucky. You and April never made me choose."
Shivering against the cold, Faith knew Erica was right.
"Come on. Let's go in the kitchen." Erica suggested. "I'll make you a warm cup of tea, and then you can figure out what you want to do."
Slowly, the two walked back to the house. "I love talking to you, Erica! You make everything make sense."
"Writer's gift. Everything's a story to me. My life, your life, all full of plots, subplots, foreshadowing, allusion, and subtext."
Sighing sadly as they approached the laundry room door that led to the kitchen, Faith's teeth chattered. "I miss Cook."
"Me too." Erica repressed a tear. "It must have been murder trying to find someone to replace her. I'm sorry I wasn't here for that part, that I couldn't be there for you and Mamma to help. The funeral was just... just too hard."
"We understood, love." Faith comforted. "She... she was the reason you got to stay who you are. She stood up for you, even against Mamma."
Erica wiped away a cold tear. "I just wish she could have lived to see the baby. She was so looking forward to it after April and I got married."
Suddenly, Faith stopped and gasped just outside the door. "The baby! I... April never told me her name! Or if she did, I missed it!"
Opening the door for her cousin, Erica laughed. "You couldn't have missed it Faith. Her name's Hope. Hope Theresa Dunning!"
Blushing, she smiled. "That's beautiful, Erica!"
Entering the kitchen, the sound of the party just beyond the swinging door, Faith warmed her hands at the sink while Erica readied two cups of tea. After a few minutes, they sat together at the kitchen table, just looking into each other's eyes, lovingly and wantonly, and sipping their tea while they warmed their hands on their cups.
Perking up, Faith exhaled her worries away. "So, any books coming out?"
Erica nodded and smiled. "A special one."
"Oh?" she asked curiously. "What's it about?"
Looking at her, she smiled and looked down at her cup. "It's a love story. About a girl who moves in with her distant relations, and falls desperately in love with her cousin. She risks everything to be with her."
Her eyes growing wide, Faith looked at Erica in shock. "Isn't that a little..."
"Risky?" she completed her thought. "Yes, but it needs to be told. It's different enough that no one could make the connection, but same enough that the story still gets told. April already gave her nod of approval, but I... I won't publish it if you say I can't. Of course, now I need to change the ending!"
Biting her lower lip, Faith looked away. "Why? How did it end?"
Reaching out, Erica took Faith's hand. "They loved happily ever after."
Looking back with a weak smile, Faith sighed. "I think they still might. One way or the other, her cousin just can't stop loving her back, even if it means losing... losing everything. I mean, they'll still love each other, even... even if they can't be together anymore." Looking toward the kitchen door, she then turned back to Erica. "I... I'm ready to tell Cassey. Would you get her for me?"
Standing slowly, Erica made her way around the table. Leaning down, she gently brushed her lips against Faith's. "For you, Faith? Anything!"
Heading back out into the party, Erica spotted Cassey standing next to her wife by the fireplace, April seeming to be almost standing guard over the young girl. Acknowledging a few congratulations, she made her way to the two. "Hey, love!" Erica said to April. "Having a good time?"
"Ha!" April nearly snorted. "Just keeping the jackals from scaring the life out of poor Cassey, here! This mob can be a little overwhelming at times!"
"Really, April!" Cassey insisted. "You don't need to concern yourself with me! You should go have a good time with Erica!" Turning to Faith's cousin, she managed to stammer out, "H-have you seen Faith, E-Erica?"
Nodding, she slipped an arm around April. "She's in the kitchen. She needed a break from the crowd, too. Just go right through the archway into the dining room, then through the swinging door on the right."
"Thanks!" Cassey looked relieved. "I... I think I'll join her! If... if you'll both excuse me?" Moving quickly, the girl not quite nineteen hurried out of the crowded living room as fast as possible.
"What's going on, honey?" April asked, half knowing already.
"Faith hasn't told her... about she and I, that is." Erica explained. "Faith's waiting in the kitchen to tell her." Erica's voice beginning to tremble, she lowered it to a near whisper. "Looks like you may be stuck with me all the time now! No more having to share!"
April shook her head and wrapped her arms around Erica's neck. "Don't be so sure! Cassey knows a lot more than Faith thinks. While you two were out shivering in the cold, Cassey told me quite a lot. I don't know if she's open to the idea or not, but it's not settled yet!"
Looking at April, Erica smiled. "Either way, I think it'll all work out the way it's supposed to. He knows best!"
--
If you have enjoyed this story, I would ask that you pay a small amount for the entertainment it has provided you. Nothing worthwhile in life is free. A one-time donation of $5 to the site makes it cost less than most paperbacks. Even if you regularly donate, this is the price I ask you to pay to see to it that this and stories like it can remain available.
Thank you and may God bless,
Roberta Elder
Jack Dunning was just a poor kid from Pittsburgh, no better or worse than any other. When he met Richard, it seemed to be a one-sided friendship; Jack needing Richard much more than the other way around. As the years passed however, it became clear to them both just how important their friendship was, eventually culminating in both learning the hardest lesson in life; that every day is a gift and you should treat each one as though it were your last.
Spanning half a dozen different locations throughout the United States and a few around the world, Every Day is Your Last follows the lives of two boys, their friends, and their families. Combining the elements of a 'buddy story' and romance novel in an exhaustively researched period piece covering twenty-five years, the story describes average American life in the latter part of the twentieth century through the beginning of the twenty-first. It's written as a companion story to the novel, Lost Faith.
Copyright © 2019, 2021 Roberta Elder - All Rights Reserved
122,995 words
This is a work of fiction. The names, characters, businesses, places, events, locales, and incidents are either the products of the authors imagination or used in a fictitious manner. Though depicting some real-life events, any resemblance to actual persons, living or dead, or actual firms or individual experiences is purely coincidental. No part of this publication may be reproduced, stored in a retrieval system, or transmitted in any form or by any means, without the prior permission in writing and signed by the author, nor be otherwise circulated in any form other than that in which it is published and without a similar condition including this condition being imposed upon the subsequent publisher.
Attachment | Size |
---|---|
![]() | 1.67 MB |
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
Erica Bella Dunning sat in her office, typing a memo to one of her editors regarding changes to her publishing company's latest soon-to-be-released novel. Nearly done, her intercom buzzed.
"Miss Dunning?" June, her secretary interrupted. "Brooke Hathaway is here to see you."
"Send her right in, June." Erica said distractedly. While she finished typing her interoffice email, she put her pencil in her teeth to free her hands to type faster. Brooke came in through the main doors and walked over to the other side of Erica's large oak desk.
"Jus' a schec." Erica mumbled around the worn wooden instrument. Taking it from her mouth and setting it aside, she suggested, "Go ahead and make yourself comfortable, Aunt Brooke. I'll be right with you!" Typing quickly while Brooke sank into the chair in front of her desk, she finally hit send and smiled, turning to one of her father's dearest friends. She was no blood relation at all, but she still was 'Aunt Brooke' to Erica.
Standing and circling around the desk, she watched the older woman stand back up wearily. Embracing her and kissing her cheek, Erica greeted her properly. "Hi! I'm so glad you could come see me! Can I get you anything? Coffee? Tea? Rum and Coke?" Erica knew full well that Brooke was in AA.
Brooke smiled, her dark hair only just beginning to show the edges of gray. "Hi, sweetie! No, nothing for me! How's the family?"
Erica sat in a chair next to Brooke rather than talk to her over the huge desk. "Mamma's good." she said, referring to her aunt Heather, her mother in all but the legal sense. "Same for April and everyone... except me."
"Not you?" Brooke asked. "What's wrong?"
"Between my work schedule and trying to find the time to spend at home..." Erica looked at her with a blasé expression of exhaustion. "I'm pooped!" The two laughed together a moment before Erica continued. "I haven't even had time to write in a month, which for me is a long time!"
Glad to catch up with her best friend's daughter, Brooke frowned teasingly. "Aww! Having to live in that penthouse must be dreadful!"
"Very funny!" Erica laughed with her. "My 'poor, rich lifestyle'! It's not the money, it's the cost to my sanity! I'm going nuts!"
"So? How can I help?" she asked seriously.
"I don't need help! I'm going crazy just fine on my own, thank you!" Erica teased.
"Oh God, Erica!" Brooke said through her chuckles. "You sound so much like Jack, sometimes!"
"Funny you should mention Dad, Aunt Brooke." Erica segued. "He's the reason I wanted to talk to you. Do you remember the day we met and you told me you'd tell me about him and Uncle Richard someday?"
"Wow! That was nine years ago!" Brooke commented. "But to answer your question, yeah... I remember."
"Well, I was hoping to take you up on your offer."
Brooke balked. "What, did you want to talk about him right now? I thought you were really busy?"
"I am, but I had an idea, and I was hoping you could help. I want to write my father's story, and Uncle Richard's... as told by you!"
The retired Marine scoffed at the suggestion. "Erica! I'm no writer!"
"But I am!" Erica retorted. "See, I got this idea to tell their story as a novel. Since you were there for most of it, it would also be your story... and my mother's, and Mamma's. You tell me things that happened to my father and uncle and yourself and Mamma and my mom, and I write it in story form. I think it's a story that would really help a lot of people, especially Vets. To see two of their own, depicted realistically and respectfully, as told by one of their own... you!"
Brooke looked askance at her honorary niece. "So, you want war stories? I don't think..."
"No! Not at all, Aunt Brooke!" she interrupted to prevent confusion. "I want to tell the story of two average guys who also happen to be patriots. I... I want the world to know my father's story Aunt Brooke, and Uncle Richard's. I want to tell the story of how they met, how they lived, how they loved, how they felt... everything!"
Brooke was stunned. She moved her mouth in an effort to respond, but she couldn't manage to find the words. Finally, she gathered her wits. "Erica, that's a lot to ask! I don't know that you can capture the essence of those two in a simple novel. It's... it's..."
"...it's the job of a storyteller." she interrupted. "And that's what I am! Aunt Brooke, I've been making up stories since I was three years old! I'm pretty good at it too, if I do say so myself, at least my readers seem to agree. Now I want to tell Dad's story, and Uncle Richard's, yours, Mom's, and Mamma's! Trust me, Aunt Brooke. This story will be good!"
Seeing that she was still skeptical, she tried once more. "I'll tell you what. If after I'm done, if you don't like it, I won't publish it. I'll just keep it as a family heirloom. At least then their grandchildren and great grandchildren will know their stories... and that'll be good enough."
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
I met Jack and Rich when we were all three posted at Alameda Naval Air Station just across the bay from San Francisco. Jack was a total clown who hit on everything with breasts! We called him Corporal Strikeout because he couldn't get a date to save his life, but just kept right on swinging! From what everyone told me, it'd always been that way, too. Rich, on the other hand, was attractive, smooth, and never lacked for female attention. I would have hated him, except he was just so nice! They both grew up in the suburbs of Pittsburgh, Pennsylvania, which is funny when you consider that later Rich would move into a house near Pittsberg, New Hampshire, but I'm getting ahead of myself! Rich used to tell this funny story about how he met Jack. Of course, Jack being Jack, he had to add his own twist to it every time Rich would tell it. Rich's story would always be the same, but Jack added bits that were always different. Not that he would change his story mind you, but it was like each time Rich told it, Jack would remember some new little tidbit to add to it. So this is how it all began.
---
Richard Hargrave was standing in line for lunch as usual. It was the first week of his freshman year in High School and he was starting to really like it. It wasn't as though he was always serious about school before, but he did get decent enough grades. To his mind though, the school's sports were more important, and he'd developed well from many years of football, baseball, and hockey. His natural athleticism and youthful good looks, as well as his above-average five-foot ten height, made him popular and a natural leader.
While waiting, he spotted a scrawny kid sitting at a table trying to eat while three jocks were standing over him. Ox, a nickname the boy had gotten due to his heavy and extremely muscular physique, yelled down at the poor kid.
"Move it or lose it, dork!"
The small boy just kept eating as though Ox wasn't there. Getting impatient, his tormenter shoved him and Richard just couldn't stand by and do nothing. Jumping out of line, he hurried over next to the kid, plopping down right next to him as though they knew each other.
"Hey, Ox! How was your summer?"
The bully was flummoxed. He knew Richard. They played football together and had been casual friends growing up, so Ox looked at him and shrugged. "Summer was OK, Rich... but fall is shaping up to be a problem. We have a severe case of loose leaves. This one fell onto our table and it doesn't seem to realize that it's gonna get squashed if it doesn't... leave!"
"Who, this guy? Ox! You got your signals crossed! This is my buddy! My buddy..." Richard patted him discretely on the shoulder and looked at him in that way that says, 'Insert blank'.
"Jack." he said flatly.
"Jack! Jack's cool, Ox! Come on and sit with us!"
The jock wasn't totally stupid. He knew Richard was joking, but he couldn't figure why he was hanging around a kid that looked like he'd never even seen a football, let alone played. After a moment he shrugged and said, "Uh, I think we'll go sit over there for a change." indicating a table over by the windows. "Better light. Come on, guys. See you at practice, Rich."
After they left, Richard found himself sitting next to Jack alone. Finally, the boy stopped eating, turned to him and said, "Ya know, if you sit there next to me, not even having a lunch, people are gonna think you're hitting on me."
Richard busted up laughing, turned to him, and held out his hand. "I'm Rich."
"So I gathered from what lum-Ox said." the scrawny boy rolled his eyes toward the departing bully. "How rich? 'Cuz I could use a loan."
The pun made him chuckle a little and he found he was starting to like this funny little guy. Slapping him gently on the back, Richard stood and started back to the lunch line saying, "Catch ya' 'round then, Jack. Try to stay out of trouble. I might not be there next time to get you out of it!"
The next day he was in line again when he felt a tap on his shoulder. Turning around, he saw Jack there, this time in line behind him.
"So I was thinking..." Jack started in as though resuming the conversation from the day before. "Since you seem to have an influence over the muscle-for-brains set, it would be good for me to stick around you."
Turning forward again, Richard asked, "What makes you think I want you hanging around me?"
"Isn't it obvious?" Jack replied condescendingly. "You need me because I need you! You can't help yourself! I'm all weak and helpless and you're the strong hero type. So, you need me to stick around you so you have someone to be a hero for. What good's a hero without someone to save? Besides, I have many other fine qualities that don't relate to the physical, as I'm sure you noticed that I'm quite lacking in that department."
"I did." he smirked. "So what're these qualities you have that defy detection?"
"I'm funny!" he answered quickly. "I can bust a gut on a gutless toad! I got a quick wit and naturally perfect comic timing!"
"Anything else?" he said, chuckling.
"I'm reliable! You can always rely on having to get me out of a jam. I seem to be a jam-magnet at times. See? You need me! What's your next class?"
As Richard took a tray, he looked over his shoulder at Jack, who stood easily a foot and a half shorter than him. "R.O.T.C.. You?"
Taking his own tray, Jack looked down. "Phys Ed. I'm thinking I should see the counselor and transfer to R.O.T.C.. It might be good for me!"
Filling his tray, Richard shook his head and laughed. "Why? Because I'm in R.O.?"
"Not entirely. After the last few days I can tell that I'm just not cut out for the type of activities they do in Phys Ed. I seem to lack the qualities the coaches are looking for, namely any sort of muscle tone."
"You should stay in Phys Ed. It'll build you up. You need it!" Richard moved down the line.
"What! And ruin this fine physique with bulgy muscles?" He gestured to his thin frame as he moved along the line behind Richard before pushing his blonde hair that needed a trim out of his hazel eyes. "Surely you jest! That's like saying the Mona Lisa could use a makeover and Madonna's wardrobe! How can I deny the girls of this world the beauty that is this body?"
Looking down at the scrawny boy next to him, Richard finished filling his tray. "So, you've actually gotten a girl to date you before?"
"Not as such." Jack responded as he followed Richard to a table. "Girls our age are flighty, finicky, and too easily swayed by peer pressure. They want me, but they let their girlfriends talk them out of it so they can have me for themselves. It's obvious!"
After Richard sat and stuffed part of a roll in his mouth, he chewed it and shook his head. "Sounds perfect. They want you, but you never have to be bothered with things like dates or stuff."
"Exactly, my boy! It's the perfect set up! I know they find me irresistible, but I never have to settle down!" Taking a bite, Jack stopped eating as he saw a group of four girls walk close by their table looking at the two of them before giggling to each other and walking toward an empty table.
Swallowing quickly, he stood up and tapped Richard on the shoulder. "Just watch." Striding over to the where the girls had taken their seats, Jack leaned on it with one arm and smiled. "Ladies! I couldn't help but notice you back there."
The girls sat and looked at each other in stunned silence. Beth, a cute blonde who seemed to be the spokesperson of the bunch, looked over at the table where Jack had been sitting. "Do you know Richard? He's cute! Can you introduce me?"
Jack looked over at Richard, who seemed to be trying to ignore the whole situation. "Who, Rich? Sure! We're old buddies!" Turning back to the girls, he sat on the edge of their table. "But as I was saying..." As he sat, his weight tipped the surface off balance and it toppled over, sending most the girls' lunches down on him as he hit the floor with an earsplitting crash.
"You idiot!" Beth screamed at him, her skirt covered in her own soup. "Now look at what you've done!" Running off in tears, the other girls followed as everyone around Jack started to applaud his clumsiness.
Richard shook his head and stood up, walking over to the mess as the kids around Jack were laughing and clapping.
Jumping up, Jack smiled and bowed to the kids around him as though he'd done it all on purpose to entertain them. "Thank you! Thank you! No! No more! You've been a great crowd! Tip your waitresses, but not your tables!"
"Well, I can admit when I'm wrong. It seems you certainly do have a way with the ladies, Jack." Richard said sarcastically as he picked a shredded lettuce leaf off Jack's shoulder. "One thing's for certain, they're sure never to forget you!"
The scrawny boy smiled, still covered in scattered and spattered food. "You see? It's perfect!"
After the janitor came up dragging his cart, the three spent several minutes cleaning up the mess. Soon the two boys were back at their own table.
Chewing on a french fry, Richard got a grossed out look on his face. "You know, I think you may be right. I do need you around. Who else could ruin my appetite so fast?" tossing the half-eaten fry back onto his plate.
Meanwhile, Jack ate with gusto, seemingly unfazed by the gross mix of odors emanating from his food-stained shirt and pants. "See? I knew you'd come around to my way of seeing things! You eat too much, anyway. I noticed it yesterday. With my help, I'll have you down to fighting trim in no time! So, can I have your fries then?"
When the two finished and dropped their trays off, Richard headed for the JROTC building with Jack following. Noticing his shadow, he shook his head. "Don't you have Phys Ed to get to?"
"First, I wanna see what all the fuss is about. We have fifteen minutes 'til lunch is over. Why are you in so much of a hurry to get to class?"
"Because I like school!" Richard replied. "R.O. especially. I think I'm gonna join up after high school."
"Join up what?" Jack scoffed. "Two ends of a broken pencil? Surely you don't mean the military!"
"Why not?" he asked. "It's an honorable profession! Sergeant Egman, my instructor, was in the Marine Corps. So was my dad. Sergeant's been telling us all the basics of the military and it seems like a really good idea. They'll pay for college ya' know."
Jack furrowed his brow. "But you could end up someplace like Vietnam or something!"
"We're not fighting in Vietnam anymore, Jack!" Richard barked. "Jeez! It's nineteen eighty-five for crying out loud, not nineteen sixty-five! We're not in any wars! Only war we have to worry about involves someone pushing a button and then... Boom! So it doesn't matter anyway!"
Biting his lower lip, Jack puzzled the issue out. "Well, I guess it could be OK. I mean, I should at least check it out, right?"
"Suit yourself, dumpster top. If I were you, I'd get cleaned up before next period, though."
"Oh, yeah. Can I meet you after school then? I wanna talk about this some more. Takes a lot of thought to commit to something like this!"
Richard rolled his eyes. "Look Jack, if you wanna join R.O., fine. Maybe it'll do you some good, but it's not like you're signing up to get shipped out next week! It's friggin' High School R.O.T.C., not the Army! Anyway, I have football practice after school."
"Alright, I'll see you there then!"
Stopping just outside the ROTC building, Richard turned to the boy. "You? At football practice? As what? The football?"
"Moral support!" Jack cried out as he slugged Richard's shoulder. Shaking his hand, he murmured, "Ow!"
A single chuckle escaped Richard's lips. "That's why we have cheerleaders!"
Jack's head perked up. "Do they come to the practices?"
"Sure, but they're busy doing their own thing. Anyway, I gotta go. See ya' 'round Jack."
His eyes widened and a half-smile crept across his face as Jack turned to head for his locker. "Yeah! Cheerleader! I could do that! They have male cheerleaders! How hard could it be?"
That afternoon, Jack sat on the bleachers watching football practice as well as the cheerleaders. He'd always considered sports to be a waste of time practiced by dullards who couldn't think beyond 'smash geek', but he was beginning to see the benefits, especially the company jocks got to keep. He'd quickly disabused himself of any idea of becoming a male cheerleader when he saw how much actual physical work was involved, but he had definitely enjoyed the show. When he saw Richard starting to gather up his things, he headed down the benches and ran up to him.
"Hiya, Rich! Say, you looked good out there!"
Richard laughed as the two walked together. "So good of you to say! So now you're some kind of football expert as opposed to just a professional victim?"
"So, about this R.O.T.C. thing." Jack changed the subject. "I talked to my counselor and he switched me starting tomorrow. We're in the same period!"
"Wonderful." Richard said deadpan as he started to walk off the practice field. "Just what I needed."
"You do! Soon, you won't be able to function without me." Jack handed him the helmet that he'd forgotten on the bench. "See? You need me!"
"Well, how about coming over to my house for a snack then? You any good at math?"
Jack laughed maniacally. "Are you kidding? Why, last year I turned down the Nobel Prize for mathematics!"
"There is no Nobel Prize for math, dummy!" Richard pointed out.
"Of course there isn't, not anymore. They already did all the math there is. To answer your question though, it's an absolute unmodified negative, but I'm a quick learner and can be a great study partner. You taking Algebra?"
"Yeah. Maybe we can help each other. Hi, Anne." Richard raised his helmet toward one of the cheerleaders who was walking past them.
"Hi, Rich!" she replied bubblingly. "Looking good out there!"
Jack turned and walked backwards to face her as he continued along with Richard. "See? That's what I told him, but he wouldn't believe me!"
Anne stopped and looked back at Jack, looking him up and down like she was examining an insect. "I can see why!" At that she turned and jogged to a group of other girls.
Jack turned around and sighed. "Ah! What is this power I have over ladies! Did you see they way she looked me over? And you said I should bulk up!"
"She probably couldn't believe her eyes!" Richard shot back with a sly grin.
After changing in the locker room and a short walk, Richard walked in his front door a short distance from the school, Jack still tagging along behind him. "Mom! I'm home!" he shouted as he dropped his helmet off at the door before walking toward the kitchen. "I brought company over!"
Judith Hargrave met her son at the entrance to the kitchen. "Welcome home, sweetie. Who's your new friend?"
Richard gestured between the two. "Jack, this is my mom, Judith Hargrave. Mom? This is Jack, Jack...?"
"Dunning!" Jack replied wiping his hand on his faded jeans before he held it out to her. "Pleasure to meet you, Mrs. Hargrave! My, you have a lovely home! Must be hard work for such a young lady for it to look so nice!"
The woman blushed almost as red as her hair as she shook the boy's hand. "Oh, stop it! You better keep an eye on this boy, Richard. He's a little Eddie Haskell! Would you two like a snack?"
Grabbing a handful of cookies from the jar, Richard headed back out of the kitchen. "Sure, Mom. Jack and I are going to go study Algebra. Could you bring it in my room? Thanks!"
"It was a pleasure meeting you, Mrs. Hargrave!" Jack bowed at the waist, folding one arm under his belly and the other behind his back before he ran to catch up with Richard. "Hey, Rich! Wait up!"
Running up the hallway toward the room that he'd seen Richard enter, a girl came out of another doorway. "Richie? Could you... AH!"
Jack ran straight into her. As he began to stumble, his left foot caught on her right, twisting him in place and making Jack grab for her instinctually to try and prevent his fall. However, he only succeeded in dragging her down with him, such that as he hit the floor, she landed on top of him. Her notebook full of papers flew into the air to come flittering down around them both like leaves in autumn.
Erica Hargrave looked down at the strange boy who she was laying on top of and who was holding her waist. Shock turned to fury inside her toward this boy who not only ran right into her and made her fall, but also had just ruined her carefully organized folder. "Will you let go of me!" she yelled.
Immediately, Jack released the girl. "S-sorry!" he exclaimed as she got up off of him. Crab-walking backwards to get away quickly, he turned as he stood up and ran into the room he'd seen Richard duck into.
"You could at least help me pick up the mess!" Erica yelled down the hall as Richard closed the door behind Jack.
"Sorry." Richard explained as he dropped heavily onto his bed. "That's my ten-year-old sister, Erica. She can be sort of a pain sometimes, all the time pestering me for something. Anyway, we should get started."
A pounding sounded on Richard's door a moment later. From behind it they heard, "Richie! Your clumsy friend just ruined all my homework! Fix it!"
Richard rolled his eyes and got back up. "If we don't help, she'll just keep pounding!"
"Sorry!" Jack shrugged. "Just for the record though, she walked right out in front of me!"
Opening the door, Richard saw his sister standing with her hands on her hips and full of indignation. Storming down the hall she stood by her bedroom door, folded her arms, and waited for Richard to pick up her scattered papers.
While he started picking up the papers closest to him, Jack stuck his hands in his front pockets and turned on the charm. "Well, Erica! It's nice to meet you! Sorry we had to meet under these circumstances, but you know how it is!"
"I know how it is." Richard grumbled. "I'm cleaning up your mess again, Jack. You wanna help?"
"Oh! Certainly, Rich!" Jack said apologetically as he picked up a few papers and stepped over the others that were scattered around to hand them to Erica. "Here you go! Nice penmanship, by the way!"
"Jack!" Richard nagged, dragging out his name.
Sighing, Jack started gathering papers while Erica stood and waited. Shortly, they had them all gathered up and handed back to Richard's sister. Jack bowed to her and smiled his half-smile. "Why don't you let me straighten those out for you, Erica! It's the least I can do!"
She eyed him suspiciously, even as his smile turned her knees to jelly. "Well, OK. I suppose you should. It's your fault they got all messed up!"
Looking at her, Richard again tried to rescue Jack from his own disasters. "Erica! We need to study! Jack can't waste his time on this kid stuff!"
Gallantly, Jack held up a hand toward Richard. "Now-now, Rich! I owe it to her! It'll just take a sec!" Ten minutes later, Erica sat on her bed as he sat at her desk and finished sorting out the mess. "There! All fixed, Buttons!"
Erica sighed. "Took you long enough! Why did you call me Buttons?"
The boy turned and smiled at her with his cute half-smile, making the girl's heart flutter. "Red hair? Red Buttons? Plus cute-as-a... Buttons!"
She almost smiled giddily at him saying she was cute, but stopped herself. "Fine. Now get out of my room!"
He turned and bowed at her once more as he left. Erica couldn't figure this boy out. He was cute and funny, and he'd even made her laugh a few times while he fixed her papers with his little jokes. She'd tried to stay mad at him, but somehow she just couldn't. Once gone, she finally allowed herself to smile at his compliment as she moved to her desk and started her homework, completely forgetting the question that she was going to ask her brother.
Entering Richard's room, Jack let out a breath. "Whew! Your sister can really be a grouch, Rich! Remind me never to cross her!"
"No worries, Jack. Come on, Mom brought us some sandwiches. We can eat while we go over this stuff."
After Jack had gone home, Erica knocked on her brother's open door. "So, Richie? That boy that was here. His name's Jack?"
Richard turned a page of his comic book. "Yeah. Jack Dunning."
Leaning against his doorway, Erica fidgeted with her fingers. "He's kinda small for high school. How old is he? Is he really smart or something? Did he skip grades?"
"Who? Jack?" he asked as he put his comic down. "Really smart? No! He's just small for his age. He turns fourteen next week. Why?"
She shrugged and looked at the floor. "No reason. He's kinda weird! Why is he your friend? There's no way he plays football!"
"He could, if he wanted to." Richard noted, picking up his comic again. "He could be a running back or slot back. Guy that small could be hard to catch, but I don't think he likes football."
"So why is he your friend, then?" she persisted.
Putting down his comic once more, Richard sighed. "'Cuz he's funny and fun to hang out with! Plus he's kinda smart, in his own way. Jeez, Erica! What's with you today? Why the third degree? You still mad at him for an honest mistake? He fixed all your papers, didn't he?"
"It's just that he's so different from your other friends!" she scowled at him. "I mean, usually you hang out with guys like Hank or Ox. Jack is just..." she sighed almost wistfully. "...so different!" she repeated herself. "He is funny, but you've never had a friend like him before."
"What, so I can only hang out with jocks? I have a few brains too, ya' know. Someday, I'm gonna go to college and study business like Dad."
Wandering into his room, Erica sat at the desk where Jack was earlier. She looked at her brother on his bed. "Is that why you play football? So you can go to college?"
Putting down the comic again, he rolled over and looked at her. "No, I'm not good enough for like a scholarship or something. I think I might join the Marines like Dad did. They'll pay for college if you serve long enough. I play football because it's fun and I know Dad did when he was my age."
"Oh." Erica replied, seeming disappointed over something. "I'd miss you if you went away a long time."
Her brother laughed. "I'm not leaving tomorrow, ya' goof!"
Standing up suddenly, Erica felt insulted. "Fine! I won't miss you then!" At that she stormed out of his room.
Picking up his comic once more, Richard shook his head dismissively and sighed. "Girls are weird!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
When Jack used to talk about high school, it was always on the same subject. Girls! Jack would say he took a different girl to every school dance or party, but then Rich would point out that it was because he could never get a girl to say yes twice! Poor Jack! He tried so hard to fit in with the popular kids that Rich hung out with, and Rich would always make sure that Jack was included. See, pretty soon, the other kids figured out that if you wanted Rich to come to your party, Jack had to be invited, too. Rich would say Jack never held him back though... he still was invited to all the parties and dances and they still hung out with his regular crowd, so you can't say Jack hurt Rich's social life, but Rich's friendship almost certainly helped Jack's, immensely. I remember this story that Jack used to tell about their Junior Prom. Rich denied parts of it, but I think Jack was telling the truth. I could always tell when Jack was BSing his way through a story. Erica told me a lot of things about that night that tell me it was Jack that was being honest. It started a chain of events that would have life-changing effects, but then Jack would say that was true about everything that happens to a person.
---
Jack tried once more to knot his bow tie. He loved getting dressed up nicely and he wore it well, in the last two-and-a-half years having grown over a foot. Giving up on tying it himself, he headed out of his room.
"Mom! Can you help me please? I can't get this stupid thing to cooperate!"
Mary Dunning walked over to her sixteen-year-old son. "Here, let me get that for you. Put your hands down, dear!" Her old fingers tied the knot easily and quickly, smiling as she did so. "You look so much like your father in this!" she said wistfully. "I remember when he took me to our Senior Prom! It was right before the War. He looked so handsome!" she said, looking off in the distance. Returning from her memory, she looked back at Jack. "And now here you are! You're growing up so fast!"
Jack sighed as he waited for his widowed mother to finish. "Hurry, Mom! I need to get over to Rich's before five! We still need to make it to Anne's to pick up her and Wendy, then to dinner, and then the Prom! We don't wanna be late!"
Mary finished futzing with her son's tie and smoothed his jacket down with a smile. "There! All done! You're such a catch!"
He dismissed his mother's compliment out of hand. "Ah! Wendy's just going with me because Anne is going with Rich, and Anne and Wendy are best friends. It's just a date of convenience. Pity date, really."
"Don't you like her?" she asked concernedly.
"Oh, she's nice and all, but she's just too flighty and fickle for me. All the popular girls are, Mom."
"She might like you, Jack. Girls don't usually go to a dance with a boy just because it's convenient. I noticed her looking at you when I saw her last month at the store. Oh, never mind! You do what you think is best! If you say it's just friends going together, then that's what it is. You have lots of options... maybe more than you think!"
"Mom!" he dragged out the word. "Stop it already! Look, I gotta run! I'll see you tomorrow, OK? Don't wait up!" Jack kissed his mother goodbye and ran out the door yelling, "Love you!" as he left.
Mary stood at the screen door, watching him jog down the street. Finally she went to her chair and sat down. Looking at her black and white wedding photo sitting on the end table next to her, the youth it captured long gone, she sighed. I miss you, Danny. Watch over our boy tonight? I know it's silly, but I worry about him. I love you!
Jack ran part of the way from his house in North Oakland to Richard's house in Squirrel Hill. It was only a few blocks away, but was a much more upscale suburb of Pittsburgh. As he reached the border between the two, he slowed to a walk, noting the almost unmistakable line that separated his own poorer neighborhood from Richard's wealthier one. Finally reaching his best friend's house, he rang the bell and waited, thankful that the afternoon weather was not too warm.
After a moment, the door opened and he saw Erica behind the screen looking up at him with an expression of irritation. Opening the screen, Jack waited for her to move. "Well? Aren't I allowed in, Buttons? I got dressed up nice and everything! Just tell Rich his date is here!"
Erica rolled her eyes and stalked away from the open door.
"Who is it?" Judith called from somewhere down the hallway.
"It's Jack!" Erica yelled back as she dropped onto the couch and crossed her arms.
Frank Hargrave came out into the living room from his den, fiddling with his camera. "Oh, hi Jack!" he said, his teeth clenching his pipe. Removing it, he smiled at the boy. "Big night, eh?"
Nodding, Jack looked at his feet. "I suppose so, Mr. Hargrave. I sure hope Rich is ready soon. Anne and Wendy won't want to be kept waiting!"
His friend's father sat in the big leather recliner and tapped his pipe against a large glass ashtray. "Oh, don't worry about that. They'll leave you two cooling your heels while they finish primping! Got my camera ready! You sure you know how to use a Nikon?"
He nodded and took the offered camera. "Yes, sir! I took Photography last year, remember?"
"That's right!" he mentioned. "You took a lot of the yearbook photos last year, didn't you?"
"Not that many sir, only a few dozen, but they were the best ones!" Jack smirked.
Erica rolled her eyes and huffed. "Excuse me, I think I'm gonna go barf or something!" she groaned as she got up and stormed off to her room.
Watching her leave, Jack finally turned to look at her father. "What's up with her? She's been acting weird lately."
Shrugging his shoulders, Frank re-lit his pipe. "Who knows the mind of a thirteen-year-old girl?" he asked rhetorically.
A moment later, Judith came down the hall, looking back toward Erica's door. Shaking her head, she smiled when she saw Jack. "You look great, Jack! You and Wendy are going to have a lot of fun tonight! Richard will be out in a minute!"
Lifting a foot, Jack shined his shoe on the back of his pant leg. "Thank you, Mrs. Hargrave! I'll try not to disappoint!" He noticed Judith look at Frank sternly, glance at him, then she turned and disappeared into the kitchen.
Frank cleared his throat. "Sit down, Jack. Take a load off." When Jack sat on the arm of the couch, he scowled. "The arm isn't for sitting on, boy!"
"Oh! Sorry, sir!" he apologized as he moved to the couch seat.
Tapping his pipe again, Frank scraped out the ash, looked up at Jack, and sighed. "Look, son. I know your old man passed on quite a few years back, and... well... I guess these last years I've felt like a sort of surrogate father to you." He looked down as he nervously re-stuffed his pipe. "If you have any questions... you know... the things a young man wants to know about that he usually asks his father?" He looked up at Jack with just his eyes, his head still looking down.
Jack almost laughed. "Um... no! It's fine, sir... Mr. Hargrave. I... I'm good!"
The older man leaned forward. "Look here, boy. There are some things you need to know and it's my responsibility to make sure you know them! Do you know what I'm getting at? You treat your date right! No funny business! Even if she says she wants to, it's your responsibility to say no for the both of you! Got it? I don't wanna hear about you causing her any embarrassment! You're a fine boy, so I don't think it'll be a problem, but it needed to be said. Now that I've said my piece, you got any questions?"
"N-no, sir!" Jack stammered. "I'll do just as you say!"
Frank sat back and re-lit his pipe. "Good! Now I want you to have a good time tonight, so I want to give you this." Reaching into his pocket, he pulled out a twenty dollar bill from his wallet and held it out it toward Jack.
Jack looked at the money as though it were some sort of a trick. "No... it's OK, sir. You don't have to..."
"Damn it, boy! I know I don't have to! I want to! Now take it!" Once Jack got up and took the money, Frank sat back and grimaced. Lowering his voice to a conspiratorial tone, he added, "Besides, if I didn't give you that talk and some money, Judy would throttle me!"
Richard came out, dressed in his tuxedo. "Well? How do I look?"
Frank nodded as he puffed his pipe. "Very smart, boy! Looking good! You have the corsages?"
He looked toward the kitchen and then back to his father. "Oh! Mom put 'em in the fridge so they'd keep better!"
Jack smiled. "I'll get 'em, sport! Just leave it ta' ol' Jack!" Heading into the kitchen, he saw Judith doing dishes. "Hi again, Mrs. H! I'm just getting the corsages and we'll..." He saw her shoulders shake and knew something was wrong. "Mrs. Hargrave? You alright?"
Judith shook her head, forcing the guilty tears to stop. "No, I'm fine Jack. It's just..." She paused, thinking what to say. "It's just hard to watch Richard going off to Prom is all. I know next year you two'll be seniors, and then..." Her voice trailed off.
"Oh, it'll be fine, Mrs. H!" Jack tried to comfort her. "That's a whole year away! Lots of time until then!" He opened the fridge and took out the two corsages. "Don't worry! I'll take good care of him for ya' tonight! That boy still needs me, ya' know!"
She laughed and sniffed, wiping away a tear. "Thank you, Jack! Here." She walked over to him, straightened his tie some, and smiled at him. "You're like a brother to Richard. I'm glad he has you around! Wendy's a lucky girl to be getting someone like you, too! You might be just the right sort of young man she needs to... to be happy! I know any girl your age that gets you will be very blessed!" She reached into the pocket of her housedress and pulled out another twenty. "Here. Take this and have fun tonight!"
Jack tried to refuse it. "Oh no, Mrs. H! Mr. Hargrave already..."
She put her finger up. "Shush! I know he did, but he thinks twenty dollars is still a lot of money!" She smiled at him and took a breath. "Now, let's get you two on your way! Tonight's a big night for you... and Richard!"
They headed back out into the living room where Richard was talking with his father. "So anyway, Hank fades back and he's about to pass when... Oh! Hey, Jack! Took you long enough! Get lost somewhere between here and the fridge?"
Jack half-grinned. "Nah! I was just telling your mom all the things I do for you! You know, like remembering your date's name, warning you when you have bad breath, distracting the sales clerk while you lift our dates' corsages... things like that!"
"Jack! That's terrible!" Judith said feigning shock as though she wasn't used to his quirky humor. She looked at her husband. "Frank?"
"What? Oh, yes dear... terrible!" Frank commented absently.
"No dear, your son is about to leave?" she hinted.
"Oh! Yes... um... here, Rich. Your mother and I want you to have a good time so..." He handed Richard forty dollars. "Don't stay out too late!"
Richard took the offered money and smiled at him. "Thanks, Dad! Come on, Jack. The girls might be waiting already! Night, Mom!"
"Now you be careful, dears!" she called after them from the porch as they headed down the short walkway in front of the house. "Watch out for drunk drivers!" Watching the boys get into their family's station wagon, she sighed. Turning back toward the house, she spotted Erica watching from behind the screen door, only to duck away when she saw that her mother had caught her watching them leave.
Sitting in the passenger seat while Richard drove them to Anne's house, Jack looked over at his best friend. "So how much did your mom give you on top of what your dad knows about?"
"Twenty, on top of the fifty that you and I saved from mowing lawns. How about you?"
"The same... plus your old man gave me twenty. That gives us a hundred and fifty bucks! What do you want to do with it?"
"Us! Why should I share? I have eighty-five and you only have sixty-five!"
"Because you're bad with money! That's why. You know I can make it go farther for the four of us than you can make yours go for just you and Anne!"
Richard stopped at a light. "I am not bad with money! You just want your hooks in my eighty bucks!"
"Look, when we were at the movies last month, how much did you spend on snacks? Ten bucks? I spent three fifty at the store and just snuck 'em in! Come on! You know me, Rich!"
Pulling through the intersection, Richard shook his head. "Yeah, I do know you, Jack. I should probably get my head examined for listening to you, but OK. We'll pool our funds and ask the girls what they want to do, then you figure out what we can afford. Alright?"
"Don't worry! I've got it all planned out!" Jack said smugly.
They pulled in front of Anne's house and parked on the curb just after five. Climbing out, Jack grabbed the corsages and tossed one to Richard as they headed up the walkway.
"Not your best throw Jack, but you didn't send it into the bushes."
"So I've never been a football player... or baseball... or basketball... or hockey..."
"...or table tennis!" Richard finished for him as he rang the bell. "Is there anything your good at?"
"I seem to be good at weaseling money out of my friend!" Jack shot back.
The door opened and the two boys were shown in by Anne's mother Lydia. Standing at the foot of the stairs and waiting for their dates to come down, Richard could feel Anne's father John burning a hole in the back of his head with his eyes. Clearing his throat nervously, he adjusted his tie.
Jack could see his friend's nervousness, so he thought he'd help defuse the tension, or at very least take the attention off Richard. He turned and faced the older man who was standing in the hallway behind them. "Hi, sir! I'm Jack, Wendy's date. Your daughter Anne is in good hands tonight, sir! My buddy Rich is the safest driver in Pittsburgh! Modest and upstanding, too! The girls all call him 'Respectful Richard'! You won't hear stories about ol' Rich embarrassing any young ladies or taking any advantages! No, sir!"
Anne's father just stared at Jack unblinking.
Not to be intimidated, Jack flew into his second line of defense. "Oh, you'll also note that I have a camera with me to fully document the evening! So afterwards, you can look at the pictures and see for yourself that Anne had a good time and was always safe, secure, and well taken care of!"
He looked at the man who in turn returned his gaze with cold, dead eyes.
Falling back to his final line of defense, Jack cleared his throat. "We have a hundred fifty dollars that Rich and I saved from work we did over the year! Yes, sir! Rich is a responsible young man! Why, everything I know about being a good responsible citizen is due to his good influence on me! I bet if it weren't for Rich, I'd probably be making bad decisions! Doing the drugs and... um... stuff."
Finally, he saw the man crack a smile. Unfortunately it was more menacing than friendly or jovial before the man turned and walked down the hallway away from the two teens.
Breathing a sigh of relief, Jack turned back around to face the stairs again. "Told you! I got you covered! You need me!"
"My hero!" Richard mumbled sarcastically.
Half a minute later, Anne's father came back into the living room carrying a cleaning kit and a holstered Colt Forty-five. After he sat on the couch, he opened the kit on the coffee table, unholstered and unloaded the weapon, and started cleaning it right there.
Glancing at the man's activities, Jack turned back around, lowering his voice to a whisper. "OK, don't freak out. Her dad has a gun and he's cleaning it right now! So don't freak when you see it, OK? See? You need me!"
After a short wait longer, Anne came down the stairs wearing a white off the shoulder drop-lace gown with an empire waist that hugged her tightly, while the skirt flared to emphasize her nearly perfect figure. Her hair hung down and loose, her natural curl flattened to let it fall just behind her shoulders. It was simple and elegant, and Richard was stunned at how beautifully grown-up she looked.
Wendy followed her down, dressed in a hot pink satin-lame dress with off the shoulder sleeves, a low cut neckline, an even lower back, and a flirty knee-length hemline that dropped to just above her ankles in the back. Her curly strawberry-blonde hair was sprayed up to leave her neck and shoulders bare. She smiled seductively at Jack as she reached the bottom of the stairs, making him unusually speechless for a moment. Just about to recover, they were interrupted.
"Daddy!" Anne yelled. "Put that stupid thing away!"
"What, pumpkin? I'm just cleaning it!" her father said innocently.
"I know what you're doing, Daddy! Now stop it! I'm almost seventeen!"
Just then, Anne's mother came back into the room. "Oh, for heaven's sake, John! Take that out of here this instant!" Turning to Anne, she smiled. "You look beautiful, darling! Here, I want you to take this for tonight!" She turned Anne around and wrapped a beautiful set of pearls around her neck. "There! It's perfect!"
The boys both gave their dates their corsages, Anne having asked for a wrist corsage and Wendy a pin-on type.
"Jack? Would you pin mine on me, please?" Wendy asked boldly.
"Well... uh... maybe Anne's mom should do it. I... I might pin it on wrong or stick you with it! Besides, I have a job to do!" he excused himself, holding up the camera. Her smile dropped as he turned toward Richard.
Clearing his throat, Jack got Richard's attention. "Rich? Why don't you and Anne stand in front of the fireplace and I'll get your picture!" he suggested as Wendy pinned her own corsage in place.
Afterwards, Richard returned the favor and took pictures of Jack and Wendy. While Jack smiled happily, Wendy only smiled vacantly, still upset that Jack hadn't taken the invitation to pin her corsage next to her exposed chest.
When the four finally headed for the car, Wendy's mood seemed to lift as she spoke up. "Anne? Why don't you ride up front with Rich. Jack and I can take the back seat!"
Jack cleared his throat nervously. "Sounds good to me! Oh! Rich and I were wondering what you'd like to do this evening. I mean, before the Prom, of course! Dinner? Movies? You name it!"
Anne looked at Wendy, who only smiled back and shrugged. "Well, dinner sounds nice! Can we go someplace fancy?"
"It just so happens I already made reservations at a very fine establishment!" Jack grinned his usual half-smile. "I think it just might fit the bill!"
Riding in the back to a local upscale restaurant after telling Richard where to go, Jack noticed Wendy's hand move to his knee. Making him nervous, he put his hand on hers, looked over at her, and smiled. When he noticed the mischievous grin on her face, it made him certain that one way or another he was in for a memorable evening.
Judith knocked on Erica's door, opening it slowly into the darkened room. Entering quietly, she could hear her daughter crying on her bed. Closing the door behind her, she silently crossed the room and sat next to her youngest child, rubbing her back until Erica got up and hugged her, still crying.
"Want to talk, dear?" she asked gently, already knowing what was wrong.
"Boys are stupid!" Erica said between sobs.
She laughed lightly. "Sometimes, yes they are! That's why we women have to push them in the right direction most of the time!" Waiting for her to stop crying, Judith held her and rubbed her back like she'd done when Erica was little. It worked, as it wasn't long before Erica was sniffing back tears. "Let me guess. Jack?"
Erica nodded shyly. "I... I wanted to go to the Prom with him, but... I'm just a little girl to him. He doesn't even notice me!"
"Oh! It's alright! You may be a little girl now, but soon you'll be all grown up. I'll bet lots of nice boys will notice you then!"
"But... but what if it's too late?" Erica nearly began to sob again. "What... what if... what if Jack falls in love with some other girl before I can finish growing up?"
"Well dear, you'll just have to trust that it'll work out the way it's supposed to. You'll meet another boy that you'll like even better than Jack!"
Her daughter shook her head slowly and sadly. "I can't imagine liking any boy better than Jack, Mom!" she sighed lovingly as she spoke his name. Suddenly, she got an angry look on her face and her tone turned cold. "And tonight he's taking that floozy Wendy to the Prom!"
"Erica!" Judith chided her. "That's not a very nice thing to say about anyone! She's Jack's date. If they like each other and decide to date, well then that's just that. They're nearly grown adults." Cautiously she asked, "Why did you say that about Wendy, dear?"
"All the girls say so, Mom!" the girl rolled her eyes. "Her younger sister Ruth is in my music class and she told me that Wendy flirts with all the boys all the time... and kisses them and does other things, too! Things I'm too young to talk about."
Judith swallowed hard. "It can't be that bad, dear!"
"She puts out and then she dumps 'em." Erica said sadly. "She broke Jimmy Mason's heart last year! Now she's gonna do the same thing to Jack!"
"Now stop that!" Judith admonished. "It's a sin to circulate rumors like that! Now you forget all about Jack! I know it hurts a little now, but soon this will all be behind you!"
Perturbed, Jack stood by the punch bowl getting his and Wendy's second cup. Richard stood next to him just shaking his head. All around them their class talked, laughed, and danced to 'I've Had the Time of My Life'.
"I don't get it, Jack! Wendy's hot, and for some strange reason known only to her seems to think you're... well... not repulsive. What's the problem?"
"It's too easy, Rich!" Jack griped. "It makes me suspicious, like she's up to something. It's like shooting fish in a barrel! Like fishing with a grenade! Like..."
"I get it!" Richard rolled his eyes. "So... what're you gonna do about it?"
Jack smiled as he picked up the cups. "Go fishing!" he replied. "Hey, just 'cuz it's easy, doesn't make it any less fun! I mean, I know I'm irresistible, but it's just a little... boring! No challenge to it! Plus it makes me wonder what she's really after!"
When they returned to their dates, Jack handed Wendy her punch. She took it and eyed him like a hungry animal, making Jack sweat like he'd just run the half mile. As the song ended and the next one started, Wendy stood and walked over to him, putting down her cup.
"Dance with me?" she said to make him understand it was not a request.
As Madonna's 'Crazy for You' played, they reached the dance floor and he nervously took her into his arms. "Are you having a good time?" he asked looking into her eyes, their height the same with Wendy's three-inch heels.
Slowly swaying to the music, she pressed her curvaceous body against his. "Mmm-hmm!" she replied with a smile. "Jack? Can I ask you something?"
"S-sure! Anything you like!"
"Do I make you nervous?"
"W-who? Me? Don't be silly!" He paused. "Why? Do I seem nervous?"
She laughed and lowered her head against his shoulder, pressing her ample chest against his. "Yes! And I think it's adorable!"
Closing his eyes, Jack tried to steady his breathing. As they danced though, his mind would not let go of the question that he had been dying to know for over a month; ever since Wendy had not so subtly hinted that he should ask her to the Prom. "Can... can I ask you a question?"
"Mmm-hmm!" she replied, breathing on his neck.
Jack breathed heavily for a moment, trying to keep his mind clear. Finally his need to know overpowered his teenage hormones and angst. "Why me? I mean, don't get me wrong, I... I'm grateful! You're easily one of the prettiest girls in school, probably thee prettiest! You must have had a literal ton of guys asking you to go, so... so why did you want me to ask you?"
"Why not you?" she countered.
"Well... OK, can we just be honest for a second?" Jack sighed. "I know the only reason I get to go anywhere near the parties and stuff that you all have is because of Rich. And he's great! He never makes me feel like he's... well... propping me up, but I know he is, and so does everyone else. I have like, no doubt that if I weren't his friend you probably wouldn't even know my name, let alone consider going to the Prom with me. I... I know you know all this, but I think it's important that I say it. I talk big and all, but I think you know I'm just a geek with a really nice popular friend. So, all that said, why me?"
Having raised her head up to really listen as Jack admitted what they both knew to be true, Wendy took a moment before answering. "Well, I... I guess I just wanted to know... I wanted to go out with a guy who was different. I..." She leaned her head against his shoulder again.
"Oh. OK. I just... Well, I was afraid that maybe you only came with me 'cuz you lost a bet or something... or were planning something Carrie-like!"
Wendy laughed. "No, Jack! I didn't lose a bet! In fact, I think I might have won! You make me feel like you respect me! Like... like I'm safe."
Jack felt simultaneously flattered and insulted; flattered that she trusted him to be a gentleman, and insulted for the same reason. A moment later, all he felt was lucky, her hands sliding up his back to hook onto his shoulders as she pressed tightly against him, contentedly humming the tune they danced to. Closing his eyes, he just enjoyed the moment.
Suddenly Jack felt Wendy pull away from him. Just as he opened his eyes, he doubled over as a fist slammed into his belly.
"Stay away from my girl, twerp!" Ox snarled. "Come on, Wendy!" Pulling the shocked girl to the side of the dance floor, he held up his hands. "Look, I know! I blew off asking you 'til the last minute, but come on! I have a big game coming up! You don't have to pity date Rich's 'help the needy' project to show me I messed up! Lets just forget all this and spend the rest of the night making up!" At that he started to reach out for her.
Richard shoved himself between Ox and Wendy. "She's not your date, Ox! Now beat it before I do to you what you just did to my friend!"
"Rich!" Ox scoffed. "Don't be such a goodie-two-shoes, man! Haven't you had enough of playing 'fairy godmother' to the kid from North Oakland? Come on! He doesn't belong! You know it, I know it, everyone knows it!"
Just then, Vice-Principal Ford walked his heavy form up to them. "Alright, Oscar. I saw that. You're done." He waved his chubby hand toward the door and smiled. "You're suspended!"
Grinning, Ox tried to smooth-talk his way out of it. "No, see here's the thing, Mr. F! See, this loser was horn-dogging on my date so..."
At last coming to her senses again, Wendy stormed up to him. "You're not my date, Ox! Nor are you ever going to be again! Don't call me anymore, don't even bother talking to me!"
Holding his hands up again in mock surrender, his voice turned patronizing. "OK! I get it! You're mad! You want me to apologize to the little dork?"
"No, you big oaf!" she yelled. "I want you to drop dead!"
Ox's expression turned sour. "Fine! Who needs an easy lay like you anyway! I'm outta here! Bunch a' wimps!"
While Ox was escorted from the room, Wendy ran to Jack and helped him to their table. "Are you alright, Jack?"
Holding his stomach, he nodded. "I'm fine! Nothing a little internal surgery and new kidneys won't fix! Oh!" He winced as he sat.
"Jack!" Wendy giggled. "You're such a clown!"
He smiled, the pain slowly subsiding. "I'm sorry we're going to miss a few dances tonight, Wendy. I don't think I can do any fast ones! Might sprain my spleen! You can dance with someone else if you want. I don't mind."
Scooting her chair over until it was right up next to Jack's, Wendy shook her head dismissively. "But I don't want to dance with anyone else! So, we'll just dance to the slow songs!" she said seductively.
At once Jack felt very little pain as her hand sensuously caressed his inner thigh. "Uh... Wendy? I... I thought you came with me because I was... um... safe... because I respected you and wouldn't want to... ya' know..."
"True, I know you won't pressure me!" she admitted. Leaning in close to his ear, she whispered, "That doesn't mean that I can't pressure you!"
After the song ended came the crowning of the King and Queen and other events. Later, when they announced the final song of the evening, Wendy looked over at Jack. "Do you feel up to one more?" she asked.
"If you had to pull me around the floor in a wheelchair I'd be ready!" Jack quipped. "Just... Can you give me a hand up?"
While everyone made their way to the floor, 'Take My Breath Away' started playing. Wendy groaned, "Oh no! Not this one!"
Jack looked at her in surprise. "What's wrong?"
Wendy draped her arms over Jack's shoulders. "Like getting a punch in the gut! Take my breath away? Get it?" She smiled a goofy open mouth smile as she pressed her forehead against his.
Laughter wracked Jack's bruised body, causing him to wince. "Ow! Don't make me laugh, Wendy! Ow!"
After the two started dancing to the song, their mood changed dramatically. Swaying slowly and feeling each other, Jack knew that the night would end soon and their time together would come to a close.
"Jack? Can I ask you something?"
"Anything, Wendy." he almost purred.
"After the dance, would you want to... I mean... oh, shoot!" She buried her face in his shoulder.
Jack was confused. "What is it? You can ask me anything you like, Wendy. You don't have to be embarrassed!"
Wendy looked at him. "Well, as you put it, can we just be honest for a sec? I... I originally agreed to go with you because I wanted you to be my first... um... virgin." She was quiet for a moment, but then continued. "I... I've never been a guy's first before... and... um... I wanted... I wanted to know what it was like to be a guy's... God! You must think I'm a slut!"
Stunned, Jack stared off in the distance. She wanted to... Oh, Wow! Pulling himself together, he reached up with a hand and lifted her chin so he could look in her eyes. "I kinda figured it had to be something. I mean, don't get me wrong, I'm flattered that you would want to with me, but... I... uh... wow!" He held her close as he tried to think. "I really want to, more than you know!"
"Wanna bet?" she asked, smiling knowingly.
"Oh!" Jack backed up so his hips weren't pressed into hers anymore. "Sorry!"
Closing the gap, Wendy pressed herself against him, still smiling. "Don't be!"
Jack's head was spinning and he felt like he might faint. Taking a deep breath he let it out slowly. "I... I want to Wendy, a lot! But... I... I want something else more. I... I want... Would you be my girlfriend? I mean, after tonight? You don't have to decide right now. I mean, take your time! But if... if I had the choice of having you tonight, or seeing you tomorrow? I... I'd wait."
The song ending, she looked at him softly. "Who says you can't have both?" She pulled her body tightly against his, pressing her soft lips to his mouth, opening hers as she did, prompting him to do the same. It wasn't anything more than an open mouth kiss, but it was his first and enough to send Jack's head spinning again.
After a moment, their kiss and the song ended and she smiled. "I like you, Jack. You're more than just sweet! You're funny, smart, cute, and I... Yes!"
Shaking his head, he tried to regain his ability to think. "Yes? Yes, what?"
She laughed. "Yes, I'll be your girlfriend!"
Jack's eyes bulged out. "Really? I think I feel like dancing!"
She looked around at the other kids leaving the floor. "But the dance is over!"
Slowly, they started to walk back to their table, hand in hand. Seeing Richard and Anne there gathering their things, Jack half-smiled. "You guys ready?"
Nodding, Richard smirked. "Hey, Jack? Your lipstick's smudged! You might wanna touch up!"
Jack blushed and picked up a napkin, wiping his mouth. "Sorry! Good one though, Rich! You're getting better, but you're still just a straight man! Leave the real comedy to the professionals!" He looked at his watch. "Well, it's only eleven. What would you girls like to do?"
Grinning happily, Anne looked at Wendy. "Beth's parents are throwing an after-party!" Looking at Jack, her grin vanished. "Beth still doesn't like you though, and I think even you would agree she has a good reason not to, so you'd have to bow out gracefully!"
Her friend shrugged. "No, I'd be happy just going someplace like Frick Park. It's a beautiful night for a walk!"
Anne glared at her for not taking the hint. "Wendy! You may be willing to blow off your social obligations, but I'm not! The dance is over, so he's not your date anymore! Maybe you might find a guy to replace Ox at the party!"
Glaring back, Wendy growled. "It's not like that, Anne!" She looked at her date. "Jack and I are dating!"
Her eyes slowly widened. "Like... dating, dating? Like after tonight? Like for all summer?"
Sighing as she turned back to look at Anne, Wendy's arms held Jack tightly. "Maybe longer, if I'm lucky!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
I think Jack was really in love with Wendy. They dated almost four months before she ended it. Rich said that he thought Jack would never recover. It absolutely destroyed him. Jack just never talked about it. I think... I think it just hurt too much, even years later. He never would say her name, even when he would talk about it. Rich told me what happened though. Wendy dated Jack through the rest of May and June and into July. Then her parents took her on a month-long trip to Florida. When she got back, right before school started, she told him that she'd found someone else and broke up with him. Rich said she was cruel about it, telling him that he was too much of a wimp for her and she needed a strong man. I don't know if it's true or not. Rich hated her for hurting him, so he might have just been bitter and wanted to say mean things about her. I guess now only one person knows the truth... and she'll never tell. So Jack and Rich started their senior year of high school on a bad note, and it just kept getting worse from there.
---
Richard knocked on Jack's door for the third time. Inside he could hear the muffled strains of 'Take My Breath Away' playing.
"Jack! Come on, dang it! Open the door!"
"Go away, Rich. Just leave me alone!"
Trying the knob, he found it locked. Pulling his keys out, he flipped until he got to his screwdriver and shoved it in the hole in the doorknob. Twisting until he felt the tip slide into the tiny screw end slot, he turned it and the knob came loose. Opening the door, he looked around the room, taking a moment for his eyes to adjust to the darkness. Seeing Jack lying on his bed still in his pajamas, his shades drawn, Richard stepped over and stopped the tape player, throwing up the shades before turning back to his miserable friend.
"Alright, Jack. Enough moping. You missed the first day of school! I won't let you miss the second!" He ripped the sheets down and saw his best friend lying there with the eight-by-ten Prom photo of him and Wendy held to his chest. His eyes looked puffy and swollen, as though Ox had finished what he'd started; his body drawn and weak. "Damn, Jack! Come on! Get a hold of yourself!"
While he just lay there, Mary Dunning came in and stood next to the older teen. "I... I don't know what to do, Richard! He's not eating! He never gets up except to use the bathroom! He won't talk! He just lays here and keeps playing that awful song!" She turned and buried her face in Richard's chest.
Trying his best to console her, he led her out of the room and into the front room. "Uh... I have an idea, but there may be some... difficulties."
Drying her eyes, she looked at him cautiously. "Like what?"
"Nothing that isn't worth seeing him up and moving again. Will you trust me? I'll... I'll have to yell and use some harsh language. It's the only way to get through to him right now."
Mary nodded fervently. "I... I trust you Richard! You're a good and smart young man and I know you only want to help. Do what you have to."
With a nod, Richard walked back into Jack's room, stormed up to his bed, snatched the photo from his grasp, and quickly tore it in half.
Up in a flash, Jack's puffy eyes were full of rage. "You son of a bitch!"
Richard smirked. "Well! Lover boy lives! What's the matter, little man! Did the mean girl break you wittle heart? Too fucking bad! Deal with it! The bitch dumped you like a bad habit and you sit here pining for her like a dog that runs back to its master for another kick! I bet if she called you, you'd be back up and running to her in no time flat, huh? I thought girls were too fickle and flighty, so that's why you never let any get to you! What a sad and sick little wimp you turned out to be! Oh, I don't mean your muscles, I mean your heart, maggot!" At the final word, he poked Jack in the chest.
"Fuck you, asshole!" Jack growled as he tried to throw a punch, but Richard caught it mid-throw. He tried to throw his other fist, but Richard caught it as well, now restraining Jack by his hands.
"Let me go, muscle head!" Jack screamed.
"No!" Richard shouted back. "Damn it, Jack! I'm your friend! You wouldn't let me help, so I'm doing what I have to do!" He let Jack go and pushed him backward. "Listen up, half-pint! Yeah, Wendy broke your heart! Well guess what? Anne broke mine! She dumped me while you were still writing love letters to your cheating girlfriend in Florida! But do you care? No! You wanna know why she dumped me? Because of you!"
Jack furrowed his brow. "What the hell are you talking about!"
"Anne! Dumping me! Because of you!"
Confused, Jack flopped back to sit on his bed. "I... I don't get it!"
Richard looked down at his friend. "She dumped me because she wanted me to do things like going to parties or movies without you and I wouldn't!"
"Well that's normal!" Jack screwed up his face. "Jesus, Rich! You could do those things without me sometimes! Anne probably just..."
"No, you idiot!" he interrupted. "She wanted you out! Completely gone from my life! She didn't even want me to hang around you when she wasn't there! She said you were a leach, just using me to make rich friends and get to Wendy! She thinks Wendy made a mistake when she didn't just dump you at the Prom and take Ox back after he laid you out with one punch!"
"So... she dumped you because..."
"Because I wouldn't dump you as a friend! She gave me an ultimatum... you or her!"
Jack looked up at Rich. "And you picked me?"
Richard nodded. "Yeah!"
"Why?"
He leaned back against the wall. "Right now I couldn't tell you. You're a self-centered jerk who's just feeling sorry for himself and doesn't give a rat's ass about anyone else! Your mom was about to call the cops, or the ambulance, or the guys from the nut hut to come and pump fluids in you! You've got her scared shitless and you don't even care! So right now I figure you can just go to hell! I guess I made the wrong choice!"
Jack looked at the torn photo on the floor. "Thanks." he mumbled.
"For what?" Richard yelled.
"For being a good friend... my best friend... my only real friend."
Looking down at Jack, he felt tears well up. Taking a breath, he blew it out slowly and brought down his anger. "You're welcome. And thank you."
"For what?" Jack looked up at him.
"For always getting into jams so I can be the hero and get you out of them!"
"Yeah!" Jack chuckled. "That's what I'm here for! Make you look good and keep your date's name straight!"
"Don't forget about warning me when I have bad breath and distracting the sales clerk while I lift our dates' corsages!"
The two young men laughed together. Richard sat on Jack's bed and put an arm around him. "Feeling better?"
Nodding, Jack shrugged Richard's arm off. "Yeah, but it's creepy as hell you puttin' your arm around me while we're sitting on my bed!"
Grinning, Richard helped Jack to his feet. "Jeez, dude! You weigh like eighty pounds wet! You need to eat something!"
Jack patted his empty stomach and lowered his voice. "Yeah, first I need to go apologize to Mom, though. I shouldn't worry her like that. You know, I don't think I ever said, I know it's sorta obvious, but she and Dad had me when they were old, like almost fifty! They were told she couldn't have kids, so I was kind of a surprise! That's why she's a lot older than most moms. I shouldn't stress her out this way. She might have a stroke or something."
The two came out talking about Richard's first day at school as a senior when they heard a gasp.
"Jack! You're up! Oh, thank God!" She ran to her only child and hugged him, then surprising Richard, she hugged and kissed him on the cheek. "Thank you! Thank you, Richard!"
He blushed and nodded to her. "It's fine, Mrs. Dunning! Sorry about the rude language."
She wiped her tears away. "No! You did what you had to do. Men know these things about each other. Now, let me get you boys something to eat. You look half starved, baby! Richard, you're welcome, too! It's the very least I can do!"
He thought about refusing, knowing that Mary was a single mother working a low-skill job as a cashier at the local supermarket for even lower wages, but thought better of it and sat with the Dunnings for dinner.
The next day when Jack came to school, he noticed a lot of the other kids were whispering and giggling to each other as he walked by. Confused, he quickly walked to his locker. There he found, spray-painted across it, the words 'Couldn't Score With Slut Wendy!' Squaring his shoulders as the kids around him laughed, he opened his locker as usual, put in everything but his first period books, and closed it. When he turned to walk away, he saw that Wendy had moved up to stand behind him.
He was just about to say something when she slapped him, her face a mask of rage. "How could you write that!? Don't ever speak to me again, jerk!" She turned and stormed off, close to tears.
As she did so, Jack saw Ox grinning, wiping his hands clean, and nodding before the football player turned and walked away.
He didn't see Richard until lunch. When the two sat down together, Jack asked, "So... did you see it?"
"Yeah." Richard nodded. "I know it wasn't you. You know who?"
He shook his head as they started eating. "Ox."
Nodding around a fry, Richard's voice turned cold. "Figures. Something will have to be done."
"No use. Damage is done." A long silence followed before Jack continued. "Still... it would feel really good!"
"Come to practice this afternoon." Richard smiled.
That was all that was spoken of it beforehand. That afternoon, Jack was sitting in the bleachers again watching Richard. He also saw Ox, and then Wendy at cheerleader practice. Nothing seemed out of the ordinary until practice ended. When the players started gathering up their things, Ox ran up to Wendy. She only talked to him for a few seconds, for when he took off his helmet, she suddenly slapped him and stormed off; Ox standing there dumbfounded.
Turning toward his friends, he held out his hands in a wide shrug, only to see them laughing. Ox looked around confusedly before Jerry ran up to him. Ox put his hands on his forehead, then along his cheeks, wiping like mad. When Richard climbed the bleachers, he was smiling and chuckling.
With a confused look, Jack shrugged. "What gives?"
Laughing as he sat next to Jack, Richard calmed himself down enough to talk. "I have art for last period. While there, I grabbed some indelible black ink and painted the inside of Ox's helmet!"
Jack half-smiled. "OK, so he's in black-face for a few days. Why'd Wendy..."
His laughter growing, Richard put his hand on Jack's shoulder. "I painted words..."
"Well? What did it say?"
"On his forehead were the words 'Locker Artist'... that's what got Wendy! She knows who did it, and soon everyone else will, too! Then... on each cheek..." He couldn't stop giggling as he added, "I drew limp-dicks!"
Jack started laughing along with Richard before he noticed Ox coming and several others standing back on the field watching. Tapping Richard on the shoulder as the younger boy's laughter died, they both got up quickly to face his wrath.
"You little weasel!" he screamed as he got close to the bleachers. "You're dead! Dead meat when I get up there!"
"I did it, Ox!" Richard barked back at him. "Serves you right! I hope you never live it down! You wanna take it out on me?"
"How long are you gonna keep standing up for this little nobody, Rich! The rest of your life? Why don't you let him fight his own battles!"
"Oh, I do!" Richard replied. "He fights his own battles... and mine... and I fight my own battles... and his! It's called teamwork, you Neanderthal! You should try it! You might be a better player!"
"What're you queer for this little dork, Rich? Is that it? Is that why Anne dumped you? 'Cuz you can only get it up for your boyfriend?"
"No, but I'd rather be queer for Jack than be as sick and sad as your lard ass!"
"You think this is over? Tomorrow it'll just be worse! I'll spray-paint the whole fucking school if I have to! And your queer little boyfriend will take the blame!"
While the two exchanged words, Ox was slowly climbing the bleachers while Richard was holding fast. He knew if Ox tried to start something, he and Jack had the advantage.
"Go ahead, Lum-Ox! Start something with someone that is in your own weight class! The two of us combined ought to match your fat ass! But fair warning, we've got the high ground and two-to-one odds! Just walk away!"
Ox looked at the two, both in a defensive stance. Surveying his surroundings, he realized he didn't stand a chance against both of them there. Grinning, he turned his face slightly. "Jerry? Mike? Brad? You guys go around in behind 'em! We'll squeeze 'em though the bleachers into paste!" He turned his head to look and saw that the only one standing behind him was their coach.
"I don't think so, Ox!" Coach Greg shouted up. "Get your fat ass down here!"
Defeated, Ox slumped his shoulders and slowly descended the bleachers. "Yes, Coach."
As the two smiled at each other, Coach Greg called them down while Ox walked toward the locker room. "Rich, I hate to do this, but I'm gonna have to drop you from the team. What you did, even if you had a good reason, can't be tolerated. I'm sorry."
Rich sighed. "It's OK, Coach. I was thinking of dropping this year anyway. Football isn't in my future, I think we both know that."
The two reached the field, Coach Greg nodding in agreement. "I think I understand. Look, I'll need to report this incident, but it means we know who the vandal was, so Ox won't get away scott-free. You can grab your stuff tomorrow. I don't want you in the locker room with Ox. Is that clear?"
"Yes, Coach." Richard said. "I know it's against some rule somewhere, but I just need you to know it was the right thing to do. Do you? Know, I mean?"
He reseated his cap before answering. "Well, I don't know if it was the right thing to do, but it sure was damn funny! See you 'round, Rich!"
After that Richard and Jack headed home. When they arrived at Richard's house, he asked, "Jack? Could you come in with me? I... I don't wanna tell Dad alone."
Jack smiled. "I keep telling you! You need me!"
They walked in smiling as Richard called out, "Mom! I'm home! Jack's with me!"
Judith came out from the hallway. "Richard! I just got off the phone with your coach! He called me to tell me you've been cut?"
"Yeah." Richard nodded. "It's OK, though. I've had enough of football."
She turned to Jack. "Oh, and I heard about you and Wendy, Jack! I'm sorry! Still, there's lots of other girls at your school!"
"It's fine, Mrs. Hargrave." Jack half-smiled. "I'll get over it. Can I use your phone? I wanna call my mom and let her know I'm here so she won't worry."
"That's fine, dear. Use the one in Richard's room. Come with me, dear. Tell me what happened."
As Jack headed down the hall, he saw Erica looking out at him from her bedroom door.
"I... I'm sorry you got hurt, Jack." she offered as he passed her.
"Thanks, Buttons." Jack replied sadly. "I... I gotta call my mom."
Erica watched him go into her brother's room through eyes that were starting to wet with tears, her heart breaking for Jack's sake.
"You what?" Judith asked.
Richard sighed as he paced the kitchen. "You don't understand, Mom! You don't know what he did!"
"What could Oscar have possibly done to deserve that!" she demanded.
"I'll tell you what! He spray-painted Jack's locker with the words, 'Couldn't Score With Slut Wendy!' So it makes it look like Jack wrote it to spite her by calling her a slut and frigid at the same time! Plus it makes him look like a looser! When Wendy saw it, she slapped Jack!"
Judith sat back down. "Oh, Richard! That's too bad about them, but what does that have to do with you?"
"His heart's broken and the whole school was laughing at him, Mom! I had to do something to even things up! So I set Ox up... made it so he would confess to the spray-painting in front of coach, plus get even with Wendy!"
"I can't conscience anything against the Evans girl, dear!" Judith shouted. "What's her comeuppance supposed to be for?"
"She dumped Jack for another guy, Mom! She filled his head with her lies, wrapped him around her little finger, made him fall for her, then dumped him when it got boring! She deserves to be called a slut!"
"She is a slut, Mom! I told you!" Erica growled from the kitchen entryway.
Judith was shocked. "Erica! Don't you dare use such language in this house! And you either, young man!"
The seventeen-year-old looked at his mother with a shocked expression, his voice dropping to a hush. "You knew?"
Their mother was struck speechless. "I... wh... a... What? Of course not! How could anybody know what would happen?"
Erica crossed her arms. "Because I told you it would, Mom! I told you on their Prom night!"
Judith stood up. "That's enough! I will not be spoken to in such a way! Now Erica you did no such thing! You repeated a rumor, which is bad enough! I want you to go to your room and stay there until Jack goes home and your father gets here!"
"Mom! I told you it was Wendy's sister who told me! She should know! She lives with her!"
"That's beside the point!" she defended her actions. "Nobody knew it would happen! I thought Jack would be good for the Evans girl, and her for him! Help settle her down and give him someone to date so..." She glanced at Erica and paused a moment to think of an excuse. "...so he wouldn't be alone! So, I put a bug in her ear about Jack and said that if she settled down with him, I'd see to it she had money for the summer to spend on their dates! You know her family goes to our church and I told them I'd help..."
"What?" Jack said, standing at the kitchen entrance next to Erica.
"Jack!" Judith gasped. "Oh, dear! I..." She tried to come up with another excuse, but Jack ran out their door before anyone could say another word.
Glaring at his mother, Richard's voice dropped to a growl. "My eighteenth birthday is in six weeks. I'll be out in seven." At that he stormed out of the house to catch up with Jack.
Erica just glared at her mother. "You already knew, didn't you? Before I even told you that night! You knew and you let Jack go months thinking Wendy really liked him!" She shook her head and quickly stomped to her room, slammed the door, and began to cry for Jack, thoughts flitting through her mind and wondering if her mother had not interfered if he might have asked her to go with him to the Prom.
Richard ran toward Jack's house as fast as he could move. When he caught sight of him, he yelled out, "Jack! Wait up!"
Slowing his pace, Jack's whole worldview had exploded and all he wanted to do was go home and stay there.
"Jack!" Richard caught up with him and stood in front of him. "Please stop!"
"Get out of my way, Rich! You can all just go to hell!"
"You're right!" he agreed. Seeing that it had the effect he wanted, confusion, he waited a moment until he could catch his breath. "Mom... Mom knew! She knew... Wendy... was a flirt... and God!... She didn't... say anything... I don't... think I can... ever... forgive her for that!"
Jack started to understand more of the half conversation he'd overheard. "So, she... she tried to use me? To help Wendy's mom not be embarrassed at church?"
"Yeah." Richard nodded. "Erica knows Wendy's sister, Ruth. Ruth told her, and Erica told Mom... on Prom Night, Jack! She knew all along! When you came over? She could have told you then! She could have warned you, but she didn't... to help Wendy's parents be less embarrassed at church! She used you!"
Taking another moment to try and slow his breathing, Richard continued. "I... I told her that after my birthday, I'm moving out. They can't stop me once I'm eighteen. I'll be a legal adult."
"You... you're leaving home while still in school?"
Looking over his shoulder at Jack's house just down the block, he asked, "Why don't we go to your place?"
"Sure. Come on." Jack sighed.
The two walking in the door, Mary looked up at them as she sat crocheting in the front room. "Jack, baby? Are you OK? You sounded so upset over the phone! I thought you were going to be at Richard's for a while."
Jack shrugged. "I was, but then something... happened. I... I don't know if I can go back there again."
Mary looked at Richard for some explanation.
"It seems my mom knew that Wendy was a flighty slut, pardon the language Mrs. Dunning, and she could have warned Jack or me, but she goes to church with Wendy's parents and wanted to help them not be so embarrassed by their slutty daughter. So she set Jack up to date her by bribing Wendy, hoping Jack would make her settle down. It's like Mom didn't even care that it would hurt him if she dumped him like she did a lot of guys before!"
Slowly, Jack realized the context of the talk he'd had with Judith in her kitchen on Prom Night and just what was really going on. Just why she'd been so generous to make sure they had a good time, and why she had made Frank give him 'the talk' and all that extra money.
"Son of a..." Jack stopped himself. "Sorry, Mom." Going to the kitchen table, they sat while Jack explained everything that had gone on that night.
"I can't believe it!" Mary said. "Judith? Are you certain, sweetie?"
Jack nodded. "Positive. I remember that night perfectly. Every detail perfectly stored in my big, stupid head!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
Richard moved out of his parent's house in October of eighty-eight, just a few days after his eighteenth birthday while he still had most of his senior year left. He moved into Jack's house and got a part-time job after school to help with money. Jack used to say that after they moved in together was when their friendship saw its first real test. It was a really hard time for them. Rich was working, Jack was depressed a lot of the time, and Rich's parents were calling him every day asking him to come home. Rich told me that by Christmas break things had hit their lowest point. Most of the details though I got from Jack and Erica. High school is supposed to be about learning to deal with real life. Jack and Richard only got three years of that before they had to start living it. That year seemed to be a living hell that nearly ruined their friendship, and more.
---
Jack was brooding on the couch again. The last day before Christmas break he'd learned that Wendy was changing classes and she would be moved to his Government class at the start of the last semester. To make matters worse, his teacher Mr. Anderson always paired students for study and discussion. The first semester had been great. He'd been the odd student out, so he was solo and didn't have a partner. With Wendy joining the class, Mr. Anderson wouldn't want to split any of the existing study pairs, so he was certain he would end up being assigned as her partner.
"So much for graduating!" Jack grumbled.
Shaking his head, Richard was finishing getting ready for work at a local tire store. "Look, Jack. Why borrow trouble? If you end up being assigned together, there's nothing you can do about it! You'll just have to learn to live with it. It's only for a few months, then you'll never have to see her again."
"How would you like it if you got paired with Anne? Sound like a picnic?"
"Damn it, Jack! Quit sulking and grow up! I gotta go! See you tomorrow!" Richard barked before slamming the front door on his way out.
Mary quietly came out of her bedroom. Since her schedule had changed to swing shift, she usually slept while the boys were at school. "Good afternoon, dear. I hear school was bad. Is there anything I can do?"
"No, Mom. I guess I just have to suck it up if I want to graduate in June."
"Are you still looking at joining the Marines with Richard after graduation?"
Jack stared at the living room ceiling. "I don't know anymore, Mom. I don't even know if Rich will stick around that long. I've sort of been getting on his nerves lately. I know I should try harder, but..." Jack sighed. "...I just... I don't care about anything anymore."
Sitting next to him, her voice trembled. "Sit up, Jack. I want to talk to you."
Without much enthusiasm, he slowly sat up. "OK, Mom. Let me have it."
"No, dear. This isn't a lecture. I want to talk to you about when your father died. Do you remember that?"
"How could I ever forget." he replied sarcastically.
Looking away from her son, Mary swallowed hard. "After the funeral, I... I knew I had to get a job, but I just couldn't seem to get out of the house to do it. It was... just too hard! I... I couldn't see the point. Why face that hardship? What made it worthwhile?" She looked back at him. "Sound familiar?"
"Vaguely." he quipped. "So how'd you do it, Mom? What magic gave you a purpose?"
"You." she said simply.
"Oh. So, you saw I needed to be taken care of and did what you had to do?"
"No, I saw you needed the same thing I did... purpose. You were just as lost as I was. So I left the house so you had to do things for yourself."
"I don't see how this helps." Jack sat back. "I mean, I get it. I was important enough to you that you had to make me find a purpose, which gave you a purpose, but how can I do the same thing?"
Mary's voice quivered again. "Jack, I'm not as young as I used to be. I... I'm getting old dear. I... I can't keep working much longer."
Sitting up, Jack really looked at his mother for the first time in many years. Intellectually, he knew she was sixty-five, but he'd never seen her look it so much as she did now. "Mom? I... I'm sorry! Sorry that I was ever even born! You shouldn't have had to put up with a baby at your age!"
"No, dear!" she cried. "I wouldn't trade being your mother for all the youth in the world! You were a true gift from God! Your father and I loved every second we had together with you! Don't ever think otherwise!"
Taking a deep breath, Jack began trying not to care about his own problems. All that mattered was his mother and seeing to it she was taken care of. "I... I'm sorry, Mom. I'm really glad you and Dad got to have your baby, and by lucky coincidence, it's was me!"
"Oh, Jack!" Mary laughed. "You always could make me smile! It's your gift. You know just what to say to put a little laughter in people's lives when they need it!"
"Comes from watching all those old TV shows with you and Dad! Comedy hasn't been the same since they took Uncle Miltie off the air!"
"So that's where you get it!" she joked.
"OK, Mom. I get it. Turn that frown upside down, make lemons into lemon pie, make my smile my umbrella, put my shoulder to the wheel, get those high apple pie in the sky hopes, and so on, and so on." Taking another deep breath, he stood up, stretched, and headed for his room. "I have semester finals to study for, so I better get cracking!"
Mary smiled as she heard his door close. Danny? He's hurting so badly. If there's anything you can do for our boy, he surely could use it soon!
Jack dropped into his desk chair, his false optimism spent in his display for his mother's benefit. Thinking how he could help her with Wendy about to become his study partner only led to one conclusion. I'm not gonna graduate anyway, so I might as well drop out and get a full time job so she can finally retire. Failing to graduate was a huge blow to his ego. If there was a certainty in his life, it was that he would get his diploma and see Mary sitting there proud of him, but that was gone. They needed money and she couldn't earn it much longer. Richard's part time job only offset the higher cost of food and utilities he'd added to the household, so they were no better off than before.
Doing some quick math, he determined that the start of the spring semester should be his target for having a full time job that paid at least ten dollars per hour. Any less and they wouldn't be able to get by, let alone deal with emergencies. Jack then spotted the discrepancy. There's no way for a high school dropout to get a ten-dollar job!
A new despair straddled his shoulders. Nice little catch-twenty-two! If I quit school, I can't get a good enough job for her to retire. If she doesn't retire, then I don't need to quit high school, but if I don't quit high school, I'll flunk out anyway and Mom can't retire.
Now even more depressed, he sank into an apathy that would take a near catastrophe to shake him from it.
Richard walked in the front door to the Dunning home at eleven. Bone tired, he dragged his body down the dark hallway to the room he and Jack shared. When he opened the door and saw Jack passed out on his bed, not Jack's, it was the final straw. He kicked his bed.
"Get up!" he shouted. "Jack! Get your lazy ass out of my bed!" He reached down and jerked his friend up by the hair.
Jack was awake in the blink of an eye. "What the hell! Let go! That hurts!"
"That's it!" he yelled. "I've had it! I'm moving out of this shit hole and into somewhere decent enough to shower and sleep in!"
Only vaguely aware of his surroundings, Jack only knew that Richard was pulling his hair. Fighting back, he elbowed Richard in the kidneys, making him let go. The two boys stumbled in the mess of their room for a minute, each trying to punch the other's lights out. The only advantage Jack had was familiarity. He knew where to step in the clutter, while Richard scrambled for footing. The outcome was inevitable though.
Jack felt Richard's fist connect as he tried to escape over his bed. He had a feeling of falling, then he noticed that he really was falling. The last thing he saw was the corner of his nightstand racing towards his head.
Richard watched himself deck his best friend as if it were a scene in a movie that he was idly watching. When the blood splattered out of Jack's nose and he fell face first into the nightstand, Richard felt a moment of terror. The two blows had to have killed his only true friend.
He backed away from the body, every instinct in his brain telling him to run away as far and as fast as he could. Back to his parent's house, steal their car since it would have more than the five gallons of gas in his own used vehicle, drive all night, then just before they got up in the morning, abandon it somewhere out of sight and run until he dropped from exhaustion.
The only thing that stopped his flight was the desperate need to stand up to the worst enemy his best friend had ever faced; him. Looking down at his bloody fist and then his friend's apparently lifeless body, he saw Jack move. Just a ragged breath, but it told him that Jack was still alive and needed help.
Carefully, he moved Jack to the floor while supporting his neck and head. Remembering the first aid training they'd both received in ROTC, he knew what to do, making an improvised cervical collar by tearing up his pillow. Once Jack's neck was immobilized, he checked all his vital signs. He was breathing and he had a pulse, but he was unconscious; probably with a severe concussion.
He lifted Jack up off the floor gently, making sure to keep his neck and back straight, and carried him out to the station wagon he'd bought from his father the previous year for five hundred dollars. Sliding him carefully into the back seat, he buckled him down and got behind the wheel. Driving as fast as he could, he got Jack to the hospital in less than five minutes. The story he told them was the truth; they'd been fighting and he'd knocked Jack out. Confused by the obvious concern that Richard was showing to his alleged victim, they nevertheless followed procedure and called the police.
When Jack woke up, he knew something was wrong. His room was never this bright. The world now just consisted of a blanket of whiteness with nothing visible, not even himself. He vaguely recalled the nightmare he'd had of fighting Richard. He knew it couldn't have been real because if he ever fought his best friend, it wouldn't have lasted that long. Slowly, he became aware that his nightmare had turned into reality.
Or is this still part of the nightmare? he wondered.
He existed nowhere for an unknown amount of time with minutes seeming to stretch on for centuries. It let him think. He thought about his father, his mother, Richard, Buttons, Frank, Judith, Wendy... everyone. He seemed to have all the time in the world with nothing to do but think. He went over all the things that had led him to that fatal point in his life where he'd driven his best friend to turn against him.
After spending a seeming eternity mulling it over, he eventually saw clearly that his entire life had turned on a single point; the day Richard stopped Ox from pummeling him in the lunchroom. Remove that one event and the entire thread of his life came apart. Then it was joined by millions of other events, each just as important as the rest.
He thought about God, his mind drifting aimlessly through scripture, some of which he was sure he'd never read before. He thought about his problems; school, work, and his mother's retirement. Then oddly enough, his thoughts drifted back to Buttons. Always around, always underfoot, always... there. She seemed one of the few constants in his life, as constant as his mother, Richard, or sunrise. Sometimes he could almost hear her voice, but then he would drift again and be thinking about Wendy or his mom.
When he thought about God, he wondered what He was waiting for. If this nightmare was real, then he must be in limbo waiting God's judgement. But I've already been waiting forever. How much longer will it be? he wondered. He tried talking to God. He asked questions that received no answers. He asked for an end to his unending nothing of an existence, but it never came. He thought about his life and all the bad things he'd ever done to anyone, and then he thought about all the good things he could have done and didn't. And his bodiless life wept.
Once during his eternal drifting, he thought he heard a voice. Not really a voice, but a half-remembered dream of a voice. It spoke nonsense, but it was definitely there. When it went away he drifted once more. Then it came back and it sounded somehow familiar, like remembering the voice of a person that only exists in your dreams. The words were audible, but too faint to understand. Listening to it, he tried moving towards it. Lacking anything to move, he tried just drifting towards it. It got clearer the more he did, but then the voice stopped and he would drift for another eternity.
When he'd almost convinced himself that the voice had never really been there, suddenly it was back again, but different... smaller... like he'd drifted too far away to hear it clearly anymore. So he tried again. He was sure that if he found the voice it would end his torment of eternity, but every time he tried to follow it, the voice would vanish once more.
The next time he heard it he ignored it. Then again... and again. When he couldn't stand it anymore, he begged for help from anybody that could, but nothing changed. Drifting once more, things became fainter... darker... and the voices disappeared. He figured that finally his eternity of torment was coming to an end and he was going to be allowed to drift off into oblivion; a fitting end for a boy who had cared so little for anyone but himself.
Eventually, the darkness took him and he was no more.
Jack stood in emptiness. It was different this time. It wasn't eternal drifting. It was more like a dream. He wasn't sure if the dead ever dreamed, but here he was, so they must.
"It's not a dream, son. And you're not dead!" the man's voice said.
Looking around, Jack couldn't see him. He couldn't even hear him. It was as though he just knew what the man was saying.
"You can." the voice said.
He tried to speak, but nothing worked. He was a nothing; not even a drifting consciousness.
"You can wake up, ya' know."
Finally able to recognize the voice of his dead father, he wanted to ask how to wake up, but didn't know how to even ask how.
"You just did."
Before he could even formulate the idea of a question, the answer was there.
"I told you! You're not dead, ya' igit! Don't you wanna wake up, Jack?"
"Yes." his thoughts formed.
"Then do it!"
"How?"
"Want to!"
"I do."
"Horsefeathers! If you did, you would!"
Suddenly, Jack saw his father, but it wasn't as he remembered him. It was more like an idealized version of him. He wasn't sure when the man appeared in front of him. It was almost as though he'd always been there, but he'd just failed to notice him.
"So what's holding you back, son?"
"Pain." Jack replied.
"So what! Push through it and it'll be behind you."
"Dad? Are you sure this isn't a dream? It feels like one... and you're dead."
"So? You think that matters, Jack?"
"You're saying I can wake up anytime I want to?"
"Yup."
"So that means I don't want to."
"Now you've got it!"
The distant voice returned. It was small again.
"It's people." his father told him, looking upward at the darkness as though he could see someone who wasn't there.
"Real ones?"
"Yep... and no, not dead ones!"
"So if I can..."
"You can't will it boy! You have to want it!"
"What if I want to be here with you?"
"Then eventually you'll die, and your life will have been a waste. That's not what I raised ya' for, Jack!"
"What did..."
"To live, dag nabbit! You did, for a while, but then you got hurt and you died again! People think living and dying are something ya' do only once, but there are a whole heap of people that're dead inside that walk around every day! They forgot how ta' live! Damn walking corpses with not a shred of life in 'em!"
"Will waking up and living hurt?"
"Like the dickens, kid! But it'll be worth it! 'Sides, you got things ta' do! So git!"
Jack listened to the voice again and for the first time, wanted to be with it.
"so... ... ... school... ... ... mom... ... Richie... ... ... trouble. I guess... love... ... never know."
Jack opened his eyes and they were stabbed with a light that cut like a knife. He quickly shut them again to try and stop the pain.
"Jack?"
He tried to speak, felt his tongue move, and was stabbed again by a knife, this time in his throat.
"I'll go get the doctor!"
With the voice gone and the light too painful to look at, Jack thought he'd drifted to the nothing place again. Then he heard footsteps and the voice.
"See? Look! He's moving!"
A sea of sounds assaulted his ears and he couldn't stop them. He wanted desperately to have the ability to close his ears the way he'd closed his eyes. The sounds blasted his eardrums until he thought he'd gone deaf. Then he noticed he hadn't. The sounds were just finally tolerable and sounded normal once more.
"BP?"
"One hundred over sixty."
"He's trying to talk. Jack? I'm Doctor Marks. You're in the hospital. You've suffered a severe concussion and neck injury. If you can understand me, try to open your eyes."
Jack tried to shake his head no, that he didn't want to open his eyes because of the pain, but his head wouldn't budge.
"He's getting agitated, Doctor. Pulse one fifty."
"Very well. Administer five CCs morphine."
Knowing that would knock him out, he forced himself to calm down.
"His rate's dropping."
Gathering all his nerve, he opened his eyes.
"Jack!" the small voice cried out. He was finally able to recognize that it was Erica Hargrave. Buttons!
"Nurse! Get her out of here, please!" the man's voice spat harshly.
Terrified that if Erica left he'd lose her voice and fall back into the nothing, Jack began to panic.
"Pulse rising rapidly, doctor. One forty."
"Wait! Nurse, bring her back."
"Pulse dropping."
"You want her to stay?"
He tried to nod, to no avail. He blinked.
"OK, once for yes, twice for no. Do you want the girl to stay?"
Blink.
"The girl has a name!" Erica snapped.
Blink.
"Do you know her name?" the doctor asked probingly.
Blink.
"Do you know who you are."
Blink.
"Do you know how you got here?"
Blink... blink.
"Do you know the date?"
Blink... blink.
"Alright he's breathing on his own. Let's remove the breathing tube. Nurse? Alright... hold his head steady..."
The knife was carving into his throat again, and then just as suddenly it was gone. He moved his mouth ineffectually, trying to form words, but they wouldn't come out.
"Is... is Jack trying to talk?" Erica asked.
"Yes sweetie, but his throat is sore... very, very sore!"
Jack looked down with his eyes and for the first time could see something. Not exactly faces, but the sort of images that you think are faces but are just random patterns in things. Then the faces started clearing and Jack could make out details. Glasses over eyes. The one on the right was a woman. There was another face... smaller and farther away.
"Try to make a sound with your mouth. Whisper. Not your speaking voice."
"Ouch!" Jack whispered.
"Jack!" Erica giggled.
Smiling, Jack knew he'd used his gift the way God had intended him to. Becoming very tired, his eyes closed.
Some time later he woke up to the sound of his mother's voice.
"Thou hast set our iniquities before thee, our secret sins in the light of thy countenance. For all our days are passed away in thy wrath: we spend our years as a tale that is told."
"Thirsty." Jack whispered.
"Jack!? Here..."
Wetness touched his tongue again, slowly loosening it. "Thanks."
"Jack baby, do you know where you are?"
"Hospital."
"Do you know what happened?"
"Rich."
"Yes." she said, her voice hard. "He's under arrest for attempted murder."
"No!" he almost spoke.
"Jack, he tried to kill you!"
"No!"
"Well, what happened then?"
"Me."
"You?" she asked confusedly.
"My fault. Selfish."
"Jack, someone being selfish isn't a reason to..."
"Both... fighting."
"You... you hit him?"
"Poorly." he smiled.
Hearing his mother laugh brought tears to his eyes. "Jack!"
He tried nodding, but couldn't. "Can't move."
"You're immobilized, dear. Your neck was nearly broken. Richard... he immobilized you before bringing you to the hospital."
"Good thinking." Once more exhaustion overcame him and he fell asleep.
When Jack next awoke, he was alone. When he tried to move he found this time he was able to, lifting his head and looking around his room. Seeing he was in a private room with the second bed empty, he looked down and saw a remote control with a red button on it. He chuckled when it made him think of Erica. Reaching slowly, he grasped it and pressed, hoping that it was a nurse call button and not a trigger for an infusion pump. When he didn't fall asleep, he waited until the nurse came.
"Good afternoon!" she said cheerily. "I'm Maggie. You need something?"
"Water." he whispered. Once she'd handed him a cup, he tried swallowing. It hurt badly, but he endured it and it went away. "Thank you."
"You're welcome..." she paused and looked at the foot of his bed. "Jack!"
"Where's my mom?"
"I believe your mother's gone home to rest. She's spent a lot of time here. A lot of people have."
"Phone?"
Maggie retrieved it for him and set it next to his right hand. It was an older phone with a rotary dial instead of touch-tone buttons. "Dial nine to get an outside line. Anything else?"
"No, thank you." he whispered.
After she left, he tried dialing his mother's phone number. It rang until he'd figured if anyone was home that they would have answered. Hanging up, he tried the Hargrave's house. This time, it connected.
"Hello?" Erica answered.
"Buttons!" he croaked.
"Jack! Dad! It's Jack! You're all the way awake?" she asked.
"Ouch!" he croaked again.
Hearing her giggle was like the ringing of angelic bells, until they stopped.
"Jack? This is Frank. You alright, boy?"
"Hurting. Where's Rich?"
"He... uh... he's in jail, Jack. Under arrest for attempted murder."
"Not true. He saved me."
"Jack, he confessed!"
"He lied."
"Listen, Jack. I know you two had a row about something. That's none of my business, but he says he tried to kill you and was going to flee prosecution. He's being held without bail."
"But he didn't. He lied when he confessed. I hit him first."
"Where? The police found no marks on him except on his right knuckles where he... well... bashed your face in."
"Elbow... kidney..."
"Hmm... he's been hit there so many times I doubt a single hit would show. Jack, are you saying it was self defense?"
"Yes... and an accident. Hit nightstand. Rich saved me."
"I'm going to talk with our lawyer. Would you swear to what you're saying?"
"Not polite to swear!"
"Alright, boy." Frank laughed. "I have to go. Do you need anything?"
"Mom? No answer."
"Oh. I... I think she's down in the chapel, there at the hospital. She spends a lot of time there. Anything else?"
"Buttons."
"You want what? Oh! Erica! Jack wants to talk to you, sweetie. Daddy's gonna make a phone call in the office. Talk to Jack."
"Jack?" she asked.
"Hey ya, Buttons. Wanted to ask you something."
"What?"
"Did you come in my hospital room and talk to me a lot?"
Silence filled the space between them. "Yeah." she finally said shyly.
"You helped."
"I did?"
"Uh-huh! You're my miracle girl! I heard you."
Again dead air filled the void. "Um... all of it?"
"No, just pieces. Couldn't tell it was you, at first. I think I heard Mom talking once, and a doctor... I think. Who all came to see me?"
"Um... a lot of people. Dad, Mom, me, your mom, they let Richie in once before he went to jail, and that Wendy twice, I think."
He heard the disdain in her voice at the mention of Wendy. "Don't like her?"
"She... she hurt you, Jack! Maybe even worse than Richie did!"
"Richie didn't mean to hurt me, Buttons. I told your dad that. He's calling his lawyer to try and get your brother out of jail."
"But Richie told me..."
"He lied. I hit him and then fell. Rich saved me."
"Jack, I... I told Richie that I hated him and never wanted to see him again because of what he told me he did to you."
"He'll forgive you, Buttons. He always will." Jack coughed painfully. Taking a sip of water, he said, "Can't talk much longer. How's everyone?"
"Mom moved out. Her and Dad had a big fight. She's staying with Aunt Edina. I... I think she went a little crazy after you got hurt."
"OK. I hope she's better soon."
"I thought you hated her, after she let Wendy hurt you."
"I want to forgive her. She didn't mean for me to get hurt."
"I don't know if I can. I warned her, and she let you date Wendy anyway."
"Buttons, I know you may not understand this now, but someday you will understand, I... I had to get hurt."
"Why?"
"I don't know. I just know I had to."
"Oh. Alright. If you say so. Doesn't mean I have to like it!"
"That's OK. I have to go, Buttons. Thanks again for helping me get better."
"Jack?"
"Yeah?"
"Can you just call me Erica from now on? Buttons is so... childish. After all, I'm fourteen now."
Jack did an unconscious double take. "Wait, what?"
"Could you just call me..."
"No! You're how old?"
"Fourteen. You were asleep through my birthday."
Afraid to ask, but more afraid of not knowing, he forced himself to ask the question. "How long... what day is it?"
"It's Sunday... um... February twelfth."
Slowly it came to him that he'd missed nearly two months of his life. "Gotta go, B... Erica. Bye." At that he hung up.
Erica heard him hang up before she dared say it. "I love you, Jack. I'll always love you! Bye."
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
Rich didn't ever tell me much about the time he spent in jail. He just would say, 'It wasn't that bad, really.' and change the subject. When Jack told the police that he hit Rich first and refused to press charges on the assault, the DA dropped the pending charges. Jack told me he was contacted by the DA while in the hospital saying they had filed assault charges against him, but Rich pled the fifth because testifying against Jack would incriminate himself, leaving no witnesses and a really weak case. So in the end, the whole matter was dropped and neither one was convicted of anything. Jack spent the next three months in physical therapy. The only thing that kept them afloat was the money that Frank Hargrave gave them to help out. Rich said his dad felt responsible for the whole thing because he did nothing to stop Judith from playing matchmaker with the neighborhood floozy, not caring if Jack got hurt in the process. He took classes between therapy sessions by state appointed tutor until he was able to come back to school, but by then it was early April and there was less than ten weeks of school left. Richard had classes to make up from his jail time, so he had to quit his job and go back home to have any chance of graduating with his class. Rich told me the most about when Jack finally was able to go back to school. Jack didn't like talking about it, but he had the best stories about the things going on outside of school.
---
Richard waited in his car. If we don't leave soon we're gonna be late. He was just about to go back in and check on Jack when he came hobbling out on his cane. The neck injury damaged some nerves and it was taking extra effort to get full mobility back in his legs, but the prognosis was good that he would be able to walk down the aisle for his diploma unassisted.
Richard got out and opened the car door for him.
"You don't need to do that, Rich. I'm not an invalid! Just a cripple!"
"I do if we want to make it on time. Hurry up!"
Jack slowly lowered himself into the seat of Richard's station wagon. Pulling the cane in, Richard slammed the door and ran to the other side. Jumping in, he sped off down the road toward their school.
"I know you're the criminal type, but I would like to get there in one piece!"
"Fine, grandma!" Richard smiled as he slowed to the posted speed and turned to look at Jack. "Better?"
"Great! Now just watch where you're going."
Parking in one of the school's handicapped spaces, Richard jumped out and helped Jack up on his feet and stayed with him until he reached the office.
"Are you OK from here?" he asked.
"Yeah, Rich! Go on! You don't want to be late, too! See you at lunch."
Waiting in the office to be admitted back into school, the recently promoted Principal Ford came out to greet him.
"Welcome back, son. Getting around OK?"
"Good as can be expected, sir. Had a little trouble getting ready this morning, so I'm running behind. Well, not running..."
Harry Ford laughed, his obese form shaking slightly. It was a simple deep laugh that was barely noticeable, but sincere. "That's OK, Jack. We'll see to it you get where you need to go." He turned and snapped his bulky fingers. "Angie! Get Mr. Dunning here his re-admittance papers." He nodded slightly to Jack before slowly returning to his office.
Angie Green had been the school secretary for more years than anyone could remember. She quickly found the file and walked over to the desk. "Here's the form. Do you have your notice from the school district for your missed time?"
Slowly, Jack pulled it out of his pocket and handed it to her. "Sorry." he said as she impatiently snatched it from his fingers.
She looked him over. "You seem healthy enough. No casts."
Jack slowly shook his head. "Nerve damage, Ms. Green."
"What, were you hit by a speeding car?"
"Nightstand." Jack retorted with a smile.
She almost just accepted the answer, but then did a double take. "You were hit by a speeding nightstand?"
"Fell on it. Almost broke my neck." he answered seriously.
"Oh." she replied. "Well, give me a minute and I'll get your pass and you can run off to class."
"Nice trick if you can manage it!" Jack yelled after her.
The rest of the morning passed uneventfully. Getting around was slow, but Jack had gotten used to that. He was beginning to wonder if he would ever be fully mobile again as he made his way to the lunchroom, finally seeing Richard sitting at their usual table with three trays.
"Jack! I already have your lunch!" he yelled.
Lowering himself into his seat, he looked at the trays. "Hungry much, Rich? I know I can't eat all that! You need me to do something to curb your appetite again?"
"No." Richard looked down. "I got you your usual and this tray's mine."
Jack looked at the third tray curiously. "Will our mystery guest enter, and sign in, please?" he said, quoting a line from an old TV show.
"Jack?"
Turning slowly to look behind him, Jack's heart fluttered. "Wendy." he said coolly, turning back to his tray.
The girl sat down with space between them, not wanting to sit too close. "Jack, I... I wanted to talk to you. I hope you don't mind. I asked Rich to arrange it."
"Well, I seem to be a captive audience, seeing as I can't outrun either of you two." He picked up a fry and slowly chewed it.
She laughed a little, but soon the awkwardness started to build.
"Jack, I wanted to tell you I'm sorry." she began. "I... I was really upset when I heard you got hurt. I went to the hospital a couple times to see you. I've been doing a lot of soul searching and... well... I was really unfair to you! When I got back from my vacation last year, I... I lied to you. I never found anyone in Florida. I let Anne and Beth talk me into dumping you."
Jack dropped his half-eaten fry. "Anne. Figures. That girl is like Typhoid Mary. Everywhere she goes she spreads just a little ray of her particular brand of sunshine."
Richard sighed. "I know you have a lot of reasons to hate her Jack, but..."
"I don't hate her." he said emotionlessly as he resumed eating.
"Well it sure sounds like it! Typhoid Mary?"
"I'm out of practice. I'll come up with a funnier joke on next week's show."
"Jack, I... I wouldn't blame you if you hated me." Wendy looked down ashamedly. "I guess I was just too willing to go along with whatever other people think, but I hope someday you can forgive me for being so stupid."
"You're forgiven, Wendy. And I don't hate you." Jack said around a fry. "I don't have the strength to be carrying around all the grudges I could. I... I owe you an apology, too."
She looked at Jack in surprise. "You have nothing to apologize for, Jack! You didn't do anything to deserve the way I treated you!"
"It's not about what you did, it's about what I did, and what I didn't do that I should have." Jack sighed. "When I asked you to be my girlfriend, I knew you only said yes to go along, but I didn't try and stop you. I let it happen when I knew I shouldn't because I wanted to believe it. Then when you broke up with me, I took a grotesque amount of joy at you being humiliated by Ox. I hope you can forgive me."
Wendy was taken aback. "Well, I... uh... I guess I can forgive that. I hurt you pretty bad, so I understand. I thought some pretty horrible things about you too, and I... um... well... I said some pretty bad things, too."
"Anything I can't live down?"
"Probably." she answered honestly. "I don't think you'll be getting a date for Senior Prom, and that's my fault, too."
"That's OK, I probably won't be able to dance by then anyway." he joked.
Deciding it was his turn to speak, Richard was much less forgiving. "Wendy, he may forgive you, but I don't. I don't think I ever will. I had to sit by and watch as Jack spiraled down into the worst state of depression possible and not be looking to eat a bullet. First of all, I don't believe you when you say you're sorry. If you really were, you'd ask for him back. I think you were just bored with Jack because he didn't have a fancy car or lots of dough to throw at your feet after my Mom stopped paying you to date him."
He took a moment to let what he was saying sink in. "Second, even if what you say is true, your inability to just tell Anne to 'ef off' like I did when she made me chose between her and Jack caused him so much pain and suffering that I don't think there's enough forgiveness in the world for you. I honestly hope you rot in Hell for what you did to him!"
Wendy held back her tears. "I... I understand. I don't blame you. You're right. I'm still letting her tell me what to do. Why did you even set this up for me?"
He stared across the table at her with boiling anger in his eyes. Keeping his voice low, Richard practically growled his response. "Because this isn't about you, Wendy! It's about Jack! He needed closure and told me last week that he wanted to apologize to you for giving you what I think you deserved! I may think he's crazy for wanting to apologize, but I'll be damned if I was gonna stand in his way! He deserved it!"
Standing slowly, Wendy picked up her tray. "I... I guess I deserved that, too." Turning to Jack, she smiled slightly. "I do honestly wish you all the best, Jack. Just for the record though, I said yes because I really wanted to. It... it was the one time I did something because it was what I wanted to do, not because someone else did, and not just because Mrs. Hargrave offered to pay me. I... I know I took her money, and then broke up when she stopped, but I really did want to like you. I won't bother you anymore." Carrying her tray away, she dumped it in the trash uneaten, running from the cafeteria in tears.
"You should forgive her, Rich. If not for her sake then for yours." Jack said.
"I don't get it!" Richard answered back. "You spend four months in misery because she flakes on you, and now you're all philosophical about it?"
"A little thing called perspective." he answered, pushing his pizza around with a fry. "When I was out, I was still thinking. I could even sometimes hear people. Couldn't understand them for shit, but I heard them. It was like a hundred eternities there. You can do a lot of thinking in that much time."
"So, Dali Lama. What's the word from on high then?"
"Drop your baggage. A laugh is worth more than gold. Forgiveness isn't for the person that screwed with you, it's for you. When you see a chance to do some good, don't pass it up. When you have the chance to get even, don't."
Richard shook his head. "Sounds easy, but also sounds impossible."
"That's when you forgive yourself, for the crime of being an imperfect and flawed human being." Jack smiled. "To boil it all down, cut yourself and everyone else some slack!"
As time wore on however, Jack started to find it harder and harder to keep his new outlook. It seemed the stronger his body got, the weaker his new attitude became. He became increasingly agitated over a very short time, and after six weeks Richard sat with him to talk again.
Hearing a knock on the garage door, Jack turned to look and saw Richard smirking at him.
"What's so damn funny?" Jack asked as he put down the five-pound weight.
"You! That's what. Working out? Aren't you afraid you're going to ruin that marvelously gelatinous physique of yours?"
Jack shook his head. "Can it, Rich! I need to do my P.T. if I ever wanna be normal again."
"Bull!" Richard laughed as he walked into the garage that had become Jack's physical therapy room. "You're doing way more than the therapist required. Free-weights? Who do you think you're kidding?"
"OK! So I want to be more than a ninety pound weakling my entire life! Is that so terrible? Besides, I need to be in some sort of decent shape to pass MEPS." Jack said between breaths. Wrapping a towel around his neck, he walked over to the weight machine that Richard's father had bought him.
Richard stood and walked around the garage, seemingly at random. "No, I suppose it's fine, but your attitude is changing with your newly discovered muscles. Just a few weeks ago you were all Zen and peaceful. Now you bite my head off for a simple question."
Lying down, Jack started leg lifts. "You want to talk about my attitude? Fine. Lets talk about yours while we're at it. Don't you think you're about done walking on eggshells around me all the time?"
"Fine!" Richard barked. "Let's drag it all out then! I nearly killed you, Jack! Over you falling asleep on my bed! What does that say about me?"
He stopped lifting and looked at Richard. "Well, for starters it says no one should ever screw with your sleeping arrangements!"
"Knock it off, Jack! I'm being serious! Can't you be? Does everything always have to be one big freaking joke to you?"
Jack stood up slowly. "OK, lets be serious. You nearly killed me. OK. So now what? What to you want me to do, Rich? Hate you for it? Yell at you? Punch you? I was being a self-centered bum and you know it!"
"Alright fine, Jack! Yes! I want you to hate me! I want you to yell at me! Hell, take a free punch! You owe me one! But your Zen halo is slipping and that self-centered jerk is starting to come back!"
"Bum, not jerk." Jack nit-picked.
"Whatever! God! Jack, you can't turn it off, can you? Always the comedian! Always need to go for the quick laugh!"
"It's who I am, Rich! Haven't you figured that out by now?"
"What are you hiding from, Jack!?"
"What? Now what are you going on about?" Jack looked at him perplexed.
"I'm talking about you! About your always-on comedy routine! You're hiding, Jack! Hiding from something that's been scaring you since before I even met you! Now the comedy bit isn't enough! You're hiding in this room! Hiding behind physical therapy! Hiding behind your near-death experience that seemed to put you at peace for a while, but now you act like you've totally forgotten about it!"
"Hard to forget an eternity floating around with nothing to do but think."
"So talk to me about it!"
Jack laughed. "Sure, pull up a chair! Have ya got a few thousand years to spare? That'll cover the beginning."
"It was an illusion, Jack! Drugs messing with your head and sense of time!"
He stormed up to Richard, his eyes burning with anger. "No it wasn't, Rich! Drugs can't let you contemplate your life a few hundred times! It was real!" He stared at his friend a moment before turning away. "It was terrifying."
"What was so damn scary?"
"Me! That's what! I looked my life over a hundred ways and it all added up to one thing! Nothing! Just a big waste of time!"
Sitting down on the free weight bench, Richard looked at Jack. "What did you expect? You're only seventeen, dude! What, you thought by now you'd have cured cancer or something?"
"It's not just that!" Jack snapped back. "It's like my whole life is just some big joke! Joke of the universe! The world's biggest situation comedy! God wanted to see what would happen if he gave an old infertile couple a baby! Hilarity ensues! Ha! Ha!"
Sighing, Richard stood up. "So that's it? That's what's been eating you up? You were born to an old couple?"
"Mom's sick, Rich!" Jack barked. "She won't tell me what's wrong, but I can see it in her eyes! She's dying! Dying of old age or something and her only child isn't even out of high school yet!"
Silence hung in the air while the two friends looked at one another, whole volumes being spoken without a word.
Walking over to Jack, Richard put a hand on his shoulder. "I... I'm sorry, Jack." He wrapped his arms around his buddy and hugged him. "Is there anything I can do?"
Jack strained just trying to not cry. "No. I don't even know what can be done. Like I said, she won't talk to me about it." Jack let Richard go and walked around the room like a caged animal. "I just feel so... so useless! On top of all that, I have no outlet! Nothing fun to look forward to! Ever!" Jack sat and looked at the floor. "So anyway, how've you been?"
"Can't complain." Richard shot back. "Oh, there's the usual things. Money, girls, school, girls, graduation..."
"...girls!" they said together.
"Have a date for the Prom?" Jack wondered.
"No." Richard shook his head. "Doesn't seem to be in the cards, anyway. Ah! It's not important. Just the end-all be-all that everyone and their mother has been hammering on for weeks about. Nothing too important, though."
"Yammering, not hammering. Don't corrupt the language." Jack half-smiled.
"No, I mean hammering! After the thousandth time someone asks you 'Have a date for the Prom?' the words start to feel like a hammer beating into your skull!"
"Guess I'm lucky." Jack commented. "No one has even brought it up to me."
"Think they're afraid how you'll react. You tend to have a viscerally negative response to any and all mention of the word 'Prom', for some reason."
"Gee, can't imagine why! My last one ended just marvelously, didn't it?"
"You seemed to think so at the time, gut punches excluded, of course."
"Hindsight, my boy. Hindsight. If I had to do it all over again... Ah, hell! Who am I kidding? I wouldn't change a thing!" he laughed.
"Really? Why not?"
"Part of my eternal self analysis." Jack looked over at Richard. "I figured out that every part of my life was important, especially the bad stuff. I need it or else I wouldn't be me, I'd be someone else... and I like me."
"Wow, Jack! That's... profound!"
"I'll try not to make a habit of it. The wear and tear on my poor bruised body to get me there is murder!"
"So then... not going?" Richard asked nonchalantly.
"Going?"
"To... the... Prom!" Richard sounded out each word slowly.
Flinching like he'd just been slapped, Jack looked away. "Oh, that! Well let's see... I don't have a date, I don't have a tux, I don't have tickets, I don't have money to get tickets, don't have a way to get there or back... There's literally no end to the list of things I don't have in order to go to this clam bake, so... maybe?"
"I was talking to your mom the other day and she's worried about you. She seems to think you should go."
Picking up the five-pound weight again, Jack started exercising his other arm. "I really don't want to disappoint her, but I just don't see it happening, Rich. I would have had to start preparing for it a while ago. Days even!" He stopped working out and looked at Richard. "You're driving at something."
"Who? Me?" Richard looked astonished.
"OK, let's start with who."
"What who?"
"You expect me to go stag to this thing? Who? You obviously have someone in mind or you wouldn't have brought it up. A name! I assume this girl has one." Jack looked sideways at Richard. "It is a girl, isn't it?"
"If you asked her, I bet your dear Wendy would go with you." Richard's voice dripped with loathing as he spoke her name.
"Ugh! No more pity dates! You don't have to say her name like it's 'Hitler', either. You gotta let that go, man. It'll eat ya' up inside."
"Fine. Is there anyone you want to go with?"
Jack sighed as he put the weight down once more and stretched his arm. "I'm sorta out of the loop. I don't know who's available to turn me down. So... no, but like I said, I know you, Rich. You already have someone in mind, don't you."
"You wouldn't consider a blind date would you?"
"Oh, that would be great! I can see it now. 'Daddy? Who did you take to the Senior Prom?' 'Well, I never really caught her name, sweetie.' I don't think so."
"And stag's right out?"
"With the trash." Jack answered as he started to put away the weights.
"You could always go with my sister!" Richard joked.
"Buttons! Don't be grotesque, Rich! She's not a girl! Not one someone my age should be staying out late with, anyway. Or any age really until she's at least eighteen! I'd get arrested for violating her curfew or contributing to the delinquency of a minor or something! I mean, don't get me wrong... I love Buttons... but she's your sister! Taking Buttons would make me one of those creepy guys! Besides, she just thinks I'm her brother's weirdo friend! Next?"
"Hmm... it does present a problem. I don't suppose you could, ya know, trust me or anything." Richard asked.
"Of course I would!" Jack stated obviously. "Who is the hero in this story? You! I'm just your professional victim, remember?"
"So that's it then. You're going to the Prom and I'll take care of everything."
"With a date, that's not a blind date, and actually wants to go with me?"
"Yep."
"Tickets? Dinner? Money?"
"Yep, yep, and yep."
"Transportation? That clunker of yours won't cut it. If you are so fired up for me to go to this dog and pony show, I want a nice ride. Go in style for once!" Jack walked toward the door to the garage.
"Doable. So it's settled, then?"
"One other thing..."
"Oh, here it comes! The caveat. I knew you wouldn't make it that easy."
Jack stood next to the door, blocking it. "Nothing like that. It's just..."
"Spit it out, boy!"
"When is Prom? Honestly, I don't know! I've been a little... preoccupied." Jack gestured to the collection of weight machines.
"Oh! It's tomorrow night." Richard said nonchalantly.
Jack chuckled. "Pushing it a little aren't you? What if I'd said no?"
"Never would have happened." he dismissed the idea. "What? You think I didn't know I could needle you into it when I came in here?"
"I suppose you're right. After all, you did!"
After a Saturday afternoon trip to the barber, Jack was pleasantly surprised that by four Richard had brought him his tuxedo. By five Jack was sitting in his living room ready to be picked up. He found himself wishing Mary was up, knowing she would be getting more out of this than he was, but she'd been in her bedroom all day, only coming out to have breakfast. She seemed tired, distracted, and unfocused. Jack wondered how long it would be before she wouldn't even be able to take care of herself, let alone him.
Hearing a car pull up, he looked out the window to see a black limousine parked in front of his house. Richard had come though so far and now Jack found himself anxious to find out who his 'not a blind date' was. He figured it must be a girl he knew, but had never considered, but he quickly dismissed that idea as he believed there was no such thing as a girl he didn't consider.
When he heard Richard knock, he quickly opened the door. "Rich! Looking good! Where's the girl? We need to go pick her up?"
"Anxious much, Jack?" Richard shook his head. "And no, we don't need to go get her. She's here."
"Well, why didn't you ask her in?" Jack scowled at him.
"Because you need to ask her out, dear!"
Jack turned at his mother's voice and was stunned by the sight that greeted him. His mother was wearing a beautiful pink satin gown. It was obviously not a modern design, one that was more reminiscent of the fifties than the eighties. Gone was the gray of her hair, now tinted the blonde he'd seen in pictures of her from before he was old enough to remember, and she'd done her makeup beautifully. Altogether she looked twenty-five years younger, and she looked stunning.
"Well, dear? How do I look?" she asked, turning in place.
Jack smiled his half-smile and turned to Richard. "My mother. My mother. My mother! No matter how I say it, it keeps coming out the same!"
Mary frowned, thinking that she'd made a horrible mistake in agreeing to this with Richard. "Dear, if you'd..."
Jack turned around and looked at her. "It keeps coming out 'wonderful'! Mom, you look beautiful!"
"Thank you, dear." she smiled, blushing at the compliment. "So you wouldn't mind taking your Senior Mom to the Senior Prom?"
"Oh, Mom! You need to quit stealing my jokes! You keep this up and I'll have to start stealing Berl's stolen material to impress you! Where did you get the dress?"
"Do you like it? I haven't worn this since my fifteenth high school reunion! I know it's sort of old-fashioned. Will it do?"
"It looks beautiful on you, Mom! Don't you think so, Rich?"
He nodded. "So you two about ready?"
Slipping her arm around her son's, Mary nodded. "Whenever you are, dear."
The three made their way to the waiting limo. Climbing in and waiting to be taken to the dance, Jack turned to his mother. "Well, I won't have a girl I can make out with, but I think I'd rather be going with you than anyone I know." He sighed sadly. At least I know she won't break my heart.
"You better not try anything!" his mother joked, nodding toward Richard. "Our chaperone would be quite put out!"
"To say the least!" Richard added. "You two start kissing and I might just blow a gasket!"
"No worries there, Rich." Jack chuckled. "Don't get me wrong Mom, you look gorgeous tonight, but I just don't think I could look past the whole Mom thing. Oedipus, I ain't!"
"Can we change the subject, please?" Richard begged.
Arriving at the two teens' Prom, the three were shown to their table, each guest being grouped by request for the dinner that would precede the dance. Several of Richard's friends came by, offering for him to join them, but he kept refusing, choosing instead to stay with Jack and Mary no matter what.
After dinner, when Richard declined a dance for the third time, Jack scooted over to him and lowered his voice. "Look Rich, it's OK to have fun without me. This is your Senior Prom, too! You should enjoy it! After all, you're paying for it!"
"It fine, Jack." Richard insisted. "I just wanna make sure you're having a good time, is all."
"Richard?" Mary interrupted. "Go tell that pretty brunette that was just here that you've changed your mind and would love a dance." When the two of them looked at her surprised, she blinked back at them. "What? You two aren't nearly as sly as you think you are!"
After Richard got up and left to ask Sherry for a dance, Mary looked at her son. "You know, it's OK for you to ask someone to dance, too. Don't let me being here stop you from having a good time. I think you deserve it after all you've been through."
"Mom," Jack began. "I'm glad you're here! I want to spend time with you, not these jerks. Besides, I've wanted to talk to you for a while now." Taking a breath, he let it out slowly. "When I was in the coma, I... I saw Dad."
Mary drew in a sharp breath. "Jack! Why didn't you tell me?"
"Because I didn't want you to think your son had stripped his gears, Mom!"
"Nonsense!" she slapped his hand lightly with her gloved hand. "I would never think that!" Sighing, she looked at him. "Did he say anything?"
"Sorta." he replied shyly. "He... he helped me get back to you. I was lost, for a really long time. It... it felt like forever a dozen times over. I did a lot of thinking, not much else to do for eternity, and I... I learned a lot about myself. I haven't been a very good son to you over the years. I... I was... embarrassed... by you. I feel so ashamed for even admitting that."
"Jack, it's alright." she said, taking his hand in hers. "I... I understand. Your father and I were a lot older than your classmates' parents. It's part of the reason we never got involved in your school activities. We didn't... didn't want to embarrass you. So we let you do your own thing. I was so happy when you became friends with Richard! Your father and I were worried that we'd raised you such that you wouldn't be able to relate to your peers."
"You don't need to worry about it, Mom. I don't relate to them, but I don't care! I don't want to dance with any of these girls! They're all vapid and as shallow as a sidewalk puddle! I'm happy being me, and I wouldn't change it for anything! I think you and Dad did a great job of raising me, and even after Dad..." Pausing, he cleared his throat. "Well anyway, you're the perfect mother!" Hearing 'Songbird' begin, he stood and extended his hand to her. "And I would love a dance with my perfect mom!"
"Are you sure, dear?" she asked concerned. "I... I wouldn't want you to hurt yourself. I know even walking is still hard for you."
Jack looked at the dance floor. "I think I can manage a dance or two, so long as it's slow like this!" He looked back at her. "Please?"
Taking his hand, Mary rose graciously. "I'd be delighted, young man!" she sighed as she followed him out onto the dance floor. As they danced together simply, she sighed. "You're a fine dancer, dear. How did you get to be so good? I know I didn't teach it to you! I'm terrible!"
"You're a great dancer, Mom!" Jack said defensively. "Are you having a good time? I know the songs they're playing aren't exactly off the Hit Parade, but some are kinda nice, don't you think?"
"Well, I like this one!" she smiled. "Reminds me of Benny Goodman!"
Continuing to dance, Jack laughed. "You know it's funny? I feel more at home with Benny Goodman, Uncle Miltie, Burns and Allan, Bing Crosby, Bob Cummings, and those people than anyone today. It's like I can relate to them better!"
Smiling, Mary shrugged. "Well then, I guess it was right when your father and I named you Jack! Did we ever tell you who you're named for?" Seeing him shake his head curiously, she laughed. "It was your father's idea! You're named after Jack Benny!"
"Funny, I feel more like Jack Lemon!" he chuckled, making Mary laugh along.
Swaying slowly to the tenor sax, Mary's smile slowly melted. "Thank you for tonight, Jack! I... I really wasn't sure about Richard's idea to have me be your Prom date, but I'm glad he talked us into it! I... I think we both needed it more than either of us will ever admit, each for our own reasons."
Furrowing his brow, Jack looked at her quizzically. "OK, I'll bite. I know why I'm happy to be here with you. Why did you need tonight?"
Gulping, Mary couldn't look her son in the eyes as she said it. "I... I saw the doctor a few days ago, Jack. I... I'm in the early stages of Alzheimer's, dear. Very soon, I... I won't be able to do things like this anymore. I just hope I can still remember tonight! It's been wonderful, Jack!"
Stunned at the revelation, Jack stopped dancing a moment before picking up again. "OK, Mom. Did... did the doctor give you any sort of idea how long before..." stammering to a stop, he couldn't ask without breaking down.
"It's OK, Jack!" Mary comforted him. "I have a while left! Years, with any luck! I might still be able to see my grandchildren, if you hurry!"
"Fat chance of that, Mom!" Jack chuckled. "Not with these girls, anyway! I'd have to meet someone really special. Someone who gets me and doesn't have any ulterior motives. I... I just want a girl that loves me... not what they can get out of me or who thinks they can make me better. None of the girls my age fit the bill."
"Then maybe you need to broaden your horizons, Jack." Mary offered.
"What?" he asked with a half-grin. "Date older women? No offense Mom, but I need to stick to girls between the ages of fifteen and twenty! You don't want your son to be accused of cradle robbing or falling for Mrs. Robinson, would you?"
"That's not what I mean, dear." she admonished his jumping to conclusions. "I mean, maybe there's someone for you that you've never considered, for one reason or another. Men often think a girl is unattainable or uninterested, even when all she wants is him. Your father was that way. I practically had to club him over the head before he realized I was in love with him!"
"OK, Mom!" Jack conceded. "I promise I won't put any girl on my 'out of bounds' list!"
When the song ended, they made their way back to the table, seeing Richard there with Sherry. Jack's benefactor stood for Mary as she sat back down, noting his friend's limp. "Do you need me to run back home and get your cane, Jack?"
Shaking his head, Jack grimaced as he sat back down. "It's fine, Rich. I don't know that I'll be dancing much more tonight, though."
"Oh, by the way." Richard noted. "This is Sherry. Sherry? Jack and Mary."
"Mary and Sherry," Jack commented. "Sounds like a vaudeville team!"
Sherry looked at him with a puzzled expression as Mary laughed. "A... huh?"
"Never mind." Jack shook his head. "Before your time."
"Yours too, dear." his mother added mirthfully.
"Not in my heart, Mom."
When the next song began, Richard and Sherry headed for the dance floor once more. Dancing together, Sherry asked, "So why is Jack here with his grandmother? Isn't that a little... odd?"
Defensive of Jack, Richard stopped dancing. "No it's not. And she's his mom, not grandmother." Taking a moment, he started dancing again and tried to explain. "Jack was in the hospital from December until last month, so he never got a chance to ask anyone. Besides, his mom isn't doing well. She... well, let's just say this might be her last chance at a fun night out."
"Oh! I didn't mean... oh, shoot!" Sherry admonished herself.
"Don't beat yourself up over it. You're new. Jack and I have been friends all through high school. He's a good guy."
"He seems sort of... well... different. I don't mean in a bad way, just... kind of... geeky!"
"He's just Jack." Richard shrugged. He spent the rest of the dance telling her how they'd become friends, Jack's unusual upbringing, and by the time they were heading back to the table, had just explained about Wendy.
"He must be pretty torn up." Sherry commented as they stopped near their table. She looked over at her other new friends. "Say, listen. I... I need to spend some time with the girls, but I'd like to get together sometime, if you would."
Jack smirked. "He says 'Yes'! Right, Rich?"
Turning from Sherry to Jack, Richard scowled. "I can answer for myself, thank you!" Looking back at her, he nodded and smiled. "I'd like that!"
While Sherry left to join her friends and Richard started to sit down, Mary stopped him. "Richard, you should go with her."
"But..."
With an exasperated sigh, Mary explained things to him. "Richard, when a girl says she wants to spend time with you, then leaves, she wants you to follow her! Trust me on this! I used to be a girl!"
"Get lost, Rich!" Jack smiled. "Go on! Who needs ya'!"
"You do, remember?" Richard shot back. "Who else is going to bail you out of trouble all the time?" he quipped before turning to follow her.
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
Jack told me a story once about things that he said happened later that night, but Rich insisted that he was exaggerating, so I don't know what happened after that, really. Jack says Anne made a scene, trying to tell Jack to leave and quit embarrassing himself by taking his mother to the Prom, but Rich says she only wanted to make peace now that school was ending. I don't know what the truth is, but I suspect Rich was just defending her out of his sense of loyalty. He could be like that sometimes. Besides, he still put almost all the blame on Wendy and his mom. He never said so, but I think he always believed that Wendy broke up he and Anne, not vice versa. Their graduation was apparently as uneventful as they usually are. There was apparently a party afterwards, but both of them said it was boring and not worthy of a story. Just things that happened, but then I think a lot of life is that way... just things that happen. In the weeks that followed, Jack was working at his physical therapy. He said he was concerned that the Corps wouldn't take him due to his injury, but in the end, with Rich's help, he passed MEPS and, with his mother's signature, headed off to Paris Island in July while he was still seventeen. Boot is Boot, so telling you what it would have been like for them isn't really telling you about them. It wasn't until they came home after MCRD and before heading out for SOI that things got interesting.
---
Jack walked in the front door of his mother's home, shuddering from the cold October morning. He was in his uniform and wanted Mary to see him since she couldn't be there for his graduation from Boot Camp. "Mom! I'm home!"
Mary walked out from her bedroom in a state of confusion. "Danny? Is that you?"
His smile disappeared in a heartbeat. "Mom? It's me. Jack."
She looked at him as though he were a stranger, then realization came to her. "Oh... Oh, Jack! My, you look handsome! Are... are you staying long? You... you went into the military, didn't you? At least, I think I remember you doing that." She looked at him with terrified eyes. "I... I don't remember!"
"It's alright, Mom." Jack hugged her comfortingly. "I... I was looking for a place that can take care of you while I'm deployed. I'd like to take you there to see it, if that's alright."
She looked at him with terror. "I don't want to go anywhere else, Jack! I... I want to stay here at home!"
"Tell you what, Mom. I'll take you to see it and if you don't like it you don't have to stay. Is that fair?"
"Well, I suppose that's only fair, but... why bother? Why can't we just stay here?" she asked confusedly.
"You have Alzheimer's, Mom. Pretty soon you won't be able to remember if you ate a few minutes ago. You're going to need people to help you."
"Can't... can't you help me, Jack?"
"I'm going in the service. I won't be back for a few years at least. Who'll take care of you until then?"
"I don't need anyone to take care of me, Jack! I've taken care of the both of us for years!"
Resignedly, Jack finally accepted that she just couldn't understand. "I know, Mom. Say, I was thinking. You need a nicer place to live! Now that I can afford it, I want us to move into a nice apartment! Someplace where you don't have to cook and clean all the time! No yard to weed, no bad plumbing to fix! How does that sound?"
Mary smiled. "That sounds wonderful, Jack! Where is it?"
He barely was able to hold back the tears as he lied to her. "Not far, just east of here. I think we'll love it! Come on, let's pack a bag and I'll show it to you! It's fully furnished! If you want, we can even stay there tonight to try it out!"
She patted him on the cheek. "You're such a good boy, Jack! I'll go pack an overnight bag!" She started down the hall and Jack followed.
"Let me give you a hand, Mom." he said, wiping a tear away.
That night, as Jack drove Richard's borrowed station wagon back home, he felt like he'd betrayed his mother; abandoning her in a strange place with people she didn't know. Intellectually, he knew it was what she needed. He'd talked with the staff for a good long time and liked them. This was his third trip out there, the first two just to see if he could trust them with Mary.
Pulling up out in front of the Hargrave's home, he sighed and walked up the few steps, beating himself up inside for the tenth time. Letting himself in, he flopped on their couch, emotionally exhausted.
"Jack? Are you alright?" Erica asked from the hallway.
"Huh? Oh, hey Bu.... um... Erica. No, but I will be."
She walked into the living room and sat down across from him in the smaller loveseat that faced the couch. "Richie told me you had to take your mom to an old-age home. I'm sorry, Jack. You must feel awful!"
Sighing, he just stared at the ceiling. "Well, it wasn't a trip to Cedar Point, that's for sure, but it's what she needs now. Even if she doesn't understand it, she needs people that can take care of her, and I just can't. I feel like an absolute heel!"
Moving to the couch, Erica took his hand. "No! I know you, Jack! You love your mom more than anything! I don't think you have any reason to feel bad! I bet the place she's staying is awesome!" She desperately wanted to soothe his troubles however she could.
Jack patted her hand. "Yeah, it's a great jail. Twenty-four hour security so she doesn't wander off somewhere she wants to go, doctors available at all hours to pump her full of drugs, orderlies to boss her around when she wants to do something they don't feel like putting up with, and every one of them a total stranger to her so she'll feel like she's been kidnapped! It's perfect!"
"I don't think you'd let your mom stay there if it was like that, Jack." she challenged him.
"No. It's not. It really is a great place. The staff are all nice, dedicated, and really want to help her as much as they can. Maybe in a few years I can get a long-term posting and move her in with me so I can take care of her myself, but for now, it's a good place. At least I don't have to worry about her being all alone."
Erica loved sitting this close to him, sharing in his troubles, and helping to ease his suffering, even if only a little. Her heart raced as she fought the urge to lean over and kiss him, unleashing four years worth of built-up yearning, but it was about the hardest thing she'd ever had to do. She knew she had bad news to deliver. "I... I need to tell you something, Jack. Mom's back."
"Brilliant! What a perfect capper for a day of absolute betrayal." He stood up and dropped Richard's car keys on the coffee table. "Tell Rich I'll be by Sunday at four to take him out for his birthday. I don't think I'll be coming to his party, though. Not with her here. Can you tell him I'm sorry I'm going to miss it?"
"Sure thing, Jack." she accepted, rising to stand close next to him. "I'll tell him anything you like. I'll miss you not being there. I mean, Richie is sure to miss you."
Giving her a one-armed hug, he smiled down at her. "Thanks, Erica. I... I appreciate that."
His smile had her completely undone. She decided in that moment to throw caution to the wind and follow her heart. Just as she was about to grab the back of his neck and pull him down to kiss her, he pulled away and walked out the door, oblivious of her aborted intents. Near to tears, she composed herself and decided that by Sunday she was going to get his attention and show him that she wasn't a little girl anymore.
The day of Richard's nineteenth birthday came and, as his guests started to arrive, he found himself completely bored. Going into the house, he sat in his room and started going through things to select what he would take with him and what could be packed away. All his crowd of high school friends wished him their best, but without Jack the party seemed dull and lifeless. Worst of all was his mother. Judith had come back and picked up her role as though no time had passed; like the entire ordeal had been nothing more than a bad dream.
"Richard! You're neglecting your guests!" Judith admonished him from his doorway.
"So?" he said harshly. "I'll be out in a while, but I need to get this done before four. I need to be ready to leave tomorrow, first thing."
"Oh, nonsense! You can do all this after the party! You're not doing anything tonight, so you'll have time later! Now put that down and come along."
"No!" he growled, continuing to go through his things. "Jack's taking me out tonight! That's what I'm looking forward to, not those idiots you invited."
"But they're your friends, Richard! Besides, you can't go out tonight, dear. You spend too much time with Jack as it is, and you'll have plenty of time together after you leave! I've not had a chance to spend any time with you!"
Stopping for a moment, Richard walked to his door and glared down at his mother. "That's because I've been avoiding you! Take a hint! As for those yahoos you invited, they aren't my friends. Jack is my friend, and the only reason he's not here is because you are! I'll waste time with them once I've made damn sure I'm not losing any time with Jack tonight! Now if you'll excuse me... Judith... I have things to do!" He then slammed the door in his mother's face and returned to his task.
"Well of all the...! Richard! You apologize to me at once or so help me I'll... I'll..."
"You'll what, Mom?" Erica said snidely from her doorway. "Throw him out? He's leaving tomorrow! Forever!"
Judith turned to face her daughter to see that Erica was wearing a skirt and a cute sweater; her hair nicely styled with her usual curls mostly flattened and makeup in a style that made her look seventeen rather than three months shy of her fifteenth birthday.
"This is none of your concern, young lady! Your brother is behaving very disrespectfully and I will not have it! I'm glad to see you looking presentable, though. Go and play hostess for our guests while I deal with your brother."
"The way you dealt with Jack, Mom? What? You gonna try and set Richie up with a hooker to make an honest woman of her?" She rolled her eyes and stormed out of the house.
Judith was speechless. "Why, I... I... I..." Finally overcome with emotion, she broke down and sobbed.
She was collapsed on the floor in front of Richard's door crying when Frank walked up. "Come on, Judy. Let me help you up."
"I... I don't know what to do, Frank! Richard won't talk to me, and Erica hates me!" she sobbed as she was pulled to her feet.
Leading her into the living room, he sighed and shook his head. "Judy, you have a lot of apologizing to do before either of them will forgive you."
"What do I have to apologize for? I've done nothing wrong! Oh, Frank!" She fell into his arms sobbing once more. "I... I... Frank? Am I a bad woman for wanting to help the Evans girl? I... I just don't understand why Richard hates me so much for it!" Sitting her down on the couch, her husband patiently tried to calm her down. "You just don't understand, Frank! I... I had to!"
While she resumed sobbing, Erica walked back in the house. When she saw her parents sitting on the couch together, her mother crying and father consoling her, her anger intensified. "Pardon the interruption, but Hank just threw up on the back lawn. I think he's drunk."
Frank shook his head. "I'll be out in a sec, sweet pea." Once she'd left, he stood up and looked down at his wife. "I don't know what you can do, but apologizing to Jack would be a good start, if he'll let you. I'll be outside if you need me, hun."
Having finished sorting everything, Richard had managed to reduce his 'must take' things down to just one seabag. The rest he didn't care about. Sighing in satisfaction, he glanced at his watch and saw that Jack would be there in about half an hour. "Just enough time to make a sociable appearance and then go have some actual fun!"
Going out into the back yard, he saw Hank, the quarterback of the football team, passed out face-first on the lawn. Shaking his head, he pasted a smile on and made small talk, continually glancing at his watch.
Erica brought him a paper plate with a hamburger, hot dog, and chips just about the time he was checking it for the third time. "When's Jack supposed to get here?" she asked almost desperately.
"Four. Thanks, sis." he said, taking the plate. When he did, he noticed she was dressed a lot nicer than her usual jeans and top. "Did Mom make you wear that? You can go change and be yourself if you want to. This is my birthday, not hers."
"Don't I look nice?" she asked, self-consciously.
He looked at her again. "Oh, sure! I just figured..." Realizing he'd goofed, he lowered his head and laughed. "Sorry, sis! I thought... You look great!" Seeing her smile and walk away happy, he shook his head, thinking Erica had gotten dressed up just for his birthday. "Goofy kid!" he said to himself.
While he could tell she was going for 'grown up', and if he'd looked with unbiased eyes he would have seen just how well she'd pulled it off, all he could see was his baby sister, but he wouldn't dare tell her. I already have enough trouble with women in this family without starting a fight with Erica!
Jack walked up to the Hargrave's home promptly at four. He'd spent most of the last few days getting his mother's power of attorney turned over to himself, then listing their home on the market, and finally getting as many personal effects moved to his mother's nursing home as possible. Seeing her there so many times, starting to settle in, made him feel easier about his decision. He still didn't like it, but he'd quit beating himself up over it. She actually looked happier and healthier than she had in a while.
Walking around through the side gate, he let himself in and slapped a smile on his face for Richard's sake. "Hey, bud!" he shouted.
Genuinely smiling as Jack came walking into his back yard, Richard ran up to him. "Jack! Get things taken care of?"
"Yeah, all done. You?" Jack asked as he stopped next to Richard, looking at the lawn.
"Junk on the Bunk!" Richard replied before he took another bite of hot dog. Talking around a mouthful, he asked, "Wan' some?"
"No thanks, Rich. I'll have this though." he said, grabbing Richard's burger off his plate. "Mmm! Charcoal burger!"
"Mom didn't make these." Richard joked. "Dad did."
Taking a bite, Jack nodded in appreciation. "I can tell. They're edible. You about done here? I've got the whole evening planned!"
Richard nodded as well, swallowing another bite of hotdog. "Just about. Already did cake and stuff. Sorry you missed it."
"Ah! You know me! I'd have just ended up falling in the cake or something to make you have to get me out of another mess." He looked around at the guests and shook his head. "Don't know how soft they got it, do they?"
Shrugging, Richard finished his last bite and wiped his hands. "Yeah. Well, let me make polite and then we'll get outta here."
Going around, Richard thanking and saying goodbye to their guests, Jack stood behind him the whole way. He nodded as people he never liked, and who he knew had never liked him, gave him backhanded compliments and congratulations for getting through Boot Camp; their every word screaming that the only things they knew about it came out of Hollywood. About halfway done, Frank stopped Jack at the grill.
"I... I wanted to say, I'm proud of you, boy." he said earnestly. "The Corps will do good things for you, and you for the Corps." he spoke through gritted teeth; his pipe clenched tightly out of the corner of his mouth.
Jack smiled genuinely. "Thanks, Mr. H.! That means a lot coming from you. I... You're a good dad. Rich is lucky to have ya'."
Slapping him on the back firmly, Frank genuinely smiled. "Call me Frank! You're a man now. You've earned the right."
He shook his head and chuckled. "I dunno. You once said you were like a surrogate father to me! Maybe I should call you Dad!" When he saw the older man glare at him, he cleared his throat. "Frank it is!"
Erica came up to her father and he wrapped an arm around her shoulders. "Hey, sweet pea! You had a chance to say hi to your brother or Jack yet?"
Shaking her head, she looked over at Jack, batting her eyes. "Hi, Jack! It's really good to see you! Can I get you anything? A drink? Some food?" Me? she wanted to add.
Jack smiled down at her. "That's OK, Bu... um... Erica. I'm good. Rich and I'll be stepping out in a few." He noticed she was dressed up and realized he ought to say something. "You look nice!" he complimented her.
Blushing as her heart raced at the thought that Jack had finally noticed her as more than just a little girl, she looked down. "Thank you... Jack!" she said coyly. When she looked up again however, he was gone. Looking around, she saw him next to her brother once more, smiling and talking to a few other people.
Noticing her unusual behavior, Frank was finally starting to understand some of what was going on. "Listen, sweet pea. You think you could run to the fridge and get me a beer? Thanks!"
About to go over to Jack and ask to speak to him privately, she was irritated with her father for interfering in her attempts at catching Jack's eye. "Fine!" she scowled at him. Storming off toward the house, she simply had to get back before Jack left. When she did a minute later, handing her father his beer bottle, she looked around. "Where's Jack... and um... Richie?" she asked him, adding her brother as an afterthought.
"They left for the evening, sweetie." he answered flatly. "Don't worry, you can still see your brother off tomorrow morning."
"But..." She paused, reformulating how to ask without being obvious. "Is Jack coming over tomorrow? I know he and Richie are leaving together."
He shook his head. "Rich is heading over to his place and pick him up after Rich leaves from here. I... I don't think Jack wants to see your mother and she'll be unavoidable tomorrow morning." He poured some of his beer over a burger, causing the flames to flare up.
"Oh." she said sadly, unable to hide her disappointment as tears began to form in her eyes. "I... I never even got a chance to say goodbye."
Nodding, Frank saw he was going to have to have a talk with his daughter.
Jack drove while Richard sat next to him in the passenger seat. "So, what's the plan?" the nineteen-year-old asked curiously.
"The plan is we're going to Ohio." Jack stated mater-of-factly.
"So what's in Ohio?" Richard asked suspiciously. "I mean, besides cows and Cleveland."
"The Keaton Family Bar and Grill." Jack answered as he drove down the highway, smiling. "Remember Doug from Boot? Well, his old man owns the place. Doug invited us to stop by."
Only vaguely remembering the other Marine recruit, Richard shrugged. "Oh. Sounds like it could be fun, I guess."
After driving for just over an hour, the two pulled up in front of a building out in the middle of nowhere.
"Jack, we can't go in there." Richard warned wide-eyed.
"Why not? We were invited!"
"That's not a grill, Jack!" Richard said obviously as he looked at the building. "That's a strip club!"
"So? They have food! Doug says their steaks are the best in the state!" Jack pointed out.
"Jack! We could get arrested! We're both under twenty-one!"
The younger Marine looked at his best friend as he opened his car door and climbed out. "Come on, Rich! No one but Doug knows us here and we both look over twenty-one! Live a little!"
He shook his head as he opened the car door and climbed out. "I should have my head examined for ever listening to you!"
As the two walked up to the front door, a large man stopped them. "IDs?"
Jack clapped his hand on the man's shoulder. "We're here to see Doug! Can you tell him Jack and Rich are here to see him?"
Eyeing the two youths suspiciously, he grumbled, "Wait here." Going in the building, music poured out the door as he entered, Jack rubbing his hands together.
"You'll see! Tonight's gonna be a blast!"
An hour later, Jack sat with Richard and Doug in the restaurant side of the establishment, the thump of music from the next room ever present. "Doug, I have to admit, that was the best steak I've ever eaten!" Jack grinned as their barely clothed waitress dropped off another beer for Richard and a soda for him, watching her every move. "I think it's the service!" he said distractedly, noting her smile at his compliment.
Doug Keaton shrugged. "Not the best. It was a little off tonight. Pete must be having a bad day in the kitchen. You two still planning on driving down to Geiger?"
Noticing the way Richard was eyeing their waitress, Jack smiled. "Yeah, we leave tomorrow morning. Say, Doug. Seeing as it's Rich's birthday and our last night home, I was hoping to treat him to a really good time tonight. Alright if I take him next door?"
He shrugged. "None of my business. I just invited you over for a good steak dinner. What you do after that... well... I can't be blamed for anything you two get into on your own. No one'll be calling the cops on you, if that's what you're asking." He winked at Jack as he stood up. "Well, Dad'll be wanting me to help behind the bar tonight. He don't care that I'm leaving in a few days. He's just miffed he's losing a bartender that works for free. Catch you guys later!"
Jack half-grinned as he stood up, dropping a twenty on the table. "Come on, Rich! Let's see if we can find you a nice girl your mom would approve of!"
Richard awoke the next morning slowly, the pounding in his head so loud he was sure Jack could hear it from his house. Starting to roll out of bed, he noticed he wasn't alone, and that he wasn't in his bed. Looking around, he determined he must be in a hotel; the queen bed taking up most of the small space while the only doors appeared to be for a bathroom and the door to the outside. He held his head, trying to keep it from falling off as he slowly stood up and headed for the bathroom.
When he came out a minute later, he saw a vaguely familiar looking woman sitting up in the middle of the bed. "Um... need the restroom?" he asked nonchalantly.
She shook her head slowly, her frizzy light brown hair twisting freely. "I was hoping I could coax you back into bed!" she said seductively.
Looking at her naked body, her firm muscle tone and long luscious legs gave her away as a dancer. He had vague recollections of her undulating body against his and her legs wrapped around him. One thing he wished he could remember that he couldn't though was her name. Looking at his watch, he saw it was only six in the morning, explaining why the only light in the room was from the dim light of a street lamp filtering in through a curtain.
"I... uh... I feel bad!" he said looking down at the grungy and cheep carpet covering the floor. "I... uh... I can't remember... well, much of anything from last night! I hope you're not mad at me for that!"
She smiled at him and knee-walked to the edge of the bed, sliding off to walk up to him. "I appreciate your honesty, Richard. I'm Cindi... with an i."
Seeing her intent, he asked, "I take it you had as much fun as I apparently did last night?" As she nodded slowly, he smiled and said, "I think I can spare some time!" while she wrapped her arms around him once more.
Jack pounded on the door as the sun was rising. "Rich! Reveille, buddy! It's oh-seven thirty and we have an hour's drive ahead!" He started knocking continuously until Richard flung the door open.
"Jack! Can you give me a minute?" Richard barked at him.
Looking at his best friend standing at the door wearing nothing but a sheet held at his waist, he half-smiled. "Good morning?" he asked inquisitively.
"It will be if you come back in about ten minutes!" Richard said, pushing his friend away from the door and slamming it in his face.
"If you're done that quick, you really should see a doctor about it!" he yelled through the door with a half-grin. Returning to Richard's station wagon, he sat in the driver's seat and spent the next fifteen minutes looking over the map of their nine-hour drive to Camp Geiger in North Carolina where they would spend sixty days going through Marine School of Infantry. They had two more days to arrive and report, and intended to make the most of it.
Just as he was about to go up and knock again, Richard came running out, tucking his shirt in as he left. As the hung-over young Marine opened the car door and climbed in, Jack saw Cindi standing in the doorway, a smile on her face and a sheet wrapped around her, waving goodbye to his best friend.
Pulling out of the parking lot, he glanced over at Richard. "So, you gonna see her again?"
"Nope!" he replied. "I offered gallantly, she rejected politely, we're cool."
Glancing once more at his watch, Jack started going over their plan. "It's oh-seven fifty. We'll be home by oh-nine hundred, stop at my place, you drop me off so I can pack my gear while you head home to do likewise, then come get me by oh-nine thirty and we'll only be running ninety minutes behind schedule. Plan?"
"Plan." he replied absently. "Thanks." he added after a moment of silence between the two.
"For what? Getting you plastered and hooking you up with Cindi with an i? What else are best friends for?"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
I came out of MCRD Paris Island in January of ninety-one, days before the start of Operation Desert Storm. From there I went to Camp Geiger for MCT and Lejeune for MOS. By the time I got my first posting later that year, the war was over and the country had a different attitude toward the military. Before the Gulf, most people looked down on a military career, leftover crap from Vietnam, I guess. After the Gulf though, the country almost seemed to be on overkill trying to apologize to every service member for the treatment of Vets after Vietnam by being overly proud of them. I hadn't even gotten a posting outside the US yet and I had people thanking me for my service! It was bizarre when you think that just a year earlier I had every friend I ever knew telling me what a mistake it was to join up. I was posted to The Bricks... Marine Barracks, Alameda Naval Air Station as an eleven forty-two, Electrical Equipment Repair Specialist, about July of that year. I met Jack about a week later. At first I thought he was rude, boisterous, pigheaded, and inconsiderate. Later I found out he was all that and so much more!
---
Jack cocked his half-smile at the Electronics Specialist as she examined his handheld radio. "I just don't get it. Every time it gets jostled I get static. Goes away if I tap it on the bottom." He bit his lower lip to make himself not make an inappropriate joke.
PFC Brooke Hathaway cocked her eyebrow at the Lance Corporal. It was the third time this week he'd come in to the Ground Equipment Maintenance Shop with the exact same radio, and she'd yet to find anything wrong with it. She started to believe he was just building up the nerve to ask her out. "Well, I still can't find anything wrong with it, Corporal Dunning. You sure you're using it right?"
Somewhat insulted, he took the radio back. "Here! Watch!" He clipped the radio to his belt and started jumping in place.
Just when she was about to tell him off, she heard the horrible static emanate from the radio. "OK, Corporal! Hand it over!" she shouted over the noise.
Half-smiling at her again, Jack handed it to her. "See? Told you! Now if you just tap it on the bottom..." He reached his hand toward the radio to silence it, when she slapped it away. "Hey!"
"Now that it's in a fault condition I can diagnose it, Corporal! If you fix it, I still won't know what's wrong!" With the static blaring through the shop, she carefully removed the back cover as though the noise didn't exist.
"How can you stand letting it blare like that!?" Jack shouted.
Touching a probe to a few places, she smiled. "Got it!" she shouted. Pressing on a spot, the noise vanished. "Cold solder joint. I can fix this right here."
"Thanks." Jack said, sticking a finger in his ear and shaking it around. "I think I was about to go deaf!" Watching her press the soldering gun to the joint, smoke streaming up away from it and into her face and around her safety glasses unnoticed, he admired her focus.
"Done." she said proudly. Blowing on the joint to cool it without creating a new fracture, she touched the joint and used her finger to soak away the last of the heat. Closing the cover, she shook her head. "I was starting to doubt your veracity, Corporal." she admitted.
Jack pressed his fingertips to his chest. "Moi? Dishonest? Skating? Epithets! Rude ones, even!" He finished with his fists on his hips.
She couldn't help herself as she started to laugh, a snort coming out before she could prevent it. Suddenly very self-conscious, she covered her mouth with one hand. "Stop it!" she said just above a whisper. Handing him back the radio, she couldn't restrain the smirk.
"Say listen, we have Liberty this weekend and I was thinking, since you're new and all, that maybe you might want to..." His voice trailed off as he saw her shaking her head. "No?"
"No." she replied with a smile.
Jack took on an offended expression. "Look, if you think I was just trying to get you alone and in a compromising position, well then..." He blew out a breath exasperatedly. "...you... you... you'd be right! But I only have the lowest of expectations! Hand-holding is a big deal for me!"
Brooke tried to be angry with him, but his comical response was insidious. "Look, Corporal Dunning..."
"Jack!" he replied happily.
"Jack... you look like a nice guy and all, but I've made it my policy not to date at all while I'm in."
He stood slowly, having started to lean on her desk. "Not at all?" he said slowly. Watching her head shake slowly, a smile barely restrained on her lips, he whistled low. "Lady, that's just not normal! You're in for what, four years minimum?" She nodded just as slowly. "Well that's just... uh... it's just wrong! How can you deny mankind a beauty like yours for that long?"
"Mankind will just have to do without! My ass belongs to the Corps!" she stated boldly as she handed him the paperwork she'd signed off on. "Here you are. The door is that way." she said emphatically as she pointed off to her right. "Goodbye, Corporal Jack Dunning!" she finished with a wicked smile and a wave.
Sitting on Richard's rack later that evening, Jack looked distracted. Richard noticed and nudged his arm. "Hey? You awake?"
"Huh?" Jack snapped out of his thoughts. "No, I just was thinking. Say, Rich. You ever hear of someone not dating for their entire cruise?"
Richard smirked as he pulled out a fresh uniform blouse. "Yeah, you! People are starting to talk."
Jack waved his hand dismissively. "Ah! You think you're so funny! I date! I just... I haven't met the right girl yet."
"So, now you found some new woman to bother? What's her name?" he asked impatiently.
"Brooke! She's this POG at the electronics shop! Man, Rich! You oughta see this girl! Long dark hair, luscious lips, great figure, trim, athletic... I tell you, she can't do it!"
"Do what?" he asked as he continued to dress.
"This girl is intent on not dating for her entire active duty cruise, Rich!" he said as though he were reporting a crime. "I tell you, she can't do this to me! It's unhuman!"
"Inhuman, Jack." he corrected as he slammed his locker shut. "So what's it to you, anyway? She can do her own thing if she wants."
"True, but... jeez, Rich! You should see this girl! She's a total knockout! A ten! Perfect!"
"Then you have nothing to worry about!" Richard quipped. "You never stood a chance anyway! Leg it! Fire Watch in three minutes!"
The next six weeks saw Jack volunteering to run equipment to and from the electronics shop as often as possible, each time trying to befriend the woman who had him so mystified. Finally, while waiting to pick up PFC Rogers' night vision equipment, Brooke spoke to him first for once.
"Say, Jack. You have Liberty this weekend?"
Seeing a crack in her armor, Jack smiled. "Oh! Uh... yeah. How'd you know? You been checkin' up on me?" She started to answer when he rapped her desk. "I knew it! You can't stand it, can you? Oh, Jack! What is this power you have over women? No, but seriously. Yeah I have Liberty, you?" He leaned on her desk nonchalantly.
The woman Marine nearly changed her mind, but something told her to take a chance. "Yeah. I haven't taken any since I got stationed, and this weekend my CO is making me take it. Says I'll burn out if I don't. I'm too gung-ho or something, as if there were such a thing." Looking up at Jack who looked overly interested, she shook her head. "Maybe this is a bad idea."
He stood up and straightened his uniform blouse. "No! No! Not at all! I think he's right! You can be too gung-ho! What did you have in mind?" he said, trying to act only vaguely interested.
"Anything's fine. What were you planning?"
"Not much. Usually my buddy Rich and me go see a movie or something, or a party if there's one he knows about. He's hooked in with the college set around here, but I can find out!"
Sighing, Brooke shook her head amusedly. "Alright. Well, I'll meet you guys at Main Gate then." She looked up at him. "You do have a car, right?"
"No." he said bashfully, but recovered quickly. "But Rich does! We drove The Beast, that's what he calls it, here from our last posting with the First MEF at Pendleton, after driving it there from Geiger, and there all the way from Pittsburgh. That's where we're from, Rich and me."
"Oklahoma City." she replied simply.
Jack picked up the night vision goggles, walking slowly backwards toward the door. "OK, then! See you Saturday!" He backed into a table and slapped it before turning to leave, like it was the table's fault for getting in his way.
Brooke shook her head and sighed once more. "Somehow, I get the feeling I'm in for a weird evening."
Saturday came and Richard sat behind the wheel of his old station wagon with Jack in the back seat. Checking his watch as they continued to wait, he looked over at Jack. "I think she was jerking your chain, Jack."
"You'll see Rich! She'll be..." Without warning, he reached over Richard's shoulder and honked the horn twice.
"Hey! I can do that!" Richard said, pushing Jack back into his seat. Looking out the windshield, he shook his head. "I don't frigging believe it! Jack, you don't stand a chance!"
"Why not?" he answered defensively. "She asked me out!"
"I don't care if she got down on her knees and begged you, Jack! You aren't gonna get this girl!"
"What makes you so sure?" he asked.
"Because I'm going to!" he said as he jumped out of the car and ran around to open the front passenger door for her.
"Hey! Rich! Don't... Rich!" he was flummoxed while Brooke got in.
"So where're we off to?" she asked, turning in her seat to look at Jack while Richard went around to get back in.
"Someplace to hide a body." Jack retorted as Richard got behind the wheel.
Brooke looked confused as she turned and sat facing forward. "Hi, I'm..."
"...Brooke, Brooke Hathaway from Oklahoma City." Richard finished for her. "Richard Hargrave, and it's a pleasure to meet you!" he said as he pulled out into traffic. "Jack told me a lot about you already! It's great to put a face to all that stammering."
"Stammering!?" Jack said defensively. "Maybe gushing a little bit, but not stammering! I'm like a rock, Brooke! This guy is just trying to make me look bad so he looks better by comparison! But to answer your question, we're headed to a party at a friend's place just outside of Oakland."
"Sounds fun!" Brooke smiled at the two. "I guess I really did need a break."
"Of course you did!" Jack exclaimed. "Recharges the ol' batteries!"
"In your case, I think it's time for an overhaul, Jack." Richard quipped as he pulled onto the freeway. "Yours are looking awfully worn out, what with all the girls you've been seeing."
"What girls? The ones you keep setting me up with so you can date their friend?" Jack shot back. "The last one was a real piece of work! She spent the entire time harping about the terrible state of women in the military!"
Brooke turned her head toward Jack. "And you would be some sort of expert in that area? What do you know about it?"
Jack blinked at her. "Well, I know a little! More than she ever could! She's a civilian!"
While the two debated about women in the military, Richard shook his head with a smile. After driving for fifteen minutes, he pulled up in front of a large house, the two still going at it. "We're here!" he interrupted Jack.
"Oh!" Jumping from his seat, he ran out and held the car door for Brooke just as she was climbing out. Closing it behind her, he gently escorted her toward the house. "This way, lovely lady!"
Looking at her, Richard smiled. "You know, if he gets to be a bother, just let me know! Jack has a way of getting on a girl's nerves after a while... say after about five minutes!"
"I can take care of myself, thank you." Brooke admonished.
Standing next to Richard some time later, Jack got a beer while he looked over at Brooke. "I don't know about this girl, Rich. She doesn't seem to find me nearly as witty, charming, and irresistible as she should!"
"Maybe she has good taste." Richard quipped wryly. "Maybe you should make yourself scarce for about fifteen minutes while you let me have a crack at her. You keep horning in on my best stories!"
"You've dozens of girls dying to go out with you! Whadaya want with mine?"
"She isn't yours until she says so." Richard said taking a swig of his beer. Looking over his shoulder at Brooke, he saw she was talking with Fern, the girl who's house they were in. While watching, one of the college boys came up to Brooke, tried to talk to her, and Richard smiled when she gave him the brush off. "Well, good news is she's not into college boys!"
Jack nodded. "Good thing, too. I was about to get rid of him for her."
"Sure you were, Jack. What were you gonna do? Threaten to tire him out from beating you to a pulp? You gonna back off and give me a shot?"
"Not a chance, Rich! I'm sticking to you like rubber cement! Come on!"
As the evening wore on, the two shared a few of their stories with Brooke. She liked their camaraderie, making her a little jealous of it at times. They talked about their deployment with the First Marine Expeditionary Force to the Gulf, sharing some stories, but it was their time back home that she found most interesting.
"So did you get even?" she asked.
"I don't get even." Jack shook his head. "I live a more elevated existence, but that didn't stop Rich! God! You shoulda seen what he did!"
Looking down as he sat across from Brooke, Richard blushed embarrassedly. "Jack! I was a stupid kid and I regret it now, so can we just drop it?"
"Alright, alright. Suffice it to say, Rich gave Ox what he thought was coming to him." Taking a drink, he looked at Brooke. "So how about you? Got any interesting and colorful people you wanna talk badly about? Ex-boyfriends, current boyfriends, anything like that?"
"Subtle, Jack!" she laughed as she shook her head. "No, no boyfriends, ex or otherwise. Dad was a Corps lifer, so we bounced from base to base a lot. Okinawa, Germany, all over stateside. Folks moved back to their hometown when he got transferred to the First Couch Company. Now he's in the sheet metal business. He'll probably retire pretty soon, though."
Richard nodded. "You never had a steady boyfriend then. Understandable. Any temporary ones of note? You know, the one that got away?"
"Rich!" Jack admonished his friend. "No need to bring up her past mistakes! You've done enough of that already tonight. Don't make me bring up Cindi with an i!"
Groaning as he leaned back, Richard flopped onto the back of the couch. "Oh, Jack! Please don't!"
"Don't worry, buddy. I won't... for now." he jokingly threatened. "Besides, you know where all my bodies are buried! But all that doesn't matter now, now that I've found true beauty in my life!" He turned and looked at Brooke with a grin, making her look away.
"Look, guys. I'm flattered and all, I can tell you're both interested, but I meant it when I said I'm not dating while I'm in the Corps. I... I can't." She looked back at them, one to the other, hoping they would back off.
Jack furrowed his brow. "Of course you can, beautiful! There are no regs against Enlisted dating each other!"
Looking at Brooke carefully, Richard could see that she was intentionally not saying something. After a moment, he sat up and looked at her curiously.
Brooke only nodded imperceptibly in response. Glancing at Jack, she shook her head toward Richard just as subtly.
"Now if you were an officer, it would be different, but we're not even NCOs yet!" Jack continued, not having noticed their exchange of looks. Seeing neither of them listening, he looked over at Brooke, then to Richard before he shrugged. "Did I miss something?" Pausing a moment, he looked hard at Richard. "Rich! Come on, man! Cut me a break! You owe me! You can't be taking every girl I like!"
Standing up slowly, Richard shook his head. "No, Jack. Not this time. I'm gonna head out for a breath of fresh air."
Watching Richard walk toward the back door, Jack smiled. "Well I'll be a... That Rich sure can be a heck of a guy, sometimes! Ya' know, for a minute there I thought you two were..." Even as he spoke, he watched Brooke get up and follow him out the door, not even hearing what he was saying. "Son of a..." Jack sat on the couch, fuming that even when Richard stepped aside, the girls still wanted his best friend more.
Leaning forward against the railing of the second story back porch, Richard looked at the skyline across the bay. The salt air filled his nostrils, clearing his thoughts and helping him to re-center. He heard her follow behind him, closing the sliding glass door as the sound of the party grew and then faded. Dropping his head to look over the rail, he picked it back up and took a drink from his beer.
Coming up alongside of him, Brooke leaned on the railing as he had done. "You won't say anything, will you?" she begged.
"I'm supposed to, if I know, but then I don't actually know, do I?" he shook his head. "You didn't say anything, and I haven't seen you do anything, so..." He took another drink and turned around smiling, shaking his head and leaning back. "Poor Jack!"
Mimicking his turn, she leaned on her elbows. "Poor Jack! Just can't win with the ladies, can he?" Laughing, she shook her head. "Look who's talking!"
"Not much luck there?" he asked.
"No, but that's OK." Brooke shook her head. "I'm a patient girl." she sighed before taking another drink. "You seem to do alright."
"I suppose." Richard shrugged. "About average, I guess... but I've had my share of heartbreak, just like everyone else."
"Cindi with an i?" she probed.
"No!" he laughed. "She was just a lady that shared a good time with me!" His laughter died slowly, thinking of Anne. "But there were times..."
She looked back toward the party inside. "Would Jack say anything if he knew?"
Looking over at her, Richard shook his head and turned to face the water again. "No. Jack won't say anything. He'd lie his ass of for you! He's like that. Don't get me wrong, he can be a pain, but when push comes to shove, I don't think he has it in him to be vindictive or mean, to anyone. He won't hold it against you." Taking a drink, he chuckled. "He might spend the next three years trying to get you to change your mind, though!"
Laughing, Brooke looked away. "I can see that he just might!" Glancing back in, she sighed. "Would you ask him to come out here for me? I... I want to break it to him without a crowd."
Letting out a breath, Richard turned to her. "You don't have to, you know. I could do it. That way you have deniability. You still haven't actually said anything to either of us. If you like, it can stay that way."
"No. I... I think he might believe me more easily. He might think you're just trying to throw him off me so you could have a shot!"
"You're not wrong!" Richard chuckled. "I'll get him and see to it you two are left alone for a bit." Going back in, Brooke turned towards the bay.
"Jack!" Richard shouted when he saw his best friend brooding just where he'd left him. Making his way through the crowd, he sat next to him. "Jack, Brooke wanted me to tell you..."
"It's fine, Rich!" Jack interrupted. "I know how it is. She likes you and that's all there is to it."
"Jack..."
"You can't help it! You're the hero type who gets all the girls!"
"Jack..." he dragged the name out.
"It's just how the story always goes! I mean, look at you! And then look at me! You, with all those bulging..."
"Jack!" Richard shouted.
"What?"
"Brooke wants you to go out on the porch to talk to her... alone. I swear to you, I have zero chance with her!"
"Huh? Really?" Jack perked up, looking at the back door and then back at Richard. Seeing his best friend nod toward the door, he practically leapt up to run outside.
Rising slowly, Richard stretched his body as he did so. "Poor Jack!" he said as he went to stand watch over the door, ensuring they would be left alone.
Slowing to a cool pace as he came out, Jack quietly closed the sliding glass door behind him and turned to see Brooke leaning against the rail, looking upset. Clearing his throat, he came up along beside her, just as she had done earlier with Richard. "I... uh... Rich said you wanted to talk to me."
Nodding, Brooke wiped a fearful tear away. "Yeah. Listen, Jack. I..."
"You don't need to explain!" he interrupted. "I understand! You've never had a serious boyfriend! So what!"
"Jack..."
"Lots of girls your age haven't! That's OK!"
"Jack...!" she dragged his name out the same way Richard had done.
"I don't think it's anything to be ashamed of! In fact, I think it's sort of..."
"Jack! Will you shut up a minute!" Brooke yelled.
Shocked into silence once more, Jack turned and looked out over the rail. "Well, I could offer to jump if you like..."
She couldn't help but laugh. "Jack, I... I need to tell you something, OK? I just... I don't want you to freak out or anything, alright? I like you, and I..."
Whipping his head around, Jack looked at her. "You like me?" he interrupted.
"Jack!" she growled through gritted teeth.
Turning back towards the water, flinching at her verbal assault, he held up his hands in mock surrender. "OK! OK! Shutting up!"
Frustrated, Brooke started pacing along the porch. "As I was saying, I like you and I don't want to lose you as a friend, but there's something you have to understand about me."
Jack turned around and saw she was seriously agitated and scared. "Hey! It's OK!" He reached out a hand to her, Brooke looking at it like it was an animal about to attack. Seeing her reaction, he held up his hands defensively once more. "It's fine! I wasn't going to try anything! I just wanted to help ease whatever it is that's making you so nervous is all. It can't be that bad! What, are you an escapee from a mental institution or something?" Then his smile melted. "You didn't used to be a dude, did you?"
She laughed once more at his disarming humor. "No!" Brooke looked at his perplexed expression. "Um... well... You know how you're always looking for the right girl?" Seeing him nod curiously, she took a breath. "Well, I understand that, really well."
Puzzled at first, after a moment his expression turned rapidly from confusion, to realization, and finally to shock. "What you? A..." He paused, unable to bring himself to say the word out loud. "No!" he dismissed the idea. "You're too pretty!" he said absently. "I mean..." Looking over at her and seeing her cross her arms indignantly, he arched a brow. "Really?"
"What?" Brooke countered, offendedly. "Let me guess. My hair's too long, I'm wearing too much makeup, and there's not enough flannel, right?"
Swallowing hard, Jack looked her up and down. Realizing he had hurt her feelings unintentionally, he lowered his voice. "Look, Brooke. I... I didn't mean to offend you or anything! I just... I thought you were joking!" Seeing her attitude shift, she suddenly looked small and helpless. "Seriously, I... just ignore me! I was just trying for a laugh is all. You... are we OK?"
Nodding shyly, Brooke looked at her fingers as they twisted themselves in knots. "I'm trusting that you won't say anything!" she looked up at him. "So you see, that's why I can't date while I'm in! Being in the Corps is much too important to me! I... I can't risk getting thrown out!"
Straightening himself up, Jack stepped over and hugged her, noticing for the first time how much taller she was than he; at least two inches.
When she finally relaxed into the friendly hug, she let out a relieved sigh. "I just... I wanted you to understand why I won't go out with you. You're nice and I didn't want you thinking it was because of you, OK? I hope you don't think any less of me."
Holding her at arm's length, Jack turned serious. "You don't ever have to worry about that, Brooke. I think you're great! I think it's a crying shame what you're denying to all mankind, but who am I to say it's wrong or a sin or something!" Wrapping an arm around her shoulder, he walked her over to the railing. "I... uh... I think I might even be able to help you."
Brooke looked over at him suspiciously. "Jack, don't even think about trying to kiss me! It's not a phase I'm going through!"
"No! No! No!" he stopped her. "Nothing like that! I was just... I think it's unrealistic of you to say you're not going to see anyone for the next four years, is all. You'll go bananas!" He paused a moment to let his thoughts sink in. "I... I could cover for you. We let everyone think we're dating, you can go out with Rich and me, and if you have a date, either Rich or I can say she's with one of us if anyone sees anything."
She shook her head and turned out toward the sea. "No. I can't risk it. It's not worth it!"
Mimicking her posture, he shook his head. "See, that's where you're wrong. I went through hell over that girl we were telling you about, more than you know, but you know what? It was worth it! Four months where I truly felt alive, against a year of misery? I... I wouldn't trade it for anything!" His voice trailed off as he remembered how happy he'd been with Wendy.
"I don't know, Jack." she sighed. "The Old Man would have a coronary if I got caught!"
"Then we make sure you never get caught!" Jack held out his arm. "We can start with me being your beard tonight! Come on! At least the guys inside will leave you alone for the rest of the night!"
Turning, Brooke slipped her arm in his. "Alright, but don't get any ideas! I'm bigger than you and could easily kick your skinny ass all the way back to The Bricks!"
Gulping, Jack nodded at her. "Yes, ma'am!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
After that day, Jack, Rich, and I were inseparable. There were rumors that I was dating Jack while sleeping with Rich, but we didn't care. Rich about killed PFC Ricks the one time he called Jack a cuck and wasn't just shitting around. We had lots of fun and I never got caught. Jack made sure of that. Not that I was sleeping around a lot, mind you, but I went on a few dates, mostly with college girls. I never risked dating a fellow W-M. While Rich and Jack were running cover for me, I couldn't count on any of them having similar arrangements. We also never went anywhere that was near the base. If I had a date, which was rare, it was always somewhere remote and out of the way... never any of the usual places the Hellcats or anchor-clankers might go. The only times we'd go places like the Warf or any place we could get seen it was the three of us, sometimes with a girl Rich was seeing, but never with a girl Jack was seeing. That wasn't often and never the same girl more than once, for any of us! By ninety-four, things got easier with 'don't ask, don't tell', but we kept up the pretense of Jack being my boyfriend because it just made things easier. For me, anyway. Most W-Ms got hit on all the time, but once it got around that Jack and I were an item, I was off limits. Grunts had no qualms about hitting on W-Ms if they we're seeing a civi or were even married to one, but they'd rarely turn on a fellow member of the Corps. I felt bad for Jack, though. It made his success rate with the ladies track nearly to zero. Even when it looked like maybe Jack had a shot at a terrific girl, something would always screw it up.
---
Jack was bored, waiting in the quiet of the library as Richard got yet another book on business management. Ever since he'd enrolled in Menlo Collage, Richard had spent all his free time studying for his night classes, which was why they were wasting the Saturday before Labor Day weekend in a library. Jack didn't care when Brooke was available, but today she had duty and he was bored out of his mind.
"Come on, Rich!" he whispered. "Haven't you found what you need yet?"
"No." Richard whispered back. "If you hate it here, why did you come?"
"Because you have the car!" he retorted quietly. Raising his voice to a low talk, he grumbled. "I'd get my own if I had any dough, but..."
"Shhhhhh!" the old man sitting across from them shushed him angrily.
Glaring back at the man with eyes crossed and lips pursed, Jack lowered to a whisper again. "Rich, this is no way to spend Liberty! Do you know how long it's been since we did something fun? Saw a movie? Went clubbing? On a date? You remember dates, right? With girls? Those soft, round, luscious things you want to earn all your riches for?"
Rolling his eyes, Richard tried to keep from laughing. "Jack, why don't you find a nice book and read for once." he whispered.
"They don't have nice books here! Only knowledge!" Jack quipped. Seeing that he was getting nowhere, he wandered through the library. After fifteen minutes of poking at books and putting them back, he turned a corner and literally bumped into a girl, sending the books she had loudly to the floor.
"Sorry!" he said, prompting people around them to shush him. Shushing them right back, he started to help pick up the books she'd been carrying that were now scattered around their feet. "Sorry!" he whispered. "Let me help!" As he did so, he got his first real look at the girl. She was blonde and uncommonly beautiful. Her hauntingly vibrant blue eyes caught him by such surprise that he stopped helping and just stared.
Taking the book that he held loosely in his hands as he crouched numbly, she glared at him. "Thanks!" she whispered. "But I can get it myself!"
Shaken back to awareness, Jack grabbed the last book and stood up. "Um... here!" he whispered, handing her the book as she stood and snatched it from his fingers. "Fancy meeting you here!" he joked. "You may not remember me, but I remember you!" he whispered to her as she tried to walk away, Jack following closely. "The name's Jack! Jack Dunning!" he held his hand out as she stopped and glared at him.
With her arms full of books, she was quite incapable of returning the offered hand. Instead she just glared at his hand until he lowered it. Whispering, she asked as she started toward her table again, "Well, Jack... Jack Dunning. Where was it we supposedly met?"
"My dreams!" he answered. "Only every one since the day I was born!"
Rolling her eyes at his bad pickup line, she looked askance at the seemingly crazy young man. "Then what's my name?"
Thinking quickly, he guessed, "Beauty? No, too obvious! Uh..."
She stopped and turned to stand in front of him. "Tell you what, lover boy." she whispered. "You tell me my name and I'll go out with you. Until then..." Leaving her sentence unfinished, she turned and walked away smartly.
Watching her depart, Jack was entranced. "Wow!" he whispered. Running off back to Richard, he skidded to a stop next to him. "Rich! Rich! You gotta check this out! I think I'm in love!" he whispered.
Not even looking up, Richard sighed. "So what's new?" he whispered back.
Undeterred, Jack started tugging on Richard's sleeve. "No seriously, Rich! This girl! She's..." His voice having raised to a low talk again, the old man once more shushed him. Turning to him, Jack whispered angrily, "Oh, hush yourself!" As the man moved to another table, Jack continued to pester his best friend. "Rich! Won't you at least come over and look? I need to figure out her name!"
"No!" Richard shouted quietly. "Now beat it, Jack! I have to get this down before Monday night or I'm gonna flunk!"
Frustrated by Richard's total lack of interest, he looked around helplessly and sighed. Finally sitting down next to him again, he leaned an elbow on the table with his fist against his cheek, trying to think of what her name might be. Realizing there was no way to know, he formulated a new plan. Tapping Richard on the shoulder as he stared off in the distance, a smile forming on his lips, he rose and whispered, "I'll see ya' 'round, Rich!" and quickly left.
Shaking his head, Richard tried to go back to his book. "He's gonna need me to rescue him again!" he said absently to no one, looking up embarrassedly when several people nearby shushed him.
Not seeing his best friend for the rest of the weekend, Richard was worried. When he got back to the Barracks on Sunday night, Jack was finally there. "Jack! Where you been? I was starting to think you went U-A!"
Jack had a smile on his face. "Naw! I'd never do that! Too easy to get caught and you never get good dates in Leavenworth."
"So where you been all weekend?" he asked, already having a good idea.
"Research, my boy! Research!" Jack smiled as he turned a chair around and straddled it backwards. "Remember that girl?"
"The one you're in love with this week?" he needled.
"That's the one!" he answered. "I followed her. Subtly! She's a Stanford girl!"
Looking up at Jack from shining his brass, Richard was stunned. "You... you followed her? Isn't that a little creepy, Jack?"
"No! See, here's the thing. She told me that if I can tell her what her name is, she'll go out with me! She invited me to look into her! It's fine!"
"Ask Brooke if she thinks it's fine. If she says it is, I'll agree." Richard said as he went back to his polishing.
"Here's the kicker, Rich!" he beamed. "I know her name! It's Heather Moore! She's a psych major in her junior year, twenty, five-five, one-ten, blonde, and has the bluest eyes you've ever seen!"
Looking up at Jack, Richard paused his work. "So? You make it sound like she's the greatest thing since sliced bread. What's the catch?"
"There is no catch!" Jack shook his head. "She's smart, beautiful, and I have a guaranteed date with her! I'm so confident, I think I'll let you tag along! There's a party she's going to on the fourth and I ganked an invitation. Wanna go? You can bring Brooke!"
"Speaking of Brooke, isn't it going to be a little hard dating Ms. Wonderful if you're already 'dating' Brooke?" he said in a more hushed tone.
"You're up, Rich!" Jack said slapping him on the back. "She's all yours! I've been keeping myself out of the game for three years. It's your turn to keep the field clear for Brooke while I take a turn at romance!"
"Jack?" Richard looked at his friend. "Have you even considered what you're gonna do in a couple years? I mean, we've already shipped over twice. You thinking of lifeing or are you a Terminal Lance?"
"Nah!" Jack shook his head dismissively. "I'm done after this cruise. When I didn't make the cutting score, I decided then. They might not even offer it. Nope, it's back to Pittsburgh for me! Only reason I haven't moved Mom close is that I knew I'd be going back soon. How about you?"
"Me? I've been busting my rump getting my degree!" he bragged. "After I graduate, I'm transferring to the First-Civ-Div and get me a nice cushy office job somewhere, maybe someplace like New York or LA! Something where the heaviest thing I have to hump is my checkbook!"
The two looked at each other, for the first time aware that in two years they would be going their separate ways after practically living in each other's pockets half their lives. Neither one said anything, but they both knew what the other was thinking. Finally, Richard broke the silence.
"Look Jack, you haven't done anything with your GI bill. Don't you want to go to college? Make something of yourself?"
"Me? Joe College?" Jack shook his head. "Please! I'll be twenty-five by the time I'm Outside! After college I'd be pushing thirty!"
"Forty, the way you study." Richard quipped.
"Ha, ha!" Jack stood up and paced the room. "Besides, what would I get a degree in? Women's Studies? No. No, I see myself maybe starting my own business. Maybe a car lot, or something."
"You? Run a car lot? You've never even owned a car!"
"Or a dry-cleaning place! That's what my old man did after the war!" He paused, his back to Richard. "I might just marry money." Jack smirked as he looked over his shoulder with a mischievous grin.
"So I take it then that this Heather Moore, or should I say the future Mrs. Heather Dunning, isn't hurting?"
"That's what people say." Jack resumed his seat next to Richard. "Story is, her folks were old money with a mansion in New Hampshire or Vermont or something and they both passed a year or so ago. I don't know the details yet, but..."
"What happened to your research? Or did you stop your investigation when you found out she was loaded?"
"Rich!" Jack stood up. "I'm insulted! I just felt that knowing too much would be bad! Wouldn't leave us anything to talk about on our first date!"
"And you know she's interested?" he asked dubiously.
"Rich, she told me to learn about her, and guaranteed me a date if I did! It's a sure thing!" he said, spreading his arms wide.
"Alright. I'll go along with the gag." Richard shook his head. "Just remember, you invited me, so I don't wanna hear it from you when she embarrasses you with Brooke and I there to witness it, or she passes on you to go for me!"
Jack patted Richard on the shoulder. "You're a good man, Rich! I'll name my second boy after you! The first will be Jack Junior, of course!"
"Of course!" Richard rolled his eyes and resumed his work.
Monday the fifth of September came and the three Marines managed to get a day of Leave together. When at last they parked in front of the strange house, Jack practically ran inside, leaving his friends to their own devices.
"Rich? You said this girl told him to look into her, and that if he did she'd date him?" Brooke asked. "Doesn't that sound a little..."
"...impossible? Weird? Crazy?" Richard finished for her. Laughing, he shook his head as he opened his car door. "Yeah. Something tells me I'm gonna be pulling his butt out of the fire again! No woman invites a guy to become her stalker!"
Brooke opened her door and the two climbed out. "Well, it is your turn to rescue him, Rich. Remember last time? I kept that thug from ripping Jack's throat out for hitting on his girlfriend!"
"I know." he said walking toward the door. "It'd be nice if Jack returned the favor once in a while, though!"
"You never need it, and he's always doing me the biggest favor anyone ever has, so I figure I owe him."
"Then you can take a double-turn." Richard suggested, opening the door for her. "Shall we see if he needs rescuing already?"
Brooke shook her head as she entered the room filled with loud music and louder people. Shouting, she answered, "It's early yet! He can't possibly have screwed it up this fast!"
Heather Moore slapped Jack as hard as she could, fury burning in her eyes. "You've been spying on me?" she shouted, seemingly loud enough that he thought Richard and Brooke might hear her from over by the front door.
Jack was dumbfounded. What he had thought was a sure thing had instantly dissolved into a disaster. "Look, Heather. I... I thought you wanted me to..."
She reached her hand back to slap him again when Jack stopped explaining and backed away. "OK! OK! I can take a hint!"
"Obviously not, you cretin!" she growled, this time her voice not carrying far. "I was politely brushing you off! So brush off!" As Jack walked away sadly and so obviously hurt, Heather genuinely felt sorry for him. Taken literally, she saw how her words could have been mistaken for a veiled offer, but the thought that he'd pried into her life enough to know she'd been raised in New Hampshire left her feeling she was better off without her dejected harasser.
Seeing Jack heading back towards him and Brooke, having heard the end of the all-too-brief conversation between he and Heather, Richard tried to console his best friend. "Hey, Jack..."
"Save it!" he shot back as he reached them. "Let's just get outta here!"
Determined to try and earn his buddy a second chance, Richard stopped him. "Hang on, Jack. Let me talk to her."
Jack waved at him dismissively. "Fine! You want her, be my guest!"
"No!" he replied, grabbing Jack's arm to stop his retreat again. "I mean for you! Lemme see if I can get you a second shot at her, a fair shake! You at least deserve that much!"
"Yeah?" he smiled at his best friend. "You think she might?"
"Only one way to find out!" he said, heading off towards where he saw she was sitting with a group of girls.
Heather was trying to put the whole thing out of her mind when she saw a man approaching her who took her breath away at first sight. Now this is more like it! she was thinking as he sat next to her. "Hi!" she said coyly, glad that she'd gotten rid of Jack just in time.
Coming over to her with the best of intentions, when Richard looked at her though, her deep gaze penetrating through to his bones, he sat beside her and smiled; Jack a distant memory. "Hi! I'm Richard, Richard Hargrave." He held out a hand and almost kissed hers when she took it daintily.
Feeling the heat flushing to her cheeks as he spoke, Heather's pulse pounded in her throat as he took her hand. "I... I don't think I've seen you around the college. Are you taking your post-grad?"
Shaking his head, Richard laughed lightly. "No! I don't go to Stanford! I'm studying business at Menlo while stationed at The Barracks in Alameda."
"Oh?" she inquired breathily. "I don't think I've ever met a sailor before!"
Richard's smile melted instantly. "I'm a Marine! Not a squid!"
"Oh! I... I'm sorry!" Heather flushed embarrassedly. "I think that's even more interesting!" she said, trying to salvage her faux pax.
Finding himself utterly unable to be angered at her ignorance, Richard's smile returned quickly. "That's OK! It's an honest mistake!"
"You're too kind!" she said demurely. Looking back up at him slowly, she couldn't help but return his smile. "So, how do you know Melody?"
"Who?" Richard asked innocently.
"Melody? The girl who's party this is?" Seeing his confusion, she smiled wickedly and asked, "Did you just crash or are you somebody's guest?"
Suddenly remembering how he'd gotten here and why, he was overcome with guilt. "Huh? Oh! Um... well..." He laughed, trying to find something funny about the situation. "Well... uh... see, here's the thing..."
Standing next to Brooke by the bar, Jack took a drink from his scotch and soda. "So how's it look?" he asked her. He'd asked Brooke to watch Heather and Richard for him so he wouldn't look too desperate. "Does it look like it's going the same way it did earlier?"
She didn't have the heart to tell him. "Well, no. It... it's going... um... OK." Sighing, she decided that the news was better told to him elsewhere. "Come with me!" she said, grabbing his hand and dragging him out the front door.
"So that's why I came over to talk to you." Richard sighed. "To... uh... see if you'd give him a second chance." he smiled at her.
The college girl bit her lower lip, uncertain what to do about it. "So, Jack got an invitation from Eddie, who got one from Melody, and you and your friend are here with him for...?"
"Moral support?" Richard half-answered. "Honestly, Jack is about as good a guy as they come. He and I have been best friends since high school." He sighed heavily. "And that's why I feel so bad."
She furrowed her brow at him. "Why?"
Scooting closer, he looked deeply in her eyes. "Because I don't think he's going to get a second chance. Is he?"
Her breath caught as she felt his knee touch hers. Flushing, she suddenly felt dizzy and out of breath. Almost giddy, she giggled, "Um... I... I don't think so!"
"Poor Jack!" Richard laughed lightly.
She nodded. "Poor Jack!"
"God damn, son-of-a-bitching, cock-sucking, mother..." Jack fumed around the front yard next to Richard's car. "I'm gonna kill that son-of-a-..."
"Jack!" Brooke tried to steady him. "You have to calm down! You're gonna cause a scene! There are kids in this neighborhood! Ease it down!"
Pacing like a caged animal, he fumed. "Some best friend! Every time I like someone, boom! There he is trying to take her for himself! God damn..." he censored himself and took a breath. "OK! Alright! Fine! He can have her! He deserves the stuck-up....! Ugh! I'm outta here!" Jack spat, starting to walk back down the street they'd come up.
"Jack!" Brooke called after him, but he only waved her off and kept walking. "Damn it, Rich! Why did you have to..." She put her hand on her forehead, trying to think what to do to salvage their nearly life-long friendship. Finally, she ran back in the house to look for Richard. She found him happily talking and holding Heather's hand when she came running up.
"Rich! You gotta come! Jack took off! I think he might go U-A! For real this time!"
Standing quickly as Heather did, he looked at the door. "Oh, crap! Jack!" Turning to her, he stammered, "Um... I... I gotta... uh..."
Practically dragging him to the front door, Heather didn't need explanation. "Come on! Let's go find your friend!"
The three piled into Richard's station wagon, Brooke sitting in the front with Richard behind the wheel. Heather took a seat in the back just as Brooke pointed back down the street. "He took off that way!"
Turning the car around, Richard sped down the street quickly.
"Richard!" Heather warned. "This is a residential street! Slow down!"
Backing off his pursuit, Richard slowed to the legal limit. "Sorry, I..."
"...you just want to find Jack. We know." Brooke finished for him. "So do I, but let's not kill anyone in the process! Ourselves included!"
Making their way down the street, Heather and Brooke looked down side streets while Richard drove a search pattern. After looking for half an hour, Richard returned to the party.
"Look, I'm sorry for all this." Heather apologized. "I... I guess I was sort of cruel to him."
"He has that effect on people." Richard excused as he parked out in front of the house again. "It's fine." Taking a breath, he got out and opened Heather's door for her.
Climbing out, she looked up at him. "Are you sure you wouldn't like my help to keep looking for him?"
"No." Richard shook his head slowly. "Jack'll do what he needs to do to cool off. He'll be back at The Bricks on time. I'm sure of that." He looked around the neighborhood. "I'm just worried about him is all. I've been doing it so long it's become a habit!" he laughed.
Laughing with him a moment before their mirth died, Heather took a chance. Reaching up, she pulled him into a kiss. Making it quick, she backed off and sighed. "Call me?" she asked. "Let me know he's alright?"
Collecting himself from the kiss, he smiled at her as he got back in the car. "I will. Promise."
After he got in, she came up to the window. "You'll give him my message?"
He nodded before he pulled away from the house, leaving Heather to watch them disappear into the distance.
Jack walked for hours. Eventually his anger melted away, replaced with a sick feeling, the same as the day Ox sucker-punched him or the day Wendy dumped him. He felt betrayed, but knew he had nothing to blame but his own hubris this time. Eventually, he found he'd walked back to the Barracks while not even being aware of it. By nine he was walking in through the front gate and headed toward his rack.
He undressed and hit the bed like a hammer, his body shaking it as he came to rest with a shudder. Closing his eyes, he heard movement from the foot of his rack. Turning in place, he looked down to see Richard standing there.
"Come to rub it in?" he growled.
"Nope." Richard said earnestly. "To apologize, and deliver a message. Two, actually, one from Brooke and one from Heather."
Turning over in his bed, he looked up at Richard. "Well?"
He stopped pacing and faced Jack. "Well, Brooke said to say you're an a-hole and she hopes you rot in the brig when they drag your sorry carcass in here tomorrow morning. You can tell her she lost our bet."
Jack chuckled once, then twice. "She should know better than to bet against you when it's about me! And the other?"
"Heather said to tell you that her offer still stands, the one she made to you in the library. She also said to tell you that she's sorry she reacted so badly, that she's willing to make it up to you, and to give you her phone number."
Sitting up in his rack so quickly he nearly bounced out of it, Jack looked at him in confusion. "Really? I mean, you and she didn't...?"
Richard looked his friend straight in the eyes. "Yeah, we did! We hit it off! Marvelously! But she still wants to give you your shot. I do, too."
Sitting back, Jack thought about it a moment. "Whoa! Dude! That's..." His words failed him as he considered what Richard was saying.
"It's a serious offer, Jack." he said. "She means it, and so do I. I honestly wish you the best. She... she'd be a lucky girl if she ended up with you. I mean it." He stuffed his hands in his front pockets, biting off the desire to push his friend aside and take Heather for himself. He'd never fallen so completely in love with a woman so quickly before; not like this. He'd swallow it and risk losing her for Jack's sake, though.
Looking deep within himself, Jack knew what he should do. "No." he said, turning over and lying back down in his rack.
"Jack! I mean it!" Richard half laughed. "I'm serious, bud! She's willing to give you a chance and I want you to take it!"
"Nope!" Jack said, turning back over to face the man standing over him. "No thanks. Call her and give her my regards."
Insulted that Jack would turn down the woman he found so alluring, Richard nearly barked back at him. "Why not? This afternoon you were..."
"This afternoon you weren't in love with her." Jack interrupted him.
Stepping back, almost as though Jack had slugged him, Richard was shocked. "In what?" he asked incredulously.
Standing up, Jack faced him. "You! In Love! With Heather! This afternoon! Do I need to draw you a logic diagram? Get you a sign language interpreter?"
"No!" Richard balked. "What in God's name makes you think..."
Walking up in front of Richard, Jack started ticking off his fingers. "One, you have never offered to step aside for me before, because you always knew the girl wasn't serious and I'd end up getting my heart broken all over again, which means Heather's the real deal, at least as far as you can see. Two, you spent enough time with her, I'd guess looking for me, that she got to know me enough through you that she's willing to give me another shot. Three..." he paused, his voice lowering. "I... I can see it in your eyes. You fell for her hard. Didn't you?"
Stunned, Richard nodded and looked down. "Yeah, I kinda did. And I feel like a total jerk for it!"
Turning away, Jack wandered. "Oh, and four, your lipstick's smudged."
Reaching up, Richard wiped his lips and looked at his fingers unconsciously.
Turning in place, Jack faced him. "Ah, ha! She did kiss you! Five! She feels the same way about you!" Seeing Richard's shocked expression, Jack smiled and pointed it him. "Gotcha!"
He couldn't help it. Richard burst out laughing and walked over to Jack. "You a-hole!" he said, wrapping him in a bear hug. Slapping Jack on the back, he backed off and shook his head. "I guess you know me pretty well. Better than me sometimes."
"I keep telling you, but you never listen." Jack shrugged. "You need me!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
The next day Rich called Heather and told her that Jack stepped aside, but Heather wouldn't have it. She insisted on a date with Jack and wouldn't take no for an answer. Jack said it was good, friendly and warm, but they quickly learned that he and Heather would never have worked out in the end. She was made for Rich and Jack could already see she was in love with him. Heather and Rich were inseparable after that. For about six weeks, every minute of Liberty Rich had was spent with her, leaving Jack and I to fumble around on our own. It wasn't until Rich's twenty-fourth birthday that Jack and I got to spend any time with him again, but by then it was a foursome. Rich was done dating and Jack was stuck as my 'boyfriend' for the interim. We went on a triple date once. Rich and Heather, Jack and... Marie I think her name was... and me and Julie. It was awkward because they were first dates for Jack and me, but Heather and Rich were a permanent couple, so I think it made our dates a little uncomfortable. We never did it again. By the end of the following year, Jack was in a bit of a depression. He was happy for Rich and Heather, but he'd begun to feel like he was never going to find anyone that would love him. It was shortly before Christmas ninety-five that I found myself in a position to repay all the help Jack had ever given me, plus interest.
---
Brooke leaned against a rack of cards while Heather was crouched next to another rack. "Come on, Heather! Just pick something and get it over with!"
Heather wouldn't be rushed. She wanted to get the perfect card to go with her gift of a Rolex this year. She'd decided on something sweet and loving, but nothing said just what she felt. "Brooke, if you want to speed things up, help me find a Christmas card for Richard!"
Standing up, she stretched and wandered around. "Heather, I can't pick your card to Rich! It would be... weird! And gross!"
Laughing at her commentary, Heather stood back up and stopped suddenly. Picking up a card, she read it quickly and smiled. "Found it!" she gushed, running over to Brooke with it.
Reading the card, Brooke stuck out her tongue. "Blech! Disgustingly sappy! It's perfect for you two! Can we go now?"
"Jealous, much?" Heather teased. "Come on! I still need a ride to the library so I can get the book I need for French Literature."
Driving Heather to the campus library, Brooke enjoyed driving her white Firebird she'd bought new the previous fall. Even though it was the first day of winter, she had the top down and they both enjoyed the sunny weather; a significant improvement from the devastating storm only ten days earlier.
When they got to the campus, Brooke opted to wait in the car while Heather went in search of her book. Some time later, while lying back in the reclined driver's seat, she heard a woman clearing her throat. Opening her eyes and peering over her sunglasses at her intruder, she smiled. "Can I help you?" Brooke asked, sitting her head up slightly.
"Possibly." the girl replied. "I... I don't mean to be overly inquisitive, but I couldn't help but notice your car has a military base sticker on it. Are you from the Naval Base or is this someone else's car? Your boyfriend's, maybe?"
Brooke had thought she'd heard it all when it came to subtle inquiries about her availability and sexuality, but this one took the cake. "No, it's mine. I'm a Marine stationed at Alameda NAS. Why do you ask?" She shifted in her seat to get more comfortable and expose a little more cleavage to the college girl.
"I... I was just wondering, could I ask you a few questions?" the girl asked. "I'm a psychology major and I have to do a dumb report on women in male-dominated occupations. Would it be alright? It would only take about ten minutes or so. It won't include your name or anything! Just an anonymous set of answers!"
Taking a deep breath, Brooke watched the girl's body language. She was shy, but cute. Her wavy red hair, green eyes, and fair complexion made for a sexy combination. Clearing her throat, she sat up. "Sure. Take a seat... I'm just waiting for a friend of mine to get a book."
She came around the car, opened the passenger door, and sat with her legs outside. "Thanks! Who's your friend? Are they a student here?"
"Her name's Heather, Heather Moore. Maybe you know her? She's a psych major, too."
Shaking her head, she looked down at her paper. "The name sounds familiar, but I can't place it. I'm new! Alright, first question. 'Are you ever made to feel inferior by any of the men in your occupation?'"
Laughing, Brooke tossed her head back. "That's half their job description, honey! I'm an Enlisted Marine, not a Girl Scout! But to answer simply, yes. My superiors, most of whom are male, make me feel inferior. I don't think it could work any other way, though!"
"Good point." she replied. Jotting down some notes, she sighed. "Alright, question two. 'Have you ever been sexually harassed in the workplace?' It means only in your current occupation where men are prevalent, not any previous job."
Brooke shook her head. "No, but I know it's happened to other W-Ms. Just not to me personally."
"W-Ms?" she asked innocently.
"Women Marines. Sorry, the jargon is unavoidable. I'm a third-gen Marine."
"I see." Taking more notes, she sighed heavily as she read the next question to herself before asking it. "Some of the questions are a little leading!" she commented. "Alright, question three. 'How often have you been passed over for advancement due to your gender?'"
Brooke nodded. "Just a little leading, but I can still answer it. Never. Next?"
The girl made notes and pressed on. "Question four. 'On the occasions you were passed over, were you offered the opportunity to advance if...'" She sat back. "OK, this is stupid! This isn't applicable to you! They just assume the answer to three is yes! We'll skip it!"
Noting that the girl was getting frustrated, Brooke reached over and touched her shoulder. Seeing her reaction, the Marine realized that maybe her first impression of the girl was incorrect. "It's fine, really!" she said, drawing her hand back. "If you want, you can continue. I know you have to do the paper, so maybe with my help you can still do it, just with a twist your professor wasn't expecting!"
The girl shook her head. "You're very nice, but... Ugh! They expect that every woman is being sexually harassed all the time! Half these won't even apply to you! There's one that asks if you could ever feel physically threatened in the normal course of your work!"
Brooke laughed loudly, the girl joining her after a moment. Finally, Brooke managed to get out, "It goes with the territory! Warning! If you become a Marine, people may try to kill you!" The two ladies were laughing so hard that neither saw Heather walk up.
"Is this a private joke?" she asked, making the two laugh even harder.
Finally getting control of herself, Brooke wiped a tear of laughter from her eye. "Sorry, Heather! You had to be there!" She turned to the girl. "Heather? This is..." Pausing, she stopped laughing. "Oh! I don't believe you ever said your name!"
The girl stood up, closing her notebook. "It's Erica, Erica Hargrave! Are you her... um... girlfriend?" She'd had suspicions about Brooke from her body language and the way the Marine had looked at her.
Siting up in her car, Brooke stopped laughing. "Wait a minute! Did you say Erica Hargrave? You wouldn't be Richard Hargrave's sister, would you?" she asked, stepping out and around her car.
Looking at the two women nervously, Erica stepped back. "Um... yes? Do you two know Richie?" She paused a moment and looked at Brooke. "He... When he's home for holidays, he's told us about a woman he serves with. Your name wouldn't be Brooke, would it?"
"Last I checked!" she answered. "Damn! This is just too wild!"
Erica slowly turned at look at the other woman with Brooke. "Wait a minute! H-Heather? Heather Moore?" Her eyes widened in sudden realization as she nodded with a smile. "Oh... my... God! Richie wrote me about you! He... he doesn't know that I got into Stanford or that Daddy's paying for my college yet! I only transferred here this semester!"
Heather looked at her and smiled. "Well this will be a big surprise for him, then! I've heard so much about you, Erica! I've been looking forward to meeting you for over a year!"
Leaning on her car, Brooke nodded. "I've been hearing about you for over four years! I expected you to be some mousy little girl! Rich talks about you like you're still twelve!"
Rolling her eyes, she looked at Brooke. "You know big brothers! They think little sisters are children forever!" Looking down, she cleared her throat and lowered her voice to just above a whisper. "Is... is Jack still around? I haven't seen him in years. When he gets vacation time, he never comes to visit with Richie."
"Marines get Leave, not vacation." Brooke corrected. "But yeah, Jack's still around. We hang out all the time! Doesn't Rich tell you about him?"
"Richie never talks about him at home." Erica shook her head sadly. "Jack and Mom don't get along, so Richie stopped talking about him years ago." She looked up at the two. "Is he doing OK? Does... does he have a... a girl?"
Heather and Brooke looked at each other with a knowing glance. Finally, Brooke suggested, "Why don't we go somewhere and talk a bit. It's about lunch time and I could use a few thousand Calories."
Nodding, Heather turned to Erica. "Do you have time? We don't want to get in the way of your class work."
"Oh, no!" Erica shook her head. "I can do this anytime! I have until middle of January to get it done, and lunch sounds divine!"
The three decided on a restaurant in walking distance, so very shortly they had a table and were sitting around and chatting like old friends.
Brooke looked down at her half-eaten burger, trying to formulate how to ask Erica what was on her mind. She'd been telling the girl about Jack for an hour and Erica never seemed to get enough, with hardly a word asked about her own brother. "Um... Erica? Can I ask you something?"
"Anything, Brooke!" Erica answered, taking a bite of her Caesar salad.
"Um... do you like Jack?" she asked delicately.
Erica flushed with embarrassment. She swallowed her bite hard and nodded shyly. "I... I've been in love with Jack for over ten years!" Turning sad, she sighed forlornly. "But he never noticed me. To him I'm just..." she sighed again, "...just Buttons!"
"Buttons?" they both asked together.
"Jack's old nickname for me." she answered with a wistful smile. When she saw they didn't get it, she explained. "Red hair? Red Buttons? Cute-as-a-button? It's OK, I didn't get it at first, either. But see? It's just like Richie! Jack will only ever see me as... as just a little girl!"
Looking Erica over, Brooke shook her head. "Speaking as an expert in the attractiveness of women, if you'll pardon me saying so Erica, if Jack saw you now?" She wolf whistled quietly. "You're no little girl anymore!"
Nodding, Heather agreed. "I may not be so inclined, but I can tell that you would be serious competition if you and I were both interested in Jack!"
Perking up, Erica smiled gaily. "Really? Do you think Jack..." Swiftly, she dismissed the idea. "No! It's stupid! Why should someone like Jack want someone like me?" speaking Jack's name almost reverently.
"Would you like a chance, though?" Brooke asked before she took a bite.
"If you think it would be alright! When can I see him? Is he busy tonight?"
"Slow down!" Heather advised with a laugh. "First of all, you need to appear not so anxious. All men get suspicious when a woman takes too much of an interest. They think she wants something out of him."
Brooke shoved a half-eaten bite of her burger into her cheek. "Besides, Jack doesn't have Liberty coming until New Years Eve, and that's only a forty-eight with the first half covering for Rogers." Seeing Erica's confusion she explained, "He has the weekend off, but Saturday he's covering for Corporal Rogers, so all he gets is Sunday."
"Oh." Erica said disappointedly, but she perked up quickly. "Does he have plans for New Years, do you know?"
Looking at Erica, Brooke swallowed. "Jack and I will be at our New Years party that night. You can come if you like!" She noticed Heather giving her a look, but Brooke shook her head subtly.
"Alright! Is it formal or casual?" Erica was hoping for something romantic.
"Casual... Jeans and shirt kind of thing." Brooke answered. "Whatever's comfortable. It's just a New Years house party. You twenty-one?"
Erica slumped back in her seat. "I... I won't be until January ninth."
Brooke shrugged. "Close enough!" she smiled. Glancing at her watch, she winced. "Damn! It's already fourteen hundred! I gotta get back! Look, call me and I'll give you the details." She grabbed Erica's notebook, scribbling her number in one of the margins. "Sorry, Heather! You're gonna have to bum a ride from someone else or cab-it back to your place!" Heading for her car, she heard Erica running after her. Stopping just outside the restaurant, she was surprised when Erica hugged her and kissed her on the cheek.
"Thank you so much, Brooke! Oh, and thank you for your service, too!"
Stunned for a moment, she cocked an eyebrow at Erica. "You know, when you first came up to me, I was sure you were hitting on me. I was actually a little disappointed when I figured out you weren't." She smiled at the girl after a moment. "Now I'm glad you weren't! See, I couldn't figure what to get Jack for Christmas this year. He's in so much trouble when he sees you!"
"Why?" Erica asked innocently.
"Because, he doesn't stand a chance against you! You being at the party is gonna be my present to you both! Merry Christmas!"
"Merry Christmas..." Erica replied confusedly as Brooke ran for her car.
With New Years Eve approaching, Erica was franticly trying to pick the perfect outfit. "Too casual, too obvious, too dressy... Ugh!" she screamed. Dialing Brooke's number, she waited for her to answer.
"Maintenance Shop, Hathaway." Brooke answered.
"Brooke? This is Erica. Is this a bad time?"
"No!" she replied happily. "What can I do for you?"
"Do you have time to come over and help me pick something for Sunday? I can't figure out what to wear and it's driving me crazy!"
Laughing, it took a moment for Brooke to compose herself. "Look, whatever you wear will be fine! He won't be looking at your clothes!"
"Brooke!" she whined. "I need your help! Please? This is really important to me! I just have to get it right!"
"Alright! Alright! I can't come over until Saturday, though." She heard the young woman squeal with delight. "So I'll see you then!"
When Brooke finally arrived Saturday afternoon, Erica had narrowed her choices down to three outfits: a green satin evening gown, a little black dress, and tight jeans with a T-shirt and white see through jacket.
Holding each up to herself, Erica looked at Brooke. "OK, so which one? The green dress, the black one, or just jeans?"
Pursing her lips, Brooke thought about it seriously, using everything she new about Jack and her own sense of attractiveness, she nodded. "OK, the green dress is right out. You'd look beautiful in it, but this isn't Prom, it's a house party. That leaves the dress or the jeans."
"OK, so which one makes me look hotter?" Erica asked directly.
Laughing, Brooke shook her head. "Jack isn't looking for hot! He probably won't even notice your outfit. All he'll see is you! Of course, I'm also biased. I don't care for dresses, but I know Jack and..." Looking at the two options, she pointed at the coordinate set. "Jeans! Don't get me wrong, you'd look smokin' in that dress, but the casual look will draw more attention to your face and..." She trailed off and blushed slightly.
"My chest?" Erica finished for her.
"Yeah! That!" she said, glad to not have to say it out loud about Richard's sister. "Seriously though, with an outfit like that you really need to hit your hair out of the park to dress it up." Picking at Erica's hair, Brooke hummed quietly. "Well, you could hit it with highlights, really bring out the color, use a curling solution and set and spray, light hold since you got fine hair, Yeah!" She looked at Erica. "I don't think any of the salons around town will have any openings this close to New Years, though."
Erica's hopes sagged. "You're right! I... I didn't think to make an appointment for one!" She dropped onto her bed feeling hopeless.
"So that's why I'm going to do you up myself!" Brooke smiled.
Erica sat up eagerly, but with a confused look. "You?"
"Don't act so surprised!" Brooke said defensively. "Mom was a beautician! She taught me everything she knows about it and I even worked in her salon as a beautician myself for most of a year. She figured someday it might come in handy, and it looks like today's the day!" Brooke sat next to Erica on her bed. "Between you and me, I think she figured it would give me a backup career because she didn't think I could 'Pack the Gear' in the Corps!"
Leaning over, she hugged Brooke. "You're the best!" After a moment, she felt the older woman stiffen. "Oh! I'm sorry!" she said embarrassedly.
Brooke took a breath and stood up. "It's fine, Erica! It's nothing! It's just... I haven't had a date in a while is all, and... well... you're cute, OK?" Letting out a breath, she turned to her. "...and taken. Very taken if I read you right! Are you sure that we're talking about the same Jack? Jack Dunning? Short guy? Skinny? Thinks he's funny?"
"He is funny!" Erica laughed. "He's been making me laugh since the first day I met him!" Turning sullen, Erica looked at the floor. "I think the only time he didn't make me laugh was the time he was in the hospital when I thought he was going to die." Her smile returning, she looked up at Brooke. "Then he woke up and the first thing he did was to make me laugh again!"
"Don't think I've heard this story." Brooke noted as she sat back down. "What happened to him?"
Erica started to tell a brief version, then found herself needing to backtrack through it, finally just telling the whole thing. "So I went to see him every day. Daddy told me that talking to him might help, so I did. I talked to him about school, about my friends, about everything I could think of! I even did my homework out loud next to him! And every day before I went home, I... I'd tell him I loved him, even though he would probably never know it."
Her mind a jumble of thoughts, Brooke found the story finally filled in some missing pieces to the puzzle that was Jack Dunning.
Taking a breath, Erica smiled. "And then on the last day, just after I said 'I love you', I saw him move! Eight weeks of talking to him every day and I finally saw him move! Oh, Brooke! You know what the first thing he said was? He told me, 'Ouch!' so it would make me laugh! I wanted to kiss him right then!"
Laughing, she looked at the younger girl. "Wait, how old would you have been then? Thirteen?"
"Fourteen." Erica blushed. "I... I tried to kiss him twice more before he left home. By then I was almost fifteen, and after my sixteenth birthday I wanted so much to just run away to California, find him, and marry him!"
"What stopped you?"
"Daddy." Erica said sadly. "Mom knew for longer, ever since I was thirteen, but Daddy figured it out the day Richie left home. He... after they left... he took me aside and I told him how I felt about Jack, how I've always felt about him. He held me and let me cry in his shoulder because I didn't get to say goodbye to him. Daddy told me if I ran away to be with him, I'd be on my own, but if I worked hard in school and got into college, he'd pay to send me to a college that was close enough to Jack that I would have my chance!"
She stood up proudly. "So here I am! I wasn't in a rush though, I wanted to do it right. I graduated, got accepted to Stanford, but I went to two years of Community College first. Getting a lot of core classes out of the way there meant Daddy could afford two years at Stanford! Pretty smart, huh?"
Brooke nodded. "Smarter than me! I won't get started with college until I'm Outside in two years!"
Sighing at the thought of seeing Jack the next day, Erica's expression became dreamy and far away.
"Wow! You've got it bad, girl!"
"Don't I know it!" she giggled. "I love him so much, Brooke! I just have to try! So you'll help me?"
She smiled. "When I get through with you, Jack won't know what hit him!"
Turning around, Heather smiled as she saw the three people she was waiting for enter. Making her way to the door, she saw Richard notice her approach and her heart fluttered with anticipation.
"Richard! I'm so glad you could make it!" she said as she got close enough for him to hear.
He smiled as he saw her approaching. Removing his cover, Richard ran his free hand through his short-cropped red hair. "Hey, beautiful! Couldn't leave you alone! You might come to your senses and realize you could do way better than me!"
Heather smiled coyly as she wound her arms around his waist. "Better than you? Who? Adonis? Apollo? John Wayne?"
Jack peered around him, having been standing next to him and being quietly ignored by the two lovebirds. "Ah, come on! This jarhead? I just don't get why you threw me over for that! What do you see in him when there's me to be had!"
Brooke tapped him on the shoulder. When Jack turned and faced her, she looked him up and down, then did the same with Richard, and simply shook her head. "Sorry Charlie, but even I can tell he's got you beat."
Jack, ever the comedian, took off his cover and held it to his heart. "Brooke! My sweetness! Say it ain't so!"
Pushing past Jack and snaking around Richard, Brooke smiled and hugged Heather. "Hey, beautiful! Still sure I can't tear you away from this clown? I can really make it worth your while!" She arched her eyebrows at Heather in a comically seductive way.
"You make an awfully tempting offer, Brooke..." she said in her low throaty voice. Releasing her and returning to Richard, she hooked an arm through one of his. "...but alas my heart is already spoken for."
Jack turned to his best friend. "Say Rich, you wouldn't mind if Heather took a little break from you, would you? Just a short one? Like say for an hour? Oh, I don't mean for myself, but think of poor Brooke!"
Turning to his best friend, Richard smirked at him. "Yeah, I know who you're looking out for, Jack."
Pleading as the four made their way through the other guests, Jack begged, "Oh, come on, Rich! Give a guy a break! Just let them go upstairs, alone, for ten minutes! I swear, you can even handcuff me to the front door! I just wanna know it happened!"
Brooke slugged Jack in the arm hard enough to bruise. "Can it, clown! I'm not your personal masturbation material."
"OK, OK. You know I was only kidding around." Turning to Heather, Jack smiled sincerely. "So how've you been?"
She put her other arm through Jack's as they walked slowly. "Can't complain, Jack." Thinking of how to segue into what Brooke wanted to talk about, she asked innocently, "Seeing anyone?"
He jerked his thumb at Brooke and Richard. "No one but these two yahoos. Alas, you were my last and final hope. My heart can never love another!"
Smiling, Brooke hoped to not give too much away. "Well, that's too bad. I was hoping you could help me with a little problem."
His smile melted immediately. "What's her name?"
Laughing, Heather reached the end table where she'd put her drink and the ones she'd already gotten for the trio. "Oh, Jack! Here I thought I'd ruined you for all other women!"
He nodded. "True, true, but what's her name, Brooke? Her name!"
Looking at him, Brooke smiled. "Her name's Erica. She's sweet, but shy. I met her while waiting for Heather at the campus library. I kind of got my signals crossed and thought she was hitting on me, but she was really just wanting to ask about my service. She was doing some psychology paper on the effect of women in predominantly male occupied professions."
Wincing as he picked up a beer bottle, he opened it, and handed it to her. "Please! Not another she-woman man-hater! I don't care how cute she is, they're more trouble than they're worth! You sure she wasn't hitting on you?"
Taking a drink, Brooke shook her head. "Positive. And she's not a left-wing wacko feminist, either. Her professor probably is, so it's the assignment she got, but she's actually quite nice, loves the armed forces, and even thanked me for my service."
Shaking his head as he took his own beer, Jack swigged it. "Then her old man's probably a swabbie at the base."
While Brooke laughed, Richard, who'd not been listening to the conversation, asked, "What about swabbies?"
Taking another drink, Jack grinned. "Nothing, Rich. Just go back to ogling your girlfriend."
Picking up his own beer, Richard glared at him. "I wasn't ogling her, I was admiring her beautiful eyes!"
Nudging him in the shoulder, Jack quipped, "Sure, sure, Rich. Increase your scanning elevation about twenty-five degrees to find her eyes."
His comment brought a laugh to the three and a blush to Heather's cheeks before Brooke turned and looked toward the door and checked her watch.
Noticing the action, Jack shook his head. "Oh, no! You didn't! Brooke! Say it ain't so! You set me up without even asking?"
She shrugged as she took another drink. "You'll love her, Jack. I swear."
He nodded. "Uh-huh. How many eyebrows does she have?"
"Three, one for each eye." Brooke smiled sweetly. "But you'll never notice because the hump on her back will draw all your attention." Almost sensing more than hearing the front door open over the clamor of conversations and the music, she turned and smiled when she saw Erica look into the throng of partygoers. Handing her beer over to Heather, she didn't even look back. "Excuse me." she said as she headed for the door.
Thinking she might've come to the wrong address before she spotted Brooke coming toward her, Erica smiled and embraced her. "Hi! I thought I got the wrong place. This is your party?"
Slinging her arm over Erica's shoulders, Brooke grimaced. "Not exactly my party, but I was invited, so the invitation is yours as well. Come on!" She leaned in close to whisper, "Keep calm, girl!"
Making their way through the crowd, Brooke walked toward the trio with her guest. Heather and Richard were looking at each other with stars in their eyes; Richard's back turned to their approach.
Jack was the only one who saw them coming. The two getting closer, his heart skipped a beat. Suddenly the room seemed very quiet, the noise and laughter seeming to fade into the background. He wasn't even seeing Brooke anymore, just the girl she was with. She was thin, but not skinny, with well-rounded hips and bust and a narrow tapering waist. The T-shirt she wore under a see-through white jacket emphasized her gracious curves, and her jeans covered long legs that Jack could tell were well formed and sexy. Her shoulder-length red hair bounced with every step, framing her beautiful face and haunting green eyes.
For her part, Erica saw Jack at the same moment and her breath caught. It wasn't his looks that had always taken her breath away. It was him. Most especially now, with a room full of half naked women surrounding her Jack, his eyes were locked on her and only her as though she, Erica Hargrave, were the best looking woman in the room.
Brooke stopped in front of him. "Jack? This is Erica." Seeing the two staring into each other's eyes and not even noticing her, Brooke pursed her lips. "Well, I can see you two don't have any further need of me." she said as she turned toward Richard and Heather, trying keep them distracted to give the two a moment alone in a crowded room.
Erica spoke first. "Hi."
"Um... hi!" Jack swallowed hard. Gathering his composure, but still unable to tear his eyes away from hers, he stammered as he held out his hand. "Jack, Jack Dunning. Lance Corporal, USMC."
She smiled and took his hand gently, only just then realizing that he didn't know who she was. "Erica, Erica Hargrave. Student. Stanford." Her eyes smiled along with her lips, but she could feel her hand nervously sweating in his.
Just then Jack heard from behind him, "Erica!?"
The young woman's eyes were torn away from Jack's enchanting stare when she heard the one voice that had been catching her attention her entire life. Looking over Jack's shoulder, she saw her brother looking at her in sheer astonishment. "Richie!? Brooke didn't say you were going to be here!"
Jack was confused as her full name hadn't even processed in his mind yet. In point of fact, Jack hadn't done much actual thinking since he first saw her. Suddenly, it all dawned on him, his eyes grew wide, and he looked at her again. "Erica... Hargrave? But... Rich's Erica?" What he remembered of her was the image of a little girl. Now before him stood a vision of lovely young womanhood.
Her brother pushed Jack aside. "What are you doing here, Erica? You're not twenty-one yet! You can't be here!"
Brooke halfway interposed between the siblings. "She's my guest, Rich! And she turns legal in like a week, so back off!"
"That's OK, Brooke." Erica's eyes flared. "I can see I'm not going to be allowed to have any fun here tonight. Maybe you can take me to another party! I can be your date!"
Pulling Richard aside, Jack tried to convince him to let her stay. "Listen, Rich! Come on, man! Let it be! If she stays here, you can keep an eye on her, and so can Heather, Brooke, and I, right? If she leaves, God knows what trouble she could get into! Think, man!"
Turning back to his sister, Richard lowered his gaze. "Look, Erica. I'm sorry. Just forget I said anything, OK? I... I overreacted. Please stay." He looked up at her as he finished his plea.
Her fury at still being treated like a child by her older brother melted quickly. Never one to carry a grudge long, she eyed him suspiciously. "Fine! But I don't want Sergeant Ramrod killing my good time, is that clear?" She poked him in the chest as she finished.
Raising his hands defensively, Richard backed away. "I give! I give! Why don't I get you a beer?"
"I'll get it!" Jack offered, his voice nearly cracking comically. Turning to Erica, he smiled. "Don't move a muscle, my angel! I'll be back to worship the ground you walk on in a flash!"
Erica looked to Brooke and her brother with a wistful smile as Jack ran to the bar. "Isn't he funny?"
Brooke tousled her hair. "Unfortunately, looks aren't everything."
"Don't let his outward clownish charm fool you, sis." Richard warned. "He's still the same Jack Dunning you've known for years."
Biting her lower lip, Erica swayed gently. "He always seemed really sweet to me."
"The word you're looking for is 'desperate'." Brooke said as she took another drink. "We call him Corporal Strikeout for a reason."
Erica shook her head, inwardly hopeful. "Doesn't do well with the ladies then?"
"He does fine at first." Heather interjected. "But once girls stop laughing at his jokes, his lack of things like a car or money, and thereby his ability to take them out, tends to make them lose interest quickly."
Furrowing her brow, Erica fumed. "Well that's awfully shallow of them!" Pausing, she asked, "Is he very bad with money?"
"Not really." Brooke shook her head. "He's just overly generous. He sends most of his pay to the place that's taking care of his mom."
Her heart melted, remembering the few times she'd met Mary Dunning and how torn up Jack had been about moving her into a home before he'd left Pittsburgh. "Oh! That's so sweet!"
"Yeah, other girls think its sweet too." Richard smiled. "Until it's time for their second date and he still can't afford to take them anywhere, let alone have a car to take them in."
She slapped her brother in the chest. "You know, you could be a little more generous with your dough back home, Sergeant! Daddy's not getting any younger, and he's about killing himself trying to put me through school!"
He nearly choked on his beer. "Hey! I send what I can! More than Jack!"
His sister crossed her arms. "But he makes less! I bet he leaves less to spend on himself than you do!"
"You're right, he does!" Heather nodded. Turning to Richard, she smiled as she draped her arms over his shoulders and around his neck. "You really should help your family more, Richard. Your money doesn't impress me!"
"Good lord!" Brooke rolled her eyes. "If this gets sweeter, I'm gonna barf!"
Nearly running back to the foursome, Jack handed Erica a beer and smiled. "Here! My treat, my beauty!"
Nodding at Erica, Brooke joked, "If she's Beauty that makes you The Beast."
Putting the drink down, Erica smiled. "That's very sweet of you, but you don't need to buy me drinks! I think I'd like to stay clear-headed." Slipping her arm into Jack's, she looked around. "Is there someplace quiet we could talk?"
"You could take him upstairs!" Brooke smirked.
"Brooke!" Richard barked as he nearly turned white, knowing what most couples went upstairs to do. "Over my dead body!"
Erica stiffened her back. "Is that so, Richie?"
Lowering his voice desperately, he leaned in toward his sister's ear. "Are you crazy? Do you know what Mom and Dad would do to me if they found out I let you 'go upstairs' with Jack?" he emphasized with air quotes. "I'd never live to see morning! Mom'd kill me over the phone!"
Erica tilted her nose up. "Well, Mom and Dad aren't here, Richie! So unless you want me to just leave and take Jack somewhere more private, he and I are going to go upstairs!" She paused to let her brother squirm. "...and talk!"
At that, Erica took her brother's beer, took a swig from it, handed it back to him, and practically dragged Jack toward the staircase.
Looking back at his best friend, Jack just shrugged. "What can I do, Rich? Buttons' got me hooked!"
Richard looked over at Brooke as the two disappeared up the stairs. "What the hell, Brooke? You set my sister up with Jack?"
"Would you rather I set her up with Corporal Strikeout, or have her end up with someone like you, Sergeant Trouser Snake?"
Heather turned his head to face her. "Relax, darling. I'm sure she's perfectly safe with Jack. Now would you mind not thinking about your sister and turn your attention back to me? It's kind of creepy if I kiss you while you're thinking about your sister."
"Ha!" Brooke busted out laughing. "Maybe that's why he's so protective!"
He pushed Brooke's shoulder. "Cram it, Brooke! That's not even funny! I'm just looking out for her is all!"
Once more Heather turned his head back towards her. "I'm over here, dear!"
As he finally returned his focus back to his girlfriend, Brooke sighed and took another drink. "Great job, Brooke." she said to herself as she looked up the stairs where Jack and Erica had gone and then to Heather and Richard starting to dance. "You've managed to help find love for everyone but you."
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
I spent my next Liberty with Erica. She talked while I listened and messed with her hair. I learned a lot about Jack, things he never told me. I understand why he'd kept it to himself, though. He'd endured so much pain, it's amazing he was only as nuts as he seemed to be! No one want's that to show. I learned a lot about Rich, too. She didn't talk as animatedly about him as she did Jack, but she knew all his secrets! I don't know what it is about being a beautician, but women will bear their souls to us the way guys do with a bartender. They tell us things they won't even tell their shrink! For Jack's part, he was just so damnably, blissfully, innocently, ignorant of Erica's feelings toward him it was hard to watch! It wasn't that Jack didn't see her that way because she was younger, but because of something much more basic. She was his best friend's sister, and that made her almost like his own. It's a little creepy if you think too hard about it! Jack wasn't one to look a gift horse in the mouth, though. Erica loved him, and had loved him through some of the worst times of his life. He wasn't about to let that get away, no matter who she was.
---
Following Erica up the stairs, Jack was in a bit of a daze. He had a hard time reconciling that the girl ahead of him was 'Buttons'; the girl who was always there. Heading into an empty bedroom, she turned on a light and pulled him in, closing and locking the door behind her. Jack gulped nervously as she did.
"Do you know how long I've waited for this, Jack?" she asked, moving to him slowly as he tried backing away anxiously.
Smiling weakly with a quiver in his voice, Jack tried to humor his way out of whatever it was he'd gotten himself into. "Few minutes? An hour? What exactly are we talking about, here?" Downstairs he'd been happy to make Richard squirm by hitting on her, and honestly that's all he thought it was, Erica messing with her brother, but when he hadn't known who it was that Brooke had set him up with, he'd been mesmerized by her. Now that they were alone and he knew who she was, there was no one to impress but her, and he realized she knew him too well for false bravado. His knees hit the back of the bed as he continued to back away from her, causing him to fall back and sit.
Slowly, Erica walked to him, her hips swaying to draw his attention. Smiling that she could make him this nervous, she settled her mind and desires and stopped in front of him. "First, there's one thing I want more than anything, Jack. Something I've waited years to do!" Pulling him up to stand again, she wrapped her arms around him and tucked her chin over his shoulder. "I've missed you!" she almost cried.
Relief washed over him as he hugged his Buttons in return. "I... I missed you too, Buttons! Erica! Sorry!"
"It's OK, Jack!" she laughed. "You can call me Buttons! I don't mind much, anymore!" She pulled back from her hug and regarded him. "I've grown up, though!"
"So I noticed!" Jack complimented her. He still could hardly believe that the stunning woman in front of him was the same girl he'd nearly trampled more than a decade ago. Half laughing, he couldn't take his eyes off of her. "You look, amazing!"
Guiding the both of them to sit next to each other on the stranger's bed, Erica smiled and blushed. "Thanks! That means a lot coming from you!"
"Me?" he asked confusedly. "What's so important about my opinion?"
"You really don't know, do you?" she sighed lovingly.
Trying to figure out what she meant, the words she'd said sparked a memory of the day he'd woken up from the coma. His eyes wrinkled up in memory of the pain. He'd slowly begun to regain consciousness, following the sound of the voice, and after all this time the words finally started to make sense.
"So anyway, that's all I've been doing in school. Just trying to get through each day while Mom's at Aunt Edina's is hard enough without all the kids in my classes asking me how Richie got put in jail. I hate him for what he did to you, but even so, I don't like him being in so much trouble. I... I guess that's all. I love you so much, Jack. You really don't know, do you? I wish I could tell you, but I guess you'll never know."
"You were in the room with me, when I woke up." he commented. "I heard a voice, I mean, before I was really awake." He paused and his eyes went wide. "It said... No! No, you said, 'I love you'!" Even as he said the words, a thousand memories flooded his brain. Every time he'd seen Erica, from the first day they met all the way up until the day before he and Richard had left for North Carolina, and it all started to make sense.
"Erica, how long..." he began to ask.
"Since forever!" she interrupted with a happy note in her voice.
"I... I wish I'd..." He stopped as Erica put a finger on his lips.
"It wouldn't have mattered, Jack. Back then I was too young for you." She looked down as she spoke, then looked into his eyes. "But not anymore!" she smiled.
Swallowing hard, Jack looked into her happy eyes. "Erica, I... I care for you, a lot! Hell! I love you! You're my Buttons! My miracle girl! But... but you're Rich's sister!"
Scooting next to him until their hips touched, she lowered her voice to a sultry whisper. "But I'm not your sister, Jack. I love Rich, don't get me wrong, but..." She gathered her courage to say the words she'd spoken so many times, but never to his face. "I... I love you, Jack! I think I always have! From that first day you knocked me down! I think I always will!"
Stunned at hearing the words spoken out loud, Jack could feel his heart race. His ears rang with an overload of emotions. He felt lightheaded, dizzy, and just like he was thirteen all over again and lying in a pile of spilled papers. "Erica..." was all he managed before he could no longer formulate words.
Wrapping her arms around his shoulders and leaning forward around in front of him, she pulled him to her. Wanting this moment to last, she moved so slowly that at times she felt like she could hear her muscles contracting. Her lips quivered as she anticipated what she'd wanted for so long.
Slowly, tenderly, she touched her lips to his. A wave of feelings washed over her, threatening to drown her in them. Desire, happiness, longing, hope, fear, need, joy, and dread all jumbled into a tangle of emotions that made her cry both tears of joy and sadness at the same time.
Jack was so overcome with mixed emotions he didn't know what to do. He wanted to kiss her more deeply, but he also wanted her to stop. He wanted to push her back on the bed and ravage her, but he also wanted to run. He wanted to hold her and feel her body against his, but he also wanted to push her away. He wanted to see her in the throes of passion, but he also wanted to see her running from him. In the end he decided that all he could do was sit there and let her do what she needed, but before he realized it, he found himself kissing her in return, and liking it far more than he felt he should.
Slowly pulling away, ending their kiss, she sighed in a tearful whisper full of hope and dread. "So long! I've wanted to do that, for so long, Jack! I... I love you!"
Seeing the tears running down her face, he reached up, cupped her face in his hand, and wiped them away with his thumb. She turned her head slightly and kissed his hand gently, her eyes closed as tears fell. She sobbed; crying into his hand with all the pent up emotion in her heart until she felt it would never end. He in turn drew her to him, softly tucking her eyes against his neck and shoulder as she wrapped her arms around him so tight she felt she might crush the life out of him. Holding her gently, Jack just ran his hands along her back, trying to comfort her.
When at last her emotions were spent, she pulled back and wiped her face soaked with tears. "S-Sorry, J-Jack. I..."
"Shhhhhh." he quieted her. "It's alright!" Pulling her back into his arms, he just held her. "I've got you, and I'm never letting you go."
Erica slowly pulled away from him with shock in her eyes and her mouth hanging open speechlessly.
Finally, he half-smiled at her. "Well, until I gotta go to the bathroom that is!"
Her look of shock at his words melted into a grin of pure joy. "Jack!" she laughed. "You...! You...!"
He looked at her with a dumb expression. "Well what do you expect! You fell in love with me, didn't you?" he said smiling. "You think I was gonna let comedy gold like that slip by unused?"
She threw her head back in utter hilarious joy. "Jack! God, I love you!" She closed on him again, this time kissing him hard, needfully, and passionately. Her hands wound up through the short crop of hair at the base of his neck, pulling him into her with a ferocious desire. Her lips parting, she felt his do the same, their tongues touching and sending spikes of pleasure through her with such strength that she jumped in fright of their intensity.
Their kiss slowed until finally she felt the hunger ebb. She knew it would return, so she basked in the happiness of the moment. Smiling, she pressed her forehead against his. "Thank you!" was all she could say.
Chuckling giddily, Jack felt like he'd just inhaled a tank full of laughing gas. "My God, Buttons! That was intense!"
Nodding against his brow, she composed herself and slid away from him knowing she needed the space to have coherent thought.
Feeling her move away, it suddenly felt like someone was ripping him in half. He started to move towards her again until he felt her outstretched hand stop him. Looking at her with a look that was equal parts pain, desire, and confusion, he forced himself to back away until she lowered her hand.
"Whew!" she breathed out. "You have no idea how hard it was to stop you, Jack! Do you know how badly I want you right now? How long I've ached for this day?"
Composing himself, he drew a breath and exhaled slowly. "Right. Thinking. I can do that!" He looked up at her and grinned his half-smile, forcing her to wince as though she'd been pricked by a needle.
"Jack!" she begged. "Now stop it! Please? I... We need to talk, OK?"
Standing up, Jack walked the room slowly. "OK. I... I know we do. I can do that."
"Can you be serious? Just for a little while?" she asked hopefully.
"That's a pretty tall order, Buttons..." he joked. Forcing himself to push aside his humor, he grabbed the chair that sat in front of the stranger's desk and straddled it backwards. "OK. So let's talk. Seriously."
Erica took a breath again and looked at him. Seeing his funny face bent into seriousness almost hurt her physically, but she needed to know. "Jack, I... I've been in love with you a long time. I... I need to know if you... if you feel anything towards me. If you ever have."
"I love you, Erica." Jack sighed. "I have for years, but, I... I never thought..." He hated himself for not seeing it all sooner. Standing quickly, he threw the chair to the floor and screamed at the ceiling. "God, why! You had the chance to clue me in! Why'd you let us suffer!?"
Coming down from his rage, he remembered his eternal drifting and his self reflection; the millions upon millions of things that happened to him that had brought him to this point in his life where he could feel the utter elation of Erica's love for him. His fury spent, he chided himself for challenging God's wisdom, for presuming to think he could see all ends, and for thinking that he knew better than God that things would have been better if he'd known sooner.
We still would have been just as separated. The needs of our lives dictated that. he realized. I would have known, and she would have known that I knew. Who knows how that knowledge, too soon in our lives, would have twisted our love into something it was never supposed to be? Full of angst, longing, despair, anger, and hate towards one another for not throwing our futures away and running into one another's arms. Finally, he just laughed and fell to his knees.
Erica didn't know what to make of Jack's outburst. Seeing him fall made her run to his side in spite of her fear. "Jack! Are you..."
Unable to help himself, he laughed. He laughed until he cried, and then he just cried. Feeling Erica take him in her arms the way he had done for her, he cried like never in his life. The pain and anguish of a lifetime poured out through his eyes, and he held on to her for dear life.
After it was his turn to be emotionally spent, he wiped his eyes and laughed at the idiocy of the situation. "Sorry! I know you want me to be serious. It's just... I feel ridiculous! A grown man, a Marine, bawling like a baby!"
She smiled at him and caressed his cheek, taking her turn to wipe away his tears. "I don't think it's silly, Jack! I think it's beautiful!" She sat on the floor with him until he regained his composure. "You alright now, love?"
Nodding, Jack stood up, helping her to stand next to him. "Well, now that that's out of the way." He gestured toward the bed and picked up the chair, resuming his seat. "You asked me a question, if I ever felt the way you do. Not until today." he admitted. Seeing her disappointment, he held up his hand. "It had nothing to do with you, Buttons! Not your age, your beauty, not anything you could have done. I swear!"
Seeing he was being completely serious, she just nodded and accepted his answer at face value and waited for him to explain.
"It was Rich." he sighed. "He's why I couldn't see you. It's not his fault, but you were his sister and, to guys anyway, that means 'Hands off! This isn't a girl, this is a sister!' Do you understand? It's not even something we think about. It's just something we do, instinctually, I guess. There was nothing you could have done or not done to make me see it!"
"I could have told you I loved you to your face." Erica pointed out guiltily, looking at her lap. Looking up at him, she nearly started crying again. "Then you would have known, but I was too scared! Too afraid you'd reject me because I... I was just a little girl to you!"
"Hey!" Jack comforted. "It's alright!" He sighed and tried to explain. "Do you remember when I told you I had to get hurt? That I needed it? And you didn't understand why?"
Erica nodded, looking up at him.
"Do you understand now?"
She thought seriously for a moment, trying to justify the pain he'd endured and why it was needed. Her mind rebelled at the idea, wanting to spare him every pain of his life. "No!"
"You love me, right? Just as I am? Good and bad, strength and faults, right?" Seeing her nod enthusiastically, he continued. "I wouldn't be me, the person you love, if it weren't for those things! Would you still love someone who looked like me, but wasn't me?"
"No!" Erica cried. "I don't love you for the way you look! I love you for who you are! The man..." Her own reply finally brought understanding of what it was he'd been trying to tell her. She paused, unable to formulate the words she needed to say. Slowly she looked at him with new eyes, and smiled. "I'm a foolish little girl sometimes, Jack!" she admitted.
Standing up, Jack pulled her to her feet, the two embracing where they stood. "I wouldn't change a thing in my life, Buttons! Because of this moment, right here, right now! Being able to hold you, touch you, kiss you..." He pulled back to look her in her eyes. "...to love you? It's worth all the pain, sadness, loneliness, and heartache of a hundred lifetimes!" He pulled her close to him and kissed her. "I love you, Buttons!" he said with a smile. "Is that enough?"
Erica nodded through tears of joy. "Yes, Jack! It's enough!" Pulling him into another passionate kiss, they heard yelling and horns from below.
When their kiss ended, Jack smiled at her. "Happy New Year, Buttons!"
"Happy New Year, Jack!" she replied through her own smile.
Kissing slowly and tenderly once more, the two reveled in the moment of the New Year before parting. Hearing the crowd below quiet down, the two sat back down together to talk.
"So, you say you've always loved me?" Jack asked incredulously.
Erica nodded. "I have a confession to make. I've had a crush on you since I was ten!"
"Who me?" Jack laughed. "I don't think I'll ever get tired of hearing that!"
"Then I'll remind you of it often!" she laughed back at him. "Something to hold over your head when we're fighting about money or kids!"
"Kids!" Jack yelped. "When did we have kids?"
Slapping his arm playfully, Erica pursed her lips. "When we do! Someday, maybe. I don't know, maybe you've changed in six years! Maybe I won't want to spend the rest of my life with you now!" Her humor dying down, she looked at him. "Seriously though, I... I want to take it slow. I think we should get to know one another all over again, as we are now."
"I think that's prudent." Jack nodded. "After all, I need to stop thinking of you as just Buttons and start thinking of you as a woman." His eyes drifted over her body. "A really, really, gorgeous woman!"
Blushing, Erica looked away. "Jeez, Jack! You're too much, sometimes!"
"I'm serious!" he defended his opinion. "I think you're just about the most beautiful woman..." He sighed and paused for effect. "...on the second floor!"
Grabbing a pillow, Erica smacked him with it playfully. "You're gonna pay for that someday!" she threatened.
Jack took hold the pillow and pulled her over to him with it slowly. "I want another kiss!" he said mater-of-factly. "It'll help me get used to seeing you as a woman! Honest! It's strictly for my own self-improvement!"
"Oh?" she asked. "What'll you give me for it?"
"The same in return!" he replied.
Moving closer, Erica could feel his breath on her lips, making the hunger inside her rise once more. She pushed forward into him, wrapping her arms around him and relishing the feel of his lips and tongue against hers. She found her hands clinging to him, groping and grasping, trying desperately to pull him tighter into her. Her lithe legs wrapped around his waist as she moved to sit on his lap, their lips never separating for a moment. With her arms wrapped around his neck, she pulled their bodies tightly against each other, a moan of need escaping.
They stayed like that for a time unknown to either of them, lost in one long moment that never seemed to end. Finally, with the hunger abated once more, she stopped and could only pant in a further need that she knew she wasn't ready for. "Jack?" she gasped. "I... I need to stop! Please?"
Groaning with unfulfilled desire, his love for her outweighed his need for her, and he slowed his kisses just as they'd begun trailing down her neck to stop just below the collarbone. "OK." he relented, making his body just be satisfied with holding her.
After a few ragged breaths, Erica could think again. Lifting Jack's chin up, she looked him in the eyes with a wild desperation. "Make no mistake, Jack! I want you! All of you! Right now!" She smiled and kissed his cheek before turning shy. "But... um... there's something... something I need to tell you. I... I've loved you since before... I mean, I never could..." She tried to make the words come out, but she just couldn't find them.
Slowly, Jack realized what she was saying. "Oh! You mean, you mean you've never..." It dawned on him then just how deep and powerful Erica's love for him had burned. "Never?"
She shyly shook her head. "I've never even kissed a boy before tonight! I... I couldn't! I never gave up hoping that..." She looked into his eyes. "I only ever wanted you, Jack! No one else! Ever!"
Jack cleared his throat. "Well, alright then. We'll..."
"...take it slowly!" they said together, ending in laughter.
Pulling herself up off his lap, Erica flopped back on the bed even as her body screamed for more. "I'm sorry if I... well... If it's any consolation, you got me... um..."
Looking at her, Jack waggled his eyebrows. "Ready for beddy?"
Erica burst out laughing. "God, Jack! You are perfect! Don't ever change!"
"I'll try, but I remember my old man, Buttons. Don't get too attached to this hair!" he joked, making them both laugh uncontrollably.
Their mirth slowing, Erica moved off the bed and held out a hand to him. "Talk done! Now fun!" she giggled, pulling him to his feet. Passing a mirror on the way to the door, Erica stopped and gasped. "My God, Jack! I look like shit!" Quickly, she opened her purse and took out some cotton swabs and started removing mascara from under her eyes and off of her cheeks. "How can you even look at me like this?"
Coming up behind her, he put his hands on her waist and kissed her head while looking at her in the mirror. "You look beautiful to me."
Grimacing, Erica nudged an elbow into his ribs, causing him to fade back defensively. "That's for lying! It's a beautiful lie, but if I look this bad, I want you to tell me!"
"OK, Buttons!" Jack chuckled. "I'll tell you if you look fat in those jeans!"
She looked down at her hips in the mirror. "Do I?"
"God, no!" Jack yelled. "Good Lord, woman! Don't you eat?"
After Erica finished touching up, she turned to Jack and smiled. "There! Now how do I look?"
Looking at her earnestly, he surveyed her face for flaws. "You have a speck of something black in the corner of your left eye." he pointed out.
Turning and looking in the mirror, she retrieved another swab and cleaned it out. "Mascara." she noted. Turning back she asked, "Better?"
Kissing her quickly and gently, he smiled. "Perfect!"
Coming out of the bedroom door, they both saw Richard and Heather sitting glumly at the top of the stairs.
Waving a hand at them, Jack couldn't resist. "Look! Chaperones! I didn't think college parties had those anymore!" he said loud enough that the two could easily hear him. When Richard stood up and walked over to them, he smiled at his perturbed best friend. "Don't you know parties are for having fun, Rich? You're killing Heather's good time!"
"Jack!" Richard wanted to throttle him. "What the hell have you two been doing in there!? You were in there for over two hours!"
Erica tried to get between the two. "Richie! It's none of your business what we were doing! Get away from him!"
"Buttons?" Jack said softly. "Will you please let your brother and I handle this like men?"
She turned to him. "You are not going to fight over this!" she insisted.
"No one said anything about fighting, Buttons." Jack said calmly. Looking Richard directly in the eyes, he nodded. "We just need to talk."
"We'll see what needs doing, Jack!" Richard spat. "So let's have it then! Got anything to say for yourself, funny man?"
Closing his eyes, Jack exhaled. Opening them again, he once more stared Richard down from below. "Rich? Do you know me at all? Have you ever known me to be anything but civil to a lady, even alone?"
Feeling his outrage start to shrink like an ice cube in a microwave, Richard was at a loss. "Um... well, no..." Re-gathering the anger he felt was justified, he glared back at the smaller man. "...but there's always a first time, Jack!"
Unfazed, Jack took a breath. "We talked, Rich. And cried. Both of us."
The anger he felt was suddenly replaced with confusion. "Huh?" Turning around to face the two ladies, he pushed open the door to the bedroom Jack and Erica had just come from and shoved Jack back in. "We'll be a few!" he said to them, following Jack in and slamming the door behind him. Scanning the room for evidence of anything untoward, when he found none he turned at last to his best friend. "Jack!? What the hell goes on?" His face turning ashen, he asked, "Did something happen to Mom or Dad?"
"No! No! Nothing like that!" Jack said, waving his arms dismissively. "It's Buttons!"
"What's wrong with Erica!?" he demanded, closing with him, ready to wring the truth out of him, if needed.
"Nothing's wrong with her, Rich!" Jack sighed happily. "She's just in love with me!"
Richard felt numb as his heart skipped a beat. "She's what?"
Pacing the room away from Richard, Jack flung his hands up in confusion. "She's in love with me, Rich! And this isn't a new thing, either!" He turned and faced his oldest friend. "Rich, she's been in love with me for years! Since before we left home! Since before Wendy! Since... Hell, according to her, since the day we met!" He stopped, letting his arms fall to his sides. "Well, not since the day we met, I mean the day you and I met, that was a full day before Buttons and I even knew..."
"Jack!" Richard barked.
"What do you want, Rich? It's still me! Still Jack! Same guy!"
"I want you to be serious for a minute, damn it!" he shouted. He looked at Jack with murder in his eyes. "Jack, did you ever..." his voice trailed off menacingly.
Jack's eyes bulged at the unspoken accusation. "Rich! No! God, no! That's... What the hell's the matter with you! Jesus! She was a little girl!"
"Well, she got it in her head to like you somehow, Jack!"
"Love, Rich!" he forcefully corrected Richard. "Not like, love! She loves me! She loves me! She loves me! No matter how you say it, it keeps coming out the same!" He lowered his voice before finishing his thought. "Wonderful."
Richard's anger broke under the strain of Jack's re-spoken words.
"Rich, she's not a little girl." Jack pointed out. "She's a grown woman, and she loves me." he laughed.
"How long have you known?" Richard asked seriously.
Jack checked his watch. "Uh... pfft! About two hours. Why? You wanna make an anniversary of it?"
"Jack!"
"Sorry!" he held his hands up defensively.
Richard forced himself to be calm. "So you had no idea about this before tonight?" Seeing Jack shake his head seriously, Richard almost collapsed as he sat on the bed. "Shit!"
"Now what!" Jack asked defensively. "I didn't do anything!"
"Not you, ya jarhead!" Richard spat back. "What are we gonna do about this? How can we make her snap out of it?"
"It's not a hypnotic trance, Rich!" Jack retorted. "She's in love!" He braced himself as he said the rest. "And I don't want her to stop."
Richard looked at Jack as though he'd gone mad. "What? Are you nuts? We have to fix this! You're..."
"I'm what, Rich!" Jack snapped at him, stepping forward. "What? Unlovable? Unworthy? Too low a station for your sister? What, is it because Mom and I were so poor we could never afford a nice house? Or a car? Or cable TV? Is that it?" He lowered his voice as he looked at the shocked expression on Richard's face. Sighing, he parted his hands and dropped them down to his sides again. "Rich, don't I deserve to be loved, too?"
He hung his head, ashamed of what Jack had stopped him from thoughtlessly saying. Shaking his head, he bit his lower lip and sighed. "Jack, this can't work. You and Mom hate each other!"
"Last I checked, Erica's an adult and this is almost the twenty-first century." Jack stated simply. "She doesn't need anyone's permission to love me." He paused briefly before letting the other shoe drop. "And I don't need anyone's permission for me to love her back."
Richard looked up at him perplexedly. "How can you love her, Jack?" he asked. "She..."
"How can I not, Rich!" Jack shouted. "I've known her most my life! She's too wonderful not to fall in love with! I'm surprised she doesn't have a hundred broken hearts pining for her!"
"But she's my sister, Jack!"
"And I love her!" he shot back.
Silence sat between them like a thick blanket. Finally, Jack turned away from his best friend. "Rich, we're not asking your permission. We don't have to. We don't need anyone's! Not your mother's, your father's, yours, Heather's, Brooke's... anyone's!" He turned and faced his greatest friend and protector. "But I would like your understanding. It's not like we're gonna go out and get married next month, Rich! She wants to take it slow, and so do I. We need to... to find each other. We've been apart six years!"
"How long have you been in love with her?" he asked quietly.
"I've loved her for years, Rich. She's my miracle girl! My Buttons! It's not the way she loved me, but the way I love you, ya' jarhead!"
"So, how long have you been in love with her?" he asked more directly.
"Since the moment I knew who Brooke's mystery guest was, Rich. That the beautiful woman who came as my 'not a blind date' was my Buttons!"
Richard chuckled at the memory of setting up his mother as his Prom 'not a blind date'. "Nice callback, leatherneck!"
"Dillweed!"
"Seabag!"
"Woah! Low blow! That's a penalty! One more and you're disqualified!"
Richard laughed low and slow. "Look, Jack. I... I'm sorry, alright? You're right. You do deserve to be loved. And if Erica... well... loves you, then... then that's just the way it is."
"Well!" he scoffed. "Why don't you make sound like she's just been stricken with some disease or something, Rich!"
"No! I didn't..." he stopped as Jack started to laugh. "Oh, you son of a..."
Running from the room laughing, Jack pulled the door closed behind him, holding it shut. While Richard tried to pull it open, Jack looked over toward Heather, Brooke, and Erica who were standing nearby and looking stunned. "Don't worry! Everything's fine!" he assured them.
"What'd you say that set him off?" Brooke asked as Erica ran up to him.
Her eyes growing wide at the memory of just how intimate they'd almost gotten, Erica whispered, "Did you tell him what we almost did in there?
"Nope!" Jack said, straining to hold the door. "Just made a smart ass remark is all!" Quickly letting go of the knob, Richard tumbled backwards into the room as the door flew open.
Heather took up a place in the doorway, blocking Richard's mad dash out to the hallway to clobber Jack. As he came running up, she cleared her throat.
"What?" he asked, breathing heavily and wanting desperately to get to Jack.
"I was wondering if it was as good for you as it apparently was for Jack!" she asked nonchalantly. "He certainly came out all smiles!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
CAUTION - Sex / Sexual Scenes
CAUTION - Highly Emotional Content
--
Erica once told me that the night she and Jack talked upstairs was one of the most romantic experiences of her life. Sounds great when you say it, but if you think about it you come to realize that the logical corollary to that is that it must have been all worse after that! Luckily for her, Jack was only getting started. Besides, Erica had a tendency to exaggerate! Jack told me that they talked, cried, kissed a few times, and professed their love for one another. That and a bunch of stuff about living in contentment with pain and such. Blah, blah, blah. Richard was a wreck. He hid it well, but I knew him better than anyone except Jack, even better than Heather. He was torn between wanting to see Jack happy against his protectiveness of Erica. I guess that means protecting her from ever growing up, having fun, sex, a marriage, children... etc. Men are idiots! The rest of New Years morning was uneventful, unless of course you count Jack's proposal to Erica, but then I'm pretty sure they both knew it was only Jack being Jack. I told you that story already, though. The next few weeks were hard on them. Jack had no Liberty and Erica was swamped with school. Richard and Heather had gotten to the 'comfortable' part of being a couple, so they were used to the separation. Plus, they were sleeping together, which took off a lot of the tension. Jack and Erica... well... Erica told me what they weren't doing. It got difficult for them to go slowly after only six weeks. Their needs pushed them father and faster than they'd planned to go, but sometimes you realize you gotta to take hold of life fast, and live it while you still have the chance.
---
Just as Jack closed the door to her apartment, Erica was on him. Wrapping her legs around his waist, she could feel the hunger inside smoldering like a fever as she showered him in kisses all over his face. "Jack!" she panted between kisses, "I know... I said... I wanted... to go... go slow... but..." She covered his mouth with hers as he tried to move towards the couch. "Jack! Please?" she mumbled against his lips.
Aching with desire, Jack didn't know how much longer he could put off the inevitable. "Erica!" He had to stop her or else he was going to lose control, and he knew it would end badly if he did. Returning her kisses, he was able to lower her down to the couch, their lips still searching for more pleasurable contact even as he did. Stepping back, he struggled for breath as he forced them to stop their passionate assault. Even being in top physical condition, her sensuous attack had left him with difficulty breathing.
Yearning for him badly, Erica wanted to cry. "Jack!" she whined. Tucking her knees up to her chest, she wrapped her arms around her legs. Rocking back and forth while Jack gasped, she lost control as tears began to flow.
Not being able to stand seeing her so distraught, Jack knelt on the floor in front of her. "Buttons? I... I don't think our original plan is going to work!" he stated, referring to the six-month 'getting to know you' time they'd agreed on, to be followed by whatever they felt comfortable with after that. It was to be discussed beforehand all neat and tidy. Unfortunately for their plans, their bodies craved more, and love is neither neat nor tidy.
She nodded, trying to stop her tears. "I know, Jack! It's just so hard! I never get to see you! It's been weeks! I can't stop thinking about you! I dream about you! I can't focus in class! I don't know what to do!" She buried her eyes in her knees, letting her jeans soak up her tears as she vented her frustration.
Knowing they were fighting a hopeless battle, Jack hung his head in defeat. They either had to take the next step, or never see each other again. Their hearts and bodies gave them little other choice. "Erica?" He looked at her longingly. "I... I want you to know, I love you more than life itself! I can't breathe without you near me! I... I want to make you happy, content..." He paused, taking a breath. "...pleasured."
His words nearly made her take him there in the living room. Controlling her need for him by only the smallest of margins, she let out a ragged breath. "God, do I want you, Jack! You have no idea!" She chucked a little. "OK, so maybe you have some idea!"
Closing her eyes and taking a long slow breath, she forced herself to calm down. When she opened them, she looked at him kneeling in front of her smiling sweetly; almost shyly. She moved to him slowly, uncurling her legs until her feet were on the floor by his knees. Helping him to stand as she did, she took him by the hands and led him to her bedroom.
He followed Erica helplessly into her room and stood numbly as she closed the door. Walking up to him slowly and carefully, as though too quick of a movement would scare him off, at last she stood in front of him. Her hands reached up and started undoing the buttons on his uniform blouse.
Slowly, she worked her way down until she reached his belt, her eyes never looking away from his returning gaze. Pulling his top up to free the last two buttons, she undid them just as slowly until she could push the shirt off his shoulders without more than the slightest touch, which she provided with a smile and listened as it rustled to the floor behind him.
"Erica..." he started to say, but her finger moved over his lips, staying his words. Her hands drifting down to his belt, she pulled the strap to loosen the buckle, letting the strap glide freely through and out. Not done, she started undoing his uniform trousers, unzipping them and letting them fall to the floor with a satisfying sigh.
Guiding him to her bed silently, not a word spoken nor a sound made until her bedsprings creaked with his weight, she stepped back slightly and began to unbutton her own blouse while he watched, almost frozen with a hunger for more. She removed her light green blouse, exposing her naked abdomen and leaving her lacy bra the only thing between Jack's eyes and her breasts. Undoing the buttons on her jeans, her smile seemed contented and peaceful. She knew exactly what she wanted, and this time nothing was going to stop her. When her jeans fell to the floor, she stepped out of them and her flats, leaving her almost completely bare to him.
Scanning the curve of her body, he tried to memorize every millimeter. When she lowered herself down to her knees, she at last pulled his shoes, socks, and trousers off, tossing each one over her shoulder with an almost wicked smile. Moving up, she sat on the bed beside him and reached for his T-shirt, letting her fingertips brush the flesh of his belly. Jack's eyes rolled back in his head, overcome with sensation. Slowly tugging it up his chest, she let her fingers drift gently along his sides, forcing a low moan from his lips.
Just as she started to push him backward to lie on her bed, Jack caught her hand; his breath ragged. "Erica!" he gasped. "I need you to stop for a just minute!" he begged. Trying to move his hand away, he wouldn't release it, moving around her wrist until their fingers were joined together. When his emotions slowly gave way to his thoughts, he looked at her desperately. "I... I don't want you to stop..." he began.
"Then don't stop me." she interrupted. Trying to untangle her hand from his, she found he wouldn't let go. "Jack..."
"Buttons, please!" he begged. "I... I need to tell you something, first! I... I've never... I mean, I don't really know what I'm doing." Just as she couldn't say the words on New Years Eve regarding their passionate reunion, he too was having difficulty finding the same ones. He'd said enough, though.
Leaning back, she regarded him confusedly. "But... Didn't you and Wendy..."
He shook his head as a smile crept over his lips. "The only thing Ox ever got right in his entire life!"
Looking at him in astonishment, she couldn't help but join in his mirth after a moment. Soon the two were rolling on the bed, both in just their underwear, holding their stomachs from laughing so hard. Eventually, as their giggles faded, they lay next to each other looking into each other's eyes.
Jack reached out a hand and watched as Erica intertwined her fingers with his. Their delicate touch seemed to satisfy more need than anything else they could have been doing at that moment. Gone was the hunger from both of them, their love for each other having taken its place.
"Jack?" she smiled. "Tonight. Now, if you'll let me. I want you." she looked at him expectantly. "Do you still want me?"
He sighed, lost in the green of her eyes. "Yeah. I do."
She moved gently, rolling over his body and letting her bare stomach press into his. Her lips found his and they kissed delicately, slowly, and lovingly as their hands roamed freely over each other.
Rising up, Erica's legs straddled his hips as she reached around behind her back with one hand, unclasping her bra. "I love you, Jack." she whispered. "I have a confession to make. I've had a crush on you since I was ten!"
"Who me?" he replied routinely with a smile.
She giggled as she slipped her arms free. "Just remember who loved who first!" she teased, the only thing holding her bra in place being her free hand. Shyly, she let it slip down until she finally dropped it to the floor. Leaning forward, she lowered her bare bosom to his nearly hairless chest, pressing her open mouth to his once more. She moaned with pleasure as he ran his fingertips along the side of her naked breasts.
Slowly, she slid her body upward until she was straddling his stomach, and gasped when the tip of his tongue flicked over her taut nipple. Now certain she was ready, Erica slipped a hand down and hooked a thumb into Jack's boxers, pushing them lower until she could grab them with the toes of her right foot; stretching her leg out and dragging them down his legs until they slipped off his feet.
Feeling Erica remove his last bit of clothing, Jack felt a burning need in him to see her lost in pleasure. Rolling them both over so that she was below him, he supported his thin but athletic form on his arms as he kissed his way down her body. Reveling in her lusciously sensuous movements, every kiss seemed to make her squirm with pleasure. He kissed lower and lower until he at last came to her own final garment. Feeling her hips lift off the bed, Jack slowly slid the panties down her thighs, kissing the skin below them as if preparing it for their passage.
When at last the two were completely bare to one another, Jack slid up her legs, using his hands to caress the smoothness of them and causing her to part them on instinct. In no hurry toward his own fulfillment, and desperate to make her happy, he leaned down and began kissing the inside of her thighs, working his way slowly toward the place the two limbs joined.
Erica's breath became ragged and heavy, her head thrown backward against her pillow as she arched her back. When Jack stopped just before reaching the center of her desire, she looked down at him wantonly.
"It... it's not too late to stop." Jack pointed out, offering more than wanting.
Shaking her head, her breath came rapid and deep until a smile crept over her lips. "You do, so help me God Jack, I'll throw you down and rape you!"
They laughed together, both reveling in each other's passionate desire for one another.
Slowing his chuckles, Jack looked up Erica's body as it lay before him and into her eyes. "I love you." he said softly, his breath just barely reaching her highly sensitive skin and making her tremble.
"I... I love you, Jack!" she panted. "Please?" she moaned beggingly.
Certain of her desire, he lowered his open mouth until it covered the lips of her womanhood and made her gasp, her entire body tensing up in desperate need. His tongue pressing forward, she felt it enter her, making her eyes snap open widely as she stopped being able to even breathe. After nearly a decade of fantasy, the reality was so intense that her mind almost couldn't handle it. She'd utterly underestimated the effect actually having him touch and taste her would have on her body as she convulsed.
"Jack!?" she almost screamed as her first orgasm ripped through her body at so simple an intimacy, her pent-up need breaking through every part of her as her hands gripped the back of his head and her legs wrapped around his back. She forced her mouth closed, screaming through her nose in an effort to hide the enormity of the pleasure from her neighbors.
Sitting perfectly still, he looked up her naked body in awe of her pleasure. Even as she convulsed, he could feel the muscles of her entire body tense and contract, the flesh of her sensitive womanhood pulsing against his tongue and her moisture wetting it further as she continued to grip him in place. Her loss of control almost scared him, it was so powerful.
When at last her first wave of pleasure passed and her limbs started to relax, he pulled his mouth away from her. "Are... are you OK?" he asked, concern making his voice shake.
"I... I'm fine, Jack!" Erica managed after a moment as her body vibrated with the pleasure coursing through her. "Please... please don't stop!"
Returning to his ministrations, he explored her. Using his tongue and fingers, he learned every part of her, memorizing every inch of her as though it was the most important thing in his life to know. When his fingertip brushed the nub of her pleasure, her sudden gasp made him pull back. "Did... did I hurt you?" he asked concernedly.
She shook her head vigorously. "N-no! Th-that was... Ungh!" Her words left her as his tongue took the place of his fingertip, sending waves of ecstasy through her and threatening to push her rapidly to climax once more. Guttural sounds escaped her lips as his tongue slowly circled her pleasure, rocketing her skyward in an ever-expanding burst of bliss. She screamed once more, this time incapable of holding back her vocalizations as the most powerful orgasm of her young life tore her mind apart. No longer caring who heard, for several minutes she only cared about Jack and the ultimate pleasure he was giving her. Nothing else in the entire world mattered at that moment.
Her mind returning to her, after Jack slowly ended their first frenzied time as one, she covered her mouth with a hand as she started to laugh. A languid feeling washed over her while her body slowly shook from her giggle fit. Moving her hand up to cover her eyes, a smile shone across her entire face.
"What's so funny?" Jack asked confused.
Erica shook her head, her hand still over her eyes. "Me! That's what!" she answered in a hushed throaty voice between giggles. "My God, Jack! That was... that was the most intense experience of my life!" She tried to move, to pull him up to her, but her body was as weak as a newborn kitten and she could barely move her limbs. "Come here, Jack!" she purred.
Moving up alongside her naked form, one hand propped his head up while the other rested on her belly. Her giggles still shaking her, he couldn't help himself. "You know, I've made people laugh before, but this is humiliating!"
His humor only intensified her giggles into fits of full laughter as her love for him and who he was poured through her. She rolled over to push him flat on his back, snuggling up next to him and laying her head on his chest as she continued to laugh. "I... I'm sorry, love!" she giggled. "I just... I can't help it! You make me so happy it... it just comes bubbling out like this! I love you so much!"
Running his fingers through her soft red hair, he smiled. "A guy could get a complex, ya' know! I thought women were all hot and wanton afterwards, not chuckling like they just got done watching 'Your Show of Shows'!"
Continuing to giggle, she enjoyed the feel of her skin against his. "I have no idea what that is, Jack! I love that about you!"
"Sid Caesar? Imogene Coca? No?" he inquired. "Oh, well. I guess I'll have to show you sometime. You have a lot of catching up to do!" He wrapped his arms around her, holding her until her laughter was spent.
At last, she was able to stop her guffaws and looked up at him libidinously. "What about you, love?"
"Me?" Jack shrugged. "I've seen 'Show of Shows'!"
She lightly slapped him on the chest. "No, you goofball! You know what I mean!" She slowly slid her body against his sensually and started running her fingers down his side.
His breath caught as she touched him, raising gooseflesh everywhere her fingers roamed. "Oh." he moaned. "Y-you mean..." his voice trailed off as she moved on top of him, straddling his belly. "Y-you know, you don't h-have to...."
"I know I don't." Erica shook her head slowly. "I want to, Jack. No, I need to! I need to make you feel just as good as you just made me feel!" Lowering down until their lips met once more, kissing him slowly and seductively, she moved her hips toward his. When she felt his manhood press between her legs, it raised a need in her unlike any she'd ever felt before, the need to feel him inside her seeming to overwhelm her senses. She raised her hips slightly, feeling him press against the outside of her wetness. Ever so slowly, she pushed down, relishing the feeling as he slipped inside her, forcing a moan to escape her lips as she closed her eyes.
Gasping as he felt it, Jack's eyes went wide and his hands found her hips all on their own, a desire burning in him to push her more forcefully onto him. Not wanting to rush her or force it though, he fought the urge and just let his hands follow her hips slowly down, the warmth and wetness of her on him threatening to send him over the edge at any moment. "Oh God, Erica! You... You're incredible!"
When he felt their hips meet in conjoined ecstasy, his eyes fluttered and his grip on her hips strengthened, pulling them tightly together. They sat there like that, unmoving, for what seemed to be an eternity. Erica looked down at him with eyes wide and her lovely face contorted into an expression of almost pain.
"Does... does it hurt?" he asked concernedly.
"N-No." she stammered. "Well... o-only a little." She smiled at him, their faces only inches apart. "It mostly just feels wonderful!" Slowly, she began to rock. Small movements, both patient and deliberate, she loved how her slightest move would send him into absolute fits of pleasure. Soon, much sooner than she would have liked, she saw his eyes tighten.
"E-Erica! I... I'm..." he mumbled.
Slipping a hand under his head, she ran her fingers through his short-cropped hair. "Good! I want you to, love. Take your pleasure from me!" Hearing her words sent him flying, his body trembling as she gripped his hips with her legs; her feet wrapping around his knees to pin her in place on top of him. Pulling him into a kiss, she felt his pleasure explode in her, Erica gripping against him and holding him tightly to her as they finally consummated their love for one another.
His breath rapid and shallow, he pulled slightly away from her lips as his desire peaked. "I... I love you, Erica!"
She lay on him as his body slowly calmed from their lovemaking. Feeling his entire body grow languid against hers, his hands slipping off her hips to flop lifelessly against her bed, but his pleasure still buried inside her, she looked him in the eyes once more, smiled, and said, "Yes!"
Laughing, he knew at last what she must have felt earlier, the giddiness of love and passion commingled. Slowly comprehending that she'd spoken, his eyes tightened in confusion. "Huh? Yes, what?"
"Yes, I'll marry you!" she replied. "You've only asked me five times. Did you want to make it six?"
He looked at her in awe. "I thought you wanted to wait! We've only been dating a month and a half, I thought you wanted to go slow to be sure?"
"Oh, I'm sure!" she smiled. "I knew before I saw you again!" She leaned down and whispered seductively in his ear. "I just didn't want to scare you away! I was going slow for your benefit, love!" She pulled slightly back from him so she could look at his whole face. "I never doubted for a second that you're the one man in this entire world meant for me! Seeing you again just meant I didn't have to wait anymore! I love you, Jack! I've always loved you, and I want to spend the rest of my life loving you and making you happy!"
"You are... amazing, Buttons!" he looked up at her in awe. "I don't think I could imagine life without you now!" His hands reached up and pulled her face close to his. "I love you, too... and I'm going to spend the rest of my life doing whatever it takes to deserve the love you have for me." He pulled her into a loving kiss, their bodies still joined together.
An hour later, they sat across from one another eating the spaghetti dinner that Erica had prepared before Jack arrived for their Valentines Day meal. The holiday was actually two days earlier, but they'd had to wait until that Friday to celebrate it. She smiled and giggled at seemingly nothing as they ate wordlessly.
"What's so funny?" Jack asked before taking another bite. "Do I have sauce on my nose or something?"
"No!" she giggled as she looked away from him embarrassedly. She stared at the candles that lighted their meal. "I was just thinking about how different tonight went from the way I planned it. We were supposed to have dinner, a little wine afterwards, and then I was going to drag you into the bedroom and have my way with you, even if I had to club you over the head!"
Jack nodded as he finished a bite. "Ug! No, me club you! Drag you!" he grunted. "Don't you know how these things are supposed to work, Buttons?"
His reply only made her laugh harder. After settling herself back down, she looked across her small table at him lovingly. "So, we still have the rest of the weekend before you have to head back. What would you like to do with it?" she asked seductively.
"I have a feeling I know what you would like to do with it!" he commented knowingly. "Don't get me wrong, I'd love to see the second reel, but I think we should talk."
Nervous that she'd jumped the gun and scared him away, she took a large drink from her wineglass. "Alright. Anything in particular?"
Shrugging, Jack looked over at her. "Well, there's the fact that you accepted my proposal. Understand, I'm elated that you did, but don't you think we'll need a new plan, now? The old one was kinda ripped to shreds earlier when you were clawing at my back!"
She chuckled as relief washed over her. "Well yeah, I guess we do need to figure things out! I have a year and a half of school left, but you only have four more months of service, right?" Seeing him nod through a bite, she took another drink and sighed. "Can you move in here while you finish up?"
"Only after we're married." Jack informed her, leaning back from his empty plate. "It's a violation of the UCMJ to cohabitate with a member of the opposite sex outside of marriage. I can't even leave a pair of socks here!"
"Well then, there's only one thing we can do." she sighed in a defeated tone. "We're just going to have to get married right away!"
He laughed a deep full laugh. "Oh, God! Rich is so going to kill me! I'm a dead man!"
Standing up, Erica walked around the table. Sitting on his lap, she wrapped her arms around him. "He touches you? He dies!"
"So how do you want to do this, then?" he asked, wrapping his arms around her waist. "Justice of the Peace? A church wedding will take time, but I want you to have your dream come true. I'm told it's something a girl imagines her whole life and I don't want to deny you anything!"
"Jack, darling. I have everything that I ever dreamed of right here!" she said before she kissed him slowly and lovingly. "Whatever you want to do is fine with me! I just want to be Mrs. Jack Dunning for the rest of my life!"
"OK. You want me to plan it then? I will, if that's what you want, Buttons."
Running her fingers through his close-cropped hair, she smiled contentedly. "Yeah! I think I'd like that!" Running her fingers down the side of his face and neck until her hand came to his chest, she pressed the palm of her hand against him. Pushing herself up, she captured his hand as it slipped off her waist and pulled him to his feet. Walking backward as she looked him lustily in his eyes, she led him once more toward her bedroom. "In the mean time love, I think I'm ready for a second course of the meal that you brought!"
"Well, if your reaction earlier was any measure, it certainly was a happy meal!" Their humorous journey to the bedroom was halted when the phone rang. He looked at Erica longingly and sighed as he started to pull away from her towards it.
"Jack! Let the machine get it! Come with me!" she begged.
"Can't, Buttons." he groaned. "I'm just on Liberty and I left your number at the base for a contact. Someone has to answer!" He released her hand and jogged over to the phone, picking it up before the answering machine did. "Hargrave residence. Dunning."
"Jack? It's Rich. I... I have some bad news for you."
Gritting his teeth, Jack punched the wall lightly. "Let me guess... Liberty's canceled?" he presumed. He saw Erica's shoulders slump and a pout cross her disappointed face.
"No, it's not that, Jack. We... we got a call from the home where your Mom lives." Richard had a hard time finishing the message.
"Rich? What's wrong? Is she OK?" Jack's mind raced with the possibilities; that she'd gotten lost, she'd run away, she fell and broke a bone...
"She... uh... she's in a coma, Jack. She won't wake up."
Seeing Jack drop the phone, Erica ran to him, grabbing him as he collapsed to the floor. "What is it, Jack? What's wrong?" Hearing her brother shouting from the dropped receiver, picking it up, she answered for him. "Richie?"
"Erica! It's Jack's mom. She's in a coma. She's... she's not expected to wake up. You need to get him back here right away so he can put in for Emergency Leave. The hospital told me she's not expected to survive the weekend."
"I'll get him there, Richie! Love you!" she said, hanging up the phone and hugging Jack as tight as she could. "Oh, Jack! I'm so sorry! I... I need to get you to the base right away! You can get Emergency Leave, and then we'll get a plane back to Pittsburgh. We need to hurry, Jack!"
Only numbly aware of his surroundings, he responded idly. "Emergency Leave. Right." His thoughts suddenly rushing back to him as the shock wore off, he looked at Erica. "We'll get a plane?"
"Of course!" she stated, heading to her room to pack. "I'm going with you! You don't think for one minute I'd let you do this alone do you?"
"Thanks." he smiled at her. "I... I think I may need you there, Buttons."
Four hours later, the two were taking off on a non-stop flight to Pittsburgh International. By seven the next morning, they were in a rental car driving towards Mary's nursing home. Jogging into the lobby half an hour later, they were greeted by one of the nurses.
"I'm sorry, visiting hours don't begin until..."
"I... I'm Jack Dunning!" he interrupted her. "Mary... Mary Dunning's son! This is my fiancée, Erica. We came as soon as we could!"
She nodded in understanding. "I see. Well, her condition is unchanged. She's not expected to wake up. You... you can go see her if you like. I'm sorry."
Jack and Erica walked somberly to her room. Entering slowly, he saw her lying in a hospital bed, monitors next to her showing that she was still alive. Creeping quietly into the room, Erica holding his hand, he carefully moved up to her bedside. "Mom? It's Jack. I came to see you. You've got the place buzzing! They all think... well... I know what you're going through!" He knelt down next to her bed, taking her frail fingers in his free hand.
"I... I have some news, Mom! You remember Erica? Rich's sister? We're getting married, Mom!" He squeezed her fingers gently, trying to coax a response from her, but none came. "She loves me, Mom! Always has, it seems!" He looked back at Erica only to see tears streaking down her face. He stood and held Erica as she cried into his shoulder, her heart breaking for Jack's sake once again.
When at last Erica stopped crying, regaining her composure, Jack returned to his mother. "Mom! I know you can hear me!" he almost shouted, not quite loud enough to be a disturbance. "Look, just... just follow my voice, Mom! You have to want to come back! You can't will it, you have to want it! Come on, Mom!" He was near to tears and heard Erica begin sobbing behind him again while he watched his mother for any sign, any indication of her return. When none came, he pulled up a chair. "Alright, then. I'll talk."
He talked for hours. He talked to her about his work, about Erica, about their plans, about Richard, about Brooke, about Heather; he talked until he ran out of things to talk about. Then he just started remembering things, telling her stories about when he and Richard were young and the things they'd gotten away with without her ever knowing. He talked the entire day. When Erica left to get lunch, he talked. He even talked while they ate, never stopping. He kept at it until the sun was going down and still he talked. He knew if he kept it up long enough she could find his voice and return to the land of the living. He just wanted one more moment.
When the nurse came to tell them they'd have to leave in five minutes at the end of visiting hours, he told the nurse he wasn't leaving, that he was staying with her until the end or she woke up, whichever came first. When the nurse called security, he demanded to speak to the facility administrator, insisting on staying with his mother and not even leaving to go talk to him until Erica finally spoke up.
"Jack? Go! Talk to him and get it straightened out. I'll stay and talk to her. I promise. I won't ever stop! Not for a second! Not until she wakes up or you tell me to stop!"
He looked at her with exhausted eyes, having been up for two days with only the short nap on the plane. "Alright. You promise?" Seeing her nod, he left with the security officer while the nurse stood by at the door as Erica turned to face his mother.
"She's not going to wake." the nurse explained. "He's just making it harder on himself."
"Jack knows what he's doing!" Erica defended him. "I'm staying and I'll talk all night if I have to!" She mumbled under her breath, "Why not? It worked before!" Walking over to Mary's bed, she started talking. She talked about Jack almost exclusively, how much she loved him, every memory she had of him, watching his successes and heartbreaks, and her own heartbreak at his leaving. She had just gotten to their wedding plans when she saw Mary's eyes move.
"Mary?" she asked hopefully. "Mary, it's Erica. Erica Hargrave! Richie's sister! Mary?"
"Jack?" Mary mumbled. "Where's Jack?" Her eyes were still closed, almost as if she were talking in her sleep.
Erica ran for the nurse. "She's waking up! Go get Jack! Now!" she shouted. Seeing the nurse nod in astonishment and head towards the administrator's office, Erica ran back to Mary's bed. "Mary? Mary, wake up! Jack's here! He's here to see you!"
She lolled her head over and opened her old and worn eyes, trying to focus on who was talking to her. "Who're you?" she asked groggily.
"I'm Erica!" she laughed. "Erica Hargrave, Mrs. Dunning! Richie's sister! Jack's here with me! He just stepped out for a few minutes! He'll be right back, OK? He's been with you all day!"
"Hargrave? Richard's sister? No! You can't be her! She's a little girl!"
Laughing through tears of joy and heartache, she nodded. "I'm all grown up now, Mrs. Dunning!"
"Grown up? Where... where am I? Where's Jack? I'm... I'm supposed to be getting ready. I... I'm taking him to the dance."
"He'll be here any minute, Mrs. Dunning! You... you look beautiful! He's going to have such a good time with you!"
Mary smiled. "I hope so! He... he's been hurt so bad! Poor Jack!" she laughed slightly. "Poor funny Jack! I hope he's not embarrassed by his... his old mom going with him!"
"He won't be, Mrs. Dunning! He's going to have so much fun! I... I have to admit, though. I'm pretty jealous of you! You see, I wanted Jack to take me to the dance!"
His mother looked at her hard. "You?" she asked incredulously. "That's right! You like my Jack."
She wiped the tears from her eyes. "No, Mrs. Dunning! I love your Jack! I always have! Ever since I was ten! I want to marry him!"
Mary's eyes cleared and Erica could see she'd subtly changed. "You're Erica Hargrave, all grown up." Becoming lucid and seeing Erica nod, she squinted. "You're still in love with my Jack? You want to marry him?"
"Yes, Ma'am!" she answered as she wiped another tear away. "I'd do anything to be Mrs. Jack Dunning! I've always loved him!"
"I know." Mary nodded. Waving Erica closer, she took the girl's hands in both of hers. "I've known you liked Jack a long time, dear. A woman can see it. I'm old dear. I think I might be going to see my Danny soon. Does... does Jack know you love him? He's never mentioned that he knew."
"I was afraid to tell him, Mrs. Dunning." Erica explained sadly. "I... because I was so much younger than he was, just a little girl, but now..."
"Now you're a woman, and you still love my Jack." she looked at her sternly. "You promise you'll take care of him? Stay with him always? Never hurt him? Never leave him?"
"I'd sooner die myself than live without him, Mrs. Dunning!" Erica sobbed.
"Good girl!" she cackled and patted her hand. "I knew you'd be good to him. He'll need all the love you can give! Dunning men can be that way! You'll see!" she laughed.
"I will, Mrs. Dunning!" she laughed along with her.
"And call me Mary or Mom! If you want to be my Jack's wife, we can be on a first name basis!"
"OK... Mom!" Erica laughed as Jack came running into the room.
"Mom! You're awake! Thank God!"
"Jack!" Mary growled. "Good! Get over here! Siddown, boy!" she barked.
Gulping, he slowed to a walk, crossed the room, sat next to his mother, and looked over at Erica. "Thank you! I don't know how you do it!"
"Do what?" Erica asked.
"My miracle girl! Something about your voice just helps!" he said with a half smile before they both started laughing together.
Seeing them laugh made Mary smile before her face turned serious. "Jack? I want to talk to you. Alone." She looked at Erica and the nurse. "If you two wouldn't mind?"
Erica practically had to drag the nurse from the room. "We'll be right outside if you need us." she promised.
Once the door was closed, Mary looked at Jack sternly. "That Hargrave girl. She loves you, Jack. Has for a very long time, you know. Do you love her?"
"Yeah, Mom! I do!" he nodded. "I asked her to marry me and she said yes!"
His mother smiled and clasped his hand in both of hers as her entire body seemed to relax with the release of decades of worry. "That's good! I told you that you just needed to look where you weren't expecting. I was thinking I'd never live to see you two get together. She promised me she'd take care of you, and I know she will. Love that lasts that long isn't going anywhere!" She looked sternly at him. "I didn't see a ring!"
Swallowing hard, Jack looked at the floor. "I... I couldn't afford one, Mom. I'll have one before we get married, though. I promise!"
Pulling at the ring surrounding the third finger of her left hand, when at last it came loose, she held it out to him in her wrinkled and barely functional fingers. "Here. Take this. Your father's ring is in the shoebox in my closet there. Take that, too. Sell 'em and get her a real pretty one!"
"Mom! I... I can't sell your and Dad's rings!" he almost cried.
Sighing, she sat back exhausted. "Then if she likes it, you can give it to her! Girl's got to have a ring or she won't feel properly engaged!" Beginning to feel drowsy, her mind started slipping back into the light that she'd drifted away from to come back here. "Jack? You know you're my gift, right? My precious gift from God? He blessed us, me and Danny, with you!"
Tears rolled down his cheeks. "Yes, Mom! I know! And I... I love you! When you see Dad, tell him... tell him I'm alive! I'm alive again! And I'll see to it Erica and I spend the rest of our days together alive, too!" Pausing a moment, something she'd said finally clicked. "Wait... Erica... you knew?"
"'Course I did!" Mary furrowed her brow. "I've got eyes, don't I? Every time I saw that girl I could see it, the way she watched you, hung on your every word. You'd have to be blind to have missed it!" Looking at him carefully, she grinned. "Didn't have a clue, did you baby?"
"Not one." he admitted bashfully.
Cackling, Mary looked at the ceiling. "Same as your father."
"Is it alright if she comes in again?"
"That's fine, dear." she said wearily. "I said what I needed."
Calling her back in, Erica came and stood next to Jack. "Mom?" she asked delicately.
Mary Dunning reached out a hand to her. When she felt the young, fresh fingers against hers, she guided Erica's hand to Jack's. "There!" she sighed contentedly, her words beginning to slur. "That's where it belongs! Where it's always belonged and always will! Don't you two ever forget it!"
"We won't, Mom!" Jack cried happily and sorrowfully, "Ever!" but she was already unconscious again, this time never to awake.
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
They buried Mary in the plot next to his father Danny there in Pittsburgh the following Saturday. It was just the two of them and Erica's father Frank there to say goodbye. They flew back the next day and Jack went to work on his big plan. Jack told me about his plan for the weekend of March twenty-third, ninety-six. He'd thought of everything, but needed Heather and me to help pull it off. So we spent four weeks between Jack burying his mom and the weekend of the twenty-third plotting, scheming, and basically having a blast planning the surprise of a lifetime for both Erica and Richard. Rich almost caught us once. He walked into the shop while I had stuff out he shouldn't see, but he could be a bit oblivious at times. He never had a clue! Rich once told me that he thought Jack didn't know how to plan ahead... that he seemed incapable of thinking more than five minutes into the future. He thought Jack was wasting his time and opportunities by not going to college on the government dime. We'd earned it, so why not take advantage? The truth is Jack did have a plan for what he wanted to do, he just had different priorities than Rich. He thought love and happiness, even in total poverty, were better than living in the lap of luxury... ...but Jack did know how to plan.
---
When Richard walked into Jack's room the Friday before he was scheduled for a week's leave, he looked at his friend with a puzzled expression. "You're up to something, Jack." he said accusingly as he leaned on Jack's locker.
He looked up at Richard as he changed into his Civies with his usual half-smile. "Yep. I am."
Surprised at his candor, Richard pushed off the locker. "You admit it? Come on, Jack! Tell me what's up! You've been acting weird for weeks! Weird for you, I mean, I know you lost Mary, and you seem to be alright with that, but you're definitely up to something! Usually you can't help but brag to me over and over about whatever it is you have scheming, but this last month you've been button-lips!"
Jack chuckled at Richard's choice of words, nearly having to actually bite his tongue trying to keep from turning it into a crude joke. "I ain't gonna tell ya', Rich! Might as well drop it!" He laced his shoes as he talked. "Hey, change of subject, I was thinking. What do you think about a road trip with the girls this weekend? Say run up to Reno and drop some cash?"
"I guess that could be fun." Richard shrugged, secretly glad of the suggestion as it meant he could keep an eye on Jack and Erica.
"Thanks, Rich! We still meeting the girls at Erica's place for dinner?"
"That's the plan." he replied, seeming to forget all about Jack's odd behavior. "I'll see you two out front at eighteen hundred, alright?"
Smiling, Jack nodded. "See you then!"
Just as Jack, Richard, and Brooke walked in the front door of Erica's apartment, they saw Heather and Erica sitting at her dining room table talking. Moving away from each other as the trio entered, Heather ran up to Richard and threw her arms around him, planting a quick kiss with a smile.
"Richard? Have I told you lately what a wonderful man you are?" she asked.
Suspicious, he nodded. "Whadda you want? Don't get me wrong, whatever it is, the answer's yes, but I'd kinda like to know!"
Heather wrapped her arms around his chest. "Jack called earlier and said we were headed up to Reno this weekend. Would you mind if we spent some time alone while we're there? Just the two of us? I was thinking maybe a romantic evening at one of the casinos? Dinner, dancing..." She looked in his eyes. "...a room for just the two of us?"
"Sounds great for us," he commented happily, "but what about Brooke, Jack, and Erica? What'll they do while we're off on our own?"
Brooke laughed as she walked by him, patting him on the shoulder. "Don't worry about us! You two have a good time! We'll figure something out!"
Shrugging, Richard smiled back at her. "Alright! If everyone's agreeable!" He planned to take a moment alone with Brooke to ask her to keep an eye on Jack and his sister and make sure they didn't get too carried away with each other. He took comfort in the idea that Reno was the divorce capital of the U.S. and that Las Vegas was where people got quickie marriages.
Jack spoke up as he wrapped an arm around Erica. "That's OK, I was kinda thinking we could spend some time up at Tahoe. They have this cruise and dinner around the lake that's supposed to be really great!"
"I think I should drive up in my own car." Brooke added. "That way when we split up, no one's left without a car. Sound good?"
The five sat in the living room, talking about their weekend plans and other things, Richard noticing that Heather and Erica occasionally would give each other knowing glances, as if the two of them knew something the rest didn't.
They headed off the next morning, Richard driving Jack, Heather, and Erica up in his station wagon, and Brooke in her car, packed to overflowing, full of all the things that they needed in order to carry out Jack's greatest gag of all time.
Richard followed the four of them through the casino. They'd checked into their hotel at a little after two in the afternoon taking two rooms; one for Jack and himself, the other for the girls. That surprised him. Not that they'd split rooms that way, but that he didn't have to suggest it... Jack had. He knew that Jack was conscious of Richard's feelings when it came to him and his sister being alone together, so he chalked it up to Jack trying to make him more at ease. It was fine, so long as Richard didn't know what they were doing. If Jack hadn't suggested the arrangement though, he would have insisted on it.
Still, he couldn't shake the funny feeling that there was something amiss. The way Heather had been behaving had bordered on schizophrenic; secretive and quick to anger one moment, sweet and romantic the next. Erica was even more perplexing. She seemed to know something he didn't about their plans, but at the same time kept asking Jack what they were doing as though she were lost.
"Hey, Rich?" Jack asked as they stopped at the top of an escalator leading down to the gaming floor. "Erica wanted to take a walk down by the river, but Brooke wants to play the tables. You wanna come with, or stay?"
"I did?" Erica asked with a puzzled look. "Oh! That's right! I did!"
Her brother had little interest in walking more than they already had. It had seemed they'd done little else for two hours. "I think I'd like to stick around and sit for a while." He turned to Heather. "You wanna join them, honey?"
Clutching his arm, Heather smiled up at him. "Not a chance! Where thou goest! I don't trust some of the ladies here not to see you looking fine and sharp and try to pick you up!" Heather had asked Richard to wear his dress blues as they walked the casino floor, saying it made her proud to be seen with him. That prompted Erica to insist the same of Jack, which the younger Marine griped endlessly about the entire time that they were getting ready for the evening.
While Erica and Jack walked off on their own, Erica's arm in his, Richard took comfort in knowing that they couldn't do much in public, kissing at the worst. Following Brooke down the escalator, they walked past the fake mine shaft in the middle of the gaming floor and sat at a Blackjack table, enjoying the 'free' drinks as they slowly lost money. He didn't mind as it was fun, and Brooke seemed to be having a good time and won almost as much as he lost.
After a while, he noticed Heather checking her watch repeatedly. Eventually, she sighed and tugged on his arm. "Richard! Can't we go do something else now? I feel like we got dressed up for nothing!" A smile slowly crept across her face. "Let's go dancing at that place Jack talked about!"
"Fine by me." Richard shrugged. "Brooke's the only one winning. Well, her and the casino!" He dropped a twenty-five dollar chip in front of the dealer as he got off the stool. "Thanks!" he told the casino worker.
Walking away from the tables, he felt Brooke tap him on the shoulder. "We should go down to the river and find Jack and Erica. If we go without them, Jack'll get pretty steamed! After all, he's the one that suggested the place!"
He nodded, starting to get uncomfortable with how long they'd been gone, anyway. "Good idea. They shouldn't be too hard to spot, a Marine in dress blues with a girl in a white dress? They looked like salt and pepper shakers!"
Walking out onto the city's main street, they saw people coming and going. Richard kept his eyes open looking for Jack and wasn't really watching where they were going, just following Brooke while Heather held his arm.
Passing over the tiny river that cut the town down the middle, he looked up the sidewalk that ran alongside it, but still couldn't see Jack or his sister. They turned down the river walk, crossed the street, then turned down a side street, finally turning again to start coming back the way they'd come. By the time Richard noticed to look, he'd become completely lost.
"Hey, where are we, anyway?"
Brooke turned her head and pointed forward. "The main street is ahead, right by that little white house on the corner. See?"
Coming alongside the building, he heard Jack before he'd seen him. "Rich!" Looking around, he saw Jack peering from around the corner of the house.
"Jack! We've been looking all over for you! Where's Erica?" he asked as the three got closer to him.
"She's inside! I think she hurt her ankle or something! The people here let her sit down for a minute!"
Rushing ahead, Richard was worried about his sister. "Damn it, Jack! You were supposed to take care of her!" He turned the corner, ran up the short walkway, and up the few steps, not even looking at his surroundings as he stopped to knock on the door; Jack, Brooke, and Heather coming up behind.
An older man opened the door, smiling. "Come in!" he offered, stepping aside as he did.
Rushing into the house, Richard looked around. Instead of a living room, it seemed to be the front reception area of an office of some kind. Suddenly, he felt Jack behind him, pushing him forward and around the counter.
"This way!" he directed Richard. "Right down the hall and to the right!"
Confused, Richard walked into the room and saw Erica holding a bouquet and standing next to their father, Frank. Stunned, he stopped a moment until Jack pushed him the rest of the way into the room.
"Time's wasting, Rich! We're on the clock!" Jack said as he pushed Richard up to stand next to a podium.
"What's going on?" he asked. "Dad? What..." Suddenly it became clear to him, washing over him like a storm.
"Here. Hold these." Jack said, stuffing something in his hand. Richard looked down and opened his fingers numbly and saw two gold rings.
"Jack?"
Taking his place next to Richard as Brooke and Heather walked slowly to them, turning to the opposite side of the podium, Jack let a out a sigh and smiled toward Erica and her father. "You'll do fine, Rich! Just stand there and hand me those when the guy says to. Easy as pie!"
Richard looked around in a daze as the old man who'd let them in walked up to the podium carrying a bible. Setting it down, he opened it and nodded to Erica; Richard only just then noticing that she had added a beautiful floral ring veil to her dress, completing the look of a bride to perfection.
As Frank walked Erica up the aisle, the Wedding March playing softly in the background, he turned to his daughter and whispered, "You know, when I said I'd pay to send you to a school near him, I didn't think we'd be jumping to this so quickly! Are you sure, sweet pea?"
Nodding, Erica looked up the aisle at Jack, standing and waiting for her. "I always have been, Daddy! When it comes to Jack, I'm sure of everything!"
Coming up to stand next to Jack, Erica turned to her father and blushed as he partially lifted her veil and kissed her on the cheek before stepping back.
Richard was so dazed, he hardly noticed when Jack started nudging him a few minutes later when the man asked for the rings. "Huh? Oh." Wanting to refuse to give them over, drag Jack out of the building, and beat the tar out of him, Richard just sighed and accepted fate, handing them over.
"The couple have decided to write their own vows, so as you exchange rings, exchange vows." the officiant instructed.
Turning to Erica, Jack gave her his half grin. "I don't think I'll ever deserve the love you've given me over the years, Buttons. I intend to spend however many I've got left trying to be worthy of it, though!" Holding up the ring, he nearly cried. "Mom... Mom gave me this. It's been on her hand since the day she and Dad were married back in forty-five after the war. She wanted you to have it, and so do I." He slipped his mother's ring over her finger, fitting perfectly. "I love you, Erica. Now and forever!"
Trying to hold back her tears while she held Jack's father's ring, Erica took a ragged breath. "I have a confession to make, Jack! I've had a crush on you since I was ten!" she repeated to him, the words signifying their happiness together. "You make me laugh! You're the reason I smile! You've been my friend, and now I want you to always and forever be my love." She slipped the ring on his finger. "I love you, Jack! I always have!"
Nodding with a smile, the officiant stated, "If anyone can show cause why these two should not be wed, let them speak now or forever hold their peace."
Watching as everyone turned to him, almost daring him to say something, Richard shrugged. "What? Now? I'd lose a head I'm fond of! I'm good!"
Shaking his head, the minister took a breath. "Then by the power vested in me by God and the State of Nevada, I now pronounce you Man and Wife." He leaned forward slightly to finish with a smile. "You may kiss the bride!"
Jack turned and lifted her veil, laying it gently over the back of her head. Leaning down slightly, they tilted and kissed, simply and quickly.
When they all started exchanging hugs and congratulations, Richard found a moment and dragged his father aside. "Dad, I have to know. You're OK with this? I mean, I assume you are! You're here, you gave her away, but..."
Nodding, Frank clapped Richard on the shoulder. "Yes, son. I've known about your sister being in love with Jack for a long time. I figure if after this long she's still in love with him, then there's nothing more to say. You can't fight a woman's heart, boy. Remember that!"
Sighing, Richard nodded and turned to his best friend. "Jack, you son of a..." His words were interrupted as Jack hugged him tightly.
"Thanks, Rich! I know you could have said something, stopped the whole thing, but you didn't! I'll love you forever for that!"
Stepping back, he looked down at his new brother-in-law. "I meant what I said before, Jack. You know perfectly well that if I'd said one bloody word, Heather, Brooke, and Erica would have all thrown me into that creek they call a river here!"
Jack looked at him seriously. "For what it's worth Rich, I really do love her, and I'll be good to her. I meant what I said in my vows. I'm gonna spend the rest of my life trying to deserve how much she's always loved me."
Grabbing him in a hug, Richard sighed, "You damn well better, Jack!"
The two separating, Frank came over and took Jack's hand. "Congratulations, boy. Welcome to the club. Just remember the most important words in any marriage."
"I love you?" Jack guessed.
"Nope! It's 'Yes, dear.'" his father-in-law advised. "You'll see!"
When the six walked out of the building after paying the fees and signing the license, Richard and Heather signing as witnesses, Richard took a look at the outside of the building, wondering how he'd been fooled. "I could of sworn this was a house when we walked up!" he said as he looked at it.
"It used to be one!" Jack pointed out. "That's what made it so easy! Well, that and you're an all day sucker, Rich!" he added. "Gotcha!"
Richard tried to grab him, but Jack slipped loose and backed away; his cover falling to the pavement. Quickly grabbing it again, Jack ran in a large circle, keeping Richard at a good distance and laughing the entire time.
"Will you two children act your age!" Heather barked at them.
Leaning back, Jack howled like a coyote as Richard caught up to him, nearly tackling him.
Starting to walk back toward the casinos, Frank pulled his daughter aside. "I can't stay, sweetie. I've got a nine o'clock flight back to Pittsburgh, but I wanted to tell you something first."
"I'm sorry you have to go home so soon, Daddy. What is it?"
"Well, your mother and I are moving to Newport Beach, California in May. I retire in a month, and I'm sick of shoveling snow, dealing with rain half of the year, and never seeing the sun. We've sold the house and bought a place there, so we'll be closer when you want to visit."
"I notice Mother didn't come." she stated disappointedly. "Why not?"
Exhaling heavily, Frank started to walk with her behind the other four. "Jack invited her, that's one of the main reasons I'm here. He swallowed his pride and showed me what kind of a man he was. He offered to pay for both our tickets, round trip, too." Pulling out his pipe, he struck a match, puffing on it until it lit. "Your mother wouldn't accept it, sweet pea. Keeps insisting that if we cut off your tuition and threaten to disown you, you'll forget all about Jack. She even threatened to leave me just for coming to give you away, but I called her bluff."
"I think she's been trying to push Jack and I apart for a while, Daddy." she stated sadly as they started to cross the bridge over the tiny river. "When I first told her how I felt about Jack, the first thing she did was to try and push me toward someone else, anyone else! I got so sick of her trying to set me up on dates with boys that go to our church!"
Looking at the pavement as they walked up the street and toward the casinos, Frank grimaced while the other four ahead of them talked and laughed. "I... I need to tell you something else, sweetie. I don't know if it's a good idea to let Jack know this. I'll leave that to your judgement."
Swallowing hard, Erica knew that whatever he had to say was going to be bad. "OK, Daddy."
He let out a sigh. "See, your mother knew you had a crush on Jack longer than you think." he explained. "She told me after Jack invited us here to your wedding that she knew how you felt about him almost a year before she set him up with that Wendy girl."
She stopped on the sidewalk on the side of the bridge over the river. "Mom was always trying to get Jack away from me?" Suddenly her mother's erratic behavior regarding Jack all made sense. "But why, Daddy?"
"Your mother thinks Jack is a 'bad influence'." Frank huffed as he puffed on his pipe. "She wanted you to marry a rich boy who could take care of you, the way I took care of her. Jack grew up poor, so she thinks he'll always be poor. She just won't ever admit that love beats money. I'm sorry, sweet pea."
"Daddy? I know this sounds terrible, but..." Erica sighed and looked out onto the small river flowing under their feet. "Why don't you just leave Mother in Pittsburgh and marry some busty actress!"
"Can't." he replied. "Despite it all, I still love her. Besides, I didn't promise your mother I'd stay with her the rest of our lives, I promised God."
They started walking again, Erica seeing that the other four had stopped at the north side of the bridge. "I can understand that, Daddy."
His arm hugging her shoulder while he puffed his pipe, he nodded toward the group that waited for them. "You gonna tell him?"
"I don't think I can keep it from him." Erica sighed. "I love him so much I just can't! I spent so long hiding how I felt from him, I don't think I could hide anything from him ever again. I don't want to." She looked at him as they slowly walked together. "Do you understand?"
Frank nodded as his pipe went out again. "Yeah. I get it, sweetie."
"What's with the long faces?" Jack asked. "Second thoughts, Buttons?"
She laughed at the suggestion. "No, Jack! No second thoughts! No regrets, no going back!" She separated from her father and flowed into his arms. "Daddy can't stay. He's flying home in just over an hour."
"Yeah, I know." Jack nodded. "I bought him his ticket, even after he tried to insist on paying for it himself! You sure you can't stay, Frank? You're more than welcome! You can still get your ticket traded for a later flight."
He clapped his hand on Jack's shoulder. "I'd love to son, but I gotta get home. Lots to do! Your wife can fill you in on the details!"
"My wife!" his expression brightened. "God, I love the sound of that!" He kissed Erica on the forehead quickly and sweetly before extending his hand to her father. "Have a good flight then, Frank!"
Taking it, he gave a firm grip back. "Oh, and you can call me Dad, now! It's official! You're family!"
"Jack's been family for a long time, Daddy." Erica cooed.
"No. Good thing too, or else you two would be in serious trouble!" he replied jokingly. "So long, sweet pea!" He bent and kissed her cheek before hailing a cab to take him back to the airport.
After the five watched him depart, they turned toward the casinos once more, Richard suddenly remembering something. "Oh! We were supposed to be looking for you! Heather wanted to go dance!" he looked at the conspirators. "Or was all that just a part of the ambush?"
Smiling, Heather wrapped an arm through his. "A little of both, dear!"
Jack grinned as the three walked into the club, music playing loudly while video screens all over showed re-runs of 'American Bandstand'. Leading the way to the bar, he ordered drinks for all of them. "You're looking at a married man!" he told the bartender.
"Congratulations!" the man said as he poured, eyeing Richard and Heather. "Them too?"
Turning to look up at Richard, his girlfriend smiled. "We could if you want to, dear! Nothing stopping us!"
Sweating, Richard shook his head. "Oh, no! You're not getting off that easy, lady! You're getting a wedding in a proper church with a proper reception and the whole nine yards!"
"So what?" Jack interrupted angrily. "You think my wedding wasn't good enough?" He scowled at his oldest friend; all humor gone from his face.
Pushing between them, Brooke put a hand on the both of their chests. "Don't either of you even think about starting anything, or else I'll kick the shit out of both your asses! Stand down!" she ordered them. Turning to Richard, she poked him in the chest. "And don't you ever belittle Jack and Erica's wedding ever again!"
Seeing he was completely outnumbered, including Heather, he dropped his head. "Look, I didn't mean... I..." He looked up at his sister who was staring daggers at him. "Erica, I'm sorry. I didn't mean to make fun of your wedding! It was beautiful, really! It's just... it's not us is all. OK?"
Heather softened her ire some. "I'd be happy with any wedding, Richard!"
Moving closely to her so he could talk more privately, Richard lowered his voice. "I thought you wanted to wait until you graduated and I got out?"
"I still do, dear." she said softly and pulling herself close to him. "But I don't care how we do it!"
"I want to give you the wedding you always dreamed of!" He felt someone bump against him as they pushed past, trying to make their way into the club. Pulling her aside and out of the way of the entrance, he took her hands in his. "I love you. You know that, don't you?" he asked.
"Of course I do, Richard dear, and I love you. I think it's adorable of you that you want me to have a big wedding with all the ceremony! So if that's what you want, then that's what we'll do!" She wrapped her arms around him and kissed him deeply, not caring who was watching or if it was proper.
When their kiss ended, they were greeted with a round of cheers and catcalls. Richard could only blush and nod his head in a slight bow.
"Here!" Jack said, almost shoving a drink in his hand. "Drink it, jarhead!" His face was still serious until a moment after he raised his own glass against Richard's, then slipped into his half-grin. "You are such an easy mark, Rich!" he gloated.
After Jack downed his drink in one gulp and started to laugh, it dawned on Richard that his best friend had gotten him yet again. "You are so gonna pay for that later, Jack!" he chuckled as he downed his own drink.
"Rich! How many times are you gonna fall for it!?" Jack laughed. "You are such an all-day sucker! See? This is yet another reason why you need me!" He took Richard's glass and slapped it back down on the bar for a refill.
"He's not the only one that needs you, Jack." Erica said, slipping her arms around his waist. Pulling him down into an even more passionate kiss than the one her brother and Heather had just shared, she didn't end it until both of them were gasping for breath.
They didn't notice the whoops and cheers for their kiss until it was over and Jack found himself taking his turn at bows, in his case more flamboyantly and in grandiose style, bowing deeply at the waist. "Thank you! Thank you! No! Please! You're too much! It was nothing! Thank you!"
Grabbing his arm to halt his bows, Richard pointed at Brooke, who'd snagged a table for them while they'd gotten drinks and applause. Making their way over to her, they all sat and enjoyed the music, slowing their drinking to a reasonable pace. In the middle of a funny story that Jack was telling, Richard stopped him. "Wait a minute! What about our rooms? We only have two and... well... I guess you two will want... um... your own now." He looked at Brooke sadly, noticing she was still the odd girl out.
Brooke shrugged. "Don't sweat it, Rich. Jack and Erica aren't staying in either one tonight. He already reserved a suite for them before we even got here! As for me, well now I get a room to myself! You two can have our room..." She indicated Heather and Richard. "...and I'll get yours!" Hearing a song come on that she liked, her eyes got wide. "Oh! Jack! Come on! You're with me!" She grabbed his hand and almost jerked him to the dance floor.
While Heather laughed at Jack and Brooke hamming up the place to 'Heart of Glass', Richard scooted over to his sister. "Erica, I just wanted... well... I wanted to say I'm happy for you, for both of you!" he shouted over the music. "I can tell you make each other happy, and I guess that matters a lot to me."
"Thanks, Richie!" she shouted back. "Same for you and Heather! She's a great girl!"
"She is. Sometimes I worry that she's too good for me, ya' know? Like I don't deserve her and one day she's gonna wake up and realize that she's dating down?"
"I'll be the judge of that!" Heather interrupted with a shout, leaning against him happily.
When Jack and Brooke returned to the table, he sat next to his new wife and exhaled heavily. "Woo! Brooke, I don't know where you get the energy! That about wore me out!"
Erica leaned against him happily and took his hand. "None of that! I need you healthy and rested for later!"
Finally leaving the club for their rooms after one in the morning, the five stumbled, staggered, and laughed the whole way there. When the elevator stopped at their floor, Jack and Erica didn't get out.
"Aren't you coming?" Richard mumbled.
"Not our floor!" Erica answered, while Jack pushed another button. Seeing her brother disappear between the closing doors, she waved. "Goodnight!"
Slowly Richard sobered to the thought that Jack and his sister were about to celebrate their wedding night. He sighed as Heather led him to their room with Brooke already ahead of them and grabbing her things to take them to the room he and Jack had shared that afternoon.
Walking in, Brooke tapped him on the shoulder. "Key, please?" Seeing him fumble for it, she grabbed his wallet and removed his room key, dropping the wallet in his hand once she had it. "Goodnight, you two!" she shouted.
Heather undressed him, Richard being too sauced to know how. Shaking her head, she tsked. "This will be the last time I do this, Richard! Promise?"
He nodded his head, the room spinning as he did. "Promise. I jus' wanted ta' celeb... celeb... ah, shit! I just didn't wanna think about Jack an' my sis doin'... stuff!"
"She's his wife now, Richard. You're just going to have to put it out of your head!" When she heard a snore emanate from her fiancé, she shook her head, finished undressing him, and tucked him into bed; staying up half the night to make sure he didn't vomit and choke in his sleep.
Walking slowly along the sidewalk next to the tiny river that ran through the middle of the city, giving it life, Brooke tried to settle her emotions. She'd gotten restless after moving her things to Jack and Richard's room, so she decided to take a walk. Leaning against the railing along the riverside, she sighed wistfully as the water ran by her; its soothing natural sounds helping to distract from the loneliness that threatened to overwhelm her.
Even as she tried to escape the feeling, she would see couples roaming along the walkway, each one a hot knife to her aching heart. "Shit!" she exclaimed to nobody. I know I should be happy for them, but... Her thoughts filled with self-loathing, she was angry with herself for her jealousy of the happiness that both Jack and Richard had found that continued to elude her.
"Damn it!" she swore. Stalking back to her hotel room, she passed a laughing group of teens going the opposite way, sure that they were far too young to be out so late, even for a Saturday. "Patience has its limits!" she grumbled absently. "I know I'll find her someday, but someday better get here pretty damn soon!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
When Rich, Heather, and I drove back to the bay area in his car, mine stayed with Jack and Erica after we three had properly 'decorated' it. By then I was feeling a little better about things, but not much. I think I did a pretty good job of keeping the boys blissfully unaware, but not Heather. She knew I was upset, and why, without me saying a word. That week was hell for me. Once word got around that Jack and Erica had gotten married, I had every single serviceman at that base 'dropping by' the shop to give their condolences on the breakup of our relationship, and not too casually expressing their interest at taking his fictional place in my bed. I managed to duck out of them all that week by saying how I was still kind of heartbroken over the whole thing and just wanted to take time away from dating anyone, but I knew they'd be back. I never realized before that week just how much Jack had helped my time in the Corps be as enjoyable as it was. After he got married, it was a chore. Just work... and I had eighteen months left in my cruise. When Jack finally returned the next weekend, I got to hear all the details of their Honeymoon. Romantic evenings, dinners at the lake, feeding ducks at some park, I wanted to puke it was so sweet! I'll admit it. I was bitter. Bitter, jealous, and angry with Jack for taking away my protective cloak. I think that's why he did what he did.
---
Signing his release papers, Jack then handed them back to his commanding officer. Sighing, he dropped the pen on the desk. Without another word, he saluted and left, knowing that today would be his last day of active duty. He had enough Leave saved up that he would be taking the rest of his cruise on Leave starting the next day and ending on the anniversary of his joining up. Smiling as he returned to start packing up his things, most of them already at the apartment he and Erica shared, he knew that his entire life was about to change.
"Jack!" Richard called out to him, running down the hall to catch up. "All out?"
He nodded silently. After walking a bit, he looked at his friend. "You?"
"Signed off, but I have three weeks left before I can take Terminal Leave." he replied. "So what're your plans now?"
Jack stopped in the hall and leaned against the cold bricks shrugging. "Well, Erica still has a year left on her degree. I'm thinking of getting a job around locally so I can keep things moving toward us buying that place when she's done. Dad's still paying her tuition and housing for her, so we don't need to worry about that. Makes me feel guilty, though."
"Don't sweat Dad's help, Jack." Richard advised. "Soon you'll be missing it! Badly!"
Starting down the hall once more, this time Jack was slow and methodical. "Well, I had a thought about what to do after she's done with school. With Mom gone and your folks living in SoCal, there really isn't any reason to go back to P-A. No one there to want to go back to. So I was thinking, maybe Erica and I'll move down south so she can be close to your folks."
Stopping in his tracks, Richard grabbed Jack's arm. "Jack, you're willing to live that close to Mother? Not afraid she's gonna poison you or anything?"
"Nah!" Jack shook his head. "I just won't ever eat her cooking! She's got to get used to me being her son-in-law eventually, right? Right? Rich!?"
Laughing, Richard shook his head. "I dunno, Jack! I wouldn't be surprised if you bring your wife over for dinner at their house one night and find that Mom happened to invite some single guy friend over, someone she thinks Erica might like better than you!"
"I got no worries about that, Rich! Buttons would sooner gnaw off her own arm than leave me! Poor girl! She's a hopeless case, Rich!"
He patted Jack's shoulder. "I don't get it. I don't think I ever will, but you're right! She's totally gone for you!" After a moment, he gently grabbed Jack's shoulder to pull him to a stop again. "Um... you talked to Brooke?"
"Brooke!" Jack sighed. "See, I don't get it! She was all happy to help me with the wedding and almost giddy at tricking you into being my Best Man, but then as soon as I got back... Bam! It's like a freezer got left open anytime she sees me! I can feel the temperature drop twenty degrees!"
"You know she's getting hit on like thirty times a day?" Richard pointed out.
"No! How could I know! She hardly speaks to me!" Jack lightly punched the wall. "What does she expect? She want me to get a divorce just to keep the guys off her back?"
"Just cut her some slack, Jack! She's having a hard time adjusting to things! She got used to you keeping the field clear and now it's like every guy here is trying to make up for lost time! Swabbies included!"
"Ouch!" Jack winced. "Oh, that's gotta hurt! Well what can I do? Put out the word that she's frigid or something? Bad in bed?"
"Have Erica invite her over for dinner more often! At least if you keep her social calendar full, she'll have handy excuses for turning them down!"
"Great! Just what I want! Brooke crashing my romantic dinners at home just when I get time to be there myself? No, Brooke's just gonna have to man-up and turn them away on her own. If she's pissed off at me for marrying Erica, then... well... then she's on her own! See ya, Rich!" At that, Jack took off down the hall, intending to make the rest of his final day at The Barracks less uncomfortable.
Watching his friend leave, Richard sighed. "Damn it, Jack!"
Erica lit the second candle at the dining room table, shaking the match out before turning the lights down low. Any minute Jack would be home to stay, and she intended to make the most of their first of many evenings to come. Checking her makeup once more, she smoothed her hair away from her face, smiling at her reflection. With a gratified sigh, she waited.
Hauling the seabag out of the cab, Jack pulled it over his shoulder, vaulting up the steps by twos towards their apartment. Opening the door, he noticed the dark lighting immediately, despite the late afternoon sun. The smell of pasta and bread wafted out the door as he entered; his seabag dropping off his shoulder as he saw her standing next to the couch.
"Welcome home, Jack!" she purred.
Not even bothering to close the door, he rushed up to her and lifted her in the air, making her shriek with laughter. "I'm free!" he shouted, spinning her around. Putting her down gently, he kept his arms around her. "How was school, little girl?"
Laughing, Erica relaxed into his embrace. "Boring! This makes up for it!"
Returning to and closing the door after picking up his bag, he carried it off to their room, dropping it unceremoniously in their cluttered closet. "Dinner smells wonderful!" he complimented her. "How do you find the time?"
"I made the time!" she replied from the kitchen. "Go wash up!"
"Yes, dear." he surrendered. "Want me to change to a suit and tie?"
"No, just wash your hands!" Erica laughed. "And shave, you Neanderthal!"
"Ug! Me scrape face! Then club head!" he grunted, drawing another fit of laughter from his wife.
Coming out freshly shaven and clean, he leaned against the wall next to the kitchen, his smile at watching Erica stir spaghetti almost made her laugh for that alone. Coming up behind her, he wrapped his arms around her and kissed her neck. "Anything I can help with?"
"Just go sit and I'll bring it out. You can help later with the dishes! I cooked, you're cleaning up!"
"Deal!" he agreed, poking her sides with his fingers and making her jump.
"Ah! Jack! No!" she laughed.
While they sat and ate silently, the two kept looking at each other smiling, sometimes breaking out into giddy laughter at nothing but the other's smile. Once Jack finished his plate, he sat back and held his stomach. "Now that I'm Outside, I'm gonna need to watch that. You keep stuffing me like this, and I'm gonna bloat up like Principal Ford!"
"I'll make sure you get plenty of physical activity to keep you in top fighting shape!" she joked seductively. "You can start with the dishes!"
"Ah! The bliss of married life! You're bossing me around already! I love it!" Getting up, he made his way to the kitchen, kissing her cheek on the way.
"So did you see Richie before you left today?" Erica asked as she gathered their dishes and brought them into the kitchen.
"Yep. Just a quick word in the hallway, though. Got too busy after that." Jack started running hot water over the pans.
"How about Brooke? I haven't heard from her in weeks! How's she doing?" She leaned against the refrigerator to listen.
"Um... well, Brooke's been a little... distant... lately. Downright frosty, to be honest." He talked as he washed. "Apparently, since I'm not available to run interference for her anymore, she has like half the base beating a path to her rack. Poor kid! Still, she acts like it's my fault."
Twisting her fingers in knots, Erica looked down. "I... I feel for her. It's sort of my fault that you're not around to keep the guys away. If I didn't..."
Jack stopped washing and hugged her. "No, Buttons! This is not your fault! It's just... just the way it is." Stroking her hair and comforting her, he decided that it would be a good time to tell her about his idea. "I was thinking, after you graduate next spring, what would you think about moving south to be close to your folks? I mean, I just want you to be happy, and I know being able to be near Dad would help."
"Oh, Jack!" she cried, wrapping her arms around his neck and pulling him into a deep and loving kiss. "That sounds wonderful!" She stopped and her smile vanished. "But we have another year until then. What'll you do in the mean time?"
"Well, I... I saved a lot of money from the sale of my mom's house. Between my pay and that, Mom's care and funeral only used about half of it, so I have a bit left. If I get a temp job around here I can add to it, so by the time we're ready to move south we can afford a pretty decent house. So long as Dad keeps paying your apartment rent now that we're married, that is. Otherwise, I'll have to make enough to cover expenses and the money we have saved will have to do for a down payment. Either way, I should get some kind of job around here."
"What were you thinking of doing?" she asked.
He returned to washing dishes as he answered. "Well, I know a lot about the dry-cleaning business from my old man. I figure I could get my foot in the door to start, then work up to management pretty quick. Good enough for temp work anyway. Once we get to SoCal, I'm thinking about opening my own place. 'Jack's Jiffy Dry-Clean'! How's that sound?"
"Corny!" she laughed. "Still, I think you could do anything sometimes! If that's what makes you happy, then I'm right there with you!"
He finished scrubbing dishes and loaded them in the dishwasher. "Sometimes I feel like that, too! Usually after you tell me!" He added the soap and started the appliance. Turning to dry his hands on a dishtowel, he wrapped his arms around his wife. "So any other plans for the evening?"
She looked up at him coyly. "I just might have one or two!"
Three weeks later, Richard joined Jack in leaving the service, using the last of his Leave time to get out early. Carrying a box of Richard's clothes out the door to the old station wagon, Jack met Brooke coming in. The two looked at each other, almost daring the other to say something. When Brooke slowly looked away and cleared the doorway, Jack sighed and carried his load out without a word.
"You two ever gonna work this out?" Richard asked idly as he taped another box shut.
She shrugged as she looked for the next thing to take out. "Nothing to say, really."
"Oh? How come you keep staring daggers at him every time he so much as breathes in your presence, then?"
Brooke paced the room, her task forgotten. "You just don't get it, Rich! OK, so he fell in love and got married! Where does that leave me? I can't even use the head without three grunts and a squid asking me out!" She moved over close to him so she could lower her voice. "I can't even think about going on a date! If I got caught, I don't have Jack around to cover for me!"
"That's not Jack's fault, Brooke. You know that." Richard pointed out. "I don't see why you're pissed at him for it."
"It's because... Rrrg! You just don't get it, do you!" she growled. "I know, I've had it easy the last five years. No one bugging me for a date because I was Jack's girl. Now it's ten times worse than the other W-Ms get though, 'cause all the guys know I'm 'straight', available, supposedly willing to date grunts, and some of them have years of pent up desire to act on it! I'm scared one of these thugs is gonna drag my ass in a closet and rape me 'cause I dated Jack and won't date them, Rich! What am I supposed to do!? I... I don't think I can finish my cruise like this! It would have been better if Genius Jack had never helped me in the first place!"
"Sorry to have been so much trouble." Jack snidely remarked as he came in for another box. "OK, Brooke. What do you want me to do? Divorce Erica so I can go back to 'dating' you for the next sixteen months? Huh? Tell me how to fix it! What do you want from me?"
Brooke stared at Jack as though she could burn him with her eyes. "Nothing, Jack! You've done enough! Why don't you run back home to your little girl and play House some more!"
"Hey!" Richard barked. "So you're pissed at my sister, too?"
She nearly cried in frustration. "Rrrg! You two are impossible!" She started for the doorway that Jack still stood in. "Make a hole, maggot!"
"Gladly!" Jack snapped as he stepped back out into the hallway. As Brooke stormed away, he saw Corporal Rogers intercept her in the hall.
"Brooke! Hey look, I was thinking, since you're available and all, if you'd like to..."
She turned on him with fire in her eyes, her voice a low growl so it wouldn't carry. "Let me break this down Bert and Ernie-style, shit-brick! Finish that sentence and they'll be collecting shards of your nuts from the floor for the next month! I'm no fucking Barracks Bunny! And even if I was, I'd sooner stand naked in the middle of Mess Hall at noon than go out with a broke-dick maggot like you! Do I make myself clear!?"
He escaped down the hall away from her and towards Jack as she went the other way. "I can see why you dumped her, Dunning! What a bit..."
Lunging, Jack pinned him to the opposite wall with his forearm against his throat, interrupting his insult. "Don't even say it Rogers, or I'll do to you what she threatened!" He leaned in and lowered his voice to a low growl. "Spread the word! Leave! Her! Alone!" Pausing he added, "She's still not available, get me?" As Corporal Rogers tried to struggle away, Jack leaned harder, threatening to break the other Marine's neck.
Richard pulled Jack off the hapless Marine. "Back off! You're on Terminal Leave, so don't screw it up!" Turning to Jack's victim, he hooked a thumb over his shoulder. "Beat it, Rogers!" Looking back to Jack, he ran his fingers through his hair and exhaled heavily. "And you, ya' double-digit midget! Help me get this stuff out of here, will ya'?"
Calming himself from his rage, Jack nodded. "Alright, Rich. I'll behave."
Between the two of them, they managed to pack out Richard's things by the end of the day. Getting ready to leave for the last time, Richard saw Brooke approaching. Nodding to her, he got Jack's attention. "We have company."
Brooke walked up to her two best friends almost shyly. "Listen, I wanted to say..." She paused and stopped next to the rear hatch of the old car, looking at the two men who had been her best friends, but were about to get in and never return. "Shit!"
"Really?" Jack said with surprise. "That's your parting words for us?"
"Jack! You..." Brooke fumed before she couldn't help herself and began to laugh along with the two others. "I hate you!" she said jokingly.
Straightening up, having doubled over laughing at Brooke's reaction, Jack shook his head. "Brooke! You know you love me! Come here!" She walked over and they hugged, their laughter fading. "Just so you know, I straightened out Rogers and told him to spread the word that you're still off limits."
Brooke pulled back and looked at him with an astonished expression. "Jack! Won't that make people think..."
"Who gives a shit what these jarheads think!" he interrupted. "They wanna think we're having an affair? Let 'em! It's harmless and will keep you outta their scopes. What? You afraid you'll get hit with Article one-thirty-four? I'm out, and Erica isn't going to lodge a complaint!"
"Jack, if that gets back to Dad," Richard pointed out, "he'll kill you where you stand, on rumor alone!"
"It's a risk I'm willing to take, and I know Buttons will back me up on this!"
Erica stared at him. "You did what?"
"Look, I didn't actually say anything, honey!" Jack defended his actions. "I just implied it! It'll keep the guys off her back until she's out!"
She paced the living room floor almost yelling at him. "Jack! I don't want anyone thinking things like that about you! Why didn't you talk to me about it first?"
"Is that it?" he accused. "Or is it you'll be embarrassed if people think that your husband..."
"Jack!" she screamed at him. "I don't care what people think of me! I... I just couldn't stand it if someone like Daddy were to think... think so badly of you! It would make Mother look like she was right and break my heart!"
Looking at his wife, he saw the tears streaming down her face, melting his defenses. "Oh God, Erica! I... I'm sorry!" He closed to her and wrapped her in his arms. "Honestly, I didn't plan it. It... it just popped out of my mouth! I couldn't let that idiot badmouth her, and when I saw that my defending her could be taken to mean... well... I added just enough to put the idea in his head. I... I'm sorry, but I wouldn't take it back, even if I could. Brooke is one of my best friends. I just... I couldn't sit by and do nothing while she went through hell!"
Erica held him tightly, terrified. "I guess there's nothing to be done about it now. I'm just scared that your solution to Brooke's problem will backfire on us, somehow! I... I really hope it turns out for the best!"
The following Saturday Jack was out job hunting when Erica heard a knock at the door. Looking through the peephole, she opened up with a worried expression. "Brooke? Is everything alright?"
Her husband's best friend couldn't look at her. "Um... can I talk to Jack?"
She opened the door for her. "Come on in." The Marine walked into their living room as Erica explained. "Jack's not here, but you can stay until he gets back." She closed the door and watched Brooke start toward it again.
"No, I... I think I should go and try to talk to him later. I..."
"Brooke! It's alright! Please? How about a nice cup of coffee?" Erica smiled, trying to ease her discomfort.
Forcing a smile, she still couldn't look at Erica. "I... I suppose that would be alright." While Erica warmed up their drinks in the microwave, Brooke took a seat at their table. "Maybe I should just go until Jack gets back."
"Really, Brooke! It's fine! Whatever it is, I..." she said as she sat down at the table with her. "I don't want you to feel uncomfortable around us."
Brooke sighed. "It's just... well... Jack's been really easy to talk to about some things over the years, and I... I was hoping he could help me with... well... with a problem."
Hearing the microwave, Erica got back up to retrieve their drinks. "Well, you could talk to me. I know I'm not Jack, you and he have a lot more in common, but I'd like to think I know Jack pretty well. Maybe I can help!" She sat a warm cup of coffee in front of her guest and returned to the seat next to her. "Try me!"
Staring at the cup in front of her, Brooke shook her head and laughed lightly. "It's stupid, really! I... I'm just used to Jack being around to help me. Guess I'm gonna have to find a new normal." She looked at Erica and smiled. "I really am happy for you two, but also just a tiny bit jealous!"
"A tiny bit?" Erica retorted. "You look like I've felt for the last six years!"
"How's that?"
"Pining!" Erica replied empathetically. "Is there... um... someone special?"
Brooke pushed her cup around in a circle with the handle. "No, and... well... that's the jealous part! I see you and Jack, Rich and Heather, and... ugh! It just makes me think I'm never..."
"Hold it!" Erica interrupted. "Just stop right there! I know there's someone out there for you, Brooke! You just haven't found her yet!" She took another drink before asking, "I mean, how long has it been since you even went on a date?"
Rolling her eyes, Brooke chuckled uneasily. "Too long! Not since last year! Um... November. God! What a disaster that turned out to be! But, it's... it's harder now that I can't fake-double with Jack."
"Can't Richie help?"
Brooke stuck her tongue out. "Blech! Sorry, I love your brother, but doubling with he and Heather is like swimming in a syrup vat! They're so damn cute and into each other it's like they aren't even there with you sometimes! Even when they are, it makes any date I have uncomfortable. It's so obvious they're gonna spend the rest of their lives together, it makes them start thinking the same thing about me! That's dangerous territory!"
"Don't you want a long term relationship?"
"Of course!" Brooke said defensively. "But it's kind of a turn-off for a first date! Besides, you start talking long-term commitments with a lesbian and you might get them showing up the next day at your house with a U-Haul!"
The two laughed together for a bit before Erica asked, "So, what was it you wanted to talk to Jack about?"
Smiling embarrassedly, Brooke looked into her cup. "Um... well, I was kinda hoping he would... um... take me out? Running as my wingman? That way if I bump into anyone from the base I can just say I was out with him and not raise any ticklish questions."
Pondering Brooke's situation, and wanting to get closer to the woman that helped her get Jack, Erica shrugged. "Well, I suppose it would be alright with me, but what would you think about going out with the both of us? I swear, I wouldn't be too much of a drag!"
"I don't think that would work." Brooke said shaking her head. "I mean, if I was out with the both of you..." She stopped and reconsidered her objections. "Actually, come to think of it, I don't see why it couldn't work!" She looked up at Erica, concerned that she didn't trust her with Jack alone. "I hope you know that there's never been anything between Jack and me, and there never could be! I love Jack, but like a brother! You have nothing to worry about!" She was surprised when Erica began to laugh. "What's so funny?"
Unable to help herself, she tried to calm down and explain. "Oh, Brooke! It's just... I tried to see you and Jack being romantic in any way and... Oh God, no! It was almost comical! Honestly, I have no idea how you've pulled off being a couple for so long!"
They were still laughing together when Jack came in the front door. "Well this doesn't bode well! You two? Laughing and conspiring while I'm out there slaving to get a job?" He looked at Brooke. "You're not trying to take my Buttons to the dark side are you?"
Erica rose and hugged him, still laughing. "No, love! Just you and I taking her out tonight for some fun and looking for a date! Nothing to worry about!"
"So what? You need two wingmen again?" Jack half smiled as he sat down at the table. "Now that Rich is living up the whole 'unwed couple' bit, you need to horn in on my Saturday nights?"
"Hey! I was just gonna ask you to fly CAS for me like you used to, but she insisted!" Brooke said defensively.
Coming up behind him, Erica wrapped her arms around his chest. "Don't worry, love! It'll be fun!"
Ordering three more drinks at the bar, Jack stood and waited uncomfortably. The bartender gave him a dirty look as he took the drinks and dropped a ten on the counter. "Keep the rest for the wonderful service." he quipped. Taking their drinks back to their table, he rejoined Brooke and his wife. "Ya' know, I get the distinct impression that the bartender might have spit in my drink."
Shaking her head, Erica took a sip. "She's just jealous that you're with us!"
Sitting back in her chair, Brooke stirred her drink absently. "I'm starting to think going out with you is part of my problem, Jack! Heck, Erica's gotten hit on more times than I have tonight! Maybe I'd do better if she and I left you at home!"
Blushing, his wife shook her head again. "I think that last girl really wanted to ask you to dance, but she chickened out at the last second and asked 'the ugly friend' instead!"
"You take that back!" Jack almost barked. "No bad-mouthing my Buttons!" He took another drink before leaning over to Brooke. "Hey. End of the bar. The tall blonde with the cropped hair? I think she was just eyeing you."
Glancing over at where Jack had indicated, she shook her head subtly. "No, and if she was it was to shoot me a dirty look. I'm not her type. She's the type that thinks that you're not a real lesbian unless you look like a man."
"How can you possibly know that from here?" Jack asked in disbelief.
"The same way you can tell when..." She paused and looked at the couple sitting with her. "Oh, wait. I forgot who I was talking to. Mister Oblivious who couldn't figure out that his wife was in love with him for over a decade! Never mind. You wouldn't understand. Suffice it to say I can just tell!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
That established the pattern. Jack and Erica would go out with me when I had Liberty and I'd trawl for Ms. Right. Never really got anywhere, but the three of us sure had fun trying! We got together with Rich and Heather a few times for dinner, but it was becoming clear that the guys started getting too busy with their own things to spend any real time together. Jack got a job managing a dry-cleaners in Palo Alto, meanwhile Rich was busy finishing his degree. With Heather and Rich graduating shortly after he and Jack were officially shifted to the Reserves, a full year ahead of Erica's graduation and sixteen months before the end of my cruise, we all knew it meant big changes were coming in our lives. Rich had talked about taking an office job somewhere in LA so he could be close to Jack, Erica, and his parents, but he never got into any details. I guess he was just stalling. I remember the last dinner we had all together that summer. It was at Heather and Rich's apartment because it was bigger. I'm pretty sure Jack knew what was coming, but it didn't make it any easier to take.
---
Richard was hiding in the kitchen cooking when Heather came in to check on him. "Everything alright, Richard dear?" she asked.
"Sure! The roast is almost done!" he answered with a false smile. "We can sit down soon."
"Richard." Heather intoned knowingly. "You have been in here for over an hour. Are you avoiding Jack?"
He sighed, letting his head hang. "Yeah, kinda. I... I just didn't want to ruin dinner is all. I know Jack's going to take it hard."
"You're going to have to tell him sooner or later, and we're running out of time, Richard!" she told him. Taking his hands in hers, she smiled at him. "It's what we both want and Jack loves you! You'll see! He'll be fine!"
"I've been watching Jack's back so long it's hard to stop." Richard laughed. "I guess he was always right. I do need him!"
She wrapped her arms around him and hugged him gently. "I know, dear. I know you do."
They came out into the living room several minutes later, Richard carrying the roast. "Chow time!" he called to the three.
Jack intercepted him before he even made it to the table. "Good! I was about to start gnawing on your table leg, Rich!"
"Hands off!" Richard shouted as he tried to hold the tray out of Jack's reach. "What? You can't wait until we sit down?"
"I might faint!" Jack rolled his eyes and staggered back. "Food!" he dragged out the word like a starving man.
While the girls laughed at his antics, Richard shook his head and put down the roast. Once they'd all started eating, the conversation trailed off.
Jack couldn't help but notice that Richard was continually looking at Heather expectantly, as though waiting for her to say something. "OK. Rich, you're about a subtle as a brick to the side of the head. What's going on?"
Putting his fork down, Richard sighed and looked at his oldest friend. "Well, we were going to wait until after dinner to tell you three, but I guess there's no use putting it off." He looked over at Heather who nodded and smiled at him encouragingly. Looking to the others, he let it out in one breath. "I've been offered a job, but it's not in LA. It's in Concord... New Hampshire."
Silence cut through the room as Erica lightly gasped. Finally, Jack smiled at him. "Congratulations, Rich. I uh... I assume you accepted it. Otherwise we're all in shock for nothing and this was a pretty terrible joke!"
"I did." he replied seriously. "It... uh... I start next week. Heather and I'll be moving to a place in Concord by the end of this week. We'll be looking to buy a place pretty soon, though." He resumed eating as he finished talking.
"What about LA?" Erica almost cried. "I... I thought you were going to..." Her voice faltered as she worked on keeping her tears from spilling out.
"I have some news, too!" Heather offered cheerily. "I got a position interning as a psychotherapist with a medical group not far from Richard's new job!" She looked across the table at Richard's stricken sister. "It... it really is a good opportunity, for us both. We were worried that we might end up with jobs that split us up."
"Well, we can't let that happen!" Jack broke the somber mood. "After all the work I put in getting you two together? So when's the wedding?"
"Jack!" Erica laughed as she wiped a tear away, the other three chuckling and giggling as well. "You goofball! It is a good question, though. I can assume you're going to have one eventually, right Richie?"
"Well, we were planning on getting settled in first and then plan a big thing for the fall, say around Thanksgiving? That way Brooke can build up a long enough Leave." He looked over at the only person yet to comment.
Brooke set her glass of wine down, trying to steady her nerves. "That's nice of you two, but you shouldn't have to wait on account of me."
"But we have to, Brooke!" Heather explained. "I can't get married without my Maid of Honor!"
"Who? Me?" Brooke looked at her in shock.
"Well, it's your turn!" Erica commented. "Then it'll be my turn when you get married!"
"Yeah, right!" Brooke laughed. "Figure some way to pull that off!"
Taking a drink before answering, Erica looked at her seriously. "Well, even if you can't make it legal, you can still have a wedding ceremony, right? We'll do it, even if I have to get Jack ordained!"
"Woah!" Jack nearly choked as he heard his wife. "You want me to do what now? Try it and I don't think anyone would be able to stop laughing long enough to say 'I do'!"
Finishing dinner as they talked, Richard could see that Jack was putting up a front. It was painful to see his best and oldest friend hurting as bad as he was, but in the end it was inevitable. They had both known for some time that life would push them in different directions, but now that it was here, Richard couldn't help but feel like he was abandoning Jack, and Erica.
"So, we'll keep in touch and set up the plans for the wedding while you two get settled in." Jack went over everything. "Then in November when Brooke arranges her Leave, we'll be all set for the wedding on November thirtieth. That's the date, right?"
"Yup." Richard responded with a nod. "If it works for you, honey." he asked, turning to Heather.
"I don't care when or how, Richard! So long as we get there!" she said gaily, a smile covering her face that shone through the undertone of sadness that permeated their occasion.
Erica and Jack rose together. "We should be getting back to our place."
"And I have a long drive ahead." Brooke pointed out, grabbing her jacket and looking over at Jack. "See you guys on Saturday like usual?"
He nodded absently. "Yeah, sure." Turning to Richard he asked, "So, when do you two fly out?"
"Friday morning." he answered, one arm around Heather.
"So soon?" Erica asked disappointedly.
Her brother nodded glumly. "Our flight leaves at nine. The movers will have everything out by end of day Thursday though, only day they were available, so we're planning on staying in a hotel near the airport Thursday night." He laughed a little. "We'll have to call a cab to get there! The guy who bought my old wagon will be picking that up Thursday, too!"
"You sold The Beast?" Jack said in shock. "I wish I'd have known! I would have taken it off your hands!"
"Yeah, but the guy buying it paid me money for it!" Richard needled him.
"What? You think I don't have anything?" he replied with mock hurt. "I'll have you know I've got forty grand saved for the house Erica and I are buying in Newport Beach!"
"You'll need every penny of it!" Richard replied.
Erica shook her head. "No way you two are going to take a cab and sleep in a hotel on your last night in town! Don't think you're getting out of it, either! You two are staying at our place Thursday night and we're driving you to the airport on Friday!"
"Oh, Erica!" Heather intoned as she shook her head. "We can't put you out like that! Besides, don't you two have work and classes Friday?"
"I can get the first few hours off." Jack answered as he looked at Erica.
"And I haven't missed any classes this semester. I think I deserve one day of hooky! I just couldn't imagine not being there to see you two off!"
"Well, I can't be there!" Brooke shook her head. "Unless I come up with the most fabulous excuse in the history of excuses, I'll be in the shop all day!" Pushing past Jack and Erica, she gave Heather a hug. "I'm gonna miss you two! You take care of Rich for us, girl!"
Returning the hug, Heather nodded and choked back a tear. "I will, Brooke dear!" With a mirthful tone, she added, "I'm looking forward to seeing you this fall!"
The Marine slowly stood back and looked at Heather in shock. "Oh, God! You're gonna make me wear... a dress! Aren't you!?"
Nodding, Heather smiled wickedly. "Why of course! It goes with the job description, dear!"
Seeing Brooke turn to her pleadingly, Erica shook her head slowly. "Not a chance! You're up!"
Jack half-smiled when Brooke looked toward him, desperate for an escape. "Don't look at me, Brooke! I'd look terrible in a dress!"
"How do you know? Weirdo!" she retorted. "I bet you have nicer legs than I do!"
Getting a laugh and trying to change the subject, hoping to talk Heather out of it sometime before November, she turned and hugged Richard in a tight bear hug. "You take care too, jarhead! Stay clean!" As she pulled back, she flung her jacket over her shoulder and waved at the four as she headed for the stairs. "Catch you all later!"
"We do really need to get going." Erica apologized. Wrapping her brother in a warm embrace, she leaned her head on his shoulder. "We'll see you on Thursday, alright?"
Giving Heather a friendly one-arm hug, Jack smiled at her wryly. "See if I ever trust you again! First you toss me over for this chump, then you drag him two thousand miles away! I guess I can see why. Guess you need that distance to not run back to me! What is this power I have over the ladies?"
"It's called BO!" Richard replied to his rhetorical question. "New Hampshire might be far enough that we won't smell you!" Grabbing his best friend in a firm hug, he slapped Jack's back. "We'll see you Thursday."
Pulling back and surreptitiously wiping his eyes, Jack nodded and looked away. "If you're lucky!" As he and Erica made their way to the stairwell, he managed to maintain his half-grin until their door closed.
Thursday evening, Jack opened the front door to his and Erica's apartment after picking up Richard and Heather at their vacated apartment. "Entrez-vous!" he shouted, carrying in Richard's suitcase. "We just cleaned up the place, so the whips and leather harnesses are tucked away! Make yourselves at home! Well, for tonight anyway, you traitors!"
"Traitors!?" Richard declared as he put his carry-on bag down by the door. "Why? Just because we worked hard and found jobs? You make it sound like we're skipping the country!"
"You might as well be!" Jack shot back as he turned on the living room light. "New Hampshire! What's in New Hampshire, anyway? Snow? Didn't you get enough of that stuff back in Pittsburgh, Rich?"
"Well, for starters there's my family home!" Heather noted as she came in following Erica. "It really is a fine place. You'll see it when you come out for the wedding!"
"Wait a minute!" Jack said stopping to turn back. "You have a house there? Why in the heck are you getting an apartment then? What, do you need a summer home and winter home? What're you, birds?"
"No!" Heather laughed. "The house is in central New Hampshire! We'll be working in Concord, twenty miles away. I was thinking of just selling it, but until Richard and I have a place of our own, I don't have anywhere to put the family heirlooms, so we'll just hang on to it until we do."
"Oh!" Jack sniffed as he raised his voice an octave. "The family heirlooms? My, what was I thinking!" Dropping his tone back to normal, he scoffed and waved her off dismissively. "Bah! Twenty miles! You think twenty miles is to too far to drive to work to save on renting an apartment? Just how good do these jobs pay? Might think of charging you a night's rent!"
"Don't even joke about it!" Erica chided him. "My brother is welcome in my home, free of charge, anytime!"
"Great!" Jack sighed. "He's got brother-in-law Roger privileges!" he joked, referencing a running gag from the Burns and Allen TV show. "Just don't be coming over all the time to raid the fridge and gank my stuff, Rich!"
"I'll try not to make it a habit, Jack! The airfare puts a damper on the profit margin, anyway!" He carried his and Heather's suitcases into the spare room. "I've been meaning to ask, sis. Why'd you rent a two bed apartment when you moved out here?"
"I used to have a roommate." she answered. "A girl that went to school with me. She flaked on me after two months. Never even came back for her share of the deposit! I guess it's fair. I never got her last month's share of rent!"
Coming back out, he leaned on the wall by the bedroom door. "So Dad has been footing the whole bill ever since? Our father?"
Erica smiled as she headed to the kitchen. "Well, at least he loves one of us!"
"Ooh! Ouch!" he laughed as he and Heather moved to the sofa. "So Jack, you're living off my old man now?"
"He wouldn't take 'I suppose we shouldn't' for an answer!" Jack answered as he followed Erica into the kitchen. "Make yourselves at home. Dinner'll be in about half an hour. Feel free to use the Head to get clean!"
Enjoying their final meal together before going their separate ways, Jack kept the mood up by telling embarrassing stories that he hadn't gotten around to telling Heather yet about their lives back in Pittsburgh.
"So anyway," Jack said between laughs, "I'm banging on the door, saying we need to get moving, and he flings the door open, wearing nothing but a sheet, tells me to come back in ten minutes, and slams the door in my face! So I yell at him..."
"If you're done that quick, you really should see a doctor about it!" Richard said along with him as he shook his head in shame. "God, Jack! You're never gonna let me live that down, are you? It's your fault anyway! Dragging me to Doug's Dad's place! At nineteen! You are a bad influence on me!"
Fisting him in the ribs gently, Heather looked at him in mock anger. "Makes me wonder about poor Erica! What stories she doesn't know about Jack!"
"Ah! I got no stories like that!" Jack almost blushed. "Never could get a girl to take me serious! Not that I didn't look!"
"Ugh!" Erica groaned. "I do not want to know!"
Finishing the casserole as Jack kept them entertained, the two couples split into their separate rooms that evening, finally getting to bed by eleven. The next morning was a flurry of activity. Re-packing after laundering Richard and Heather's clothes from the previous day, Jack saw to it they were ready and at the airport by eight-fifteen.
After the four went through the lax security, Jack and Erica walked the two to their gate, still laughing and trying to keep their feelings at bay until the last minute. When the call came announcing the boarding of their flight, their moods shifted; the fun and laughter finally giving way to the seriousness of their parting. They got up and started heading toward the gate slowly, none wanting their years together to finally come to an end.
Richard wrapped his arms around his sister as she started to sob. "I'll miss you, kiddo! Seems like just yesterday we were doing this out in front of the house in Pittsburgh!"
"I... I know!" she cried. Wiping her eyes as she stepped back, she shook her head. "Seems like we're always saying goodbye!"
"It won't be long until November!" he pointed out. "I can't wait to see you!"
Nodding, Erica wiped her eyes again before hugging him once more, this time more fiercely. "November! You take care, Richie!"
Meanwhile, Jack and Heather hugged almost as tightly.
"Jack, I... I don't ever think I'll ever be able to tell you just how wonderful a man you are!" Heather intoned, keeping her emotions in check. "I owe you for the love of my life! If you ever need anything, you need only ask! You and your family will always have a place in our home!"
Sighing at what might have been, but glad of how things had turned out, Jack shook his head with a smile. "I still don't know what you see in that muscle-headed brother-in-law of mine, but I'm glad you make each other happy! I'm sure gonna miss you two! Who else can I bum rides off of?"
Heather laughed as they separated. "I love you, Jack! I really do!"
"So dump this creep and run off with me!" he joked, only to have Erica slap him in the arm. "Ouch! I was only kidding, love!"
"Not even funny!" she growled at him as they switched places. Hugging her future sister-in-law, Erica almost started crying all over again. "You have a good flight!" she sniffed as she tried not to cry. "Call us when you get in?"
"We will!" Heather promised. "And you take good care of Jack! He's going to need you more now than he'll ever admit."
"I know." Erica nodded as they separated. "I'll take care of him, and you keep Richie out of trouble!"
"I think that will be easier without Jack around!" she stated with a feigned serious tone and a faint smile on her face, making Erica laugh.
While his wife and Heather hugged and talked, Jack stuck his hand out to Richard. "Well, figures! After all this time you're finally getting rid of me! I knew you were just a fair-weather friend!"
Grabbing Jack's hand, Richard yanked him into a hug. "Jerk!" he said as they slapped each other on the back. Feeling the tears edge into the corners of his eyes, he shook off the feeling and laughed. "You always told me I needed you! Now look at who needs who!"
Hugging him back, Jack suddenly felt the same as the day Wendy broke his heart. "You still need me, muscle-head!" He paused a moment before adding in almost a whisper, "And I always needed you, Rich!" Pulling apart before he started to actually cry, he stepped back and wiped his eyes. "Aww! Now look what you've gone and done, Rich! You've made me get all misty!"
"Softy!" he needled his friend as he pushed on Jack's shoulder.
"Jock!" Jack shot back with a shove.
"Dork!" Richard fisted him in the ribs.
"Jarhead!" he countered with a jab toward Richard's gut.
"Leatherneck!" he joked as he grabbed Jack's fist and pulled him into another quick hug. "Love you, man!"
"You too, Rich!" Jack said before stepping back again and putting an arm around Erica, her arms wrapping around his waist.
Mimicking the other two, one arm around Heather and backing toward the gate, Richard looked sadly at his best friend and his sister. "Take good care of Brooke, Jack. Tell her we'll see her in November!" Right before turning to the boarding ramp, he tossed a sloppy salute to Jack. "Catch you 'round Jack! Try to keep out of trouble! I might not be around to get you out of it next time!"
After Jack and Erica watched them board their flight, they stayed until the plane pulled away from the terminal, holding each other as Jack kept his tears at bay through strict discipline while Erica freely cried for them both.
"It's alright." Jack consoled her as they turned to leave the concourse. "The wedding in November will be here sooner than you think!"
"I know!" Erica said, trying to dry her tears. "I just miss them already!" She looked at Jack's stoic countenance. "And you don't fool me, mister! I know you miss them already, too!"
"Yeah, I do." he sighed as they walked through the airport and back to their car. Letting the silence speak for him, the two walked out together feeling the sorrow of the end of one part of their lives wrap all around them like a blanket, threatening to smother them. After Jack started the car and pulled out of the parking lot, he looked over at his wife and half-smiled. "Of course, you know what this means, don't you?"
Looking over at him, Erica shook her head after wiping away her tears again. "What, what means?" she asked innocently.
"Well, with Rich and Heather getting married soon, we have a job to do!" he explained. "We need to get Brooke hooked up by November so she doesn't have to go stag to the wedding!"
She furrowed her brow at him. "Why is it so important now?"
"You know what they say about the Maid of Honor and Best Man! We need to get her hooked-up so she doesn't get any ideas about me!"
Erica burst out laughing at the ridiculous thought of Jack and Brooke. "I... I think I can only see it if you're the Maid of Honor!" she laughed.
"Oh, Ha! Ha! Very funny! Sometimes I may feel like Jack Lemon, but I am not pulling a 'Some Like it Hot'! Just forget it!"
By the time they pulled up to Jack's work, Erica was feeling a little better about things. Jack had continued to clown around until he pulled to a stop. "OK, your man needs to go and win some bread." he said before he leaned over and kissed her quickly. "And you need to get to class! I'll see you after work. Pick me up about five?"
She nodded and smiled. "You always know how to make me happy, Jack! I love you!" She leaned over and kissed him much more deeply before he got out and closed his door. Sliding over to get behind the wheel, she waved at Jack as he walked around the car and into work almost two hours late. As she pulled away from the curb, she sighed; her vaguely sad smile not wanting to leave her lips.
Weeks passed while the trio were getting used to Richard and Heather not being around. They settled into a comfortable pattern. Brooke would spend Liberty at their place, more often than not sleeping in the guest bedroom if they had a little too much fun. She also wasn't getting hit on at the base as often; Jack's warning having spread. It was nearly forgotten by August, so Brooke was taken by complete surprise when she was asked to go see her commanding officer one Friday afternoon.
Jack half-heard the pounding on their door through his sleepiness. Looking over at the clock, he stumbled out of bed. "Who in God's name could that be at nearly midnight?" he asked nobody.
"As if you didn't know." Erica yawned. "I bet you anything it's Brooke." She looked at the clock and tried to think. "She's not supposed to be here until tomorrow afternoon, though."
Opening the door in nothing but boxers, Jack strained his eyes at his intruder. "Brooke? It's late! Did they kick everyone out of The Bricks already?"
Ignoring his near nakedness and bad joke about the pending closure of the naval base, she pushed into his apartment and quickly sat on his couch. "I... I needed to talk to you right away!" she said, her voice obviously shaken.
"Well they have these things called phones you know!" Jack quipped as he closed the door and walked up to her. "You want anything? Coffee? Tea? Hard liquor? You look like you've seen a ghost!"
"I couldn't use a base phone, Jack!" She looked up at him. "I'm in trouble!"
Sitting next to her, he shook his head to clear the cobwebs. "Well, whoever she is, we'll get a shotgun and make an honest woman of you!"
"Jack!" she yelled. "Be serious! I got called in for Office Hours today!"
Suddenly wide-awake and serious, he leaned forward. "What's the beef?"
"Someone anonymously filed a complaint, Jack! Article one-thirty-four!"
Jack furrowed his brow. "Adultery? Seriously? Brooke! They can't make it stick! They'd have to have photos or a confession that say we did something that I'm damn sure we've never done or confessed to! Besides, they'd never even bother unle..." He looked at her seriously. "What're the other charges?"
"Cohabitation." she replied. "He... or whoever it is, knows I've stayed here a bunch of times! The CO said that the person filing the complaint threatened that unless something is done about it, they'll take the story to the papers! That sets the second and third points of evidence, Jack!"
"They can't prove the first though, Brooke!" he said, standing and pacing the room. "Without that, they can't make anything stick! They can search this apartment top to bottom and they're not going to find anything of yours!"
Shaking her head, she closed her eyes. "Sit down, Jack! You're making me more nervous!" When he'd done so, she let out a worried breath. "The CO told me he knows they can't prove anything, but the rumor mill is so full of talk about us two seeing each other behind Erica's back that he ordered me to stop seeing you and accept counseling because it was hurting moral! If I violate that, or refuse, they can Court Martial me for defying orders!"
"What can we do to help?" Erica asked as she came into the room.
Jack waved her away. "It's fine, honey. I just need to think for a minute."
Refusing to accept his dismissal, Erica persisted. "I don't know much about the military, but... I mean, can't I like, sign an affidavit or something saying that every time you stayed here that I was here and you two were nowhere near each other? I mean, they can't stop you two from being friends based on a rumor, can they?"
"That might work, Brooke." he pointed out, suddenly hopeful. "If we go to the Old Man and tell him how it is, that we never actually dated and I was just helping you keep the guys away, he'll have to drop it. He knows he can't ask you why you didn't want to date any guys!"
Sighing, Brooke nodded. "Yeah, but it also means that the ruse is finished. I'll have to do my last thirteen months without you keeping the flies off me! Everyone who's been laying low will be right back on me again!"
"Can't do anything about that now, Brooke." he pointed out. "I'll call Monday morning. It has to be done." Jack stood and headed for the door before he stopped. "Well, there's one alternative."
"What?" Brooke looked at him hopefully.
"You can follow orders." he stated simply. "Take the counseling and stop coming over."
"Jack!" Erica cried. "She can't do that! You're her best friend!"
Shaking her head, Brooke looked at Jack resignedly. "Besides, it wouldn't make any difference. If I give in, it'll go on my record and the guys will be on me anyway. No, she's right, Jack. My only hope now is you two."
He nodded in acceptance and resumed his walk to the door. "In the mean time, you need to get out of here. Go back to The Bricks and tough it out 'till Monday."
Brooke walked over to the open door and hugged him as Erica looked on. "Thank you, Jack! You're the best friend anyone could ever have!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
True to his word, Jack called the CO first thing Monday and laid it out for him, that he and I had never had a relationship, that it was always a ruse so I wouldn't be pressured for dates, and Erica backed him up the whole way! He was skeptical, but when Erica nearly bit his head off at the accusation that Jack was cheating on her, that sold him. He dropped the whole deal, with no ticklish questions about why. Within hours, I heard that it had gotten around that Jack and I had been a big lie the whole time. The funny thing is, it didn't get worse. In fact, I hardly ever got hit on again after that! Seems once they learned Jack and I had never been a couple, that I hadn't dated anyone for over five years, the trouser hounds lost interest. Oh sure, I got a few asks right afterwards, but all I had to say was 'no' and they wouldn't ask again. My rep went from 'she must be great in bed' to 'she's frigid' in two days. I was never so thankful for being unpopular! So my Leave started the last week of November and, since I hadn't used any that year, I was able to take three full weeks. I decided I wanted to take a trip back home on the way out to Heather and Richard's place and spend a day to introduce my best friends to my folks.
---
Stepping out of the rental car they had driven from the airport, Jack looked around. "So this is your old man's place?" he asked. "Nice."
Brooke looked at him suspiciously as she climbed out of the back seat. "OK, so what's the gag, then?"
"What? I mean it! It's nice!" Jack held his hands up defensively.
"Jack, you have never given a serious compliment in your life! So, what's wrong with it?" she barked.
Erica smiled as she got out. "Nothing's wrong, Brooke! I just told Jack that if he embarrassed you while we're here he'd be sleeping alone for the rest of our trip!" She closed her car door and arched her eyebrows at Brooke.
"Huh!" Brooke leaned on the door, closing it. "Well, I'll be damned! He can be serious!"
"Only when absolutely necessary." he corrected her. "Well, you're a better man than I am, Gunga Din! Lead the way!"
The trio coming up the walk, the door opened before they were even halfway up. "Brooke, darling!" her mother exclaimed as she ran down the walkway. Reaching her daughter, the older woman threw her arms around her. "We've missed you so much, baby!" Rocking her back and forth, she finally released her. "I'm sorry, dear! I didn't mean to embarrass you!" She wiped her damp eyes and looked at Jack and Erica. "I'm Carolyn Hathaway!" she said gaily, extending her hand to Erica.
"Erica Dunning! This is my husband, Jack!" she said with a smile. "It's a pleasure, Mrs. Hathaway!"
Looking at Jack, she smiled politely. "How do you do, Jack. Won't you all come in?" She led them into the house. "Mark! Brooke's home!" she shouted. "Please, make yourself at home! Brooke, dear? Why don't you sit and rest? I know it's a long way from San Francisco. Mark!"
"I'm coming! Jeez, woman! The girl's not going anywhere!" Brooke's father stepped into the living room from his den, a cane in his left hand.
Looking him over, Jack could instantly see the veteran inside the man. His pride was only tempered by the white hair that topped his head. While his clothes were common jeans and a polo shirt that wouldn't look out of place anywhere, Jack noticed that his shoes were polished black boots with not a scuff or smudge and his clothes were neatly pressed. He fought the almost instinctual desire to salute; the man's baring screaming 'officer on deck'. It wasn't until his eyes met his daughter and his face cracked a smile that Jack could finally see the father inside the veteran.
"Brooke, sweetie!" he exclaimed. Recovering quickly, his face once again became an emotionless mask. "Ehem! I see you're looking well. Would you mind?" He nodded toward Jack and Erica.
"Oh! Sorry!" Brooke apologized. "Dad? This is my best friend Jack and his wife Erica. Jack? This is my dad, Colonel Mark Hathaway!"
Extending his hand to Jack, he grimaced. "USMC, Retired, she should have added!" Noting Jack's sharp handshake, he smiled slightly. "You've got the look, but it's gone slack. How long you been Outside?"
"Five months, sir." Jack snapped out of habit. "It's an honor to meet you, sir. Your daughter is a fine Marine!"
"She would have made a finer officer!" he barked as he made his way into the room. "Damn waste, her piddle-farting with handheld radios, generators, and crap like that!"
Jack's habit of taking the heat off his friends was hard to break. "Oh, but she's the best at it! She once fixed a radio that no one could figure out what was wrong! Saved my bacon from our CO that thought I was skating!"
He only grunted in reply. "Still, she had the makings of a finer officer! Like myself and my father before me!"
"Dad!" Brooke almost whined. "We've been through this countless times! I wanted to serve my way! Not yours or grandpa's!"
"Bah!" he exclaimed, dismissively waving his free hand in her direction as he lowered himself into his easy chair. "I get it, girl! Still, don't amount to much!" Relaxing back, he looked at Erica who looked pensive. "Don't worry yourself over me, girl. I'm just a grouchy ol' fart who's all bark! No teeth left to bite with!" he smiled at her as he finished.
Relaxing, Erica sighed in relief. "It is a pleasure to meet you, Mr. Hathaway! Brooke..."
"Call me Mark!" he barked. "I'm no 'Mister' anymore!" He looked at Jack. "Same to you! And don't call me sir again, neither! I'm retired and I don't want you makin' me feel like I need to be ready to return a damn salute!"
Jack fought the comical urge to shout, 'Sir! Yes, sir!' and snap a salute with every fiber of his being. Biting his tongue, he just smiled and nodded. "OK, Mark. You can call me Jack!"
The old man grunted and nodded. "You were stationed at The Barracks in Alameda too, I take it? How long were you in?"
"Since eighty-nine, s... so I did seven years in." he just managed to bite off calling him sir again.
Mark grinned, knowing he had almost caught Jack out. "Mmmm. So were you in the Gulf then, or were you some damn box-kicker?"
"No, I was deployed with the First MEF out of San Diego then. Six months in The Sandbox with my buddy Rich. He's who we're off to see get married to the girl he's been dating." Jack explained.
"Mark!" his wife shouted. "That's quite enough, grilling our guests! They're here with Brooke and she's home to relax, not talk war stories!" Turning to the three, she shifted to a kinder tone. "Would you all like lunch? I made egg salad sandwiches!"
"That sounds great, Mrs. Hathaway!" Jack smiled.
The five sat around Brooke's parents' dinner table eating lunch and talking, Jack noticing her father eyeing him and then his daughter as if looking for any sign that they had been more than just friends. Clearing his throat, Jack excused himself.
"I'm gonna go rest my eyelids on the couch a few. If that would be alright, Mrs. Hathaway?" he said as he started to stand.
"Oh, please! Call me Carol! And you go right ahead, young man! We girls have a lot of getting to know one another to do!"
Mark grunted as he got up as well. "Well, if this is turning into a hen party, I'll be dealing myself out!" He stopped as he passed Brooke and leaned in to kiss her cheek. "Enjoy your talk with your mother. We'll talk more later." He hobbled out of the dining room and into the living room just as Jack was stretching out on the couch. "Shoes!" he barked.
"Oh! Sorry, s... so sorry!" he caught himself. Kicking his shoes to the floor, he stretched out and closed his eyes.
Sitting in his easy chair next to the couch, the retired Marine groaned as he lowered himself down. "I don't know how you kids do it now-a-days, but I feel every year of my thirty in the Corps right now!"
Jack nodded, his eyes still closed. "I feel all seven of mine every time you try to trick me into calling you sir, Mark!"
Chuckling, Mark relaxed. "I uh... I wanted to ask you, boy. About Brooke. She seeing anybody?"
Jack half-smiled. "At the moment I would guess your wife and mine!"
"Don't be a such smartass, boy!" he growled. "You know what I mean! Is she dating anyone? Hell, even a civilian would be good news!"
Sighing, Jack shook his head. "Sorry to disappoint, but she hasn't dated any guys the entire time I've known her, but she told me the first day we met that she wasn't going to date so long as she was serving, so..."
Mark grunted again. "Figures! I taught her too good to love the Corps! Now she's so gung-ho I ain't gonna be a grandpa before I'm dead and gone!"
"Well, you never know!" Jack shrugged. "Maybe she'll meet someone at the wedding! Awfully romantic time, weddings! Make people want to jump the broom themselves!"
"Jump the broom!" Mark exclaimed. "Jay-zus, boy! You talk like my father!"
"Blame my parents!" he chuckled lightly. "They probably were your dad's age! I was a late surprise! Dad served in the Pacific Theater in forty-two."
"Marine?"
Jack nodded. "Got blinded by a naval gun and when his sight came back he couldn't see straight ahead; peripheral only. Oh, he could work alright, but you can't fire a rifle at a target you can't look directly at. He spent the rest of the war doing laundry for Marines that could shoot. So he did his part."
"Damn shame!" Mark lamented. Despite his initial impression, he'd begun to like his daughter's friend, deciding to have a little fun at his expense. "So what's wrong with my Brooke, huh? Why'd you go and marry that other girl instead of her?"
Looking over at the man sitting behind his head, Jack chuckled. "Because she didn't want me, Mark! I'll admit, I was interested, but once she made it clear I wasn't her type, I let it go. Besides, I love 'that other girl', sir!"
Grumbling that Jack wasn't more unsettled by his rude question, he shut up and Jack closed his eyes again.
Caroline Hathaway sipped her tea while her daughter talked about how she had set up Erica and Jack on their first 'date'. "So, you've been in love with Jack since you were a little girl? Oh, that's such a beautiful story! There's just something about an older man that makes a woman feel loved!"
Brooke looked at her mother and then at Erica to explain. "Dad is ten years older than Mom. They met when she was only twenty and he was just shy of thirty."
"Oh!" Erica exclaimed. "Well, Jack's less than four years older than me, but when you're ten, every boy above twelve is old!"
The three laughed before Brooke's mother turned to her daughter. "Dearest, haven't you met anybody that you like while you were serving? Oh, I don't mean you should marry a fellow serviceman like your father, but..." She let her words hang in the air like a dangling sword.
"Mom! I told you when I left for Boot! I'm not going to date while I'm in the service! I don't need the distraction!"
"Nonsense!" she chided. "It didn't distract Erica's young man!"
"You have no idea how much it did distract him, Mom!" she retorted. "Jack never made Corporal because he was too busy going after this Latino girl that wouldn't give him the time of day and missed his cutting score!"
"Oh." she said, disappointed that Brooke had a legitimate comeback. "Well, you only have one year left and then... well... we'll see!"
Brooke sighed. "Yes, Mom. We'll see!"
Erica sat through the exchange uncomfortably. Trying to change the subject, she cleared her throat. "Brooke? Did you tell your mom when we get to New Hampshire you're going to be Heather's Maid of Honor at the wedding?"
"Really?" Caroline practically sang. "Oh, Brooke! Why didn't you tell me! Oh, sweetie! That's such an honor! You should be proud of it! This Heather must think very highly of you!"
While Brooke knew Erica was only trying to help by changing the subject, she groaned at what Erica had changed it to. "Oh, Mom!" She dropped her head onto the table with a loud thump. "This is why I didn't say anything! It's just a ceremony! All I do is stand there and get my picture taken after! It's not that big a deal!" She raised her head up and looked at her mother. "Don't even say it!"
"Mayb..." Caroline stopped herself. "Alright, Brooke. I won't." She grinned mischievously. "Who's the Best Man? Is he single?"
"Fortunately no, Mrs. Hathaway!" Erica giggled. "It's my husband, Jack!"
"Oh." she replied disappointed. "Will there be many Groomsmen or Ushers?"
"You want me to hit up the ring-bearer for his phone number while I'm at it, Mom?" Brooke asked snidely. "God, you have a one-track mind!"
"None of that, Brooke!" her mother snapped. "You don't need to be flippant with me! I just worry is all! I want to see you happy!"
Brooke nearly lost her temper, but checked it at the last second. "I am happy, Mom! Really! Do I want to find someone to be happy with? Damn straight, I do! Who doesn't! But I'm not going to force it!"
Sighing, Caroline shook her head. "Alright! I'll let it go!" Looking at Erica, she lowered her tone. "I apologize if we embarrassed you. I didn't mean to."
"It's fine, Carol. Really!" Erica put the older woman at ease.
"So, tell me about the happy couple!" she said, changing the subject slightly.
"It's my brother Richard and his fiancée Heather." Erica explained. "They've been dating for just over two years and they finally set a date!"
"Your brother asked your husband to be his Best Man, but you're not her Matron of Honor?" she asked. "Isn't that a little unusual?"
"Heather's known Brooke longer than she's known me, Mrs. Hathaway." she explained further. "I didn't meet Heather and Brooke until late last year."
"Oh! I understand, now!" She shot a glance at her daughter. "You might have at least written to me and told me about friends so close to you, dear!"
Brooke just laid her head back down on the table with a satisfying thump.
After lunch, Brooke took Jack and Erica on a tour around where she spent the latter part of her youth, including her last high school and the first place she'd taken a girl on a secret date. She didn't actually have that much to show them, having only spent two years living there after her father retired, but it was gratifying to get out of the house and away from her parents for a while.
"I swear to God that woman can drive me to drink!" Brooke fumed.
"Why not just tell them?" Jack asked. "It'd save you a lot of headache!"
She looked at Jack as though he'd suggested she set her hair on fire. "Are you nuts, Jack! Tell my old man, mister original Clean Marine, that his daughter digs chicks? He'd turn me in himself! And Mom? God, she'd have a stroke! She's been harping on me to get married since I was five!"
"Now, now!" Jack admonished. "Let's not exaggerate! I'm willing to bet she didn't start really harping on you until you were at least twelve!"
"I'll take that action!" Brooke shot back. "For my fifth birthday, she got me a little girl's wedding dress and play wedding set!"
"It's normal for a five year old girl to want stuff like that for her birthday!" Jack countered. "Maybe she thought you'd like it!"
"I asked for a football!"
Erica couldn't hold it back anymore and started giggling hysterically.
"What do you think is so damn funny?" Brooke asked, still fuming.
"S-sorry! I... I can't help it, Brooke! Now I've got this image in my head of five-year-old you in a cute little girl's wedding dress playing football!" Her giggles grew into full belly laughs.
She tried to stay mad, but soon Brooke was smiling and then laughing along with her.
Shaking his head, Jack drove around aimlessly. "If you two hyenas are quite through, I think we should start heading back."
Walking back into her parents' living room once more, Brooke yelled out to them. "Mom! Dad! We're back! We brought ice cream!"
Caroline came out from the kitchen, smiling politely. "That's very thoughtful, dear. Here, I'll put it in the freezer until after supper."
Holding on to it to delay her from taking it for a moment, Brooke looked down. "Just a little peace offering, Mom. I'm sorry for earlier."
Smiling genuinely, she looked away embarrassedly. "It's fine, sweetie. I... I just... I worry! That's all!"
"I know Mom, and it's sweet really, but honestly, I'm fine! I'm happy! And when... not if... when I find someone that I can share that with, it'll be when it is ready to happen. Not a moment sooner. OK?"
Nodding in acceptance, her mother looked at her. "I know, baby. I'll... I'll try not to make an issue of it anymore, alright?" Looking at the three, she took a cleansing breath. "Well! We're having the best meatloaf in Oklahoma tonight! I assume you can stay for supper?"
Brooke nodded weakly. "Yeah, Mom. For dinner, then we're gonna have to go. Stopping off was supposed to be a just layover, but I managed to swing a later connecting flight so I could see you two. We got a ten o'clock flight to Detroit." Seeing the disappointment on her mother's face, Brooke smiled to try and turn it around. "We have the rest of today, though! Maybe after the wedding I can stop on the way back and stay a while. I have Leave time."
Looking up, her mother squared her shoulders. "Yes! We do have the rest of the day! Let's make the most of it!"
While the three were driving back to the airport, Jack looked over at Erica sitting in the passenger seat beside him, Brooke reading in the back seat with a book light. "Something on your mind, love?" he asked his wife.
"Just wondering what they'll say when Brooke does find someone." Erica mused. "I mean, it's obvious they love her very much, but... I... I just..."
"But?" Jack asked. Nodding knowingly, he grimaced. "But you know your mother loves you, and yet she barely speaks to you for who you married. I guess it's not just people like Brooke that have their families torn up because of who they love." He sighed and let just a moment pass before asking his question. "Any regrets?"
"None!" Erica said without hesitation as she looked over at him. "Not one! Not ever! Not for anything! I wouldn't care if the whole world hated me for loving you! I'd never regret a single moment of it! I love you!"
He smiled at her a moment before turning back to watch the road. "Ya' know, sometimes I feel bad that I came between you and your mom. Oh, I know she can be a pain sometimes, but I know you still love her and she loves you." Pausing he sighed. "Unfortunately, she loves you so much she'd rather you be in a gilded, loveless cage where you'd want for nothing, except the one thing you always wanted."
Erica nodded. "My Jack!"
"My Buttons!" he returned.
"You two mind clapping a lid on that gunk?" Brooke sighed. "I don't want to get car sick!"
Waking in the dark to the phone ringing, Richard reached over and grabbed it mumbling, "Hargrave."
"Rich!? It's me! Jack!"
"Jack?" Richard pried his eyes open. "What time is it? Are you just leaving Detroit now?"
"No, we just landed at Boston-Manchester! We're here, buddy-boy!"
Richard sat straight up as Heather rolled over next to him and tried to cuddle. "Jack! I thought your flight was delayed! You weren't supposed to be here for another... um... What time is it?"
"Four in the morning!" Jack laughed. "Turned out the layover in Detroit was only delayed a few minutes, but we didn't have a chance to call and let you know! Don't sweat it, Rich! We'll snag a place to flop for what laughingly passes for the rest of the night!"
"No! I'll... I'll come get you, Jack!" He yawned in the middle of speaking. "Let me just... um... just let me..."
"Go back to sleep, Rich!" Jack ordered. "I just wanted to let you know so you weren't down at the airport at seven in the morning looking for us! We'll call when we're up and about and have you pick us up when you won't fall asleep behind the wheel!"
"Alright." he yawned. "See you tomorrow, Jack." he said groggily as he hung up and rolled over, already asleep before he finished settling in.
Later that afternoon, Richard pulled up in front of a motel near the airport. When he saw Jack turn around and flash his half-grin, Richard chuckled and almost leapt from his BMW before coming to a stop. "Jack!" Wrapping his best friend in a tight hug after months apart, the longest time since the day they'd met, he slowly released him and embraced Erica. "Missed you, kiddo!"
"Missed you, too!" she replied. "How's Heather?"
"Doing good!" he replied. "Busy, but happy!" Turning to Brooke, he clasped her hand and pulled her into a quick hug. "How've ya' been ya' Devil Dog ya'! Jack still keeping the hounds at bay for you?"
"Actually, he doesn't need to anymore!" Brooke half explained.
Richard turned to Jack. "What? You figure some angle to keep guys from seeing her as gorgeous?"
"Not exactly." Jack quickly explained what had happened after Richard left while they put their luggage in Richard's car. "So now they just ignore her! Since the word is out that she hasn't dated any guys in over six years, they don't want her anymore!" Closing the trunk, he leaned on it. "Huh! I guess women are right! Guys are stupid!"
Driving back home, he decided to hold off on catching up with them more until they were settled in so they wouldn't have to tell it all twice, once to him, and again to Heather. Instead, he talked about his and Heather's lives.
"She filed her Candidate for Licensure Agreement before we left Cali, and took the Clinical Mental Health Counselor Exam shortly after we got here. Since then it's been 'hurry up and wait' while she interns with this Therapist's office she's working for. For now she's a glorified secretary, but as soon as her license is approved she can start work! Should be any day now!"
"Is she going to get any time off after the wedding?" Erica asked. "I would hope she won't be spending her Honeymoon at work!"
"Not much." Richard laughed. "She has two weeks off after the ceremony, but then she's going to have to work through our first Christmas."
"That's too bad!" his sister pouted. "I suppose it's for the best, though. At least she gets time off to Honeymoon with you first!"
Jack tapped him on the shoulder. "What about you, buddy-boy? How's your new box-kicker job working out?"
"It's not box-kicking!" Richard barked. "It's actually an interesting job. I'm a Senior Business Analyst with the company. The lowest one, but my VP's a Leatherneck too, so he likes me. I think I'll be moving up pretty quick! The money's nothing to sneeze at! Low six figures!"
"Nice!" Jack complimented. "So what's the downside?"
"I have to wear a suit. That and everyone there thinks that because I was in the Corps that I must have the IQ and temperament of a rabid wolverine, so they either talk to me like I'm stupid or about to snap their neck!"
"I dunno, Rich. You sometimes struck me as the kinda guy who might end up in a news story with the words, '...finally turning the gun on himself'!"
The four chatted for a while until Richard pulled up into Heather's driveway. "This is it!" Richard stated proudly after a half-hour drive.
Jack looked out the window and had to do a double take. "Wait a minute! I thought you guys said you were moving to an apartment?" Jack looked out the window again, his brain not accepting what his eyes were seeing.
"Well..." Richard scratched his neck. "After we got here, I found out that the company I came to work for is actually headquartered in Keene, not Concord where Heather works. Only the final interview was in Concord. There was a miscommunication. Since Heather's home is in Hillsboro, about halfway between the two, we decided for now to just set up in her old home. It's a twenty mile commute for us, in opposite directions, but it could be worse!"
"Oh, yeah!" Jack quipped as he got out and looked at the place his best friend was living. "Twenty miles! I would definitely say it could have been worse! What a hardship for two of the upper crust!"
"At least it's twenty miles of relatively uncrowded highway." he pointed out as he walked around the car. "Nothing like the Bay Area or Pittsburgh! Even on a bad day I can get to work in under forty minutes, and it's forty minutes of gorgeous driving! Come on in!"
The traveling trio surveyed the 'old home' Heather had talked about. It was less a home and more a sprawling mansion. Three stories tall, the house was magnificent. Painted in stately white, the house looked to be of eighteenth century design with an expansive semicircular driveway in front that led to a six-car garage. The house proper looked like six buildings connected to one another with an old-fashioned barn further off to the north.
As Richard walked to the stone pathway that led up to the main entryway, he turned around to see the three guests standing there stunned. "What's the matter?" he asked concernedly. "Come on in!" Reaching the front door, his guests finally following, it opened and an elderly man greeted him.
"Welcome home, Master Richard!" he rasped happily. "Shall I see to your guests' luggage?"
Nodding, Richard greeted him. "That would be great! Thanks, Gregory!" Waving the three in, he almost glowed with pride. "Well? What do you think? Pretty nice, eh?"
Jack looked around the room he'd entered; the high vaulted ceilings making it feel open and homey, and yet still opulent. "No, Rich. Your parents' place back in Pittsburgh was 'pretty nice'. This is un-frigging-believable! You live here? This isn't, like, a museum exhibit or National Historic Treasure meant to preserve eighteenth century architecture? It's a house?"
"Yes!" Heather said politely but cheerfully as she entered from an adjacent room. "It's a house, Jack! It's my house! Welcome to Moore Estates!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
Heather wasn't kidding or bragging, either. Five huge bedrooms, seven full baths, a great room, a formal dining room, and an adjacent kitchen, all with flawless pinewood floors that shined with two centuries of care and attention. In the wings off the main building was the library, den, music room, and what Heather called the 'Meeting Room'. It had marble floors and it's own huge fireplace, in addition to the one in the great room. The bedrooms were all on the second and third floors, each with their own private bath, with two bathrooms on the main floor. The attached garage had chauffeur's quarters, as well as a machine shop... and that was just the house! The property itself was almost beyond description. Forty-five acres with a private pond, apple orchard, woods, walkways, green space, equestrian trails, and, oh yes, lets not forget the 'barn'! The three-story barn with heated stalls and tack room and its own laundry! The second floor was a home for stable workers. Kitchen, living area, bathroom, with the three bedrooms on the third floor, and all of it surrounded by forestlands and fields that were donated to the state as a preserve. It was truly magnificent! When we first arrived, I thought Heather was trying to show off, but she was just as warm and friendly as she'd always been. She was just very proud of her family home.
---
Brooke was speechless when Heather showed her to her room. It wasn't as large as the one she'd seen following Jack and Erica to the room Heather had given them, but it was more opulent than any she'd ever seen, let alone been allowed to sleep in. Centuries-old furniture decorated the room perfectly; an oak four poster bed with matching nightstands, a dresser, two wardrobes, and a vanity graced the room with functional style. On the far wall, French doors opened onto a balcony that connected all the bedrooms on the second floor.
"Heather! I... I can't stay here!" Brooke stammered.
Concerned, she walked up to her Maid of Honor. "Why not? I thought you'd like it!" She looked around the room wistfully. "This used to be my room, ever since I was a little girl. I... When Richard and I came home, I finally moved into my parents' bedroom." A note of sadness tainted her otherwise loving description of her home.
"I do like it!" Brooke exclaimed apologetically. "It's just I like it too much! I... I'd be afraid I'd ruin the floors with my sweaty feet!"
Laughing, Heather placed a hand on her shoulder. "It's fine, Brooke! Like I said, I grew up in this room! There's nothing you can do to it that I haven't done a hundred times over or even worse, dear! I used to draw on the walls! I think I drove my poor mother crazy, sometimes!"
Facing her, Brooke smiled. "Thank you, Heather! It's a lovely room! I... I really appreciate that you're letting me stay here!"
"Nonsense!" she dismissed Brooke's seriousness. "You're my Maid of Honor! I wanted to put you in the best room! The floor here is warm in the morning because the Great Room is right below us, so heat from the fireplace comes up through the floor!" Lowering her voice to a conspiratorial whisper, she smiled wryly. "Just don't tell Jack and Erica!"
While the two talked, across the hallway the two in question were putting away their things in their own opulent surroundings.
"Did you notice the look Gregory gave us when we said we'd unpack our own suitcases?" she asked.
"I noticed that she has a cook, butler, two maids, two groundskeepers, and a chauffeur." Jack intoned as he unpacked. "That's what I noticed!"
"Jack!" Erica stood and put her hands on her hips. "You aren't being snobbish about Heather's family background, are you?"
"Me, snobbish?" Jack pointed at himself. "I'm not the one with servants!"
"Jack Dunning!" she almost yelled at him before lowering her voice again. "Heather does not have servants! She has people that work for her! It's not like they're slaves or something! You know Heather! She likely pays them very well! Would they stay if she didn't?"
Something about Erica's logic seemed slippery and no matter how he tried, Jack couldn't make it gel. "OK, sure. She probably pays well, but don't you think people ought to take care of their own homes and not someone else's?"
Walking over to him, she stood in front of Jack with a look on her face that reminded him of the first day they met. "Do you see this place, Jack? Do you think Heather alone could keep it up? What was she supposed to do? Let it fall to ruin while she was in school? That would almost be criminal!" She glared at him. "And don't you even think about making a stink over the place she calls home, Jack! So help me God if you do, you'll be spending the next year sleeping on the sofa! Is that clear?"
Seeing he wasn't going to win this argument, Jack sighed in defeat, holding up his hands. "Alright! You win! But I'm telling you, I for one cannot wait to get out of this place and go back to a normal home!"
Erica shook her head in disbelief. "Of all people, I never thought I'd see the day when I'd lose any respect for you, Jack. You're a snob! You think you're better than Heather because you grew up poor, don't you? Like she's less of a person! She can't help who her family is, any more than I can, Jack! You think you're better than me, too? Because I grew up in Squirrel Hill and not North Oakland? Is that it? Oooo!" Erica stormed away from him and began throwing her clothes in the dresser one at a time as she boiled with anger.
Slowly, Jack walked to stand behind her as she knelt in front of the dresser. "Erica, can you stop for a second so we can talk?" He kept his voice low and soft, almost apologetic. "Please, Buttons?"
She stopped and almost began to sob, she was so angry. Composing herself, Erica stood back up and turned to him; her voice low and growling. "Alright. Fine! We'll talk." She stormed over to the bed and sat on it, curling one leg under her and waited.
Talking a breath, Jack moved and sat on the edge of the bed with his elbows resting on his spread knees and his fingertips together; his head hanging in shame. "You're right. I'm a snob. A slum snob. All my life I've seen people who had everything... handed to them on a silver platter... while Mom and I barely scraped by. All of Rich's friends who lived in nice houses and got cars on their sixteenth birthday? I hated them for it! Hated them for having it easy while Mom couldn't afford shoes." He looked up at Erica. "And I was just as wrong as Ox ever was. I'm sorry I'm such a disappointment to you."
"Oh, Jack!" she groaned. "You're not a disappointment! It's just..." Sighing in exasperation, Erica took a breath. "You can't blame people for what they have or don't, Jack! You know that! I would've done anything when we were kids to make your life easier! I hated seeing your heart get broken, or going through all the terrible things that happened to you, but you once told me you had to go through it, right? That there was a reason for it? Well, can't there be a purpose behind Heather's life, too? Why it had to be easy? Isn't that just as much a part of it as suffering?"
"You're right!" he smiled at her. "But then, you've always been right!" He reached out a hand to her and pulled her to him when she took it. "You were right for loving me, you were right when you showed it to me, and you're right now. What did I ever do to deserve you, Buttons?"
"Nothing." she replied as she wrapped him in her arms. "Just like I never deserved this!" She leaned forward and pressed her lips to his, feeling the spark of electrical shivers that coursed through her entire body. Deepening their kiss, she found herself hungering for his touch with more ferocity than their first time. Just as she was about to suggest they do something about it, she heard a knock on the door.
"Erica? Jack?" Heather spoke through the door. "Lunch is almost ready!"
She groaned as she slid down his body. "Alright! We'll be down in a minute!" she shouted. Gripping the front of his shirt, Erica looked up at him. "Lunch, then dinner..." Sliding up against him once more, she planted a passionate kiss on his lips. "...then you!"
Swallowing hard, Jack was almost in fear of her. "Yes, dear!" Half-smiling as they stood up, he added, "Remind me to do something stupid once in a while so I can come to my senses again! I like the aftermath! Ouch!"
Erica slapped his belly with the back of her hand. "Not even funny, Jack!" she said as she tried to keep the smile off her face. "Come on. Lets get this stuff tucked away and get downstairs!"
Holding Heather's seat out for her as she sat at the table, she looked up at Richard with adoration. "Thank you, dear!"
"My pleasure!" he replied, leaning down to kiss her quickly before seating himself with Gregory's assistance.
Watching the loving exchange between two of her best friends, Brooke had a feeling of deep longing mixed with bitterness. The three sat for a moment chatting before Erica and Jack came in, Richard rising as his sister entered the room.
"Sorry we took so long, Heather!" Erica apologized as they entered. "Your family home takes a little getting used to! It's huge!"
When Erica was about to seat herself at the table and Jack seat himself next to her, Richard cleared his throat. "Ehem! Jack?"
Stopping and about to sit, he looked over at his best friend. "What? Barn door open?"
Shaking his head, he waved dismissively as Erica finished seating herself. "Never mind, you cretin! Siddown!"
Looking confusedly across the table at Brooke, he asked in a hushed voice, "What'd I do?"
Shaking her head, Brooke sipped on her glass of water. "Manners, Jack. A gentleman always seats a lady. Don't you know nuthin'?"
"Oh!" he looked over at Erica. "I... I'm sorry, Buttons! I just thought..." He looked at the others seated at the table with him. "Don't women hate that kind of stuff now-a-days? When did this become a thing again? Last time I held a door for a woman, she bit my head off!"
Chuckling, Richard's laugh carried through the room and echoed off the old walls. "Not here, Jack! This isn't California! That part of Women's Lib never really reached this part of New England!"
Jack sat up straight. "Oh! Well, I'll just have to get back in the habit again, then! Hate to think Mom taught me all that stuff for nothin'! I guess today's the day I get to use some of it! So what's the plan?"
While Gregory brought out their soup and finger sandwiches, Heather looked toward Richard. "Well, we were thinking of just spending the day relaxing and catching up. I'm sure a lot has happened in the last six months, for all of us! Thank you, Gregory!" she added when he smilingly set her soup down in front of her.
Watching the old butler serve everyone while Heather and Richard talked as though it were an everyday occurrence was a little unsettling for Jack. Try as he might to push aside the feelings, he couldn't get past the fact that he was sitting and doing nothing while an old man brought them their food and then stood by to wait on them while they ate.
His discomfort didn't go unnoticed. "Jack?" Heather asked in the middle of telling them about her medical office. "Is everything alright? Did you need Gregory to get you something?"
Lowering his head, Jack chuckled at the irony. He was uncomfortable with being waited on by Gregory and she wanted to fix it by having him wait on Jack even more. "No. I'm fine, Heather. A little tired is all." he lied badly.
Reading his best friend like a book, Richard cleared his throat. "Gregory? Would you mind excusing us for just a moment?" Once the butler had left the room and it was only the five of them, Richard looked at him. "Alright, you can relax now, Jack! Spill it!"
Looking at Erica with a helpless expression, Jack looked at the floor. "OK! I admit it! I... I can't get used to being waited on! It's... weird! I keep finding myself wanting to get up and help the old guy!"
Heather looked away almost ashamedly. "So... so that's what you think of me, Jack?"
"No!" he protested, looking up at her seriously. "I don't think any less of you, Rich, or anyone! This is my problem, not yours! You haven't done anything wrong! Honest! I... I'm just a guy who grew up having to do everything for himself is all. It's... it's an adjustment that's harder than I'd hoped it would be. I never wanted to make you feel uncomfortable with my issues! I swear!"
Brooke hadn't said much of anything since the butler had seated her. Finally she spoke. "Well, I'm with Jack on this. I don't think any less of people that have..." She paused a moment while she carefully selected her words so as to not offend. "...staff, but it is weird for someone like Jack and me that are used to doing things for ourselves. I'm just better at hiding it than him, but then, I've always been better at pretty much everything than Jack!"
Her humor managed to defuse what could have been an ugly scene into a round of giggles from everyone at the table except Jack. "Oh, very funny, Brooke! You should take that on the stage! The first one out of town!"
After a moment more of light laughter, Jack looked over at Heather who was still trying to wipe the smile off her face. "Look, I'm sorry if I offended you, Heather." he said seriously. "I didn't mean to and I was trying to not to. I'm still just a screwed up kid from North Oakland!"
"It's fine, Jack." she accepted with a sigh. "I should have known better. You can't take people like you and Brooke that aren't used to being waited on and just drop them in it and expect it not to rub them the wrong way. I'm the one who should apologize! If it makes you feel any better, Gregory and the others are very well paid for what they do around here and I couldn't hope to run this house without them!"
Erica poked Jack in the ribs. "See? I told you!"
"I sometimes feel like Gregory is almost like a second father to me," Heather admitted, "and Theresa's been the cook for my family since I was a child! They're all like family."
"I have no complaints!" Jack offered. "The soup is great! Heck, everything here is! But yes, it does make me feel better knowing all that. I should have known! You can't be anything less than you Heather, but do you have to be so generous that you're willing to live with this box-kicker the rest of your life?" he asked, pointing a spoon at Richard.
"Hey!" he barked. "Watch your language, Snuffy! I can still kick your butt!"
Relaxing into the lunch, Gregory came in again, served coffee, and collected their bowls. As he did, Jack decided to truly make himself at home, so when the butler was heading for the kitchen, he quickly got up and held the door for him.
"Thank you, Master Jack!" Gregory smiled at him. "But there's no need! I can manage!" he said happily as he entered the kitchen.
His tone was friendly, but Jack could detect the faintest hint of irritation as he tried to help. Returning to his seat, the rest of them looking at him, Jack shrugged. "What? You said to make myself at home! I wanted to help is all!"
"Jack," Richard explained, "I know you're used to doing your part, but help like that would be like when Corporal Rogers thought he was helping you when he squared away your rack for you."
"That's not the same thing!" Jack defended his actions. "Rogers was being a smartass! Kept telling me my rack wasn't regulation!"
"It's the same to Gregory, Jack!" Richard retorted. "If you help him, he'll think that you don't think he can do his job!"
Thinking about it from that perspective, Jack mulled it over as he sugared his coffee. "Well, when you put it that way, you make me feel like an absolute heel for wanting to help! Should I apologize? You know, sort of explain it to him? I just don't want to make it worse is all!"
"Just let them do their jobs, Jack." Heather said softly. "Enjoy being able to take it easy for a while!" Relaxing after lunch, Heather continued with her glowing description of her new job. Finishing up, she noticed Gregory refill Jack's cup, Jack just smiling and thanking him. "So Jack, what have you been doing these months? Getting up to no good, I assume!"
"You know me too well, Heather!" he replied as he re-sweetened his drink.
"Nonsense!" Erica chided him. "Jack is doing fine!"
"Seriously, I've been doing alright." he admitted. "I started managing this dry cleaner in Palo Alto. Pay is pretty good, so Buttons and I should be able to put a substantial down on a place when Erica graduates in the spring."
Richard turned to Brooke. "How's things at The Bricks? I told Heather that things have been easier lately, but anything new?"
Nodding as she drank her coffee, Brooke put the cup down. "They closed the NADEP at the end of September. All the Airdales are gone."
"They really are gonna close Alameda, aren't they? Like the end of an era. Any idea when?" he asked.
Shrugging, Brooke sighed. "Nothing official, but scuttlebutt is that it could close by next spring, probably early May, I'd guess."
"So, you'll be moved to another base before I graduate?" Erica asked sadly.
Brooke looked away. "It's almost a guarantee. I doubt the base will still be open next June, and I don't qualify for Early Release. The Corps is already done with their drawdowns. Either way, my enlistment won't end until next September thirtieth, and I'm not shipping over again."
"What are your plans when you get out?" Jack asked. "I don't think you've ever said."
"I'm not sure." Brooke answered honestly. "I'd thought about college, but then I don't know what for. I guess right now I don't have a plan. I always thought I'd be a lifer."
"You could always do like your old man suggested, go to college and become an officer!" Jack snorted.
"Oh, Ha! Ha!" Brooke sneered at him. "No, I'm done with the service. At least as an enlisted I'm safe from Airdales and other officers. No way would I ever want to open that can of worms!"
"So? You've got ten more months to figure something out then." Jack pointed out. "Plenty of time!"
"In the mean time Brooke," Heather changed the subject, "I was hoping you would go with me into town tomorrow? You'll need a fitting if you want your dress to be altered before Saturday. You too, Erica!"
Brooke's mood quickly went from apathetic to irritated. "Jeez, Heather! Are you really gonna make me wear a stupid Bridesmaid's dress? Honestly?"
"What would you suggest, Brooke?" Jack asked with a grin. "Suit and tie?"
"That might be preferable!" she quipped. Looking at Heather with the same look she used to give her mom when she didn't want to eat her lima beans, Brooke knew that she was going to give in, but that didn't make her like it. "OK! Fine! Dress me up like a friggin' Barbie doll, Heather! At least I know it's only for an hour or two, and then I can burn the damn thing!"
"I'd be surprised if satin doesn't spontaneously combust when it touches your skin, Brooke!" Jack let slip. "Like a cross on a vampire?" He then hissed like Bela Lugosi. If nothing more, it made Brooke laugh and forget her troubles for a moment.
Richard chuckled before he cleared his throat. "Erm... I... uh... I hate to rub salt in it Brooke, but it'll be more like six to eight hours."
"What?" she yelled. "Eight hours? Dressed up like a cake topper?"
"You're forgetting about the reception, pictures, and the bridal party will be getting their hair and makeup done that morning." Heather pointed out. "We will have to be wearing our dresses when we do, otherwise when we go to put them on it will ruin it all!"
Shaking her head, Brooke refused. "Uh-uh! I ain't letting some amateur do anything to my hair! I can do my own, and better!" Sitting up straight, she got a look of giddiness across her face. "That's it!" she slammed her hand down on the table, making Gregory jump slightly. "I've been knocking my brains out over what to get you two for your wedding, and that's it!"
"Brooke!" Heather interjected. "You don't have to give us anything!"
"Yeah!" Jack added. "You never got us nothin'!"
"You two got my car for an entire week, buddy-boy! Remember?" Turning to Heather, she grinned. "I want to do everyone's hair and makeup! I can do that, and it'll make me feel like I gave you two something! Please?"
Erica stepped in for Brooke. "Oh, Heather! You really should let her do it! She did mine for New Years!"
"She did, did she?" Jack asked with a pointed look at Brooke.
Suddenly shy, Erica demurred. "Well, I... I wanted to look perfect for you!"
"Why you old softie!" Jack stared at Brooke in astonishment. "I wasn't just set up, I was submarined! I never stood a chance, did I?"
"Nope!" Brooke answered as she smiled into her cup. "Not a chance!"
"Alright!" Heather admitted defeat. "Only because you want to, Brooke! I don't want you to feel you have to!"
Suddenly feeling a lot better about the impending nuptials, the 'dress issue' temporarily forgotten, Brooke hardly listened to a word after that. Instead the Marine spent the rest of their lunch going over in her head what she planned to do to make Heather shine brilliantly that day.
The next morning, Jack walked into the dress shop behind Erica so she too could get her fitting done. Turning a corner, the sight that greeted him was something the likes of which he had figured would signal the apocalypse. "Oh... my... God!"
Brooke glared at him as she stood on the pedestal in a beautiful pink satin strapless A-line gown. "Don't you say one fucking word, Jack! Not. One. Word!" A round of gasps followed from the seamstress, her assistant, and several ladies looking over dresses for their own weddings the next spring.
"Nope!" he replied. "I have no words, Brooke. Just waiting for the ground to open up and swallow us all!"
"Jack?" Erica warned. "Behave!"
"Yes, dear!" he replied dejectedly. "You ruin all my fun!"
Brooke closed her eyes and took a deep breath. While she stood waiting for the seamstress to finish pinning the gown, she rolled her eyes impatiently. "Aren't you done yet? I feel like I've been in this thing for hours!"
"It's been less than twenty minutes!" Jack pointed out. "Couldn't be longer! You only left half an hour ahead of us!"
The seamstress shook her head, talking through pins stuck between her teeth. "It'll only be another few minutes, ma'am."
"Don't ma'am, me!" Brooke snapped. "I'm no officer! I work for a living!"
"Sorry." she replied, trying to finish as quickly as she could. Standing after pinning the hemline, she worked on pinning the back as she asked Heather, "So, Miss Moore. Do you know when the other Bridesmaids are supposed to arrive?"
"Erica here is next, then I have two ladies from my medical group coming down. They should be here in the next ten minutes or so."
Just as she was finishing with Brooke, the door chimed once more as Jack turned to see two ladies enter. "I think that might be the others." he offered.
Heather rose and greeted them. "Maya! Jennifer! So glad you could make it! Mr. Frakes didn't give you a hard time about leaving, did he?"
Maya, the taller of the two shook her head. "He knew better! You may not be practicing yet, but he knows you will be next month!"
"Good!" She turned to Erica as Brooke stepped down off the platform. "Well, since they're here, would you mind if they went ahead of you Erica so they can get back to work?"
"Not at all, Heather!" she replied smiling. "I'm sure Jack won't mind waiting, will you, dear?"
"Yes, dear." he replied absently. "Oh! Uh... no, dear, I wouldn't mind!"
"Maya, why don't you go first." Heather suggested.
The tall blonde went back into the changing area just ahead of the fleeing Brooke, cutting the Marine off and closing the curtain in Brooke's face.
"Make a hole, lady!" Brooke barked, charging into the changing room. "I need to get out of this monkey suit! You can wait!" she barked as she pushed the blonde bodily back out through the curtains.
"Heather!" Maya whined. "Who does she think she is? Rude much?"
"Sorry!" Heather apologized for Brooke. "Brooke's my Maid of Honor, but she's... well... not entirely comfortable with the dress. Here, why don't you sit for a minute and I'll get you something to drink, alright?" She looked at the shop girl assisting the seamstress, who rushed off unasked, returning a short time later with a bottle of mineral water.
Waiting, Heather made introductions to Jack and Erica. When Brooke came back out carrying the dress, Heather sighed and shook her head as she saw her Maid of Honor toss the dress at the seamstress like a football.
"Here's your dress, lady." she barked. Sighing in frustration, she practically stalked back to Heather as Maya headed into the changing room. "I still don't know how you talked me into this, Heather! I think that damn thing's gonna fall down and my boobs are gonna pop out every time I move!"
"It'll be worth going to the wedding just for that!" Jack arched an eyebrow.
Erica smacked him in the back of the head. "Shut up, Jack!"
"Yes, dear." Jack muttered, rubbing the back of his head.
Turning to Brooke, Heather smiled sweetly. "It will fit better once it's fitted for your measurements, dear. I swear to you, it won't slip!" Seeing that her words still offered no comfort, Heather shook her head and sat back down, waiting for Maya to come out wearing her dress.
"Well, if you don't need me for a while," Brooke said, grabbing her purse, "I think I'll just pop down to that pizza place just down the strip. I'm starved! Wanna come, Jack? Split a meat lovers with ya'!"
The seamstress looked at Brooke as though the Marine had just slapped her. Turning to Heather as the two ran out the door, she was speechless with her eyes like saucers. "Wh... bu... Isn't she on a diet for the wedding? She's the Maid of Honor! If she puts on more than a pound, the dress won't fit!"
"I'm sure it's fine!" Heather consoled the stricken woman. "Brooke isn't like most women!"
"I should say not!" Maya growled as she came out wearing her dress. "She acts like a man! You would think it was some sort of punishment to wear that gorgeous dress! It's even nicer than ours, and this is beautiful, Heather!"
"Well, to her it almost is!" Erica stood up for Brooke. "She's a United States Marine, and proud of it!"
Maya looked at her. "Well, it shows! She has the manners of a bulldozer!" Taking a breath and smiling, she stepped up on the platform. "Well? How does it look?"
Sitting next to Heather, Erica lowered her voice and asked, "Can I ask you a question? Maya... she seems kind of... stuck up. Why did you ask her to be a bridesmaid?"
Leaning over, Heather whispered, "She's usually very nice. I guess Brooke just rubbed her the wrong way. You'll see! She can be very sweet!"
"I'll have to take your word for it, Heather." Erica shook her head in disbelief.
All the while, Jennifer, the other newcomer who hadn't said more than hello since coming into the shop, sat and watched the exchange silently as she struggled with her own inner turmoil.
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
Jack and I had a blast at the pizza parlor that day while Heather and Erica saw to the fittings. We talked for what seemed like hours, laughed, and had a great time. At one point, the waitress that brought us our drinks said we made a cute couple. I wanted to rip her head off at the time, but Jack just laughed. Looking back, it was kind of funny, and I suppose we did make a cute couple, as weird as that sounds! I guess that's why people believed it so easily for so long. The next several days were a blur. Not only were we getting ready for the wedding on Saturday, but Thanksgiving was that Thursday and Heather had planned a large get together at her family home for both the wedding party and guests and friends of hers and Rich's from their jobs. Sort of a hybrid Rehearsal Dinner, Office Party, and Thanksgiving all rolled into one. I had doubts if even her huge home could fit everyone. The biggest worry was Rich and Erica's parents. They were invited of course, but none of us knew if Judith would show or not, what with Jack being the Best Man, and even if she did show, if she would make a scene. Erica told me that she was feeling nervous, like a cat on an unplugged electric fence, scared that at any moment it'd go live. Meanwhile, I was struggling with my own issues. I just didn't know if I could be what Heather needed me to be, and I wanted her to have what she deserved. So Thanksgiving began with a lot of question marks and ended with more.
---
Jack awoke just as the sun started to break through the window of the room Heather had given Erica and him for their stay. Still two hours earlier than his usual six o'clock rising time, but already almost an hour later according to the clock, he rolled over so the sun wouldn't be in his eyes and he could go back to sleep.
Rolling into Erica roused her from sleep, stretching and wrapping her arms and legs around him and relishing the feel of every morning that she could wake with her Jack just where she had always wanted him; wrapped in her arms. She almost purred with contentment as she ran her fingers through his lengthening hair. "Good morning, Jack! Happy Thanksgiving!"
"Uh-uh." he mumbled. "Not yet it isn't! Come back in a few hours!"
Kissing his forehead as she giggled, Erica wouldn't let it be. "Not a chance, Marine! Reveille! We have a big day today, and Heather's going to need all the help she can get!" Lifting his chin, she kissed him passionately, knowing it would stir him. When she knew she had his full attention, she slid out of bed and walked nonchalantly towards the bathroom. "Come on! Up, up, up!"
"Dirty pool!" he shouted after her as she closed the bathroom door, throwing the blanket back and climbing out of bed. "Jeez! This floor is freezing!" he commented, stepping tiptoe into the bathroom behind her. "I'm gonna run through a shower real quick. Wanna join?" he asked with his half-smile.
"I'd love to, sweetie. I'm afraid we'd take too long, though!" she said with a seductive grin. "You go ahead. I'm gonna throw some things on and I'll come back up and shower and change before the guests start arriving."
"Suit yourself!" he said shrugging as he stripped and turned the water on. The glass walls of the alcove shower steamed up quickly when he stepped into it, sighing with relief from the cold of the autumn morning.
Dressing in jeans and a T-shirt quickly, Erica came down the stairs and went into the kitchen to a flurry of early morning activity. "Anything I can do to help?" she asked Theresa, the cook.
"No! Nothing, dearie! You just leave everything to me!" Theresa dismissed her with a smile. "I already have most the work done, so I just need room to get the eggs done! You just relax and enjoy the day, dearie!"
Shooed from the kitchen, Erica made her way into the den where Richard sat behind a desk. "Morning, big brother! Happy Thanksgiving!"
"Oh! Morning, Erica. Happy Thanksgiving!" He barely looked up from the papers he was looking at. "Did you need something?"
"No." she replied absently. "Just wondering what you needed me to do is all. I know there's a ton of things that need to be done before this afternoon! How can I help?"
He looked up at her and smiled. "I think we have everything under control. You can just relax and enjoy it! Cook's got the food taken care of, Gregory's making sure everyone else is getting things ready. Maybe you should check with Heather if there's anything she needs help with, if you're so anxious for something to do!"
Erica smiled weakly as she headed out of the den. "Oh. All right. I'll see you later then." The spring in her step faltering, she almost trudged up the stairs before she turned to the master bedroom. Seeing the door open, she peaked in to see Heather at her vanity, wearing a beautiful pale-blue A-line dress. "Good morning, Heather. Happy Thanksgiving?"
"Good morning, Erica!" she smiled. "And Happy Thanksgiving to you, too! Did you need some help getting ready? I can have Franchesca..."
"No! I just wanted to see if there was anything you needed me to do to help is all." She wandered into the room absently, stepping up to the tall posts of the bed and wrapping a hand around it. "I seem to be at loose ends a little! I feel like I should be doing something, anything to help! I know this is a big day!"
Heather stopped getting ready and looked at her soon to be sister-in-law in the mirror and smiled. "Well, I can't think of anything at the moment. Did you ask Richard if he..."
"Yes." she mumbled her interruption, plopping down to sit on the bed. "He sent me to see if you needed anything! And your cook kicked me out of the kitchen! I make really good deviled eggs, too!"
"I have an idea!" Heather brightened. "Why don't you get ready, and then we'll take a walk down by the pond! Just the two of us!"
Sighing, Erica nodded. "Alright. I'd like that, but... and please don't take this the wrong way, Heather... I... I'm beginning to understand how Jack feels. I mean, I get it. There's no way you could run this house yourself, and today would be impossible without help, but... I don't think I could ever get used to living like this all the time! I'd go crazy with nothing to do!"
"I understand!" Heather replied softly. "Imagine how difficult an adjustment it was for me going to Stanford, and then adjusting back after we returned! I just try and focus on my job and making overall decisions for the staff and let them worry about getting it done." She looked off into the distance with a sigh. "Mamma used to say that running a household like this was like being a General in the Army. 'You don't stick your nose in the help's business!' she would say! 'They know better how to get things done than you or I ever will!' I... I wish she were here now."
"That reminds me." Erica changed the subject. "Who is going to walk you down the aisle? Or are you doing it solo?"
"No, your father offered to do the honors." Heather answered. "He and Judith will be here this afternoon and are staying through Monday. I put them up in town, though. I didn't think it would be a good idea to have Jack and Judith around each other any more than necessary!"
"That's probably a good idea!" Erica laughed. "Well, if nobody needs any of my help, I guess I'll go get ready. See you in a bit!" She hugged Heather's shoulders and slowly made her way to their bedroom, bumping into Brooke as she did. "Oh! Good morning, Brooke! Happy Thanksgiving!"
"Yeah. Um... Happy Thanksgiving." Brooke grumbled. "You seen Jack or Rich?"
"Jack's getting dressed, and Richie's down in the den working on something. Heather's in her room getting ready." Erica offered.
"Oh. I'll go see Rich, then." Brooke said before she headed down the stairs. Erica just shrugged and went to go change.
Entering the den, Brooke knocked on the doorway. "You busy?" she asked.
"Yes, but you're going to interrupt me anyway!" Richard joked. "Do you need something to do, too?"
She closed the door behind her and paced the room nervously. "I... um... I think Erica should be Heather's Maid of Honor. After all, Jack's your Best Man, and I'm really not cut out for this sort of thing! I mean, I'm honored that she wants me to, believe me! It's just..."
Richard sat back and nodded. "It's the dress, isn't it? And Erica would be a Matron of Honor. She's married."
"Maid, Matron, whatever! It's not just the dress!" she countered. "I mean, as dresses go, especially bridesmaid's dresses, it's really nice! Not like some of the monstrosities you hear talked about! But... I mean... Rich! I'm just not suited for this! I'm not a girly-girl! I'm supposed to throw Heather a party Friday night, and my idea of a party is not your bridal shower type party! I don't even know what women do at those things!"
"What? You think I do?" he asked incredulously. "Why don't you ask Erica to help? I'm sure she'd..."
"Alright!" Brooke admitted. "It's the dress! The last time I wore a formal was to my Senior Prom and I hated it, Rich! I don't think I can make myself do it! I... I'm just going to have to tell Heather she needs to find another girl! I'll be happy to just sit and watch."
Pursing his lips, Richard stood and set his papers aside. "Come on. Why don't we go talk to her? I'm sure there's something we can do to satisfy you both!"
Erica turned her back to Jack. "Would you zip me up, dear?" she asked.
Showing his half-smile, he pulled the zipper up his wife's back, closing the beautiful green dress in place. Putting his hands on her bare shoulders, the neckline wide and open allowing her shoulder-length curly red hair to just cover her neck, Jack leaned over her shoulder and kissed her cheek. "You look gorgeous, Buttons!"
His wife turned and smiled at him, draping her arms over his shoulders and around his neck. "Thank you, Jack!" She kissed him delicately, making sure not to smudge lipstick on him. "You look very nice, too!" She smoothed his black jacket and straightened his tie slightly. "Shall we?"
The two leaving their room, they made their way downstairs where they saw Richard and Heather, both dressed formally, sitting and talking to Brooke who was lounging in jeans and a T-shirt.
"If I knew casual was an option, I would've gone for that!" Jack muttered.
"Don't worry, Jack." Brooke retorted. "I'll be changing to Class Bs in a bit."
"Speaking of which, Jack." Heather said lightly. "Richard and I would like it if you wore your Dress Blues at the wedding. You did bring them?"
Thinking a moment, he shook his head. "No, I don't think I did, Heather. I'm sorry! You shoulda told me before we left!"
"Good thing I know better." Erica commented. "I packed them, dear!"
Jack wrapped an arm around her shoulder. "What would I ever do without you?" he asked.
"Die alone!" Brooke quipped as she stood and stretched. "Well, I should go get cleaned up. Heather? You said guests will start arriving at noon?" Seeing her nod, she started toward the stairs. "Alright. Be down by then."
Turning to Erica, Heather smiled. "Ready for our walk? I have some things I need to talk to you about." While the two ladies headed for the back door, she started explaining what they'd been talking about when she and Jack had come down. "Brooke was just telling me that she's uncomfortable being my Maid of Honor." Their voices faded as they went outside.
Jack looked at Richard. "So Brooke's out? What? Heather gonna get Buttons to step in for her?"
Shaking his head, Richard clapped his hand on Jack's shoulder and started leading him to the Meeting Room. "Best not to get involved, Jack. I'm sorry I did as much as I did! Come on, let me give you the full tour."
Frank Hargrave drove their rental car in silence, his wife Judith sitting next to him, staring out the window in equal quietude. When he saw a convenient turnoff, still ten miles from Heather's family home, he pulled off the road and slowed to a halt.
"Why did you stop?" she asked. "We're nearly there! I want to see Richard!"
"Before we go one inch further, I wanna make something clear, Judy." he said seriously. "From now on, under no circumstances are you to belittle Jack or their marriage to anyone, especially them! Jack's a fine man! He's a hard worker who's doing right by Erica! Treat him with the respect he's earned!"
"Respect!" she spat. "Some respect! He drags our daughter to some seedy place, in Reno of all places, taking advantage of her childish affections for him, all for a cheap laugh! My baby deserved an honest church wedding, and a man that could afford to give her one!"
"First of all, it was not a seedy place! It was a lovely chapel. You would have known that if you would have deigned to be at your own daughter's wedding! Secondly, if anyone took advantage, it was Erica! She's been wanting that boy for over ten years, and she finally got her hooks in him! She loved her wedding, just the way it was! She would have loved it more with you there!"
"Oh, for heaven's sake, Frank!" Judith shouted at him. "Erica's never been practical when it comes to that boy! You mark my words! She'll be the one supporting that bum!"
"He's not a boy, or a bum, Judy!" her husband retorted with a growl. "He's a man, an honorably discharged Marine, and she loves him!"
"If you had just done what I said and cut off her tuition, she would've come to her senses!" Judith snapped.
"No, she would have quit school and married him anyway!" Frank countered. "Without even her father there to give her away!"
"That's another thing!" she barked. "You blessing this marriage! I just don't understand how you could stand there and watch as she threw her life away! Did you know she could have married Jason Summers? Jason Summers! The boy whose father ran our bank back in Pittsburgh! He begged her to go out with him, but no! You had to encourage Erica to chase down that boy from North Oakland, who couldn't even be bothered taking care of his own dying mother! Just shipped her off to a home! That's our future, Frank!"
Closing his eyes, Frank tried to control his temper. "Look here, Judy. I've put up with your nonsense. You almost celebrated the day Jack nearly died! I almost filed for divorce when you ran off to your sister's because I insisted on paying for his hospital care! You've done nothing since you met him but show contempt for his background! You've tried everything imaginable to throw up walls between he and Erica! Well, get over it! They're married now and nothing you say or do is gonna change that! What happens when they start having kids, Judy? Are you going to forsake your own grandchildren because of their father?"
Judith fumed at the idea of her daughter having Jack's children. "Well, they haven't yet, and if I have anything to say about it..."
"You don't!" he barked at her. "I'm warning you, Judy! If you try and push them apart, it will never work and Erica will never forgive you for it! And if you ruin my chances at seeing my grandchildren, you'll be changing your name back to Rheinhart faster than you can say 'Reno divorce'!"
"It would be worth it!" she quipped. "Besides, once she's married to a nice young man who can actually take proper care of her, she would forget all about her little dalliance and thank me for saving her from her own childish mistakes! It would be a lot easier though if you were at least less supportive! Now, let's get going. Richard's waiting and I don't want to be late!"
"Until you swear to me that you'll keep your lip buttoned about your opinions of Jack, we're going to sit here until Hell freezes over!"
"Never!" she cried. "I won't do it! I'll fight Erica's sham of a marriage with my last breath and you can't stop me!"
"Then we sit here. I'm in no hurry." Frank sat back and closed his eyes.
After several minutes of silence, Judith broke it. "So, are you quite through being ridiculous, Frank?"
"I'm not being ridiculous." he replied calmly, not even opening his eyes. "We don't budge until I hear the words, Judy. You have to swear on your honor to the Lord! That I know you'll keep!"
Ten more minutes passed in silence. Judith considered getting out to walk the rest of the way, but not knowing the address or directions, she could search for days before finding it. Biting her knuckle, she began to realize he would actually sit there and never give in. Jack had been their only serious argument through twenty-seven years of marriage and she couldn't understand why he wouldn't see things her way. That boy's going to ruin her life! Either she'll have to support them both, or he'll drag her down with him into squalor! I have to make her see that!
Formulating a plan, she sighed. "Alright, Frank. Are you done brooding?"
"I'm not brooding." he answered. "I'm waiting."
"Frank!" she whined. "We're already late! Please, dear? For me?"
"I'm not the one keeping us here. You are."
"Oh, you can be so stubborn! Fine! I swear on my honor to the Lord I will not talk down about Jack to anyone at the party!"
"Or at the wedding or reception!" Frank added.
Wincing at him catching on to her loophole, she sighed. "Very well, or at the wedding or reception! Happy now?"
"Or anytime before, after, or between!"
"Frank Hargrave!" she snapped. "You know very well I can't make a promise for things that haven't happened yet! What if he abandons her? Or cheats on her? I'd be bound by that silly promise even if he murdered her! I won't!"
Thinking a moment, he came up with a compromise. "OK, then. For so long as Erica wants him!"
"Alright, fine!" she screamed. "I swear on my honor to the Lord I will keep my peace regarding Jack to anyone so long as Erica wants him!"
Frank looked at her, searching her face for signs of deception or loopholes. Seeing that he'd frustrated her into giving in and certain there were no other loopholes, he started the car and pulled back out onto the highway. "Very well, Judy. On your honor."
Standing in the Meeting Room next to Richard and several of his co-workers, Jack found it eerily similar to how things would be at one of the many parties he and Richard had been invited to when they were in school. He could see the vague look of disdain whenever he spoke or commented on whatever the subject happened to be. The only exception seemed to be Richard's senior boss, the VP of Business Research, Henry Chase. Jack felt at ease talking to the fellow Marine, and found that Henry shared his sense of humor. Seeing him returning with a drink, Jack smiled.
"Welcome back, Hank! Find the good stuff or is that just what Rich put out?"
Laughing, he raised his glass. "Bit of both, Jack! Say, I wanted to ask you. You're still in the reserves, right? Active or inactive?"
"Active." Jack answered honestly. "One more year."
"Good man!" he congratulated him. "So, what do you do outside of that? Your main line, I mean."
"I'm managing a dry-cleaner until my wife finishes college. Then we move to Southern California to be near her and Richard's parents where I plan on opening my own! Maybe grow it into a chain!"
"Speaking of Mom and Dad," Richard interjected. "I wonder what's keeping them? Their plane was supposed to get in over two hours ago."
"Your Mom probably had to wait for Frank to paint the car windows so she wouldn't burst into flames from the sun!" Jack quipped.
Hank laughed as Richard restrained himself from joining in. "Now, Jack. She may be your mother-in-law, but she's still my mother."
"And you have my sincerest condolences on that account, Rich. Speaking of which, I need to find Heather and give her the heads up. Judith will be her mother-in-law Saturday, and she needs a final warning before committing! If you'll excuse me, Rich? Hank?"
Heading to the Great Room where the ladies had gathered, Jack scanned the crowd, seeing Heather talking to the only other person in the room wearing pants besides himself. Making his way through, he smiled. "Heather, if I didn't say it before, I want to say it now. You look beautiful!" He kissed her cheek and turned to Brooke. "Ya' look good, Hathaway! By the way, being serious for just a moment, I really do think you look good in that dress for Saturday. You may hate it, but it loves you!"
Looking down, Brooke tapped her glass. "Thanks, Jack. I... uh... guess you meant that as a compliment, so I'll take it that way. But... um... I... won't be wearing it." She glanced at Heather with an embarrassed smile as she took a gulp of her drink.
He held up his hands. "Didn't mean to get into anything! Just forget I even mentioned it." Looking around the room he asked, "Have either of you seen Buttons recently?"
Brooke shook her head. "Not recently, no. Heather?"
"I think I saw her talking a bit ago with the other ladies in the bridal party." Scanning around the room, she spotted her sitting behind Maya. "There she is Jack! Over in the corner with Maya and Jennifer!"
"Thanks!" Remembering why he came over to her, Jack half-smiled. "Oh! Say, Heather. I... uh... I wanted to give you a heads-up about Richard's mom, Judith."
"I know all about her, Jack." Heather explained. "I think I can handle her!"
"No! You don't understand!" Jack corrected her. "See, she's gonna love you! Nothing like me!"
Heather blinked at Jack in surprise. "Why do you think that? I thought she was difficult to get along with?"
"Oh, to me, she's a monster." he clarified. "But you? You're rich! She's gonna adore you! Not that you don't deserve to be adored, you do, but she wouldn't care if you had three eyes and rode a broom, so long as you have it where it counts, if you know what I mean! Just a friendly warning is all! I'm gonna spend time with my wife! See ya' 'round Heather! Brooke!"
Making his way to Erica, Jack smiled at her. "Hey, beautiful! Just wanted to stop by and see if you'd like to..." He paused when they heard a car pull up the driveway. Glancing out a window, Jack grimaced. "Guess who? Hide your Ruby Slippers, Dorothy! The wicked Witch of the West is here! The upside is Dad drove her. Guess you have to take the bitter with the sweet! Shall we go greet them?" Seeing Erica nod stoically, he started toward the Meeting Room. "I'll run and get Rich."
"Thanks, Jack." she said as she rose and excused herself. Making her way over to Heather, she interrupted the bride and Maid of Honor's conversation. "My folks are here! God, I hope Mom doesn't make a scene today! I'd rather Jack and I leave than embarrass you, Heather!"
"No!" Heather insisted. "This is my home. If she tries to make you or Jack uncomfortable, I'll make it clear it won't be tolerated! OK?" With a breath, she saw the men going to the door, she and Erica moving to meet them there.
After getting out of the car, Judith looked around at the house and grounds. "Frank? Is this the right address?" Seeing Richard and Erica come out the front door to greet them put a smile on her face. "My babies!" she called out, almost running to them.
Richard kept an even expression, but Erica freely let her anger show.
When she and Frank got closer, she noticed the sour expression and slowed; her smile melting. Walking up to them ahead of her husband, she reached out and hugged her son. "Richard! I've missed you!"
"It's good to see you again too, Mom." he said earnestly, if hollowly. While he resented his mother's dislike of Jack, he truly had missed her.
Turning to her daughter, she cleared her throat and held out her arms. "Erica? Won't you hug me hello?"
Looking over at Jack and seeing him nod, she hugged her mother's shoulders quickly and backed away. "Hello, Mother." she stated scathingly.
Heather stepped forward and greeted her with a warm smile. "Welcome to Moore Estates, Mr. and Mrs. Hargrave! I'm Heather and I'm very pleased to finally meet you both!"
While she briefly hugged Judith hello, Frank came up and shook Richard's hand. "Good to see you again, son! How's life on the Outside treating you?"
"Can't complain!" he smiled. "Dad? I want you to officially meet Heather! I know you met her briefly at Erica's wedding." He glanced at his mother, who just turned her head away. "You had to go so soon though, I never really got the chance to properly introduce her to you!"
Heather hugged him hello warmly. "It's good to see you again, Mr. Hargrave! I'm sorry we never got the chance to be formally introduced in March!"
"Better late then never, I say!" he said returning the affection. Stepping back, he looked at Jack who stood behind his son, his face an expressionless mask. "Jack? Good to see you, too!" He reached out as Richard moved out of the way and they shook hands and hugged genuinely. Turning to his wife, Frank growled. "Judy?"
She walked up to Jack and held her hand out. "Jack. You look well."
Tentatively, he took her hand and shook it once before letting it go. "Judith." was all his anger would let him say. He wasn't so much angry with her for how she treated him, but for snubbing Erica's wedding and hurting her.
Heather broke the awkward moment. "Well, shall we go in? It's a little cool out to be standing around outside!"
While everyone else went in, Jack and Erica going in last, Jack lowered his voice so only Erica could hear. "It did feel a bit frosty out, but then The Ice Queen went inside! I wonder who'll win? Her or the giant fireplace?"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
While Jack and them were greeting Rich's parents, I was inside with a bunch of strangers, the only person in uniform, in a place where I didn't even know people's opinions regarding the military. To say I was a bit jumpy is to put it lightly! Even when someone did talk to me, I always felt like a curiosity more than a Marine, or even the supposed Maid of Honor. Later on, when Jack and I were talking, everyone else being busy, he told me about Judith and what all happened between them that day. I wanted Jack to know that no matter what, I would be there for him and Erica both. There's not a lot of things you can count on in this world, but I think my friendship with Jack and Rich could be counted as one of them. Most of the time, you think you know what's going to happen in life. Things like Thanksgiving come around and you... you expect certain things. Turkey, stuffing, football, napping on the couch, talking and laughing with family and friends... You know, the predictable things that are why we have things like Thanksgiving in the first place. To take time together with the people we love and make a memory. Sometimes things happen that you don't expect though, and would and could, never see coming.
---
While her four friends were outside to greet their parents and in-laws, Brooke wandered the Great Room aimlessly. She accepted a few compliments and thanks for her service, but didn't know anyone, and none of them seemed to be interested in starting up a conversation, even when opportunity struck.
She was about to head into the Meeting Room to see if any of the men would care to talk, when she felt a tap on her shoulder. Turning her head, she looked down to see a young woman standing shyly behind her.
When the woman in the uniform turned to face her, Jennifer couldn't look her in the face. She shyly looked at the floor between them and cleared her throat before looking up at the statuesque Marine. "Um... Hi! I'm Jennifer Hooks! One of the bridesmaids? We met at the dress shop. Brooke Hathaway, right? You're a Sergeant in the Marines? I wanted to thank you for your service!"
Brooke smiled, almost instantly at ease with the shy young woman. "Yes, yes, and it's an honor." She put out a gloved hand. "Nice to see you again! Sorry I didn't stick around to actually meet you! Mind if I ask you a question?"
"S-sure!" the bubbly brunette answered nervously.
"How is it that you know Heather? I mean, I know you know her from work, but what do you do there?"
"I... uh... I'm the receptionist!" she responded with a smile. "Heather's such a great lady! When her license comes through, I can tell she's going to be a really great therapist!" Glancing away again shyly, she looked at the floor and then back at the Marine. "How do you know Heather?"
Laughing lightly, Brooke shook her head. "The groom Richard and I served together, along with a buddy of ours, Jack Dunning, the Best Man. You met him at the dress shop. They didn't re-enlist, but I have another year before my cruise is up. Thus, why I'm in uniform today and they aren't!"
A confused look came over her face. "But aren't they going to be in uniform for the wedding on Saturday?"
Looking around, Brooke found an open love seat. "Would you like to sit with me for a bit, Jennifer? I can explain!"
"Sure! I'd love to!" she said with an overly dreamy lilt in her voice, before getting self-conscious and wiping the smile from her face. "I mean... that'd be nice of you... to explain it, I mean." Once Brooke took her seat, Jennifer smoothed her peach satin skirt and sat next to her nervously. "And you can call me Jenny! Only my co-workers and my mother call me Jennifer!"
"Alright, Jenny." Brooke said with a smile, which seemed to hit Jenny like a slug of whisky. "See, there are regs about when and where military uniforms can be worn. Marine Corps regs are the strictest. Only someone in active service, or a retiree with twenty years service, can wear the uniform at any social occasion. Wartime vets with less than twenty years service, like Rich and Jack because they served in the Gulf War, can only wear it on certain occasions... weddings, military funerals or memorials, inaugurals, or parades and other activities involving other vets. Other Corps retirees can never wear the uniform again." As she talked, she could see Jenny was listening closely, and sitting even closer. Even still, she had a strange sense about the woman.
"And you know all that by heart?" Jenny asked in amazement.
Laughing, Brooke nodded and blushed. "That's small stuff! Uniform regs. I didn't even get into the four kinds of dress blues!"
Blushing even more obviously, Jenny looked away again. "Thanks for taking the time to explain it to me, Sergeant Hathaway!"
"Please, call me Brooke!" Looking around and seeing nobody paying much attention to them, and wanting to be able to speak more freely to the young woman, she nodded her head toward the back door. "Would you care to take a walk?"
"M-Me?" Jenny stammered as she felt faint. Confused and exhilarated at the same time, she swallowed her fear and nodded slowly. "I... I'd like that!"
Brooke stood and held out a hand. Helping the breathless young woman to stand, she smiled at her. "And here I thought today was going to be dull!"
The two walked out toward the pond in silence. Once there, they started to slowly walk the path around it before Brooke turned to her. "I... uh... got the feeling you wanted to ask me something, Jenny. You don't need to be shy or afraid. It's one of the reasons why I suggested the walk... some privacy."
"Well, since you asked... um... I kinda got a vibe from you? That you... um... aren't into guys?" She twirled her hair with a finger as she talked nervously.
"That's funny, I get a vibe from you that you are! If I'm wrong, just say the words!" Brooke smiled slyly and looked away at the pond.
"Oh, I've been out with a few guys. Nothing serious, just a date or two, but I never found anyone that I really liked though, ya know?"
"Not really!" Brooke laughed. "I've never gone out with a guy. Oh, I've been out with Jack and Rich, but that's just palling around. Not a date!"
"So you... um... always knew?" Jenny asked tentatively.
Brooke stopped and looked at her. "If you want to ask me something, why don't you come right out and ask?"
"Alright." Jenny said, gathering her courage to be uncharacteristically bold. "Did you always know you liked other girls?"
"What if I said yes?"
"Then... um... I think I might ask... Oh! I guess it's stupid! Never mind!"
"Are you wanting to go out with me, Jenny?"
Her eyes grew wide in shock. "Y-you... are you asking me out?"
"What if I were?" Brooke asked cautiously.
"Then... um... I guess I would say, yes?"
"Don't sound too eager!" Brooke joked. "I mean, if you wouldn't want to..."
"I do! I mean... I think I would like that, Brooke!" Pausing as they resumed walking together, Jenny looked over at her. "Can I ask why you won't just come out and say it? That... that you like me?"
Brooke sighed. "You have to understand my position, Jenny. I'm an active duty Marine... in uniform. If I were to be seen doing anything with you, even as simple as stating as fact that I like you or wanted to go out with you, I could be dishonorably discharged. As it is, if... hypothetically... we were to go out, I'd have to dress inconspicuously and not go anywhere I could be recognized or photographed, at least until October when my cruise is up."
The smaller woman furrowed her brow in confusion. "But no one is around to hear you, so why can't you say it?"
"Because you're here." Brooke pointed out, her tone becoming mildly harsh before softening once again. "Jenny, try to understand. You're being vague. You never actually said if you think it's OK for someone like me to like other women. You could just be trying to trick me into admitting it, so you could turn me in! This is a very dangerous subject to even be discussing. You will note that at no point have I admitted to anything, other than the fact that I've never dated a man. Many straight women my age haven't either."
"Oh." she replied. "Brooke?"
"Hmmm?" She looked over at the young woman.
"I think you're beautiful!" she practically sang the words before turning shy again. "I... I've never been interested in another woman before, so I... I'm not sure what I'm supposed to do! All I know is, when I look at you... I get that feeling that everyone says you're supposed to get when... um..."
"When you're attracted to someone?" Brooke finished for her.
Nodding, Jenny sighed. "You... you might think this is terribly forward of me, but... um... do you know what I want to do right now?"
"I can guess!" Brooke laughed. "Why don't you tell me?"
"Kiss you." she said shyly and barely above a whisper.
Brooke laughed as they turned the far corner of the pond. Seeing her walking companion look away embarrassedly, Brooke slowed her pace and stopped laughing. "Oh! I'm sorry, Jenny! I'm not laughing at you or what you want! Honestly! I'm laughing at me trying to tell somebody seeing us that it wasn't me kissing you, when I'm the only person in uniform here!"
Ahead, she saw a small outcropping of bushes that were growing next to the pond. Brooke bit her lower lip and stopped when they reached them.
Jenny only noticed Brooke had stopped after she'd walked on a little further. Stopping and turning back, she tilted her head. "What is it?"
"Come here." Brooke said softly. When Jenny turned back, she pointed a gloved thumb toward the house. "Can you see any part of the house?"
Turning, she looked and then back at Brooke, confusedly. "No."
"Then they can't see us!" she pointed out. Slowly, she pulled on the fingers of her gloves until they were free of her hands. Tucking them into her service belt, she stepped forward and took Jenny's hands in hers, taking a daring risk. "Do you still have the same feeling as earlier? Wanting to kiss me?"
Jenny nodded slowly, her eyes growing wide and her breath growing rapid.
Brooke let her fingers slide gently up Jenny's bare arms until they were at the girl's exposed shoulders. Slipping her fingers down along the peach satin of her gown until they came to rest on her slender waist, Brooke slowly pulled Jenny to her until their bodies touched. Bending down to the woman who stood six inches shorter, she tilted her head as Jenny did the same. Gently, she brushed her lips against the woman's cheek, feeling the quivering of Jenny's desire. Throwing caution to the wind, she moved her lips over the trembling girl's and tenderly let them touch for the first time.
Even as she did so Brooke could feel the instant heat of attraction boiling into desire, then need, within her. She'd never felt such an instantaneous hunger for anyone in her life, the burning passion that enflames the hearts of every woman who's ever been in love. It coursed through her so fast it terrified her that this woman, who she barely knew, could cause such powerful feelings in her that Brooke was ready to throw away her career just to kiss her one more time.
When Jenny felt the woman's lips touch her cheek she went through a wide gauntlet of emotions. First afraid for herself that someone would see them, then fear for Brooke being caught and punished. Then came the excitement at the newness of it, passion for more, dreading that a kiss on the cheek was all Brooke would do, anguish at knowing the woman would soon be over two thousand miles away, and lastly longing for Brooke to do so much more.
When Brooke moved her head and their lips touched, it was unlike any kiss Jennifer had ever known; soft and gentle, patient and yielding, tender and sensual. She could smell Brooke's perfume and it intoxicated her even more. She felt dizzy with so much shock that her eyes snapped open and she would have fallen, were not for the Marine's strong but gentle grip on her waist.
Pulling back slowly, Brooke ended the kiss reluctantly. Opening her eyes once more, she saw that Jenny had never closed hers. Stepping back, she cleared her throat. "I... uh... I guess that wasn't what you expected. I'm..."
She never got to finish apologizing before Jenny moved quickly up to her and pulled her down into a kiss as passionate as though they were long lost lovers reunited. This time it was Brooke who was taken so much by surprise at the depth of feeling this stranger brought out in her that she couldn't close her eyes. She had to look at the beautiful face a fraction of an inch away from hers that stirred her to the point of aching longing, just to know it was real.
Jenny slowly came back to her senses and realized just how forward she'd been. Shocking herself, she jumped back from Brooke as if bitten. "I'm sorry! Oh, God! I didn't... I mean, it's just that... oh, wow! Can I just say something? I've never looked at another woman and wanted to kiss her! I mean, I don't think I'm actually really gay! It's not you being a woman that made me need to kiss you, it was... it was you that made me need to! Oh, I am so confused!"
Brooke tried to repress a grin, but couldn't. "You and me both, sister! I... I think I understand though. When you kiss me, it's not like when any woman has ever kissed me before. When you kiss me, I feel... whole! Like a missing part of me just clicked back into place!"
"Oh! And I think I needed to kiss you to stop you from apologizing for when you kissed me! I mean, that first kiss on my cheek was... wow!"
"Jenny..." Brooke tried to jump in.
"And then that second kiss? I... I was like, in shock, it felt so good! I couldn't even close my eyes!"
"Jenny?"
"Is that why you thought that... Oh! It is, isn't it! You thought I didn't like it because my eyes were open! Oh! Wait, huh?"
Brooke laughed at the sudden wall of words. "Jenny! Calm down!" Walking up to her, she reached out to hold her. When the smaller woman didn't move away, Brooke slid her arms around her and brought her closer. "OK, let's take this a piece at a time. Yes, I was about to apologize. I thought once I kissed you, you found it wasn't what you thought it'd be. I'm glad I was wrong!"
Jenny calmed down and smiled up at her, fairly melting in the larger woman's arms. "I... uh... I'd really like to do that again!"
Her sense of duty reasserting itself, Brooke released her and stepped back. "Why don't we talk for a bit first, hmm?" Quickly pulling a compact out of her purse, Brooke cleaned Jenny's lipstick from around her mouth with a tissue. Reapplying her own lipstick, she smiled at Jenny and offered her the compact to do the same. Blotting and putting her gloves back on while Jenny touched up, she took back her compact and the two started walking the path once more. "May I ask you what made you approach me in the first place?"
Jenny took a breath. "OK, you'll probably think it pretty silly of me, though! I... I was bored, OK? Everyone at the party is like a Ph.D., Doctor, Nurse, Business Executive, or stuff like that! You looked... well... like the only other person there that knows what it's like to work for a living! Like a normal girl with normal problems like paying the rent or the gas bill!"
Breaking into a laugh, Brooke nodded in understanding. "I was thinking the same thing!"
"I... um... I also had really confused feelings about you at the fitting the other day." Jenny explained. "You were all mad at having to wear your dress, but it looked so good on you! Then when you turned and looked at me today? I felt like, 'Woah! She just made my knees weak with a look!' When you asked me to sit with you, my hands got all sweaty like I was thirteen and Jimmy Francis just asked me to the dance! Then when you asked me to walk with you? Uh! I nearly kissed you right then!"
Brooke laughed. "Alright. Next question. How old are you?"
"I turn twenty-one next April eighteenth. You?"
"Oh, God!" Brooke laughed. "I'm robbing the cradle! I'll be twenty-six the end of next June!"
"Well, that's within the acceptable margin." Jenny mused. "I could be almost a year younger and it would still be OK!"
"Half plus seven?" Brooke asked, getting a nod in answer. "I suppose. OK, next. You've never dated a woman." Brooke stopped and waited until Jenny stopped to face her. "Would you like to?" she smiled.
Jenny moved toward her eagerly, wanting to answer with a kiss, but stopped with a blush, turned, and started walking again. "I... um... I... I think... Yes! Are you busy tomorrow night?"
"We both are! Remember? Bridal shower? Heather's wedding?"
"Oh yeah." she said disappointedly. "And at the wedding we'll both be busy! How about Sunday?"
"I'm free then. What did you have in mind?"
"Well, you said you couldn't go anywhere that you might be recognized or photographed." She looked over at Brooke nervously. "I... um... I could make you dinner at... uh... my place? You could relax and be yourself there, right?"
"Yes. I could also be very tempted there!" the Marine admitted. "You're too beautiful and irresistible for my own good!"
"Me? Beautiful? Oh, now I know that you're just flattering me! Maybe pretty, but not beautiful! I mean, Heather and Maya are beautiful!" Nervously, she looked at the ground. "And you're gorgeous!"
"Well, I think you're beautiful!" Brooke blushed. "And way too sweet!"
"Brooke? I... um... Do you think that it's weird that... um... Oh, never mind! What's your next question?"
"No! I want to hear what you wanted to ask!"
"OK. Um... I think... I think... I think you look really sexy in your uniform! I mean, like really sexy! Like super hot sexy! Oh, God! I said it!"
Brooke was so stunned she stopped walking. "Really? I mean, don't get me wrong, I think I look good in it, I know what it means to wear it, but sexy?"
"See? That's why I wasn't going to say anything! It's just... You wear it with such pride, and I really respect that! I mean, you put your life on the line, for me! I think that's just..." Jenny sighed wistfully. "Sexy!" Composing herself, she added, "I'm really thankful, too. Thankful to have met you, that you're you, that you stand up for all of us, and... and for taking a chance on me!"
Brooke sighed. "Well then, you're welcome! And I want to thank you!"
"What for?"
"For taking a chance on me." Brooke sighed. "I was beginning to think that I'd never meet anyone like you, Jenny. You make me feel so good, it's scary really! I'd... If you wouldn't mind, I would really like to spend the rest of my Leave with you! If you wouldn't mind me hanging around that is!"
"When do you have to go back?" she asked almost sadly.
"I have to be back at ANAS by the sixteenth. I took three weeks Leave. I was going to spend it at home, but I'd rather spend it here! Then I have nine and a half months until the end of my cruise, but I'll probably be PCS to the butt-end of God knows where by April." Looking at Jenny, she saw the confusion. "Sorry! PCS, Permanent Change of Station. My long-term posting, Alameda Naval Air Station, is part of the base closures they're doing. So I'm getting sent off somewhere new for my last six months or so before I get Outside. Just enough time to get hit on by every grunt and rust picker there!"
"Is it that bad for women in the military?"
"Depends on the woman. Jack made it easy for me for a long time, though." Brooke explained how Jack covered for her and kept the Sailors and other Marines from asking her out.
"So, did you date a lot then?"
Brooke laughed. "No! Not really! Maybe a half-dozen times over five years. I had to be really careful. Well, that and I'm picky!"
"So, you have over two weeks left. I could... No! Well, um... Yea! I could take my vacation time! I have it coming and I was just going to take the cash equivalent at the end of the year anyway!"
Brook stopped and turned to Jenny with a stunned expression. "You... you want to take your vacation time to spend with me?" Resuming their walk, she whistled low. "Wow! That's a first!"
Coming around the house side of the pond again, they kept up talking about themselves; where they'd grown up, their beliefs, and what they wanted out of life and relationships. The more they talked, the more they realized just why they were so quickly drawn to one another. It was beyond mere physical attraction. They were very compatible and somehow, on some level, they'd felt it before they knew it. Sitting in the lounge chairs next to the pond as they kept talking, Brooke heard someone approaching from the direction of the house.
Taking a drink from his glass, Jack was thankful that beer was a part of the menu. He watched Heather show Frank and Judith the house and introduce them to their other guests and just shook his head. "I don't get it, Buttons. I mean, it's obvious she still hates me, but she's being... polite. Not friendly, but still polite. I don't like it!"
Stealing his glass for a sip as he talked, Erica handed it back to him. "What? You want her to make a scene?"
"No, but it makes me suspicious is all, like she's getting ready to drop a bomb on my head, like she somehow got our marriage annulled or something! I dunno!"
"Just be grateful for the reprieve, Jack. Maybe she's coming around! We are married, and moving to SoCal next summer! Maybe she realized that if she ever wants to see her grandkids, she needs to straighten up her act!"
He looked over at her expectantly. "Anything I should know about?"
Laughing, Erica shook her head. "No, Jack! I'm still on the pill! I still want to finish college first! Believe me, you'll be the second person to know!"
"Who gets first dibs? Brooke? Heather?"
"Me, you dork! I think I might have to know before you do!"
"Oh! I suppose you can tell you first. You're a lot closer! Known you your entire life!"
While Richard and Heather made the rounds with their parents, Jack looked idly around, finally noticing that Brooke was nowhere to be seen. "Buttons? You see Brooke? She appears to be MIA."
"Maybe she went in the Meeting Room. She's almost a guy!"
"Uh-uh. Guys aren't shaped like that. I'll have a look-see, though." Starting toward the Meeting Room, movement outside caught his eye. Doing a subtle double take, he spotted Brooke walking along the path around the pond with a woman in a peach dress. Smiling, he headed back to Erica. "Ready for the A.A.R.?"
"Jack! You don't need to build it up! Where is she?"
"Come here!" he said quietly, taking her hand and casually making their way to the big bay window. "Without drawing any attention, take a look outside by the pond. See anything interesting?"
"That's Brooke..."
"So who's her dancing partner? I don't recognize her from the back and I never danced with her." he joked in reference to an old movie.
Erica drew in a breath. Lowering her voice to a whisper, she leaned over to his ear. "That's Jennifer! One of the other bridesmaids! Oh my God! I never would have guessed it! She seemed so sweet and shy!"
"What? She doesn't wear enough flannel?" Jack quipped, remembering his own reaction when he found out about Brooke. "Come on! Look at them!" Just as he turned, he saw them slowly walk behind the bushes at the far end of the pond, and then not come out the other side. Looking at Erica just as she looked at him, Jack cleared his throat. "Well! OK then!"
"Good for her!" Erica whispered. "She deserves someone!"
As a group went by towards the buffet, they stopped looking. "We, uh... we better stop or we're gonna attract unwanted attention their way!" Leading her back to where they'd been standing earlier, they settled back as though they'd never moved. Leaning over, Jack kissed her on the cheek.
"What was that for?" she asked, almost laughing.
"Because! I just felt like it is all! Don't I have a right?"
"You're feeling all squishy inside for Brooke, aren't you! Ya' big softie! A romantic at heart!" Walking around in front of him, Erica wrapped her arms around his waist. "And this is because I want to!" She leaned in and kissed him tenderly, sighing as she leaned back and looked at him.
"Erica, please! You'll make a scene and I'll blush!"
"Let 'em watch!" she growled. "We're supposed to be all mushy still! It won't be weird until we're still doing this ten or twenty years from now!"
Just as she was about to lean in and kiss him again, he tapped her shoulder. "Heart of Darkness at six o'clock!" Jack steeled himself for the assault as Erica's mother started making her way towards them; Richard, Heather, and Frank nowhere to be seen.
"Well! There you are, Erica!" she intoned sweetly. "Your father is talking to Richard, Heather needed to see to her guests, I thought we could catch up!"
"We've been right here, Mother. Both of us." Erica noted in a strained tone.
"Yes. I can see that dear. Jack? I understand you left the service. Keeping busy, I presume?"
"Yeah, I keep busy." he answered jovially. "Between running my drug trade and all the pimping and whoring I do, I hardly have time to sleep!"
"No need to be crude!" Judith replied haughtily. "I'm making an effort!"
Sighing, Jack closed his eyes and re-centered himself. "Alright, Judith. I'm running a dry-cleaners in Palo Alto. We're saving to buy a place near yours and Dad's, so Buttons can see you two more. By the time she graduates, we should have enough for me to open my own business."
"Well!" she said in surprise. "Maybe I misjudged you, Jack. I still think..."
"What, Mom? That I could have done better than Jack?" Erica snapped.
"No dear, that's not what I was going to say." she refuted. "What I was going to say is that I still thought it was a mistake for you two to get involved. He's almost like a brother to you, dear!"
"Mom!" Erica dragged her name out. "You can't keep doing this! Even when you're not being derisive, you're still managing to put him down!"
"You're right! You're right! I'm sorry, dear!"
"You should be apologizing to Jack, Mother!" she growled.
"Very well!" Judith looked at Jack. "Jack? I... I'm sorry. I'll try to do better."
Arching a brow and cocking his jaw slightly, Jack nodded. "Alright, Judith. Accepted. And... and I will as well. Now let's just forget it."
Just as he spoke, Frank came walking up, pipe in his teeth. "Judy? Richard wants to talk to you about Saturday."
"Alright, thank you dear. Erica? Jack? If you'll excuse me?" She made her way back towards the den where Frank had come from.
Turning to his daughter and son-in-law, he smiled and hugged her. "How you holding up, sweet pea? Your mother behaving?"
"Oddly, yes." she replied, watching skeptically as her mother departed.
"I'm shocked!" Jack added. "She on somthin'? Valium? Prozac? Thorazine?"
Chuckling, Frank shook his head. "No! No, I extracted a promise from her. She promised, on her honor, that for so long as you two love and want each other, she won't say anything negative about it, or you, Jack."
"Huh?" Jack stammered. "Um... wh... how..."
"Frustrated her into it!" he explained. "It doesn't matter how, though. She'd sooner gouge out her own eyes than break a promise to God!"
Spending a few minutes talking, Richard came out with Judith to join them.
"Hey, Jack?" he asked. "You seen Brooke anywhere? Heather needs her."
"Oh! Uh..." He looked at Frank and Judith and lied. "No, but I'll go find her for ya', Rich! You stay here with your guests!" He turned and gave Erica a quick kiss. "Back in a few, Buttons!"
While Jack took off through the house, Judith shook her head. "I thought you didn't like that nickname, dear?"
"No." she sighed. "I just only like it when he says it!"
Brooke turned around to see who was coming. "Oh, Jack! We were just..."
"Yeah, yeah! Talking. I know. Stow it, Brooke! The children aren't around!" Glancing at the woman sitting next to her, he smirked. "OK, maybe I was wrong! She looks a little undercooked, Brooke! Maybe throw her back on the fire a few more years?"
"Don't make me get up and kick your ass, Jack! I'm comfortable!"
"Well, you need to get up anyway! Heather's looking for you."
Brooke stood and helped Jenny out of her chair. "Sorry to cut it short!"
"I... I wanted to thank you, Jack!" Jenny blushed. "You... you've been a really great friend to Brooke and helped her! That means a lot to me!"
"Well! You two certainly hit it off! When's moving day? Oh, Brooke? Jenny? You uh... might want to touch up a little!"
"We already did!" Brooke shot back at him. Even as the words were coming out of her mouth, she knew he had gotten her again. "Jack!" she growled through gritted teeth.
"Hey! I was just confirming what I suspected you two were doing behind that bush! Yeah, Erica and I both saw! Rookie move!"
Brooke hung her head while Jenny blushed heavily.
"Oh! It's fine! I think it's adorable!" he comforted them comedically. "Erica agrees! If you like, I can... uh... see to it you two get some time alone later? Run CAS for you? One last time, Brooke?"
Shaking her head, Brooke was once more taken aback by how much he was still doing for her. "Have I ever told you I love you, Jack?"
"No, I don't believe you ever have, Brooke." Jack answered, turning serious. "I'm touched. Honest. And... well.. the same to you, Brooke."
"Well, let's get back inside then." she suggested, holding out her hand to Jenny. "Walk in front, Jack?"
"Rookie move!" he said through a smile. "You must have it bad!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
Jack not only saw to it Jenny and I had time alone that night, he saw to it we had time the next day before the bridal shower and that night after it! I think Jack was a little in love with the idea of Jenny and I being in love! More than anything though, I think Jack wanted to make sure someone would be there to take care of me, because he knew that very soon, he wouldn't be. The day of the wedding came and everyone was frantic... except Heather. I worked overtime doing everyone's hair, then getting myself put together, but Heather never faltered or got nervous. That woman's a rock! Unshakable! We girls piled in Heather's limo afterwards, and Gregory drove us to the church in good time. Later, Jack told me that Rich begged off his own Bachelor Party. Jack still threw it, but Rich didn't go, so neither did Jack! It ended up they spent the evening at a bar around the corner, nursing at beers and reminiscing, while Rich's guests partied hard a block away. It must have been a beauty of a party though, because Jack wouldn't say a word to me about what happened! So November thirtieth nineteen ninety-six, Rich finally got Heather to say 'I Do'. The wedding was nice. The reception was... well... memorable!
---
Heather was the last to climb out of the car. Brooke escorted her through the front of the church and into a small room off to the side.
"All ready?" Brooke asked in a heavy exhale.
Nodding quickly, Heather squared her shoulders and lifted her chin. "Ready!"
"Alright! Just wait here and I'll be right back with Frank." Casting a quick glance and smile to Jenny, she headed out into the church where their guests were still taking their seats. It was only a few dozen for each side, the church barely a tenth full, so finding him turned out to be easier than Brooke thought it would be.
"Frank!" she yelled at a whisper. Seeing him turn and smile, he tossed her a sloppy salute before he walked over to Richard.
"She's here, son! You're on!" He regarded his boy and nodded in approval. "You look good! Now get up in your place! You too, Jack!"
Checking each other's uniforms one more time, Jack and Richard stepped up in front of the altar.
"You have the rings, right Jack?" Richard whispered.
With a reassuring half-smile, Jack patted his pocket before his face dropped. "Um... uh... um!" Frantically, he started searching his uniform pockets in a desperate attempt to locate them.
"Cut the clowning, Jack!" he whispered again. "I'm not buying it this time!"
Tapping Richard on the shoulder, he looked at his best friend with a pained expression. "I... I think I left them in the pants pocket of my civvies in the changing room! I'm serious, Rich!"
Richard blanched. "You better get them fast, Jack! Move it, Marine!"
Seeing Jack running into the rear area of the church, Brooke stopped Frank on the way to the waiting room. "Take a knee, Frank. Jack just went U-A. You wait here. I'll go tell Heather we're on hold."
A minute later, Jack returned with a smile on his face. "Not to worry, Rich! I got your back! Remember! You need me!"
"Like a hole in the head!" Richard finished for him. "You done now? Can we get on with this, please?"
Jack shot the OK sign to Frank, who waved back and headed for the waiting area. "Alright, whatever it was, it's OK now." he said, rounding the corner. Stunned into stopping, he smiled. "Oh! Rich don't deserve you, little lady!"
Heather shook her head, her veil waving as she did. "No! I don't deserve him, Frank!"
"You can knock off that Frank business, sweetie! If I'm about to walk you down the aisle, I'm Dad to you!"
"Alright... Dad! I'm ready!"
After the music began, Maya started up first. Jenny followed, smiling and blushing at Brooke as she passed her. Lastly, Erica moved in behind them, winking knowingly at Brooke. The three bridesmaids making their way up the aisle, Brooke snapped to attention and began her precession, her Dress Blues a stark contrast to the pale pink of the bridesmaids' dresses.
Lastly, Frank took Heather's arm and escorted her to his waiting son, glowing with pride at seeing him prepared for whatever challenges awaited the two.
The on-looking guests smiled as Brooke passed them with perfect precision in her cadence, her eyes cast in the thousand-yard-stare of long-engrained drill. When at last the guests turned to see Heather, her ballgown dress was trailed by a chapel-length train attached at the bustle with thousands of pearls decorating the dress in an elaborate floral pattern across the bodice.
Reaching the altar just as the music ended, the service went on in traditional fashion, flowing through the ceremony just as billions of others before it. Jack occasionally stole a smiling glance at Erica, who seemed to know when he was doing it, as she would always be looking back at him and smiling.
Brooke was a statue. Her eyes never wavered, her bearing unmovable, as though you could push her over and she would crack like a marble statue. Her perfection didn't stop Jenny from stealing glances around Erica, though. Jack caught her checking Brooke out from behind at least twice, with the faintest glimmer of desire in her eyes each time.
When the ceremony at last came to a close, the minister giving permission to kiss the bride, Richard raised her veil and placed it over and behind her.
Heather looked up at him. "Hello, Mr. Hargrave!" she said low and soft.
Bending down to kiss her, he smiled. "Hello... Mrs. Hargrave!"
When the minister introduced the couple to their guests, Jack and Brooke both gave out a shout. "Ooo Raa!" raising cheers from everyone.
After getting photos of the wedding party, they quickly made their way to the reception hall a few blocks away. Climbing into Heather's limo, Gregory congratulating them as he closed the door, Richard removed his cover and kissed Heather passionately. Making out in the back of the car almost the whole way, Heather finally made him stop to touch herself up.
Meanwhile, Jack worked furiously to get everyone in their cars. "Come on people! Hustle! Hustle! Hustle! We have ten minutes to get to the hall!" He'd made sure that Gregory was taking the scenic route to get there, but it still only gave them a few minutes margin so that their guests could both see them off at the church and greet them at the reception.
Catching sight of Brooke, he half-smiled at her. "Perfect drill, Hathaway! No gigs!"
"The day this Sergeant takes gigs from a Lance Corporal is the day I quit!" she retorted.
Leaning in close, Jack lowered his voice. "What did you do to that poor girl, Brooke! She was practically undressing you with her eyes all through the ceremony!"
"Why not?" she said nonchalantly. "She's done it before!"
"Oh! Details, Girl! You owe me details!" Jack insisted as he got in the car behind her.
The happy couple reached their reception and stepped out, surprised by the cheers and whistles from the same people they'd just left. Jack stood front and center of the crowd and pointed his finger at Richard. "Gotcha!"
Shaking his head, Richard escorted Heather up to Jack. "Someday, Jack. I don't know when, I don't know how, but someday, I'm gonna see you coming, and then..." He started to move toward him.
Jack held up his hands defensively. "Hey! You still need me, Rich! I still got a Best Man speech to give and I still have stuff even worse than 'Cindi with an i' up my sleeve!"
Stopping mid-move, Richard only tipped his cover. "Lead on, Jack! The hero of this story wants to celebrate!"
The party went through the usual motions; cake cutting, face smearing, and first dance to 'Love of a Lifetime'. When all the formalities were over with but one, Jack picked up the microphone.
"Hello? This thing on? OK! Good evening, ladies... gentlemen... Rich!" He paused a moment while people snickered. "Best Man speeches are supposed to be memorable, and I'm sure ol' buddy boy Rich over there is just waiting for me to embarrass the living heck out of him! He knows I can do it, too! I know all his secrets! I could tell you about the day we met! Funny story! Rich sees this jerk about to pummel me... and he stops him. I make a total fool of myself in front of the entire lunchroom... and he helps clean up the mess. I get my heart broken... he's there to help me pick up the pieces. I get humiliated in front of the entire school... he gets even for me. I get hurt... well... Frank helped me there. Sorry, Rich!"
A small laugh went around the room before he continued. "I don't get a date to Senior Prom, can't afford tickets, or a tux, or anything... he gets me the best date I could imagine." Looking at Richard, Jack subtly nodded. "I need physical therapy to pass the Marine Corp physical... he coaches me through it. I find this woman who's absolutely amazing... " he paused to glance at Brooke, "... he shows me what a great friend she can be. I get slapped by my date..." he looked at Heather with a grin, "... and he goes and tries to talk her into giving me a second chance. My mother goes into a coma... he calls to give me the news himself. I get passed up for promotion... he takes me out to celebrate not having to become an NCO!"
After a pause to take a drink, he continued his speech to his rapt audience. "I never get invited to parties... he refuses to go unless I can come. I fall in love with his sister... he gives me his blessing. Yep! I know a whole lot about my buddy Rich! I could tell you stories that would leave you all in stitches for hours... but I wanted only one thing to come out of this speech. I wanted everyone here to know what a privilege it is to know, and be the friend of, Richard Hargrave."
Putting down the mic, Jack walked in front of Richard's seat at the head table. Pulling his heels together crisply, he snapped to attention. Slowly raising his arm, he saluted his best friend and held it. Getting up, Richard returned the salute, and the two looked at each other, both sharing a lifetime of comradery in a single breath. Returning to attention, Jack turned sharply and marched from the room before anyone noticed the wetness in his eyes.
Washing his hands in the restroom after composing himself, he saw Richard stroll in slowly. "You did it again, Jack. Caught me completely by surprise! How do you do it! Here I figure, 'OK, Jack's my Best Man, Best Man speech, Jack the always on comedian...' I knew what I was asking for! So I'm ready for either a ten minute vaudeville routine, or every funny story about me you can think of to embarrass me! And what do you do?"
"Look Rich," Jack interrupted. "I... I just wanted you to know..." Looking up at him, he chuckled once before looking at the floor again and started to dry his hands. "I just wanted you to know that I knew all those times you stood up for me, that... that I... uh... I knew, Rich... and I loved you for it every time. Because you didn't have to! You would have had it easier if you'd have just let Ox beat the tar out of me and just minded your own business! You didn't have to, but you did anyway, and you keep doing it! And I know, OK?"
"Jack?"
"Yeah? What is it, Rich?"
"Your fly's open."
"Shit!" he looked down, but saw nothing wrong and looked up deadpan.
"Gotcha!" Richard shouted as he ran from the restroom.
A second later Jack took off after him. "Rich! You son of a..." Tearing out of the room, he was intercepted by Erica as she threw her arms around him, tears streaming down her cheeks.
"Oh, Jack!" she cried. "That was... it was beautiful!"
Holding her while she cried, he saw Brooke leaning against the opposite wall next to the ladies room door. "Wow, Jack. That was..." Brooke sighed. "It was wonderful, Jack. Nothing could have been better!"
Smiling back at her, he nodded. "Thanks, Brooke!"
Kicking herself off the wall, she slowly walked toward him. "Of course, you know you just caused every woman in that room to rush off to the Head to fix their make-up, right?"
"Everyone but you, Brooke!"
"Bah!" she waved a hand at him dismissively. "I'm no woman, Jack! You know that! Corps through and through! Ooo Raa!"
"You fixed your make-up out here in the hall, didn't you?" Jack guessed.
"Head was too busy!" she smirked at him.
After everyone returned to the reception hall, Richard picked up the mic.
"Um... I know this isn't traditional, but I... uh... I wanted to say a few words about Jack's speech." He paused as he took a drink. "I... uh... I just want to let you all know... he's absolutely right!" Laughter filled the room as Richard smiled. "I have been looking out for Jack since he was thirteen! And I'm such a wonderful guy for doing it!" Laughter rolled through the room once more. "Everyone! Give me a round of applause!" Cheers and applause mixed with laughter as Jack was left agape. "Alright, everyone! Time to have fun!"
Music filled the room as he returned to his seat between Jack and Heather while 'Everybody Have Fun Tonight' played and people started to dance.
"Rich!" Jack looked at him with a shocked expression. "You stole my act!"
"Yeah, yeah! Well, you let us all down, Jack! The King of Comedy gives a serious Best Man speech? It had to be done, Jack!"
"You're a straight man, Rich! You can't do comedy on your own!"
"Lucky for me I followed you!" Richard shot back as he downed his drink.
Heather took his glass from his hand and turned it upside down. "Alright funny-man! You're cut off! I already told you at Jack and Erica's wedding that I am not pouring you into bed again!"
"Yes, dear!" he replied.
"Same goes for you, Jack!" Erica warned him. "I want you sober tonight!"
With the dance floor crowded as the first sounds of 'Girls Just Wanna Have Fun' filled the room, Heather stood up and grabbed Brooke's hand, nearly jerking her off balance. "Come on, girl! You're coming with me!" Reaching the dance floor, they were joined by Erica, Jenny, and Maya as the five of them danced together, while Jack and Richard laughed at Brooke trying to dance to eighties pop in her Dress Blues. More than once the Marine found Jenny dancing very close to her, almost as if they were dancing just with each other, while the others were off on their own.
Just as Brooke and Jenny were smiling and dancing close again, the song faded to 'True' and what had a moment earlier been innocent fun became a dangerous desire to slow dance together in public.
"Jenny..." Brooke began, when suddenly her face became serious. "You'll have to excuse me." Brooke's cheeks flushed red with embarrassment as she quickly left the dance floor and returned to the head table, taking Erica's seat next to Jack for a moment.
Jack leaned over. "Sorry, Brooke. That was rough! That DJ's a bitch!"
Drinking a glass of water quickly, she nodded. "Almost makes me wish I'd just worn the stupid dress! No one would have cared!"
"So what did you two do last night?" Jack asked. "Seriously! No jokes, no crude comments, just a friendly ear."
Looking down at her lap, she shrugged. "We... uh... things got pretty involved and... um... I might have used the word 'love'."
"You might have?" Jack asked incredulously. "Brooke, did you tell Jenny you loved her? After only knowing her for two days?" Seeing her silently nod, he whistled low. "What are you gonna do when your Leave is up?"
"Go back to The Bricks! What else can I do?" she answered, looking across the room at Jenny. "Jack? Tell me not to do what I'm thinking!"
"That depends on what you're thinking." he replied cautiously. Slowly his eyes widened. Keeping his voice low he broke into a whisper. "Brooke! Don't even think it! You get caught and you'll be dishonorably discharged! You think the Old Man won't see pictures of Rich's wedding day online?"
"Jack!" she growled through gritted teeth. Lowering her voice once more, she whined, "Jack, I just want to go out on that floor and dance with the woman I love!" Catching herself saying it out loud again made her eyes bulge.
Shaking his head, he looked at her sternly. "I know, and I'm happy for you that you found someone to love! I wish you could too, but that dance would probably cost you your job and make getting another one almost impossible! How many people that you know will hire a DD Marine?"
Sighing, she nodded in defeat. "I know, Jack. It's just..." She almost felt like crying.
Hugging her shoulders with one arm, he tried to console her. "I know, I know. It's hard, it's not fair, and this time I can't cover for you, but you knew that going in." He looked at her with a hopeful smile. "Hey! You have less than a year left! How long have you been looking for someone like Jenny? What, since you were eight?"
"Seven." she answered with a slight smile of her own.
"So? You've waited eighteen years? What's one more?" Shaking her slightly with his arm, his voice turned mirthful. "Huh? Right? You know I'm right!"
Brooke couldn't help but laugh at his clowning as she surreptitiously dabbed a tissue at the corner of her eyes. "You're right, Jack. Ten months! I can do that!" She paused and looked at her lap again. "But will Jenny?"
He sighed and looked across the room at Jenny talking with Heather and his wife. "Well, what happened when you told her? How did she react?"
She smiled and chuckled once. "She... um... she was stunned, I guess. I mean, we... we haven't done anything yet besides kiss and make out a little. She's... she's never been with a woman before. I think she's never even considered it before!" She shook her head and looked off into the distance. "Lucky me, right? Find the right girl and she's straighter than you!"
"I seriously doubt that, Brooke. I've never made out with Rich before!" His humor worked, lifting her spirits and making her laugh. Looking at her and then across the room at Jenny, he turned serious. "Listen, why don't you go talk to her? Tell her what you feel and what you want and what you need to do to get it. I'll bet you anything, if she's half the woman you think she is, she'll wait for you."
Seeing Jenny across the room glancing at her made her blush again. "You think so? Honestly?"
"Brooke, I love you. You're like the sister I never had. I... I just want you to be happy, and I know if you threw it all away for her, you'd hate yourself for it, and sooner or later you'd hate her for it, too. So, go! Talk!"
Standing up, she looked at him. "You're right. When did you get so wise?"
"Life's a bitch of a teacher, but I learned. Good luck!" he said as she started around the table.
Jenny was beyond frustrated as she talked with Heather and Erica. "I... I just don't get it! She's hot and cold! Fine one second, then gone the next! I... I've never done this before! Am I doing something wrong?"
Shaking her head, Heather smiled. "Jenny, I don't know exactly what's going on between you two, but I know one thing. If you were doing something Brooke didn't like, you'd know it! She can be extremely... blunt!"
"Like a brick!" Erica added. Shyly biting her lip, she looked at Jenny. "Um... so what is going on with you two? I mean, I know you like each other, and that's great, but... um... how far have things gotten?"
Blushing heavily, Jenny wanted to just run and hide. "I... I kissed her."
Heather looked at her incredulously. "That's all? I sincerely doubt that's all that's going on, here!"
Rolling her eyes, Jenny put her hand on her hip. "What! You want details? Fine! We made out, OK!?" Her anger at Heather pressing the point ebbed as she retreated back into herself once more. "I mean... that is we... Oh God, Heather! I'm just messed up! I'm a confused broken mess and she knows it! No wonder she keeps backing off! She ought to just run!"
Erica stole a glance across the room at her husband talking with Brooke, who seemed to be on the edge of tears. "Jenny? Can I ask you something?" Seeing the young woman nod, she tried to be delicate. "How do you feel about her?"
Looking across the room at Brooke just as she was looking back sent a shiver up her spine, making her look away. "I... uh... I really like her! More than anyone I've ever known! I like her so much it scares me sometimes! I wasn't ever ready for something like this! I've never even looked at another woman the way I look at her! She makes me feel... special... wanted..." She sighed and closed her eyes, finishing softly. "...loved!"
The silence between the three was palpable as Erica and Heather looked at one another in surprise. Finally Jenny shook her head as if to clear it. "No! It just... it wouldn't work! I mean, I'm pretty sure I'm not gay! I like looking at guys! I don't think I could ever..." She looked at the floor embarrassedly before looking over at Brooke once more. "Oh, God! But when I look at her, I just want to..."
"Jenny?" Heather asked sweetly. "Are you in love with her? Because I have to be honest, everything you're saying and doing is telling me that you are!"
Looking at her with eyes wide, Jenny blurted out, "She... um... she told me! I mean, last night we had dinner after the shower... the wedding shower I mean!" Flustered that she'd implied Brooke and she had showered together last night, she took a breath and tried again. "Last night, we had dinner after the wedding shower. We were talking, and laughing, and... well... she just... blurted it out!"
Erica shook her head in confusion. "Blurted what out!"
"She said, 'I love you!' At first it was just like one of those things you say? Like 'I love pasta' or 'I love laughing', but then, after she said it, she looked at me funny and... and said it seriously! Like she really meant it!"
Heather blinked. "Well? What did you say?"
"Not much. We were kind of... busy... after that." Jenny admitted shyly.
"So after that did you tell her you loved her, too?" Heather asked impatiently.
"No!" Jenny shot back defensively. "I... I mean... I don't know if I do! How do you know if you're in love with another woman?"
"It's no different than if you were in love with a man, Jenny." Heather stated as fact. "You just know."
Erica smiled subtly as she got an idea. "Jenny? Close your eyes and picture yourself with Brooke." Seeing Jenny's eyes close, she pressed forward. "Now she's gone! How do you feel?"
Her eyes shooting open, Jenny almost started to cry. "Oh, God! I am in love with her! I'm in love with a woman! I'm in love with Brooke! A woman I've only known for two days!" She looked at Heather and Erica as if searching for help. "What do I do?"
Seeing Brooke stand and start walking their way, Heather smiled. "Do? You enjoy it, Jenny!" Quickly, she got out the compact from Jenny's purse and dabbed a tissue under the younger girl's damp eyes. Looking her over, she nodded. "Touch up a little."
Confused, she looked in the tiny mirror and hid the redness under her eyes. Looking up, she saw Brooke approaching. "Oh my God! Do I look alright? What should I do?"
Heather laughed lightly. "You look fine, Jenny! You should just talk to her."
Brooke stepped up to the three women and looked at her friends. "Heather? Erica? Would you two excuse us for a bit?"
The bride and bridesmaid nodded and, as soon as Heather was in back of Brooke, turned and mouthed to Jenny, "Tell her!"
Seeing an empty table, Brooke smiled. "Why don't we sit and talk a bit?"
Melting at her smile, Jenny returned it and nodded. "OK!"
Sitting together, she leaned on the table, looked at Jenny, and smiled again dreamily before clearing her throat and sitting up once more. "I... um... I... I wanted to apologize for earlier. I feel I should explain."
"Oh! You don't have to explain!" Jenny offered enthusiastically. Suddenly looking embarrassed, she looked away. "I... I must have done something that made you... uncomfortable."
"Actually, no." Brooke corrected her. "You did something that made me feel like doing something I shouldn't. Not yet anyway." She sighed as she tried to explain. "I... I have obligations. Part of that is respecting this uniform and all it represents. I wanted to hold you in my arms and dance with you so much, I very nearly did. Doing it would have been a violation of my standing orders though, something I just can't overlook. I'm... I'm sorry."
Jenny looked up at her with eyes full of compassion. "No! You don't need to be sorry. I'm the one that needs to apologize. I... I'm immensely proud of you and how committed you are! I just got caught up in the fun of dancing with you, I shouldn't have put you into the position of having to choose between me and... and what makes me love you."
Brooke suddenly looked at Jenny with eyes wide. "You... you love me?"
"Yeah. I think I do!" Jenny smiled shyly.
Right then, Brooke wanted nothing more than to pull Jenny to her and kiss her passionately. Instead, she just smiled. "You know I love you too, right?"
Nodding, Jenny smiled wide. "Yes! I love hearing it, though!"
"OK, so here's the deal. I have ten months left. As soon as I'm Outside and my commitments are fulfilled, I... I want to move here, to live with you."
The import of what she was saying struck Jenny like a lead weight. "You... you want to live with me? But... don't you have family in New Mexico?"
"Oklahoma!" Brooke laughed. "But I don't care! My father will probably disown me and my mother will try to 'fix' me by guilting me, saying that it's all her fault, but I don't care about any of that! All I want is to do my duty as I swore to do, then spend the rest of my life loving you!"
Jenny was overwhelmed. "You... you'd do that? Give up your family and everything you've ever known, for... for me?"
Shrugging absently, Brooke smiled. "I have to! My heart won't let me do anything less!" Looking at her seriously, she continued. "It means being away from you for most of the next year, though. I'm willing to wait. I've waited eighteen years to find someone as wonderful as you. One more won't kill me, but... but I guess I need to know. Will you?"
"I... I don't know." Jenny said honestly. "I mean, I want to! I think I would do almost anything for you, Brooke! But... a year without you?" She looked away ashamedly. "I... I don't know if I could stand it!"
Brooke felt her heart sink. "Well, I could try and come see you. I... I don't know where I'll be stationed soon though, so I don't know how easy that will be. But I can try! If... if you're willing."
Looking in Brooke's eyes, Jenny saw the longing and saw how easily she could hurt this strong woman. Suddenly overwhelmed with pride for her serving Marine, she nodded and smiled. "I'll wait. I... I love you, Brooke!" Laughing, she looked away. "I guess now I know how military wives feel!"
"Woah!" Brooke shouted quietly. "Are you asking..."
"Huh?" Suddenly her eyes shot open. "Oh! I... um... I didn't mean... that is, what I meant was..."
Brooke laughed and took Jenny's hand discretely. "I know what you meant! I just thought I'd have a little fun with you!" She smiled and looked deeply into Jenny's eyes. "The scary part is, I think if you were asking, I... I'd say yes!"
Enjoying the feel of Brooke's gloved hand in hers, she blushed and shied away. "I don't think I could ever see me asking, but I know how you feel. Sometimes I feel so strongly about you it scares me, too! If you asked me, I... I don't think I could say no!"
It was Brooke's turn to blush as she looked away. "I... I'll keep that in mind!"
Jenny smiled at her and looked at the carefully pressed jacket Brooke wore. Reaching out, she discreetly ran a finger along one of the seams. "I love what this means to you." she commented idly. "And I love that you respect it so much, I... I can't help loving it, too. It's a part of what makes you the person I love, and I know it always will be."
She looked up at Brooke. "Thank you for not putting what we want ahead of the things that make me love you!" She stood up and backed away. "I think we should go back to the head table. I... I don't want anyone to think you're doing something you shouldn't."
"Will I still see you tomorrow?" Brooke asked, half fearing the answer.
"You better believe it!" she smiled. "But, tomorrow? Leave the uniform at home!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
Jenny and I spent the next two weeks together almost constantly. She got her time off of work, though I'm pretty sure Heather had something to do with that! Those weeks we spent together were all that we'd have for the next year. After I went back, I got my PCS notice effective the first of January ninety-seven. They were already drawing down ANAS and shipping us out to other duty stations. So two weeks after I said goodbye to Jenny, Heather, and Rich, I was saying goodbye to Jack and Erica, too. I was being shipped off to Okinawa, which left me so far from everyone else it wasn't worth trying to get home to see anyone. I poured myself into my job and counted the days. All I had to get me though it was the memory of those blissful two weeks and the occasional phone call that I made off base. In the interim, Erica graduated with a degree in Psychology, and she and Jack were getting ready to start their new life.
---
Looking around the apartment one more time, the only thing Jack could find were the last few boxes left to put in Erica's car. Searching each room for items they might have missed, he remembered the fun and love he and Erica had shared in the place they had called home the first eighteen months of their lives together. The heat of the August morning was already making the apartment stuffy since the power had been turned off. Certain that nothing had been overlooked, he grabbed the boxes and carried them out and down to the car where Erica was trying to fit everything in.
"Jack, I don't know if we're gonna be able to fit what we've got in here!" she complained. "We should have put some of these things in the moving van before it left!"
"Everything here we needed for the last two days, Buttons." he pointed out. "I mean, we couldn't pack up the last of our clothes, or the kitchen, or the bathroom! Could you see us going two days in the same clothes, or without a shower or being able to cook?"
Erica sighed. "I know Jack, but what are we gonna do?"
He half-smiled at her. "I got it! Put 'em in the passenger seat, and you ride on my lap!"
Laughing, Erica shook her head. "I think CHP would object, love!" Looking around at the boxes, she threw up her hands. "I give up! You're on, funny-man. Figure out a way to get all of this to fit!"
After re-packing and shuffling the contents into different boxes, half an hour later Jack pushed the hatchback closed, having to lean on it. "There! Got it! Everything's in!"
"You've got things packed so tight in there I'm afraid that when we get to the house and open it, it'll be like opening a joke can of peanut brittle!"
"Don't sweat it, sweetheart!" he said in a terrible impression of Humphrey Bogart. "I'll take the first leg."
Erica shook her head. "No way, José! I'll take the first leg! You get that lovely Southern California traffic!"
"It's not that much worse than up here!" he argued. "Besides, I'll want to take a nap later after repacking all this stuff four times!"
"You can nap first and then drive us over the finish line!" she insisted. "I'm a better navigator than you, and we're gonna need that when we get down there, not up here where I know all the roads!"
"Yes, dear." Jack gave in, opening the passenger door. Pausing, he looked up at their old apartment window. "I think I'm gonna miss this place." He turned and looked at her about to get in the driver's side. "Special memories!"
"For both of us!" she pointed out as she got in. Buckling, she looked over at Jack doing the same. "Ready?"
"As I'll ever be!" he answered. "Let's go home!"
Their drive down was fairly uneventful. They switched places just outside Bakersfield when they stopped for gas. Jack fell asleep less than an hour into the trip and felt rested for the four-hour drive ahead. Erica napped until they reached the four-oh-five interchange, then agonized over the stop-and-go traffic. Finally, an hour after sunset, they reached the house they'd bought in Newport Beach, located less than a five-minute walk from her parents' home.
Turning off the motor, Jack finally relaxed. "We're here! Movers should have put most of the big things where they belong, so all we should have to do is unpack the car, take everything in, and then unpack everything else!" He glanced at his watch. "Shouldn't take past... oh... February!"
They laughed together as they got out. Jack started moving boxes to the front door while Erica got out her keys and unlocked it. She was about to step in when she felt herself suddenly lifted into Jack's arms.
"Put me down you goof!" she laughed.
"Sorry! Old traditions are still important!" He swung her easily in through the doorway and Erica reached over with one hand to turn on the light.
Nothing happened.
She looked at him in the dark. "You remembered to call and have the power turned on today, right?"
"Yeah!" he said as he placed her on the floor just inside the door. Running back to the car, he fished a flashlight out of the glove box and turned it on. Running back to the front door, they saw a maze of boxes filling the living room, creating an imposing wall of packed things. "Let me see if I can make my way through this and check the fuse box."
Erica watched him disappear around a corner stack of boxes. She followed his progress through the living room by watching where the flashlight lit up the ceiling above and in front of him. Finally she saw the light vanish down the back hallway that led to the bedrooms; the breaker box located inside the master bedroom closet. She heard several thumping sounds and Jack cursed twice. Suddenly, she heard him yell as the living room light she'd switched on came to life. "Jack! Are you OK?" The hallway light came on as she made her way into the cluttered house.
Jack saw her as they met near the entry to the kitchen while he sucked on the side of his right index finger. Taking it out of his mouth and shaking it, he nodded back towards the bedroom. "Breaker was tripped, probably when the power was turned on. Damn thing cut me when I reset it!"
"Are you alright?" she asked concernedly, grabbing his hand to examine it. "Jack! You're bleeding!"
"Ah! Just a flesh wound!" he said dismissively. "I'll put some disinfectant on it after we unpack the bathroom. Lets get those boxes in so we can get it."
Two hours later, they sat at the only two kitchen chairs that weren't stacked with boxes. "At this rate we'll need a week to settle in! Where did we get all this stuff?"
"It's things I brought from Pittsburgh, plus things you brought, plus what I'd gotten in college." she answered. "It's all the things you need to run a house, Jack."
"Forget it!" Jack suggested "Let's chuck 'em all outside and live the simple life! It'd be easier than unpacking!"
"Come on, you!" she laughed as she stood back up and dragged him to his feet. "Break time's over! We need to at least find the sheets so we can sleep on our bed!"
They didn't get to bed until well past one in the morning and had only been asleep three hours when the phone rang. Jack turned on the light, reaching down to the floor next to the bed where they'd put the telephone for the time being. "Gary's Dry Clean, Jack speaking." he mumbled.
Heather would have laughed if she hadn't been so excited. "Jack? Jack you're at home, not at work. I need to talk to Erica! Is she there?"
Slowly realizing where he was, he looked at the watch he'd forgotten to take off when they'd gone to bed. "Heather? It's four in the morning! I don't know what time you get up there on the farm, but out here we have hours left 'till we milk the cows!"
"Oh! I'm sorry, Jack! I completely forgot about the time difference!" Heather apologized. "Um... did I wake you?"
"No! We get up at four every morning! Good for catching worms!"
Erica rolled over. "Who is it, Jack? Tell them to call back in the morning!"
"It's Heather, Buttons... and it is morning there. She wants to talk to you. Want me to give her the brush off?"
Sitting up, she shook her head. "No, I'll take it." Grabbing the receiver, she sighed. "Heather? It's Erica. Look honey, can this wait until tomorrow? It's late!"
"So am I!" she replied.
"For what?" Erica asked sleepily. "Whatever it is, I'm s..." Suddenly Erica was wide-awake. "Heather? Do you mean..."
"Uh-huh!" she answered, her smile audible even over the phone.
"Oh my God! Heather! When did you find out?" she yelled.
Jack rolled over, having started falling back asleep until Erica yelled. "Is everything OK? Something wrong with Rich?"
She covered the mouthpiece with her palm. "Heather's having a baby!"
"What, now?" he asked. "When did all this happen?!"
She shushed him. "Heather?"
"I just found out and I had to tell you right away!" she said excitedly. "I'm sorry for calling at such an early hour! I just couldn't wait!"
"No! It's fine, Heather! I'm glad you called!" Lowering the mouthpiece she told Jack, "She just found out!" Going back to the phone she asked, "How far along are you?"
"Five or six weeks." she answered excitedly. "My due date should be in April! Oh, Erica! I'm so excited!"
"How's Rich taking it?" she asked.
"I haven't told him yet." she explained. "He left for work an hour ago and won't be back until late tonight. He's working out of the office today, so I can't even call him. I just had to tell somebody and Brooke isn't reachable!"
"Well congratulations, Heather! I'm sure Rich will be thrilled!"
"Wait a minute!" Jack sat up suddenly. "I know before Rich does!? Oh, ho, ho! This is gonna be so good!"
"Don't you dare ruin this for Heather!" Erica barked. Hearing her sister-in-law over the phone, she went back to it. "What's that, Heather? Oh, Jack was just planning something nefarious for Rich because he knows before Rich does! Don't worry, Heather! I'll keep him in line!"
"You tell Jack that if he ruins this surprise for me, I'll... I'll... I'll never speak to him again!"
She turned to her husband. "Jack? I'm serious. If you ruin this for her, I don't think I could ever forgive you for it! This is not something to turn into a joke! Do you understand me?"
Jack lay back and sighed. "Alright. Fine! Ruin the best thing I've ever had on Mr. Perfect! I'll let it go!" He grumbled as he rolled over and pulled the sheet tight up to his neck.
"OK, Heather. You don't need to worry. Jack won't do anything. You just plan however you want to tell him! Congratulations again! All right! Call me later! Bye!" Hanging up the phone and handing it to Jack to put back on the floor, Erica lay back and sighed. After a time, she rolled over and wrapped her arms around him. "Jack? You still awake?"
"Unfortunately." he grumbled.
"Jack?" She paused, trying to think how to broach the subject. "Jack, I want to go off the pill."
He slowly rolled over and looked at her. "Seriously? I thought you wanted to wait until we were more settled..."
"I know what I said!" she interrupted him. "I changed my mind. Oh, Jack! Don't you want to start our family? Rich and Heather got married after us and here we are, in our own house, and we haven't even started trying yet!"
"We've been in our own house for a total of seven hours, Buttons! What? You wanna start now?" He looked up into her eyes, seeing the mischievous grin creep across her face. His face lit up with a half-grin before they both started giggling and working to get undressed as quickly as possible.
Heather struck a match and lit the two candles that she'd placed on the dining room table. Shaking the match out once they caught, she moved over to the light switch and dimmed it just bright enough to allow them to see while still emphasizing the candlelight. Smiling, she walked back to the mirror by the front door and checked herself one more time. Just then she heard a car pull up the driveway and one of the garage doors opening. Moving through the house gracefully, she went down the few steps at the head of the hallway that led to the garage. Taking a deep breath, she smiled and waited.
Richard slowly dragged himself out of the driver's seat, stretching his worn body. He'd spent all day on the road and was just glad to be home. Slamming the car door as the garage closed, he threw his dark gray suit jacket over his shoulder as he made his way to the door leading into the house. Stepping into the hallway, he smiled at the sight that greeted him. "Hey, beautiful!" he said exhaustedly. "Are you a sight for sore eyes!"
"Rough day?" she asked, hoping that it hadn't been too hard.
"Boy and howdy!" he exclaimed, walking up to her and wrapping his arms around her. "Sorry! You got all dressed up for me and here I am, dragging my butt in here, smelling like a sock!" He started to pull away from her so he wouldn't get his sweat all over her.
Heather tightened her grip on him, not letting him pull away. "I missed you today!" she sighed.
"Just today?" he asked with a chuckle.
"I just really missed you, is all." she said as she looked up at him. "I knew it would be a hard day for you, so I wanted it to be nice when you got home! Have you eaten?" She slowly released him as they started into the house.
"Grabbed a late lunch about three. I'm starved!" He sniffed the air. "What's Cook making?" he asked.
"Her name's Theresa, dear! Calling her Cook just seems... inappropriate!"
"Tough habit to break, love." He shrugged. "You're lucky I don't call you Hargrave! Besides, it's convenient! Her last name's Cook, and that's what she does! What'd she make, anyway?" He looked into the dining room and saw the candles and low lights.
"Theresa's off for the night, dear." she explained. "So are Gregory and the others. I wanted time alone! I hope you don't mind. I made dinner myself!"
He stopped and looked at her. "You cook?"
"If the need or desire arises, yes I can cook, Richard!" She fisted him in the ribs lightly. "Sit down love, and I'll bring you your dinner!"
Walking up to the table, Richard smiled when he saw she'd set places at the head of the table and one next to it. Sliding into the seat at the head as she liked him to, he relaxed for a moment. When he saw her carrying out a large tray, he quickly rose to go to her. "Here, honey! Let me help you..."
"No! You sit right back down, Richard! I want to do this for you tonight!" she ordered, nodding toward his seat.
Holding up his hand in mock surrender, he sat down and waited while she served his favorite dinner of roast lamb. He wanted to start eating right away, but waited until she was done serving herself. Just as he was about to dig in, she put a hand on his arm, staying it. "Something wrong, Heather?"
She smiled at him as she softly answered. "No, Richard! Everything's perfect! I was just remembering dinners with my parents at this table! I really wish you'd gotten a chance to know them. They would have loved you!"
Smiling, he put down his fork. "I'm sure I would've loved them! After all, they raised you and I love you!" he complimented her before leaning over to kiss her gently. Wanting to tear right into his food, he could see Heather had some kind of plan for the evening, so he relaxed into it. "So then, how was dinnertime in the Moore household?"
Sitting up straight, Heather looked off in the distance. "Well, for starters we always dressed for dinner. Father would sit where you are, Mamma at the other end, and I would sit here." She gestured to the seat on her left in the middle of the table that seated eight. "Theresa would serve, with Gregory's assistance, then once served, Father would say Grace and we would wait for him to begin eating. If there was anything that needed discussing that day of major importance, he would talk about it after Grace and before he would start. Anything of minor import would wait until after dinner when we would retire to the Great Room."
She sighed wistfully. "It was like that every night. It was a pleasant comfort to know what to expect, especially after a hectic day at school or after Church and the weekly social that was always so chaotic."
"Sounds nice!" he said smiling. "Dinner at our house was chaos incarnate! Half the time we didn't even eat at the table, we ate in the living room around the TV. Sundays and Wednesdays Mom would have us at the table, though. Saturdays were hit and miss. Once Jack was around, he ate at our place twice a week until..." his voice trailed off. "Well anyway, dinner was a casual thing for us. Mom would say Grace if Dad hadn't started eating by the time she sat down. It wasn't very often into high school though, more often when Erica and I were kids." He looked at her questioningly. "Did you want to make our dinners more formal, like you used to do when you were growing up?"
Heather considered his offer honestly. "Well, it would be nice if we would occasionally." She glanced at him and smiled. "Maybe on Wednesdays and weekends?"
"Mix of both?" he nodded and chuckled. "OK. I can go along with that. Since it's Tuesday, you wanna start tomorrow or start tonight and then pick it up this weekend?"
"If you wouldn't mind starting tonight?" she asked hopefully.
"Anything you like, beautiful!" he leaned over and kissed her again. "Well, 'the cook' has already served, so..." They both bowed their heads in prayer as Richard spoke. "Dear Lord, thank you for the blessings you have seen fit to bestow upon us, and make us truly thankful for them. In the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, Amen."
"Amen!" Heather said smiling in contentment. When she opened her eyes and saw Richard about to begin eating, she cleared her throat. "Richard? I have news of importance to bring up."
Setting his fork down once more, he looked over at her. "Oh?"
"Yes, dear." She took a breath and smiled. "I talked to Erica this morning. I called to deliver some news to her."
Curious how this would be important, he furrowed his brow. "What news?"
"An expected delivery?" she smiled at him shyly.
He was about to ask what was going to be delivered when his eyes widened. "Delivery? As in..." He watched in awe as Heather bit her lower lip with a wide grin and nodded enthusiastically. "A... a baby? You mean... you're... you're..."
"We're pregnant!" she corrected him. "You're going to be a daddy!"
Getting out of his chair, Richard helped her to stand. "When? How?" he asked dumbly.
She looked at him with mock seriousness. "You mean you don't know where babies come from, dear?"
He laughed at his own idiocy for even asking. "No... I mean yes! Of course I know! No, I meant... I knew we talked about it and you said you were going off the pill, but that was only last month!"
"Apparently that's all it took, dear!" she giggled.
Wrapping her in his arms, he kissed her strongly, lifting her up and swinging her in a circle afterwards as he howled, "Ooooooo Raaaaaaah!"
Putting her down again as she laughed, Richard almost stumbled back to his chair, his dinner and hunger completely forgotten. "Oh, wow!" he said in a daze.
"So I take it then you're happy about it?" she asked jokingly.
"Happy? No, dear! I'm not happy! I'm over the moon about it!" As his brain starting to work again, he looked at her with a concerned expression. "What about your practice?"
Considering it for a moment after she sat down, she picked up her water glass and sipped it. "Well, I can take six weeks Maternity Leave, and then we can hire a nanny to take care of..."
"No." Richard shook his head. "I don't want my kids raised by a stranger!"
Upset that he expected her to give up her career, she looked at him. "Richard! It wouldn't be a stranger! Besides, I have obligations to keep! Patients that need me!"
Pursing his lips and considering her position, he nodded. "You're right! I'll quit!"
Heather was shocked at his suggestion. "Richard! I can't ask you to do that! You worked so hard to get that position! I'm proud of you for it! Lots of children are raised by nannies!"
"But they aren't my kids, Heather!" he still shook his head. "I don't care about my job! I do it because it's necessary! If we have to cut back to make it on just your salary, it's worth it to have our kids raised by one of us! That's a lot more important than a career to me!"
"Richard, are you sure this is what you want?"
"Absolutely!" he answered without even waiting for Heather to finish asking her question. "Besides, I hate the way the upper managers look down their nose and give me all the crap work they don't feel like doing, just because I didn't go to an Ivy League school! I know Hank will be disappointed, but... No, he'll understand! I'll see him tomorrow and give him the news that..." He thought for a moment, trying to figure out on his own when the baby would be due. "When's the due date?"
Shaking her head, Heather laughed. "April! I'm not exactly certain though. I haven't seen a doctor yet. I just missed my period five days ago and used a home testing kit! Well, actually I used three! I wanted to be sure!"
"Perfect! I'll tell him that after I do the quarterly reports due the first week of April I won't be coming back!"
Lowering her tone to be serious, Heather looked him squarely in the eyes. "Richard? Look at me. Are you sure you could be happy as a 'Mister Mom'?"
Looking back in her eyes, he smiled. "I can't think of anything I'd like more, love!" He frowned suddenly as a thought occurred to him. "Heather? You wouldn't be embarrassed having a stay-at-home husband, would you?"
"No!" she shouted.
"Is it the money then?" he asked, hoping he hadn't misjudged her essential character.
"Richard!" she scowled at him. "I have more money than we could ever need! It's not about money, or what other people think! I just want you to be happy! Are you sure? Is it that important to you that you would give up your whole career for it?"
Nodding, he smiled at her reassuringly. "Positive."
"Alright!" she gave in.
"So it's settled!" he stated. "I'll stay at home and raise the kids and you keep people from going nuts!"
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
I stayed in touch with Jack and Rich while I was overseas. They would call and tell me what was going on in their lives and I in turn lied to them about how great my new posting was. The only benefit of being so bloody far away was that I was still accumulating Leave that I never took, so in the end I got out almost a month early, taking my last twenty-one days as Terminal Leave. By September second, I was on my way back to CONUS... the Continental US... but things had changed. Jack and Erica were living in Newport Beach and Rich was in New Hampshire, which was where I was headed as fast as I could. I didn't even take the time to call anyone and let them know I got out early. I felt like I was abandoning Jack, especially after all that he'd done for me over the years, but I just had to follow my heart.
---
Brooke slammed the door of the cab and pulled the seabag over her shoulder, most of the weight resting on her back. To her, the late summer weather in Concord felt more like the fall that wasn't due to start for another two weeks. Biting her lip nervously, she gathered her nerve and walked up to the door of the tiny house. Setting the bag down once more, she knocked and waited.
Jenny heard someone knocking on her door as she put a load of laundry in the washer. "Coming!" she yelled loud enough for them to hear her. She'd spent most of that Saturday cleaning her one bedroom rental and hadn't been expecting anyone, her parents being out of the country. Jogging through the living room, she slowed as she reached the door. Sighing, she pulled it open quickly, mildly annoyed at the interruption. "Yes?" When her eyes caught sight of who was at her door, she nearly fainted. "Brooke!?"
"Jenny?" she smiled hopefully. "I know I didn't call ahead, but I thought I might surprise you!"
Surprised was an understatement. Jenny was stunned into speechlessness. "Wha... how... uh..."
"Well? Can I come in or do I need to go live in New Mexico?" she said with a smile.
Jenny still couldn't formulate words, so she just stood back and let Brooke enter. Clearing her throat, she finally was able to speak again. "Um... sorry about the mess!" she apologized, looking around the room. "I... I... I wasn't expecting you until..." She shook her head, trying to clear it. "I thought you wouldn't even be out until the end of the month! I wasn't expecting you until sometime in October! What happened?"
"I haven't taken any Leave for almost a year, so I took it all at the end of my cruise so I could get here sooner!" she explained. "Surprised?"
"No, I'm not surprised... I'm floored!" She looked at her grungy sweats and touched the bandana holding the hair out of her eyes. "I... I wasn't ready for you yet! I... I wanted everything to be perfect for you to..." She looked down as her voice shook and cracked, her eyes starting to water.
Brooke moved in close to her and grasped her shoulders. "It's OK, Jenny! I don't care how clean your house is! I just couldn't wait to see you!"
She looked up at Brooke upset. "But I look terrible! Me standing here like an idiot in sweats... and I haven't showered since yesterday morning!"
Laughing at how seriously Jenny was taking it, Brooke shook her head. "You still look beautiful to me!"
Furrowing her brow, Jenny walked away frustratedly. "You're just saying that to make me feel better!"
No longer laughing, she cleared her throat. "Do... do you want me to go?"
Spinning to face her, Jenny pleaded, "No! God, no! It's just... Oooo, you can be so damn frustrating!"
Sighing and shaking her head, Brooke smiled. "Yes, yes I can, and you can be adorable when you're angry!" Pausing for a moment, she looked around the room. "Tell you what. We'll get this place cleaned, together, get us clean and dressed nice, and I'll take you out to dinner. How does that sound?"
Shyly looking to the floor, she blushed. "You mean, out? Like a date?"
"I mean out, like what loving couples do!" Brooke clarified, slowly walking up to her. "But first, I want to say hello properly!"
Gulping at the predatory look in Brooke's eyes, Jenny's pulse quickened as she hurriedly pulled the scarf off her hair, still hardly able to believe that after so much waiting, her love was finally in her home again. Feeling her pulse pounding in her neck, the smaller woman stood there as Brooke walked up to her and slipped her arms around Jenny's waist. Still not used to being so drawn to another woman, fear gripped her heart for a moment before desire overcame it and she found her arms slipping around to draw Brooke tightly to her.
Leaning down, Brooke brought her face only inches from Jenny's. Seeing the fear, but feeling the younger woman pull their bodies close, she changed her approach and instead of ravishing the woman she loved as she desired to, Brooke instead whispered, "I love you!" before gently kissing her, just letting their lips brush together tenderly.
Hearing the words and feeling Brooke's lips lovingly kissing hers, drove the fear out of Jenny's heart as wanton desire took its place and overwhelmed her. Just as Brooke was pulling back to end their loving reunion, Jenny ran her right hand up to rest on the nape of Brooke's neck and pressed their lips back together. Opening her mouth hungrily, she jumped up and wrapped her legs around Brooke's hips to make their bodies press together in a lover's embrace. Throwing caution to the wind, Jenny only knew one thing at that moment; Brooke was in her arms once more and she wanted the Marine more than she'd ever wanted anyone in her life.
Reveling in the love and desire Jenny was showering on her, Brooke returned her desperate clinging as her heart burst with joy. When Jenny's passion was at last sated and she slowly slid back down to her own feet, their lips parting, Brooke sighed in contentment. "I missed you, too!" she whispered, delicately toying with the curly brown hair around Jenny's face. Smirking, she grabbed the smaller woman behind the shoulders with one arm and swept her legs up with the other, Jenny instinctively wrapping her arms around Brooke's neck.
"Brooke!" Jenny yelled. "What are you doing!"
"Something I've been dreaming about my entire life." she answered as she headed for Jenny's bedroom. When she saw Jenny smile and giggle, Brooke knew that the love of her life wanted her just as desperately as she did her, and that this was where she'd always belonged. Home. she smiled to herself as she kicked the bedroom door shut behind them.
Six weeks later, and twenty-five hundred miles away, Erica walked through the door to Jack's Jiffy Dry Clean with a smile on her lips that she couldn't shake. They'd leased the building using some of the money they'd saved for their house and had opened for business in early September. Within weeks, Jack found himself busy enough to start hiring employees and begin paying back the small business loan he'd taken out. Erica smiled at the young lady behind the cash register. "Hi, Gwen! Is my husband available?"
The teenage girl looked up from the order slip she was filling out. "Oh! Hi, Mrs. D! Um... I think Mr. D's in the back. Do you need me to get him?"
"If you wouldn't mind?" she asked politely. She watched the bubbly blonde eighteen-year-old jog off to the back while she waited, going over things in her mind. Gwen returned and headed back to her work as Jack followed her.
"Hey, Buttons! What brings you by?" he said wiping his sweaty hands on a cloth. "I'm a little busy. We got a rush of costumes needing cleaned before Halloween next Friday." He half-smiled as he walked up to her. "Oh, yeah! Today was your physical with... um... what's-her-name, that... that doctor you picked. How'd it go?"
Erica shook her head. "Her name's Dr. Blumenthal, dear... and it went fine! Wonderful, in fact!"
Hugging her, Jack smiled. "That's great, Buttons! So did you just stop by on the way home? Just couldn't stand being away from me on a Saturday?"
Laughing, Erica shook her head. "You know me so well, Jack! I have some news though that I thought you might want to know right away."
His smile dropped. "Nothing bad, is it? I mean, nothing wrong with you? Or your folks or Rich or Heather? Or Brooke?"
She shook her head slowly. "No, nothing bad, and everyone's fine, last time I checked! I needed to make sure your schedule was free next July around the fourth."
Confused, he thought hard. "Next July Fourth? Buttons, I don't even know what I'll be doing next week! We got plans already for next July?"
"Just the birth of our baby!" she said smiling as wide as she could.
He looked at her with a stunned expression. "The wha...? Birth? Baby? You?"
Erica arched her eyebrows. "Well, I do seem to be the only one of the two of us able to do that, sweetie! Unless one of your other girls is expecting, too!"
He stumbled backward slightly, not even hearing her joke. "Me? A daddy? You're sure?"
"Couldn't be anyone else, love!" she quipped.
"Did the doctor tell you what it is?" he asked in a daze.
"It's too soon to tell, Jack! We won't know for fifteen weeks or so!"
Gwen was giddily waiting for an opportunity. Seeing a lull, she rushed up to Erica. "Congratulations, Mrs. D! I couldn't help but overhear!"
"Thanks, Gwen!" Re-shouldering the strap of her purse, she hugged Jack. "I have to get home and call everyone! See you tonight?"
Slowly, Jack started coming out of the fog that had wrapped around his brain. "Huh? Oh! Yeah, yeah! Sure! I... I'll be off at six." Pausing, he looked at her concernedly. "Hey, should you be driving in your condition?"
Erica laughed. "I'm pregnant, Jack! Not drunk!" continuing to laugh as she walked to the door. "I'll see you tonight, sweetie! Don't work too hard!"
Fifteen weeks later, they were in the doctor's office as the OBGYN pushed the sonogram wand around Erica's belly. Jack squeezed her hand while the two waited pensively. When he'd called Richard the day she'd told him about the baby to crow about their expected joy, Richard had told him that their recent sonogram had revealed that Heather would be having a girl. Now it was his turn to find out.
"There!" Dr. Blumenthal said happily. Pressing a button on the machine, a grainy monochrome photo started to print out. "Well, from what I can see, the baby looks healthy, is at the proper growth stage, and..." She paused and looked at the two. "...is a girl!"
Jack looked at Erica with a smile. "A girl!" he exclaimed softly. "A beautiful baby you!" He kissed her gently on the forehead. "I know what I wanna call her!"
Surprised, Erica looked at him. "Don't I get a say?" she laughed.
"What? Of course, Buttons!" he said defensively. "I just mean... I just have a suggestion I'd like you to consider, if that's alright!"
Laughing, she nodded. "OK, so what is it?"
He took her hand in both of his. "Erica Bella! Erica the Beautiful!"
A tear formed in her eye. "Oh, Jack! You're wonderful!" she kissed him on the lips, making him blush in front of the doctor.
"Well... um..." He half-smiled at her. "See, since she's due on the fourth of July, that way, when she introduces herself, she can say, 'Hi! Ah'm Erica... the Beautiful!"
Erica groaned along with their doctor. "Jack! You clown!"
Proud of himself for catching her out, Jack smiled. "Yeah, seriously though, what do you think? Erica Bella? I don't think I'll call her Buttons, that's just for you! Plus it'll make it easier to know who I'm talking to!"
"Aww! You're sweet!" she said, her heart melting at his love for her. "Alright! If that's what you really want!" She smiled and looked at the grainy photo again. "Hello! Erica Bella!"
Richard drove to the hospital in a near panic. Cursing himself for taking a few more days of work to close out the quarterly figures before resigning, he increased his speed to just under sixty. He wanted to go faster, but didn't want to risk getting stopped and delay him even more. Almost an hour after he'd gotten the call at work, he squealed the tires of his car, turning into the parking lot of Concord Hospital. Finding a parking space, he ran to the front doors where he saw Jenny waiting for him.
"Where is she?" he asked desperately.
Trying to calm him, Jenny answered in an even tone, "They've taken her to surgery. Follow me!"
Making him walk through the hospital, she could almost feel him pushing her with his eyes to go faster. Finally, they came to a waiting room where Brooke was sitting.
"Rich!" she sighed in relief. "They just came out and told me! She's fine! You have a beautiful and healthy baby girl, too! They're both fine!"
He very nearly fainted as the rush of adrenaline ebbed and he dropped to one knee. "Thank you, God!" he sighed, eventually letting them guide him to a chair. "What... what happened?" he asked, not having gotten the full story before racing off.
Jenny took a breath. "She started going into a perfectly normal labor while we were at work. She figured there would be plenty of time since the office is right across the street. She also thought it might be false labor and didn't want to worry you until she was sure."
Seeing Jenny pause, Brooke took over the explanation. "Jenny called me just after she called you. When they got her in and prepped, the doctor saw that the baby had her umbilical wrapped around her neck. Heather opted to do a Cesarean to avoid any risks."
"And they're both OK?" he asked, needing to hear it once more.
Brooke smiled at him reassuringly. "They both fine, Rich! This happens all the time! Right Jenny?" Her girlfriend just smiled and nodded.
After a few minutes, the doctor came back into the waiting room. "Oh! Mr. Hargrave? You can follow me!"
He looked back at Brooke and Jenny. "Can they come, too?"
The obstetrician put his hands on his hips and blew out a breath through his pursed lips. "Are there any others coming?" he asked.
Richard shook his head. "No. My parents and the rest of my family are out in California. They won't be here for another few days at least."
Nodding, the doctor turned toward the door. "OK. We normally only allow two at a time, but I'll allow it since three is all there is. Follow me."
The trio followed him into the recovery area where Heather was holding their baby girl and smiling. "Hi, love! Come meet our beautiful daughter!"
He slowly stepped ahead of the others, approaching as though his wife and child might break if his feet hit the floor too hard. "I told Hank on the way out I'd be back for my stuff later on. Oh! He said to say 'Congratulations'!" Pausing, his voice fell. "I... I'm sorry I was at work!"
Heather shook her head, her smile unbreakable. "No, love! It's fine! All you need is to have a little faith! I knew it would all work out alright!"
Laughing, he reached her side and stroked her blonde hair. Looking down at their tiny daughter, it came to him. "Honey? I know we settled on Beatrice René, but... I just had a thought."
"Oh, Richard!" she almost whined. "I thought we settled all this!?"
"Just hear me out!" he said softly. "What about 'Faith Beatrice'?" He looked down at the little girl. "Your mother's name is still there, and you did just say we needed to have a little Faith!"
Heather laughed lightly. "You're channeling your inner Jack!" She looked down at their girl. "Faith! It's perfect, Richard! Faith Beatrice Hargrave!"
While Brooke and Jenny came to meet their tiny honorary niece, Richard had only one thought. I sure wish Jack was here!
Four days later, as Heather was being discharged from the hospital, Frank and Judy arrived. While Heather was being wheeled into the lobby, Richard smiled to see his parents waiting next to Brooke and Jenny.
"Mom! Dad!" he called out to them quietly. After he and Heather had moved up to the four waiting for them, he smiled and looked down at his daughter. "Mom? Dad? I'd like you to meet your granddaughter, Faith! Faith? These are your grandparents!"
Judy wept happily as Frank kneeled down in front of the wheelchair. "Hi, gorgeous!" he said softly as he smiled. "Can you say 'hi' to grandpa?"
Heather laughed lightly. "Oh, Dad! You two just get in?"
He nodded as he stood back up. "Just. Drove straight here from the airport! That Jenny girl was kind enough to give us directions!"
"Sorry, Frank!" Brooke apologized. "I'm new to this wilderness!"
Looking up and nodding at the honorably discharged Marine, he smiled. "It's fine, Brooke. We got here! That's all that matters!"
Judith knelt down next to Heather. "May... may I hold her?" she asked.
The nurse standing behind the wheelchair shook his head. "Sorry. Against hospital policy." Smiling, he added, "Why don't we get these two outside? Then you can get them home where you can make your own policies!"
Standing and looking at the man as though he were denying her the ability to breathe, Judith was about to object when her son spoke up.
"That's a great idea! Let's get you two home!"
Half an hour later, Heather walked slowly and carefully through her front door, carrying her bundle of joy while Gregory smiled and held the door.
"Congratulations, Madame Hargrave!" he wheezed.
"Thank you, Gregory!" she said absently as she stared down at the sleeping child in her arms. Not able to handle the stairs up to the baby's new room while carrying her, she passed the child to Richard. "Here you go, Daddy!"
"There's my baby girl!" he sighed as he took Faith in his arms. "Gregory? Would you get her bags up to the room, please?" he asked.
"Of course, Master Hargrave!" Gregory said happily.
Looking up the stairs to the bedrooms she'd climbed all too easily all her life, it seemed to Heather as though she'd be climbing Mount Everest. As Frank came in, he walked up next to her and took her hand. "Here, sweetie! Let Dad help you!"
Judith jogged in behind him and made straight for Faith. "Oh, Richard! Now may I hold her?"
Looking over at Heather and seeing her nod as Frank helped her up the first step, Richard sighed and handed Faith to his mother. "Careful, Mom!"
"Oh, Richard!" she scoffed. "I raised two babies! I think I know how to hold one!" Turning to her granddaughter, she smiled at the tiny child. "You are just so precious!" she cooed.
Brooke and Jenny came in behind Gregory, who was carting two suitcases toward the stairs. Brooke moved in close to Judith and Richard while Jenny moved to help Heather.
"Here!" Jenny offered. "That's supposed to be my job, Mr. Hargrave!"
"Oh?" he asked.
Heather nodded with a grimace. "Yes. Jenny works at my office, Dad. She took a few days vacation to help me get settled in."
"So, she's a nurse then? Well I'm glad..."
"Jenny's not a nurse, Dad." Richard explained. "She just wanted to help!"
"See, I owe Heather and Richard a lot, Mr. Hargrave!" Jenny grinned as she glanced over at Brooke before slipping under Heather's free arm. "OK! Just put your weight on me, Heather! No exerting yourself for a few weeks!"
Brooke smiled down at baby Faith as Judith cradled her. "Hi there, Faith! You got a smile in there for your Aunt Brooke?" Seeing the babe grin in her sleep, Brooke laughed. "She did! She smiled for me!"
"That was gas." Judith said coldly.
"May I?" Brooke asked. "They wouldn't let us at the hospital!"
Judith turned her body to interpose it between Brooke and Faith. "That's alright, Miss Hathaway." she growled. "Grandma's got her!"
"Mom." Richard dragged out the word. "Let Brooke hold her a minute!"
"No!" she said defensively. "I just got her!"
"She's not going anywhere, Mom!" Richard argued with a laugh. "You guys will be here all week! Let Brooke hold her! She hasn't be allowed to for four days!"
"No!" she barked, pressing Faith into her bosom until the baby girl woke and started to cry.
"Give her here, Mom!" Richard ordered, reaching out for Faith.
Giving Brooke a dirty look, she grudgingly handed Faith back to her father. "Mind her head, dear!" she instructed him.
"I took the baby care classes, Mom!" he said as he took the crying babe who settled down. "There! Daddy's got his princess and everything's all better!" Turning to Brooke, he smiled. "Want a turn, Auntie?" he grinned.
"Do you think that's wise, Richard?" Judith scoffed.
Turning around halfway up the stairs, Heather furrowed her brow. "Judith, Brooke is Faith's godmother and one of Richard's dearest friends! What's wrong with you?"
Sniffing defiantly, Judith stared daggers at Brooke. "I just don't think it's a good idea to let someone like her handle a baby! I think a better godparent would be one who actually follows the word of God! Don't you, Richard?"
"Judy!" Frank barked, moving down the stairs to confront his wife. "Just what's gotten into you!"
"I have eyes, Frank!" she spat. "That woman shouldn't be allowed to hold our grandchild!" Looking at Jenny who stood next to Heather nervously, Judith narrowed her eyes. "That one, either!" Dropping to a conspiratorial whisper, she leaned in close to Frank. "They're ungodly lesbians, Frank! I can tell by the way they look at each other!"
Looking at Brooke with a shocked expression, then to Jenny, he turned to Richard. "Is that true, Rich? Are Brooke and Jenny..."
The two women in question looked at one another. This being her first time being 'outed', Brooke waited for the subtle nod from Jenny before speaking. "Frank? Yes. Jenny and I are a couple. We're in love."
"She admits it! Brazen Harlot!" Judith hissed. "Richard? Throw them out!"
"The hell I will!" Richard barked, stepping away from her with Faith.
"What!" Judith screeched. "Didn't you just hear her!"
"Mom! I've known Brooke was gay since the first day I met her! So what?"
"Mother Hargrave," Heather spoke with dignity as she undid all her progress and came back down the stairs. "This is my family home. Brooke and Jenny are my friends, as well as Richard's! They're a lovely couple and are lucky to have found one another! They will always be welcome in this house!"
"You condone this... this..." Near to apoplexy, Judith looked at Frank, who still stood in shock. "Frank! We're leaving! You call that lawyer of yours and get our grandchild away from them! They're..."
"Shut up!" Frank shouted, rousing Faith once more until Heather took her back and settled her down. "I... I'm sorry I woke her, Richard."
"It's OK, Dad." he excused his father cautiously.
Turning to Brooke, Frank puffed out his chest, but spoke in hushed tones. "You're a Marine, Miss Hathaway! How could you serve!?"
"Because I love the Corp more than women, Mr. Hargrave." she answered just as formally as he had asked. "Jenny and I didn't start dating until after my cruise had ended and I was Outside, no matter how much I loved her. She wouldn't let me."
"That's true, Mr. Hargrave." Jenny spoke up at last. "I... I just couldn't let her ruin everything I love about her! I love that she was a Marine! I waited a whole year for her to come home to me! A year alone! Do you know what that was like, sir? Never seeing her? Hardly even able to talk to her? For a year?"
Disarmed, Frank Hargrave looked at Jenny sternly, but compassionately.
"Frank!" Judith shouted in a whisper. "Are you just going to stand there and listen to this... this... blasphemy? This..."
"Enough, Judy!" he growled low and quiet. "You wanna leave? There's the door!" He turned to his son and shook his head. "I don't like it! Not one bit, son! But..." He took a deep breath and let it out slowly. "...but I'm not going to throw away any chance of seeing my grandchildren by being a stubborn leatherneck!"
"Dad..." Richard began before Frank stopped him.
"Rich, you're a man and this is your home!" he pointed out. "I... I may not agree with how you run it, but I won't disrespect you in your own house!" He turned to Heather and nodded. "Nor you in yours, Heather." Turning to Brooke, he stepped up to her. "I'd like to apologize for my wife's conduct, Miss Hathaway. It was inexcusable."
"Frank!" Judith gasped before he shot her a look that shut her up instantly.
Shaking her head, Brooke sighed as the man turned back to face her. "The sentiment is appreciated, Mr. Hargrave, but you can't apologize for her. Only she can apologize for herself. It holds no meaning unless she does it."
Nodding, he looked down embarrassedly. "I know." Turning to his wife, he growled, "Judy?"
"I will not!" she huffed.
"Then get out and never come back!" Richard ordered.
"But I'm Faith's grandmother!" she argued. "You can't..."
"I can!" Richard interrupted. "And I will, unless you apologize and promise never to do it again! Brooke is a good woman and a fine Marine! She's also Heather's and my best friend. Jack and Erica's, too! I know they won't put up with your nonsense about Brooke, either! So go! Get out and never lay eyes on any of your children, or grandchildren, again! All you'll be doing is proving that Jack was right all along! I can't believe I stood up for you!"
Standing next to Richard, Heather raised her chin. "I agree. Unless..."
Frank turned to his wife once more. "Judy? Please. Just... just let it drop. You can't win this. Apologize and let's get back to why we're here, to see Faith, not to argue religion and politics!"
Outnumbered and with no options short of calling a cab and returning home never to return, Judith swallowed her pride and tried to get back a little of her dignity. "Miss Hathaway? I... I apologize for... for losing my temper and saying hurtful things. I... I still disagree with your... lifestyle... but this is not my home. I... I was wrong to try and force my will on Richard and Heather. Please forgive me."
Turning back to Brooke, Frank regarded her sternly. "Is that satisfactory?"
Meeting his gaze with the same grim determination, Brooke nodded curtly. "It'll do, Mr. Hargrave."
"Brooke?" Heather said softly as she took Faith over to her, handing her over gently. "I think it's time you got acquainted with your goddaughter!"
"Alright! Just one more!" Erica's doctor ordered calmly. "Push!"
Erica thought she was going to faint from exhaustion, but she gathered her strength and made herself bear down once more. She could only barely feel Jack's hand in hers and thought she might crush it to dust. "Errrrrrrg!" she screamed as the pressure built and then was suddenly released.
"There! I have her!" the doctor said smiling. Clearing the baby's mouth and nose with a squeeze bulb, she smiled... and then frowned.
Jack was trying to split his focus between his wife and the obstetrician. The pregnancy had gone normally, but Erica'd been ordered to bed rest for the last three months. That meant when Heather had Faith, they'd had to stay home while Judith and Frank flew out to see her. Now it was their turn to add to the family. When Jack saw her frown, he felt his heart drop. "What's wrong?"
Gathering her wits, she cleared her throat. "N-Nothing's wrong, Mr. Dunning. The baby's fine! I... I think someone made a mistake, though!"
Erica could hardly breath and was terrified. "W-What... m-mistake...?"
Steeling herself for their shock, she looked at them hesitantly. "Mine. It's... it's a boy!"
The two looked at her as though she had just suggested that Erica had given birth to a rabbit. Erica shook her head confusedly. "But... but you..."
"I know!" the doctor admitted her error. "All the sonograms didn't show what I was looking for! It must be a fluke, or I need newer equipment! I'm sorry for the mix up! He seems to be a perfectly healthy boy!"
The two looked at one another a moment before the laughter began. Finally, Erica was able to say, "Jack! If this is one of your jokes, I'm going to ask you how you managed it and kill you, and I don't know in which order!"
Jack was still wiping tears of laughter and joy from his eyes. "I... I swear to God, Erica! This joke isn't mine! It's His!" He looked up at the ceiling and shouted, "Very funny!" before looking back at his wife and laughing more.
The doctor cleaned their baby and wrapped it in blankets, finally returning the infant to its mother. "I really am sorry for the error. It happens, but at any rate, someone would like to meet you two!" Erica took her dear child into her arms and cradled the babe as she wept with joy.
While Erica cooed, Jack used a finger to delicately stroke the soft skin of his child. A tiny hand reached out and grasped it, bringing Jack to tears.
His wife looked up at Jack and sighed. "So what do you want to call him? Jack Junior? I know you said that's what you wanted to call our first boy!"
"I... I don't know!" he stammered "Um... Maybe? I... uh... huh." He thought hard a moment. "What would you think about calling him Eric, Buttons?"
"Eric Buttons Dunning?" she asked incredulously.
"No!" he scoffed. "Eric..." he smiled. "Eric Franklin?"
Smiling at the idea of using her father's name for their child's middle name, thinking a moment, she suggested, "What about Eric Richard?"
"What? And give that brother-in-law of mine more of a swelled head? He already thinks he's all that!" He shook his head and thought hard. "I want Eric, that's for certain. Since I picked the first name, you pick the middle!"
"Alright!" She looked down at their baby and immediately knew what to say. "Say hello to your daddy, Eric Bell Dunning!"
Looking down on his child, the only thing Jack could think was I sure wish Rich was here!
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
At very least the confrontation between Judith and Rich ended with, if not acceptance, at least tolerance, which is more than I can say about my own parents when I came out to them. It went about as I'd predicted. Eventually they just stopped communicating with me, even when I reached out to them. I learned later that Dad died in oh-four of a heart attack, and Mom went last year from the same thing. They never returned any of my letters. I wrote twice a year. I just kept busy at a local salon, while Jenny worked her desk at the medical group. Jenny's parents were out of the country when I came home, and I never met them the two weeks we were together before that, so we didn't meet 'til July of ninety-eight. They were surprised, but not half as much as Jenny was! In the mean time, Rich and Heather were getting into the swing of being new parents. Rich loved being 'Mister Mom' to Faith and ran the house like his own personal fire team! Shortly after she was born, they started looking into moving. There were too many sad memories lurking around the home she grew up in, and Rich wanted a place that would be all their own.
---
Brooke checked herself in the mirror one more time as Jenny came out of their bedroom. "Are you sure I look alright?" Brooke asked nervously.
"Um... yeah!" Jenny said even more anxiously. "You... you look beautiful! They're gonna love you, almost as much as I do!" Her assurances did little to boost her own lack of confidence. "Um... Brooke? Can... can I ask you something?"
Stopping her primping, Brooke looked away from the large hall mirror to look at her love. "You don't need to ask. You look hot!"
Fidgeting with her purse, she blushed and smiled before fear took her once more. "Um... your parents. Have... have you heard back from them yet?"
Her smile melting in an instant, Brooke looked at the floor. "Not since that last letter they sent me."
"You... you've sent them like four more since then!" Jenny pointed out.
"Yeah." Brooke admitted. "Given what Dad said in that last letter though, I don't expect they'll write back any more. At least I know my Old Man isn't gonna rat me out to his old Corp buddies that are still in, so there's that. He's too embarrassed to tell them!"
Turning quickly, Jenny let it finally come out. "I'm scared, Brooke! What... what if Mom and Dad hate me? I mean, it's not like they had any warning signs or anything! I dated in High School! Boys even! I never even looked at a girl before you... or since! I still don't think I'm gay! I just love you!"
Trying to calm her, Brooke gently put her hands on her shoulders. "You're adorable! I promise I'll be with you the whole time, OK? No matter what they say, you'll always have me there for you! If your parents are half as wonderful as you are though, everything will be fine!"
Wrapping her in a warm embrace, Brooke held Jenny until her fears subsided and Brooke felt the woman's arms snake up her back. Responding, Brooke leaned her head over as Jenny tilted her face up and let the woman five years her senior kiss her gently. Her worries forgotten for the moment, Jenny relaxed into the kiss. Finally separating, she looked up at Brooke happily.
"Wow! If they could bottle that, it would beat Prozac!" Jenny giggled.
Wiping Jenny's lipstick off with a tissue, Brooke smiled seductively. "Come on! Go fix yourself and let's find out what else you can do with those lips!" Seeing Jenny's mouth drop open at the innuendo, Brooke laughed.
"Brooke!" Jenny gasped. "What, now?"
"I mean talking to your parents!" Brooke answered coyly. "Jeez! Where did your mind go? Gutter, much? Or is it you'd rather do that than go see them?" Unable to control herself, Brooke started to laugh at her own joke.
About to explode in frustration, Jenny couldn't help but smile as Brooke's infectious laugh spread to her as well. "Damn it, Brooke! Why can't I stay mad at you?" she started to giggle.
"Because you love me!" she came back. "That and I learned from the best!" Thinking of Jack so far away and not having had a chance to see their baby with Richard and Heather since Jenny couldn't get more time off work ended Brooke's laughter quickly. "Anyway, we really should get going, babe. You go finish getting ready, and I'll go warm up the car."
Half an hour later, Jenny pulled up in front of her parents' house. "This is it." she said ominously. "Ready?"
"As I'll ever be!" sighed Brooke, climbing out of the passenger side before slamming the door shut.
Heading up the short walk, Jenny stopped herself from just walking in and rang the bell, unsure of her welcome. As the door swung open, she cleared her throat and pasted a fake smile on to hide her insecurity.
Betty Hooks smiled as she saw her daughter standing at her door. "Jennifer!" she cried as she stepped back to allow her entrance. "Since when do you need to ring to come in to your own home!"
"Hi, Mom!" Jenny squeaked as her voice almost faltered. "I... I just didn't know if... if..."
"...if you were welcome?" Betty fake-frowned. "Why wouldn't you be, dear?"
Gathering her courage, Jenny raised her chin. "Mom? I... I'd like you to meet Brooke... Brooke Hathaway!" indicating the tall ex-Marine standing to her side and slightly behind her.
Confused, Betty turned to her daughter's guest at her home. "How do you do, Miss Hathaway." she said politely.
"Mrs. Hooks." Brooke nodded at the woman with fading curly brown hair and good looks that told her where Jenny had gotten both.
Turning back to her daughter, Betty furrowed her brow curiously. "Won't you two come in?"
Stepping into her childhood home, Jenny embraced her mother while nearly shaking in fear. "Thanks, Mom! I... I just knew that you and Dad have been away a while and... and I didn't know if it was OK to... to... just come in with a... a friend! After all, I don't live here anymore!"
"Honey!" Betty held her child warmly. "You know perfectly well that you'll always be welcome in this house... and any of your friends!" Holding her a moment, she broke off the hug and gestured toward the living room. "Come in!" she beamed. Turning her head, she shouted, "Charles! Jennifer's here!" Turning back to her guests, she shook her head exasperatedly. "So why did you really think you had to be invited in?"
"Maybe she thought you and Mr. Hooks were 'enjoying a moment'!" Brooke offered slyly. Jenny blushed three shades of red as she sat on her mother's couch and looked at the floor, while her mother raised a hand to her mouth and gasped at the suggestion. Thinking she'd pushed too far with people she didn't really know, Brooke looked away embarrassedly and was about to apologize before she heard the snort of laughter.
Growing from an embarrassed giggle to full belly laughing interspersed with snorts, Betty tried to control herself. "I... I suppose I can see your point!"
While the two women giggled together, Jenny could only stare at the floor, trying not to imagine her parents being romantic. She finally looked up at the sound of a throat being cleared. "Daddy!" she smiled as she leapt up and ran into his arms.
Charles Hooks wrapped his arms around his grown daughter who stood most of a foot shorter than his own six-foot two athletic frame. Though he was in his late forties, he'd managed to stay in shape and looked younger than he was. "Baby girl!" he sighed as he welcomed her affection. Rocking her back and forth a moment, he stepped back and looked at her. "I sure missed you, baby girl!"
Clearing her throat, she turned toward Brooke with one arm wrapped around his waist. "Daddy? I... I'd like you to meet Brooke Hathaway! Brooke? This is my father, Charles!"
Taking the man's hand, she gripped it firmly. "Mr. Hooks!" she nodded.
Surprised at the firmness of her shake, Charles adapted and returned it. "Miss Hathaway! Please! Call me Chuck!"
"Alright!" Brooke smiled as she released him. "Then it's Brooke, Chuck!"
Sitting a respectful distance from one another on the sofa, Jenny and Brooke waited while Chuck took his favorite seat in his armchair and Betty pulled another seat in close to her husband's, finally settling in with a smile.
"So..." Chuck began. "Brooke? It's nice to meet any friend of our daughter! What brings you here?"
Unsure how to answer, Brooke hedged. "Well, my best friend Rich, Richard Hargrave, got married November before last after moving out here with his fiancée. I was her Maid of Honor."
"Oh!" Betty perked up. "Jennifer, I remember you telling me that you were a bridesmaid at a wedding! Was that the same one, dear?"
Jenny nodded shyly. "That's where I met Brooke! Well, I first met her at the fitting that was before the wedding!" she noted, smiling at the memory of the humorous turn of events.
"Ugh!" Brooke sighed. "Don't remind me!"
"Let me guess!" Betty smiled. "Horrid dress?"
"Yes!" agreed Brooke.
"No!" Jenny insisted emphatically at the same time.
Looking from one to the other, Betty smiled. "Well which is it?"
"She looked gorgeous in that dress, Mom!" Jenny over-emphasized.
"Eh!" Brooke scoffed. "I looked like a Barbie Doll in it! I was so glad when Heather relented and let me wear my dress blues!"
"Dress blue?" Beth asked curiously. "You mean a blue dress?"
"No, I mean my dress blues, Mrs. Hooks." Brooke started to explain.
"Please! Call me Betty!" she smiled sweetly.
Nodding, Brooke continued. "OK, Betty! And please, just call me Brooke. See, I'm a Marine. So's Rich, my best friend who was the groom. When he married Heather, his fiancée, I was still in active service, so I wore my dress blues, my formal uniform, to the wedding and reception."
"Oh!" Betty looked at her with surprise. "You... you were in the service?"
Having sat back and listened, Chuck nodded. "That explains the shake!"
"What, dear?" Betty turned to him.
"Oh! When Brooke and I shook hands, she had a firm grip is all. I was just saying..."
"She's not a man, Charles!" Betty scowled at him. "Just because she was in the service doesn't mean she wanted to be a man!"
"Oh, Betty!" he retorted. "I was complimenting her!"
"How? By suggesting that she has a manly handshake? Really, Charles!"
Turning to his guests, Chuck laughed once. "Sorry, girls! Brooke? I hope you weren't offended at my remark. You certainly aren't mannish! In fact you're quite attractive! I bet you were very popular with the servicemen!"
"Too popular!" Brooke grumbled.
Wanting to change the subject, Betty smiled. "So, you came to Concord for your friend's wedding, and his fiancée asked you to be her Maid of Honor?"
"I met Heather the same time Rich did." she explained. "So she and I were good friends, too."
"I see!" Betty grinned. "So, afterward you decided to stay in Concord?"
Listening to the exchange, Jenny could see the direction it was headed and decided to cut to the chase and take the plunge. Standing up quickly, she looked at her parents. "Mom? Dad? Brooke and I are in love!"
Stunned silence filled the room like thick soup. Brooke sighed and slowly rose to stand beside Jenny, taking the younger girl's hand in her own.
"You... you're what?" Betty finally gasped after the momentary shock wore off. Looking at her daughter she asked, "But... Jennifer! Are you..."
Suddenly very unsure of herself, Jenny shrank back and looked down. "I... I suppose... maybe?"
"But..." her mother stammered. "But you dated! You dated boys! Did she..."
Pursing his lips, Chuck's face was an unreadable mask as he looked at them carefully. "Did you seduce my daughter, Miss Hathaway?"
Looking up suddenly at the accusation, Jenny suddenly felt very protective of her. "No, Daddy! Brooke didn't do anything wrong! She... she waited for me to say I liked her first! She had to! She could've been... um..."
"Dishonorably discharged." Brooke filled in the blank. "Mr. and Mrs. Hooks? I love Jenny! I think I fell in love with her the first moment we spoke. She's a wonderful woman! The kind I've been looking for all my life! She... she completes me. In ways I never knew I needed! You should be very proud of her."
"Miss Hathaway, I am proud of my daughter!" Betty snapped. "I... I just... I can't believe that she'd... she..."
"Betty?" Chuck interrupted her. Looking at the two, he sighed and smiled weakly as he turned his eyes to Brooke. "I... uh... I just want my baby girl to be happy, Brooke." Looking at his daughter, he sighed. "Does she make you happy, baby girl?"
Nodding emphatically, Jenny smiled as tears began to run down her cheeks. "Yes, Daddy! She does! Happier than I ever thought I could be! I... I love her!" She turned to Brooke and took both of her hands before looking up into the brunette's eyes. "I'm so proud of her! What serving means to her. She denied being with me for a year to fulfill her oath! She's wonderful!"
Standing back up, Chuck walked over to them and stood in front of Brooke as the two turned to face him. "Brooke? Do you intend on staying with my baby girl? Making sure she's happy and take care of her? Never hurt her?"
Facing him, Brooke looked up to lock eyes with him. "Chuck? I'd kill or die for her. I'll never hurt or abandon her. You have my word of honor, sir!"
"I can see that word actually means something to you." he noted. Stepping over to regard his daughter, he smiled down at her. "You sure, baby girl?"
Looking back up at him, Jenny smiled. "Yes, Daddy! I've never been more sure of anything in my life!"
Walking up next to her husband, Beth took his arm. "But Jennifer dear, you aren't a... a..." she stammered, unable to say the word.
"Lesbian." Chuck said for her.
"Thank you, dear." Beth blushed. "I mean, I know you aren't! You used to tell me all the time how cute you thought Jimmy Francis, the boy you dated, was! I mean, you... you had a crush on Kirk Cameron for years, for God's sake!"
"Mom!" Jenny whined. "I was a teenager! All the girls back then were in love with Kirk Cameron!"
"Actually, I kind of had a thing for his sister Candice." Brooke pointed out. "At least in the later seasons."
"You see?" Beth pressed the point. "You... you're not... um..."
"Gay." Chuck said for her again. "I don't think that's what Jenny's trying to tell us, Betty. Just that she loves Brooke." Putting a hand on his daughter's shoulder, he smiled at her. "Baby girl, it's OK. We still love you. Brooke seems like a... a fine woman! I... I'm happy for you, sweetie!"
"Charles!" Betty whined. "Aren't you even a little upset by all this? I mean, our daughter is in love with another woman! I mean, doesn't that make her gay?" Realizing how she sounded, the woman backtracked as she turned to Jenny. "Oh, sweetie! I'm not angry! I love you, dear! It's just... this is all so sudden! I mean, we were only gone for a year! When did this happen?"
Walking toward the dining room, Chuck gestured to the table. "Why don't we sit down together and talk about it." he suggested. "We were about to eat. Would you two like to join us?"
Sitting around the table, the two couples looked at one another in silence for a moment. Taking Brooke's hand for comfort, Jenny took a breath and told them about the day they'd met.
"So by the time we got back from our walk, I was..." she sighed happily. "I was in love!"
"We both were!" Brooke added.
"I see." Beth sighed. "But Jennifer dear, are you sure about all this? I mean, what about children? Don't you want to be a mother someday?"
"They can still do that, Beth." Chuck pointed out with a grin. "I understand it involves a donor, and something similar to a turkey baster..."
"Charles, please!" Beth gasped. "Don't be flippant! How can you be so calm about all this!" Turning back to their two guests, she added, "Don't get me wrong, I'm not passing judgement or saying it's wrong. I just..." She again regarded her husband. "I just don't see how you can sit there and take it all in! Aren't you upset at all?"
"Are you kidding, Beth?" Chuck grinned. "I'm happy for my baby girl! Heck! I'm happy for me!"
"What in heaven's name are you babbling about, Charles!" she asked.
"My baby girl found true love! On top of that, I don't ever have to think about a man 'giving it' to my little baby girl! What daughter's father wouldn't give his left arm for that privilege?"
Sighing in exasperation while Jenny blushed and looked away, Brooke just chuckled. Betty got up exasperatedly and headed for the kitchen. "You can be so crude sometimes, Charles!"
Seeing Brooke's laugh diminish, Chuck looked at her seriously and waited until she finished. "Seriously though, I am happy for you two! I won't pretend to not be surprised by it all, but I think I understand. I meant what I said, baby girl. Brooke seems like a fine woman! And Brooke? I hope you know what a special girl you're getting!"
Coming back from the kitchen with a crock-pot full of stew, Betty set it down as she looked at her daughter. "Are you sure she can make you happy, dear? I mean, don't get me wrong Brooke, you're a lovely woman, but that's sort of my point. If you're... well... gay, Jennifer dear, shouldn't you want someone more... um..."
"Butch?" Chuck continued acting as her vocabulary.
"Mom!" Jenny nearly shouted.
Returning to the kitchen for rolls, Beth shook her head. "I guess I just don't understand, dear. You're obviously attracted to men, yet you fall in love with a woman who, if you'll excuse me for saying, isn't handsome, but beautiful! Very attractive, actually! I mean, how does that even work?"
"I don't care how she looks, Mom!" Jenny argued.
"Hey!" Brooke exclaimed.
"Oh! I'm sorry, honey! I didn't mean it that way! I mean..."
Laughing at the exchange, Chuck spooned up some of the stew and handed the bowl to his daughter. "Here, baby girl. Just stuff a roll in your mouth once you get your foot out!"
Jenny blushed and took the bowl while Brooke offered an explanation to her mother as the woman sat back down at the table. "Beth? Jenny isn't gay the way I am. I've known I liked other girls since I was seven, and I never liked boys, except as friends." Taking the bowl of stew that Beth handed her, she placed it in front of her. "Thank you. Anyway, the way I see it, Jenny isn't so much attracted to me physically as she is emotionally."
Shaking her head, trying to puzzle it all out, Beth served herself last. "I... I suppose so." Turning to Jenny, she still looked concerned. "But how can you be happy with her if you aren't... well... attracted to her? I mean, there's an aspect of relationships that needs that sort of... um..." Her hand shook with nervousness as she tried to phrase herself delicately.
"Sexual fulfillment." Chuck answered as he broke up a roll and dropped the pieces in his stew.
"Yes!" Beth agreed. "Thank you, Charles." Turning back to Jenny who was only slowly stirring the hot stew, she sighed. "I... I just want you to be happy, dear, and... well... attraction and sex are part of a fulfilling life!"
Looking at Brooke, Chuck smiled. "I think they're both fulfilled, Beth!"
Smiling as she looked across the table at her love's father while she stirred her stew, Brooke chose to neither confirm nor deny his assertion and instead tried to change the subject. "So, Chuck. Jenny never got around to telling me. Why were you two away for so long?"
"Just work." he stated plainly as he finished stirring in his roll.
"Work?" she asked, realizing that Jenny had never talked to her about what her father did for a living.
Seeing the confused look on Brooke's face, he smiled wryly and turned his hazel eyes to Jenny. "You mean, she doesn't know? You didn't tell her?"
"I... I didn't know how to tell her!" Jenny admitted.
"Know what? Tell me what?" Brooke asked nervously.
Chuck smiled and laughed lightly. "That her old man's a pastor?" Seeing the look of shock on Brooke's face as he happily reached out and took Beth's hand and then Jenny's, Chuck nodded to her. "That's right! You're marrying a pastor's daughter, Brooke! Shall we pray?"
Stepping out of the car, Richard looked hopefully at the abandoned house. Smiling inwardly, he made sure not to let his first impression show to the real estate agent that was standing on the marble steps and waiting for them. Helping Heather out as she moved Faith onto her shoulder, the chill of the late November air stung their noses as she bundled Faith against the cold.
"Thanks, Fredrick." Richard nodded to the newly hired chauffeur who had opened the door for them. "Wait for us here, please?"
"As you wish, Master Hargrave." he intoned flatly.
Rolling his eyes at the man's formality, despite his repeated requests to the contrary, Richard took Heather's free hand and led his wife and daughter toward the building.
"Richard Hargrave?" the agent asked rhetorically as she extended her hand. "I'm Wendy! Wendy Baker from Baker Realty!"
Wincing at her first name, he nevertheless took her hand and shook it.
"Let's go in, shall we?" she bubbled. Unlocking the massive front door, it opened with a groan. Stepping inside, their footfalls against the cold marble floors echoed throughout the hollow building. "This is the entry hall!" she chirped, her voice echoing everywhere. "Over here on the left is a spacious walk-in closet and mud room for coats, winter gear, and anything else you might need to store! You can see the stairs leading up to the second floor, with two landings and all marble construction!"
Only half-listening to the woman's sales pitch, Richard instead looked at the dilapidated structure with an eye to what it would look like after he'd gotten it restored and couldn't help but smile.
"You can see on the walls that the building's original gaslight system is still in place! This building is truly unique in that it was originally built with both gas and electric lighting, rather than most houses of this one's vintage that were retrofitted with electric and the gas systems removed." she droned on.
Leading them through the house, showing them the upstairs bedrooms, the woman opened the first door on the right of the hallway that ran through the middle of the second floor. "This is one of the three larger bedrooms, each with its own private bath! The one across the hall is a mirror image of it!"
Looking at the room, Richard saw a nursery and felt the sting of loss. It had been only five months earlier, just after Heather had fully recovered from her emergency C-section, when they'd learned that she couldn't have any more children. They'd planned on several, three at least. Looking around the room that would have been big enough for five, Richard saw in his mind how it could become their only daughter's private playroom and bedroom.
"Down the hall on the left is the upstairs bath and three smaller bedrooms. On the right is the Master bed and bath with hot tub and separate shower..."
Returning to the ground floor, Richard followed the agent, not hearing much of what she was saying. His mind raced with possibilities as they explored each run-down room that looked as though it hadn't been lived in for thirty years or more.
"The laundry room is off the kitchen with a separate entry from the outside. There are no modern facilities such as a washer or dryer, just an old hand-crank wringing machine, but easily enough room to have modern appliances put in! Just outside the door is the firewood bin, with a door on the outside for loading and a door inside the living room next to the fireplace, so you don't have to haul firewood through the house!"
Following along on the tour, Heather held Faith close to her, trying to keep her warm against the freezing cold in every room. She had to admit, it was a large home, though not as large as the one she grew up in, and less than fifteen minutes from where her new private practice would be. The state of it though left her skeptical. Every room had pealing paint that was probably lead-based, the marble floors were in desperate need of a good cleaning and polishing, and the whole house stank of blood and dead animals.
"The current owner's father only used this building during hunting season, so it hasn't seen much actual use for well over a quarter century! It's very well preserved!" the agent spun. "Additionally, there is the smaller house on the property. It's what is sometimes referred to as a 'mother-in-law' cottage! That one is a complete two-bedroom, one-and-a-half bath home with oodles of storage space, but not of this building's vintage. It was built in the seventies and has all the modern conveniences, including an emergency generator! The last owner used it as a rental, but it's well kept! Would you care to go take a look at it, Mr. and Mrs. Hargrave?"
Looking around the living room, Richard sighed and watched as his breath floated up to the high ceiling. "We'd like a moment alone to discuss it first, Wendy, if that's alright?"
"Sure!" she sung. "I'll just step outside and wait for you!"
Once she closed the door behind her, Richard turned to Heather. "Well?"
"It's... it's big!" she smiled with a strain. "It's also cold!"
"See that fireplace?" Richard asked, pointing to it. "Imagine a roaring fire in there! It'd easily heat the whole house!"
"You love it, don't you Richard?" Heather smiled.
"Yes!" he exclaimed. "The library's a little on the small side, but I think that den she showed us used to be part of it. I could restore it, add a bunch more shelves, and it would easily fit all your books... and more!"
"More?" she asked curiously.
"Yeah! We'll need books for Faith! A whole wall just for children's books and encyclopedias!"
Laughing at his exuberance, Heather shook her head. "OK! I can see you're hooked! Just don't let her know that!" she smiled, nodding toward where the agent had gone. Her mood suddenly shifting, she added, "The asking price is much less than what we can get for... for my old home." Heather hung her head sadly. Shaking it off, she raised her chin. "So let's not give her the idea that they could raise the price simply because you want it so badly!"
Moving to her and taking her and Faith into his arms, Richard patted her back. "I know, love. It's hard letting go."
"It's harder to stay!" she nearly cried. "I... I miss Gregory! And Mom and Dad, Jack and Erica, and Frank and even Judith! Oh, Richard! I feel like I'm keeping you, here in the wilderness, while your family is enjoying..."
"Heather!" he admonished her. "My family is all right here! You and Faith! Besides, who's going to keep people from going crazy while I run the house? Hmm? You! Right? If you don't take the position for that retiring therapist, the closest one will be in Berlin, over an hour south!"
Unsure as she stepped back to look around the living room, she shook her head. "But Richard..."
"And what about Brooke and Jenny? If we leave, who'll be there for them when they need help? Besides, I like the idea of living out in the wilderness! No crime, no hustle and bustle, lots of trees and actual snow for Faith to play in! I bet little Eric won't even know what snow is when Jack and Erica come to visit us!"
Sighing, she exhaled and watched her own breath rise. "Let's go look at the little house. Maybe we can live there while we get this place fixed up, which will take a small fortune if I'm right!"
"That's more like it!" Richard beamed.
"What will we do with it after?" she asked as they walked toward the door.
"Dunno." he shrugged with his arm wrapped around her shoulders. "Rent it out, I suppose. Maybe Brooke and Jenny might want it! Wouldn't that be nice? Having them living so close?"
"It would, Richard. Family should be close!" she sighed as they closed the door behind them.
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
CAUTION - Highly Emotional Content
CAUTION - Violence
--
We mourned with Heather and Rich when they got the news about her not being able to have any more kids. She and Rich wanted more, but things are the way they have to be, right? That's what Jack always used to say. They moved north that fall while Rich worked at fixing up the big house. They surprised Jenny and I when they told us they were going to give the little house to us. No rent meant Jenny could quit and I could open my own salon with her as my office manager. So in spring of ninety-nine, just after Faith's first birthday, we moved to be with Heather and Rich in Pittsberg. Meanwhile, Jack and Erica had their own share of troubles. She caught an ectopic pregnancy three months after Jenny and I moved, days after Heather's twenty-fifth birthday, that nearly killed her. She had a radical hysterectomy that saved her life, but meant they too would only have one child. Rich and Heather flew all four of us down there, staying nearly a month, but we had to come home eventually, leaving Jack and Erica alone again. Judith broke her promise and tried tearing them apart, and Frank separated from her over it, though they reconciled after... well... Things were never the same after that. They never came back to visit us in New Hampshire. Jack couldn't leave his business and Jenny and I couldn't leave ours, and Heather had her practice, so that trip in summer of ninety-nine was the last I ever saw Jack or Erica. We kept in touch, but not enough. Then everything changed... for everyone.
---
Rolling over, Jack fumbled around for the light beside his bed. Turning it on, he finally was able to see the phone that was waking him with the sun not even up yet. Grabbing it, he grumbled, "Whoever this is, this had better be good..."
"Jack? It's Rich. You need to get up and turn on a TV."
"What?" Jack grumbled. "Rich, it's six in the morning here! I have work in two hours and I need sleep!"
"Jack! Just shut up and do it!" Richard barked. "Please!"
Shaking his head, Jack got up. "Fine! What channel?"
"Doesn't matter, Jack." he said in a fog.
Erica sat up and looked at him. "Jack? What's going on? Who is it?"
"A dead brother-in-law if he dragged me out of bed for anything less than an alien invasion!"
"Richie?" she said getting up and wrapping a robe around herself. "What does he want?"
"Dunno." Jack turned on the TV and it came on to the news channel it had been on the night before. "What the hell, Rich? A fire in New York? This is what you woke us up an hour early for?"
Erica walked into the living room just as the commentator said, "Another... uh... vehicle, some kind of an aircraft, crashed into the World Trade Center. This is uh, no accident. This is no bomb from inside... uh... this is, as you put it, a terrorist attack. There's no two ways about it."
Hardly able to breathe, Jack just stood there silently, watching the towers burn while he began to burn inside.
"Jack!" Erica clung to him as if her life depended on it; tears starting to rain down her cheeks.
"Rich?" Jack said after a few minutes listening to commentary while sirens blared in the background. "You still there?"
"Yeah, Jack. I'm here."
When the network ran the footage of the second attack, Jack's face hardened into a fury while Erica turned away, unable to watch, and leaving to go hug their child still sleeping in their room.
"Rich? Remember way back when I said if we joined up we might get sent off to war? You told me we weren't at war anymore. Well, we are now!"
Sighing as he turned and looked at Heather, little three-year-old Faith holding her as her mother cried, he nodded. "You gonna do it, Jack? Go back in?"
"Damn straight I am, Rich! Aren't you?"
Looking at his family, Richard answered. "Yeah. Yeah, I think I am, Jack."
Brooke pulled her uniform out of the box she'd packed it away in, at the time utterly convinced she'd never see it again.
"Brooke! You can't! They won't take you now!" Jenny yelled.
"What they don't know won't hurt 'em!" Brooke snapped as she unfolded her uniform jacket and lay it across the ironing board. "As far as the Marines are concerned, you're just my Office Manager."
Jenny stormed up to her. "So that's it? After almost four years together you're just going to sign up again and leave me?" she yelled through tears.
"I have to, Jenny!" she yelled back. "For you! For Heather and Faith! For Erica and Eric and Frank and even Judith! This is war, Jenny! You think they'll stop at killing a few thousand of us? Damn it, Jenny! You once said you were proud of me and what this represents!" she held up her uniform jacket. "I'm a Marine, damn it! Not a hairdresser! I'll always be a Marine! If you can't accept that then you never loved me at all!"
"Why does it have to be you, Brooke?" Jenny asked as tears began to fall.
Brooke calmed herself and lowered her voice. "Because it's the responsibility of everyone who's able, to defend the lives and liberty of those who aren't. Most Americans can't defend this country, Jenny! They lack the training and the drive. You, Heather, Erica, you're fine people, but you're not Marines. Jack is. Richard is. So am I. I... I'd hoped you would understand."
Jenny wrapped her arms around Brooke, laying her head on her shoulder. "I'm just so scared! I... I don't want to lose you!"
"I'm not a Grunt, Jenny! I'm an electronics tech!" Brooke tried to ease her fears. "I'll probably end up being stationed somewhere stateside, but I'll do my part! Even if I'm not fighting, I can take the place of a Marine who can. How many Marines might not come home because one man was here doing my job instead of over there, just so I could stay here with you? If I sat here and did nothing while other Marines died, it'd haunt me the rest of my life!"
Pulling away, Jenny forced herself to stop crying. "I... I understand. I don't like it, but I... I can't keep you from being the woman I fell in love with."
Brooke resumed her task. "Will you be here when I get back? When... not if."
"I don't know." she answered. "I don't know what I'll do while you're gone."
Closing her eyes to keep her emotions in check, Brooke nodded. "I see. I suppose I should be grateful you stayed with me this long."
Confused, Jenny pieced together what Brooke was really asking and shook her head. "No! That's... that's not what I meant, Brooke! I mean, I don't know what I'll do with myself! If I can't be your receptionist, I can't just hang out here doing nothing but pining for you! I'll go mad!"
Looking at the woman who's own father promised to perform their marriage ceremony when they were ready, Brooke sighed. "You could get an office job, maybe a place in Pittsberg or Clarksville? You're a good manager! Or you could move back down with Mom and Dad for a while." She stopped ironing and went to her, wrapping Jenny in her arms. "I'll be fine! You'll see! I'll call as often as I can and I'll be home before you know it!"
Jenny held her as tightly as she could manage. "I... I remember! No surprise homecomings though! I want a warning this time!" she laughed.
Holding the love of her life tightly, Brooke nodded. "I promise, Jenny! No surprises! I love you!"
While Jack packed his old seabag, Erica stood by, helping as she was able.
"Do you know how long you'll be gone?" she asked, handing him one of the uniform blouses he'd pulled out.
"It's a two year cruise Buttons, but I'll get Leave. You remember the drill! Don't know when I'll be stateside, though." Jack answered honestly as he continued to pack.
"What about the business?" she asked, standing back and just letting him pack on his own, the action seeming to help calm his anger.
"You'll have to sell it while I'm deployed." Jack sighed resignedly. "Damn shame, too. We were just taking off, but the lease alone would eat up all the assets over two years with no one to run it. Can't afford to pay a cleaner and manager and continue to pay off the business loan. No one would work as cheap as me, so running it without me won't save it."
"Part of me doesn't want you to go," Erica admitted, "but the rest is so proud of you for it!"
"I think I like that!" Jack smiled. "Makes me feel all noble and stuff!"
Looking out the window of their bedroom, Erica saw their three-year-old playing in the sandbox in the back yard with April, the little girl from down the street. "Eric will be in Kindergarten before you come home." she mused absently, not even aware she was speaking. "He might not even remember you, except from pictures. I'll have to make sure to talk about you, a lot!"
Stopping a moment to look out the window with her, Jack nodded with grim determination. "He's one of the biggest reasons I'm going. I have to make sure nothing like this ever happens again! I don't want him growing up in a world that's too scared to live!" Anger filled his heart all over again.
"I know, Jack." Erica paused and looked at the floor. "I... I'll miss you! Every minute of every day until you come home to me!"
"And I'll miss you, Buttons!" he half-smiled at her. "No matter where they send me, a part of you will be there, too! And I have to come home to you! You'd kill me if I didn't!"
Laughing even as fear threatened to swallow her, Erica tried not to let it turn to tears. "You'll be careful?"
"No! I won't be careful." he stated defiantly. "The only careful Marine is a dead one." Turning back to her after he closed up his bag, Jack looked her in the eyes with the most serious look she'd ever seen in him. "I'll be a killer. I'll make sure I come home by killing every enemy that threatens me. Until there is no enemy, but peace. That's the Rifleman's creed."
Taking him in her arms, Erica held him desperately. "You do what you need to do to come home to me, Jack!" she cried. "I love you so much!"
"I love you, too!" he said softly, holding her just as fiercely as she held him. "My Buttons!"
"My Jack!" she replied. "I have a confession to make! I've had a crush on you since I was ten!"
"Who, me?" he answered back. "Come on! Grab Eric and you two can drive me to intake! That way I'm not away from you two a second more than I have to be!"
Jack walked into the Marine Recruitment Center in Costa Mesa days after the attacks and the day before his thirtieth birthday. He was quickly re-enlisted as a Lance Corporal once more, signing up for a two-year cruise and assigned to the Twenty-sixth Marine Expeditionary Unit. A week later, he was sailing for the Suez Canal and war.
Richard drove his car up the driveway to the little house on a mid-October morning. Honking as he pulled to a stop, he watched as Brooke came out, hugged and kissed Jenny goodbye, and finally tore herself away and jogged to the car before the snow started again.
Slamming the passenger door and buckling in, Brooke sighed. "Let's roll!"
Pulling away, Richard nodded. "Good choice of words." he noted.
Hours went by in total silence as Richard drove them to Concord where they would be re-enlisted into Active Service for two years. Neither one spoke more than absolutely necessary until they got close. Finally, Brooke broke the silence.
"Heather OK? Did she fight it?"
Richard shook his head. "Nope. She hated putting her practice on hold, but she promised that, for me, she'd take care of Faith while I'm gone." He smiled weakly. "She told me that if I could put my career on hold because raising our daughter ourselves was that important to me, she would honor my service by doing it for me until I get back."
Brooke shook her head. "Did she make you cry, little man?"
"Can it, POG!" he ribbed her. "Grunts don't cry! Our tears and other bodily fluids are saved for watering the graves of the enemy with piss!" He drove a little further before he asked, "Jenny put up a fight?"
"She did at first." Brooke admitted. "In the end, she knew this was something I had to do." She smiled briefly. "That woman loves being the girlfriend of a Marine! And she sure can show it!"
Richard smiled at that before it got quiet again. "Heard from your old man or mom since nine-eleven?" he asked, glancing over at her.
"No." Brooke answered sadly. "I wrote them, and called twice after, but they just hang up and won't write back so..."
"Sorry." he expressed his sympathies. "Your old man sounded like a good Marine from what Jack told me."
"He's a stubborn, mule-headed, dirty-rotten son-of-a-bitch! Of course he's a good Marine!" she joked. "Where do you think I get it?"
Just as Brooke had expected, after she signed up for active duty once more, she was assigned to Marine Wing Support Squadron three-seventy-three for the Eleventh Marine Aircraft Group in Miramar; a stateside assignment.
Since he now had a college degree, Richard was offered the chance to be an Officer, but he refused as it would be more time away from home and wasn't why he re-enlisted. He refused to be away from Faith and Heather for one day longer than necessary to get the job done, so instead, just a few days short of his thirty-first birthday, he was assigned to the newly formed Forth Marine Expeditionary Brigade Antiterrorism unit. He would be deployed to Afghanistan a month later as part of Task Force India.
Richard sat in the back of the HUMVEE as it made its way quickly through the crowded streets of Kabul. He wiped sweat from his brow as the desert sun and close confines of the vehicle threatened to cook him alive. The driver sped down the streets just ahead of the armored Jeep Cherokee they were escorting, clearing a path toward the US Embassy that had been abandoned since nineteen eighty-eight. Over the radio he heard someone shout, "Slow down!", but the driver of the vehicle shook his head.
"No way I'm slowing down and letting these ragheads get close enough to toss a frag in here!" he quipped.
Richard tapped him on the shoulder. "We have to keep the charge in sight, Private! Slow up!" He quickly turned and leaned to look through a window at the following vehicle as it entered the traffic circle they'd just traversed, suddenly cut off by a wagon being pulled by a donkey and coming to a halt. "Stop!" he shouted. "The Charge is cut off!" As the driver squealed tires on the pitted pavement, his squad immediately went to ready position, rifles shouldered with muzzles pointed downward; each one ready to race out and rescue the person they were ordered to protect.
Richard could feel his heart in his throat as he pulled his sidearm, judging the fighting distance too close for his rifle. People moved past the military vehicle like a sea of humanity, none smiling. He was about to order the driver to double back when the cart finally started moving out of the road and he could see the Jeep Cherokee start to move once more. "Clear!" he shouted, causing the driver to floor it and race off ahead once more.
Moving to the back of the vehicle, he saw the following vehicle closing with theirs just as a tiny yellow taxi ran up to within feet of the rear bumper of their HUMVEE. Richard pulled his weapon once more in preparation for an attack while the Cherokee raced up to them and cut sharply in front of the cab, sparking flashing lights and a horn honking in irritation. While it was just an impatient driver, the terror he'd felt when the cab ran up behind them made Richard see the HUMVEE driver's point. "No stopping through the next Roundabout, Private! Anyone gets in your way? Blast through!"
"Affirmative!" the Marine shouted back.
Reaching their destination, Richard became suspicious. Grabbing the radio, he ordered, "We're bypassing the Embassy! Drive on and we'll circle back! Spotters watch for anything suspicious! Over!"
"Roger." came the reply over the radio. Circling the abandoned building, they eventually made their way to an adjacent field; the huge metal doors of the front gate locked closed with concertina wire topping every wall.
Spotting a solitary Afghani ahead, Richard pointed. "There! Pull up!" The vehicle slowing next to the man, Richard noted that he was dressed like a western businessman in a suit and tie. He was also the only Afghani he'd seen that day that was smiling at their presence. Another similarly dressed man opened the makeshift driveway, pulling aside a spike strip that they'd put in place. Richard watched them as they pulled through when he caught sight of something even more rare, a young Afghani woman holding a clipboard and wearing a normal American-style dress and no burka. The young woman shyly marked down each vehicle as it entered.
Pulling to a halt, Richard barked, "Deploy!" and their vehicle emptied in a second. One man moved the crewed gun position on top of the HUMVEE to point it at the entrance of the compound, ready to send hundreds of fifty-caliber rounds into anything that would threaten them. Moving his squad up, Richard nodded to the Embassy Guard Marines that had already taken up their post. Handing over his Military ID, he collected a visitor's badge and looked with pride at the Marine guidon that was posted. Taking his squad past the 'Clear Your Weapon' barrel, Richard spat in it.
Behind him he heard, "No way I'm unloading my weapon so long as I'm in country, Embassy or no!"
"Affirmative!" he replied. Making their way into the building, the sound of broken glass echoed as it crunched under their boots, the scent and taste of dust in every breath. The place was like a time capsule. Half-smoked cigars sat in ashtrays where they'd been abandoned when Richard was still eighteen and in jail and Jack was in a coma; a photo of then President Ronald Reagan still hanging on a wall. After clearing the room, Richard saw something that nearly made him cry with pride. Folded neatly, an American flag that had been removed from a locked vault in the basement sat waiting to be flown again. Moving over to it, he noticed a hand-written note and read it aloud.
"Marines, take care of it. For those of us that were here, it means a lot. For those of you who enter Kabul, it could mean a lot to you. Semper Fi. We Kabul Marines endured as I’m sure you will. Think of us as needed."
"Ooo Raa." someone said quietly.
"Alright, split by teams and begin your sweep! Move!" he ordered.
After securing the building, his squad got the detail of sweeping up the floors and moving trash out. They piled up dirt, dust, and broken glass around the floor. Some time later, Richard stood outside the building when that same American Flag was once more raised to fly in the cold Afghan wind.
Jack stood as Corporal of the Watch at the Embassy in Kabul, having flown into Kandahar the previous December, and then deployed with nearly eighty other Marines to secure the embassy in preparation for its re-opening. He saw Richard arrive with the Ambassador, his half-smile the only outward sign of seeing of his oldest friend who he hadn't seen since August two years earlier when he and Erica lost their second child and the hope of having any more. He immediately went back to his duty, seeing to it that all military IDs were checked and re-checked.
Hours later, Jack was finally relieved and took some time to write his letter home. Setting it aside among his personal effects to mail later when he was somewhere more hospitable, he set out to find Richard. Walking the halls of the almost empty building, he saw something that nearly made him laugh out loud. Richard was pushing a broom down the hall, making another sweep of dirt and dust that had accumulated over the many years. "What's the matter, Sergeant? Couldn't find any Snuffies to do that for you?"
Richard knew who was asking before he even looked up. Pursing his lips and coming to a sudden halt, he slowly raised his head. "Jack, you son of a..."
"Ah!" he interrupted as he leaned against a wall. "No salt on duty, Sergeant!"
Leaning the broom against a wall so it wouldn't fall over, he slowly walked up to Jack. "I could always get you to do it, Corporal!"
"Not a chance, Rich!" he smiled his half-smile. "I'm off duty... and not even in your chain!" He pushed off from the wall and stood in front of Richard. "So... what's up?"
Richard smiled and wrapped his brother-in-law in a tight hug, each slapping the other on the back. "God! It's good to see you, Jack! How did you end up here?"
"I got here first, slowpoke!" Jack retorted. "I'm with the twenty-sixth MEU. We took Kandahar and then about eighty of us were ordered here to secure the place before you showed up doing babysitting duty!"
"Oh, you think you got it so hard?" Richard retorted. "You guys are shipping out soon! We're gonna be stuck here for months!"
The two started walking back down the hallway together. "Oh, yeah! Hard duty! Sitting cushy behind metal doors and enough wire and emplacements to guard Fort Knox! Can't the Embassy Guard do your job?" The two happily bantered back and forth for a while before Jack asked, "So when do you go off duty?"
"I've been off for an hour!" Richard laughed. "I got bored and I wanted to help get this place ready... so..."
"So you decided to pilot a push-broom? Wow!" Jack laughed. "Come on! I'll introduce you to some of the guys!"
Two hours later, they were both in the back of a HUMVEE laughing as they recalled various stories from their childhood. On a lark, they'd decided to volunteer for vehicular patrol around the area near the Embassy, along with two members of Jack's unit, just so they could spend more time together. The sun had set by the time they pulled out, making the cold of winter bite a little harder. Richard found himself wishing that, for just a few minutes, he could be back in the hot HUMVEE he'd been in several hours earlier.
"Damn, it gets cold out here at night fast!" Jack commented to nobody in particular. "Not like The Sandbox. Remember that, Rich?"
He nodded and chuckled. "Yeah! Hot as hell and twice as unfriendly!"
"So, did Hathaway go back in, too?" Jack asked after a lull.
He nodded and looked away. "Yeah. She got sent to Miramar. Lucky girl!"
At that, Jack poked his head up. "Miramar? MWS-three-seven-three?"
"Yep." Richard nodded. "She got a nice and safe stateside assignment fixing generators while we're busting our rumps here!"
"Don't count her lucky yet, Rich." Jack shook his head. "I heard they may be deployed to Bagram later this year! Security cleared a Lieutenant from there to go check out the field and see if they can use Harriers there."
"Bagram? That old Soviet airfield?" Richard balked. "Jack! That's right on the edge of controlled territory! You sure?"
He nodded. "Positive. Man, Jenny'll go ape shit if they deploy there! Oh! Heather! Man, her husband, brother-in-law, and Maid-of-Honor all deployed at the same time? She'll be the one needing a shrink!" Pausing a moment as he saw the worry on Richard's face, he changed directions and tried to set his best friend's mind at ease. "Of course they may not deploy there. From what I hear the place is a disaster area. The runway's so cracked they're thinking of using it as an example of how not to build an airfield!"
Laughing briefly, the two looked at each other silently before Jack broke it. "How's Heather and Faith? Heard anything from them since you shipped?"
Richard nodded his head as the HUMVEE turned a corner sharply and sent them both leaning to one side. Recovering, he tried to answer again. "Yeah, they're fine, just miss me. Heather took a two-year sabbatical. Faith asked a few ticklish questions about where I was going and when I'd be back. Damn, but if that kid didn't make me almost change my mind! She was so cute and sad when I told her I wouldn't be back for her fourth birthday!"
His best friend nodded in understanding. "Same thing with Eric! He's quiet for a three-year-old boy, though! I remember raising hell when I was his age! Playing in the mud, running through the yard yelling at the top of my lungs! But not Eric. No, he'd rather play in his sandbox or do other things with his girlfriend!"
"Girlfriend?" Richard balked. "At three?"
"What can I say, Rich!" Jack grinned. "He takes after his old man! That same charming power over the ladies! Poor little girl didn't stand a chance, what with my charm mixed with Erica's good looks! But yeah, seriously his best friend's this girl named April that lives down our street. Those two are nearly inseparable! They glommed onto each other about a year ago. See, she lives about halfway between our house and Dad's place, so every time we'd walk by, Eric would have to stop and play with her for a minute or two. He does everything with her now!"
"Dad's place? I thought Mom was talking about moving back in?"
"Yeah, well as far as I'm concerned, the old witch doesn't count!"
"I thought you and Mom buried the hatchet?"
"I did, but she's still trying to bury it in our marriage!" Jack huffed. "When Erica got that ectopic pregnancy, she goes and blames me for it! Like it's my fault Erica and I can't have any more kids! We're more torn up over it than she is! She hardly even tries to see Eric anymore! Dad's over every weekend for Sunday dinner, though."
Shaking his head, Richard looked out a window at the few lights they could see. "I'm sorry, Jack. Mom took Heather's loss badly, too. She blamed the surgeon that did her C-section for a while, but when Heather stood up to her about it, she let it go. Maybe it was just too much for her when Erica couldn't have any more kids, either. I dunno. Maybe you're right. I still can't believe she lost her shit over Brooke and Jenny the way she did!"
"Ah!" Jack waved his hand dismissively. "Makes no difference to me. I'm used to her hating me, but you shoulda heard her, Rich! She thinks God is punishing all of us because we're accepting of Jenny and Brooke! What galls me though is how she takes it out on Eric by avoiding him. Poor kid! As bad as she ever was to me, she's still his grandma! He should be dropping by her and Dad's place seven days a week for cookies! Instead he gets a grandma with a chocolate chip on her shoulder!"
Richard was about to comment on how lame Jack's joke was, but he never got the chance.
TO: Erica Dunning - Newport Beach, California It is with a heavy heart that I regret to inform you that your husband, Lance Corporal Jack Dunning, was killed yesterday in an attack on a patrol vehicle protecting the American Embassy in Kabul, Afghanistan. Corporal Dunning distinguished himself by volunteering for the duty. I know this will come as little comfort to you in this time of grief, but I took the time to review his record before sending you this letter. Your husband was the epitome of what it means to be a Marine. He served with distinction in the Gulf War, returning home to serve at Alameda NAS where he retired in June of '96. His reserve status had ended more than a year before he volunteered once more to fight for his country at its greatest time of need. It takes a special kind of man to twice put his life on the line for his country, and I am saddened that he paid The Last Full Measure to ensure that you and his son would never know fear from an enemy aggressor again. While it is not my responsibility to do so, I also wanted to advise you that Sergeant Richard Hargrave, who I have come to learn is your brother, was in the vehicle when the improvised explosive device was set off, killing both men instantly. You will be receiving another letter of condolence soon from his Commanding Officer. Words cannot express my sympathies or the depth of sorrow this single act of hate has wrought on you and your family. Rest assured that my command will do whatever it takes to see to it that the people responsible are brought to swift and final justice. Your husband's personal effects will be returned to you as soon as feasible. Due to the nature of their deaths, two empty caskets will be flown back to be interned in Arlington National Cemetery for their final rest. May God grant you the strength and perseverance necessary to see this time of sorrow pass. Col. Andrew P. Frick C.O. 26th MEU
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
CAUTION - Highly Emotional Content
--
I didn't hear about Jack or Rich until I'd been deployed to Bagram for over six months. When they extended our deployment another six, we were given ten-day Leaves. Mine came up first in rotation, so I got to fly back to Guam where I called Jenny as soon as I could get off base. She told me and I dug up the details after they were already buried and gone. Heather got a letter from Rich's CO that he'd been killed while volunteering for picket duty, but he didn't know about the association between Rich and Jack, so Heather didn't find out about his death until she called to break the news to Erica. They met up at Arlington and it was the last time any of us in New Hampshire would see any of the California families again. Jenny was there to represent me as a 'friend of the family'. No one ever knew about us while I was serving. I made sure it never showed and Jenny was a rock! She passed the time I was gone with Heather, Faith, her folks, and a promise. After the funeral, everyone just stopped communicating. It... it was like their deaths killed more than their bodies. It killed their families. Last I ever heard from Erica was a Christmas card from her that she must have sent before she got the letter about Jack, but I didn't even know about that until almost two years later when I came home. After so much time and pain, I just couldn't bring myself to call or write her. When Erica finally wrote Heather, and she wrote back, none of us knew just how important those letters would become or how much they would change all our lives.
---
Erica sat at the table as she tried to hand write the letter to Heather. They hadn't communicated since the funeral over eight years earlier, and sitting there, she found it hard to know where to begin. She stared at the salutation with vast blank space beneath it, waiting for words of regret and sorrow.
Unable to focus, she looked out the window to the front yard and smiled. Eric and April were sitting on the curb out in front of her house, Erica sure her eleven-year-old was telling his young friend a story that the two would act out together sometime; praying that he might be blissfully unaware of the upheaval that was sure to await after writing and sending her letter. She loved listening to the playful duo and the elaborate stories the two children made up together in their gentle way with one another. It was the one bright spot in her life of heartache since Jack's death.
She just sat there watching them until the two got up and started walking to April's house before turning back to her letter. Finally knowing what to say, she began scratching out the long overdue letter to the woman who'd been her Maid of Honor and so much more, but was unable to finish it for months.
Heather went into the library to read the letter her sister-in-law sent her the month before, having put off reading it for fear of what it might say after so long a time apart. As she began, her worst fears were realized as her hopes of reconciliation with that lost branch of her family faded into tears. Unable to believe what she was reading, she started again.
Dear Heather,
I know it's been a long time since we've spoken. I think it's just been too hard for either of us to breach the pain of our mutual losses. Even as I write this, my heart aches for Jack and Richie, begging for the chance to see them just one more time. It seems that day will come for me very soon.
I'm sorry that it took this to reach out to you, to bridge the gap that grew out of their deaths, but I've been diagnosed with leukemia. It's aggressive and isn't responding to treatment, so I was admitted to the hospital for radical radiation treatment and chemotherapy in an attempt to halt its spread. I have less than a one-percent chance of survival and only been given two months, at best. I tried writing when I was admitted, but it was just too hard.
I hope life has been better for you these last eight years. Do you still have your practice? I kept busy doing HR consulting; writing Conflict Resolution guidelines for companies all over the western states. Eric would stay with a friend of his, the Stone family, on the occasions I was away, which is where he's staying now. I don't know if you were ever told about my parents. I'm sorry I never did so myself. They were killed February of last year when their car was hit by a drunk driver. He was a Frenchman who didn't have a license or insurance and had been living here illegally for over ten years.
Mom did finally learn to respect Jack before she died. She once told me she thought he was going to 'ruin her girl's life' and drag me down into poverty and misery. I think it wasn't until she saw me crying when they handed me Jack's flag that it dawned on her just how happy he'd always made me. Once he was gone, she could see what I was without him... destitute and void.
All I have left of Jack now is Eric. One thing I regret most in life is that we've been so far apart and so distant with one another that he never has had a chance to know his family and the best friends I ever had... you, Faith, and Brooke. I would like to correct that mistake.
I know it's asking a lot, but if the doctors are right, soon Eric will have no one left to love him. I don't want to see him end up in foster care. It would break poor Jack's heart... and mine. So I am asking, please. Would you take care of him for us once I'm gone to be with Jack and Richie? You and Faith may soon be the only family he has left in the world.
I miss you and Brooke so much and have done so for years, but it was always just too hard to try and reach out after so much time and pain. I'd thought briefly about maybe moving nearer to you two once Jack was gone, but Mom and Dad needed Eric and I close with Richie gone. I was thinking about it again after they died, but only days after the accident I was diagnosed and too busy fighting for my life. Pulling up roots and moving across the country at that time was just unthinkable. I hope you can forgive me for not telling you sooner about Mom and Dad... or me... or Eric... or any of the thousands of things we've missed about each other's lives over the years.
Since I'm sending this to you, I wanted to also tell you something else. About a month after the funeral at Arlington, I got a letter from Jack. He'd written it hours before he and Richie were killed and hadn't even had a chance to mail it before they died. I included a copy of it with this letter so you can get a glimpse at their final hours, along with a copy of the letter I got from Jack's Commanding Officer.
I think I'll take Eric and his friend to the beach tomorrow. I should probably be getting ready with making final arrangements and all, but I'm going to take Jack's advice from his last letter to me instead.
All my love to you, Faith, Brooke, and all,
Erica Dunning
Heather's eyes burned with tears that rained down her cheeks. To go so long without news and then to suddenly be handed so much sadness and loss all at once, she was sorely tempted to take the letter to the fireplace in the living room and throw it in; hoping to burn away the pain and perhaps someday forget she'd ever even gotten it. She knew though that it was impossible. There was an innocent life involved that would forever suffer the fallout of such a callous act of selfishness.
Jack and Erica's child.
Putting down Erica's letter, she looked at the copy of the letter her sister-in-law had gotten from Jack's Commanding Officer informing her of Jack and Richard's simultaneous deaths. Turning at last to the final letter Erica had gotten from Jack, she read it slowly and carefully, feeling a chill run down her spine at the words that came so close to her husband and friends' last moments on Earth.
My Dearest Buttons,
Hello from Kabul! Finally got a chance to write you. We've been busy for what seems like forever! My unit got tapped to secure the old abandoned Embassy building here. Lucky us! We've been guarding it for over a month and guess who I see rolling up this morning but Rich! His unit is taking over so we can get shipped out.
You asked me to be careful and I told you I wouldn't. I'll be a ruthless killer and bury our enemies in their own ashes and drown them in their own blood. We did that back at Kandahar. Took a lot of POWs too, but most of them ran or died. I'm still not going to be careful. The minute you do, start looking over your shoulder and listening for the bullet with your name on it, that's the minute your card is punched. I have to live every day here as though it's my last, making sure the threat is eliminated so I can survive to come home to you and Eric.
That's about all. Oh, there's a whole lot more, but nothing I can put in this letter. Remember that every day is your last, too! Don't be afraid to do things without me! Live! Have fun! Take Eric to Disneyland or the beach! Don't sit around pining for me to come home! If you're too scared to live, you'll die long before your body catches up with you.
They say we'll be home for Liberty by the end of the year at the latest, maybe as soon as this summer if things go well on this end. But don't wait on me! Live, have fun, and do it with me there in your heart! I want to hear all about it too, so do it and then write me so I can join you! Got that Buttons?
I think I'll go track Rich down and see if I can't convince him to volunteer for patrol with me. Give us a chance to catch up. That boy still needs me!
Love you and still trying to deserve your love,
Your Jack
Once more brought to tears with the memory of Jack's vibrant zest for life, Heather ached to have that in her life again. Without a second thought, she picked up a pen and stationary and began to write Erica back.
Dearest Erica,
I hardly know where to begin. I have to admit that when I first read about you not telling me about Richard's parents I was upset, but I understand that you've been dealing with something I am too terrified to even contemplate, leaving my Faith alone. Of course I will take care of Eric if the need should arise, but I will pray and ask God to see to it that, if it's His will, you recover fully and have many more years with him.
Speaking of more years, once you are feeling better, I would like to invite you both out to Hargrave House. To stay, if you like. Richard loved this place we made our home! In the years before he went back into the service, he spent more time than I can count restoring this place to almost the same as the day it was built. The rest of his time he spent with Faith; taking care of her and teaching her to walk, talk, and question everything! Don't worry about the cost. I'll take care of that just for the chance to see you again and give Faith and Eric the chance to know one another. They have so little family left that they need to keep who they have closer.
Gregory, my old butler, died of heart failure shortly before we moved out of Moore Estates. I'd saved him a pension that he refused to take and retire, so I donated it in his name to the Heart Association. Before he died, he found his own replacement, Fredrick. I'll have to admit, sometimes I don't know what I'd do without him. He seems to be able to do everything Gregory did, plus the work the groundskeepers used to do!
Theresa is still with me. I started calling her Cook after Richard wasn't here to keep doing it! Every time it's a little reminder that he is still here, that his spirit still lives in this house. She refuses to retire or take the pension I saved for her, either! She says she wasn't built for the easy life and would hate not having a menu for five or more to prepare for! Personally, I think she just would miss us. I know we would miss her.
The only other member of the household that moved with us is Franchesca, the junior maid. She was going to stay in Concord with her fiancé, but she caught him cheating and moved with us instead. She doesn't smile at much anymore, which is a shame because she used to be so happy all the time.
Brooke and Jenny are married now. They got married last year when New Hampshire changed their laws. I can almost hear Jack ranting about how government has no right to get involved in private matters! I know he would have been proud to stand up for Brooke, and I know you had wanted to be her Matron of Honor, but the letter she wrote you was never answered, so I stood in your place. I'm guessing that was about the time you were dealing with your parent's death and the news of your illness.
I would like to share with you something I never got to tell Richard. Shortly after he was deployed, a doctor friend of mine came to me and told me about a procedure that would make me able to bear children again. I underwent the operation two months before they were killed. I was going to surprise him when he got back. Now it's just an empty reminder of what we never got to have; the large family he'd always wanted.
I hope this letter finds you healthy and strong. All my best to you and Eric.
Love,
Heather
Erica read the letter in her hospital bed, machines pumping her full of toxins to try and stop the cancer that was killing her. She wept when she finished it, knowing the heartbreak of things undone. Later she was back in her room recovering, penning her final reply to the family she'd loved so much and lost so long ago.
Dearest Heather,
Thank you for writing back. I was worried that on seeing a letter from me after so long that you just destroyed it unread. I wouldn't have blamed you.
I'm so glad to hear about all the happiness that you've managed to make for yourselves. I was sorry to hear about Franchesca's heartbreak. I remember her coming in to make the beds a few times and how cheery and fresh she seemed, taking pride in her work and never letting the daily grind wear down her spirit. It's a shame that her love's betrayal changed her so much.
Things are not going as well for me here. The radiation isn't working and the chemotherapy isn't slowing down the cancer. I'm afraid that very soon, within a matter of weeks now, it's His will that I'll leave this world and join Richie... and my Jack... after so many lonely years without his smile. I'll be OK though. Just knowing that Eric will be with family who loves him will be enough for me to stop worrying and just let go of what I cannot change.
I've done my best to live every day as though it's my last, as Jack asked me to. The only thing I think he'd be disappointed about is that I never looked for love again. I know he would have wanted me to move on, but nobody could ever replace the missing half of my heart and soul. So I kept busy with work I enjoyed and spent time with Eric cooking, cleaning, going to the park, reading together, and making his life as full of love and happiness as if Jack were here to do them with me.
I do worry about Eric sometimes. He's so quiet and shy, and so very unlike the boys he goes to school with. I think that not having Jack around has made him miss the lessons of how to be a man, so he has a hard time relating to his peers. He had Dad until last year, but I guess that wasn't enough. Instead he spends his time inventing stories and playing with the girls in his classes as they're more accepting of his gentle nature.
The only thing I was worried about him living with you is that he would have you, Faith, and Brooke, but no male role models he could look up to. I'm glad that you still have a man in the house, even if he is only your butler. I know that to you that means he's almost as close as family, so I can set my heart at ease on that issue as well.
I truly am sorry about not responding to Brooke. I would have been honored to stand up for her and Jenny, and I'm happy to know they're still together. Thank you for stepping in when I couldn't. Once you reminded me about her letter, I remembered it came the same day I got the lab results back from my biopsy. I never even opened it, I was so distraught. Since it was from Brooke and not you, I was certain it was just more bad news, that you or Faith had died, so I destroyed it; unable to face whatever horrible news Brooke had written to tell me. Please extend both my apologies and congratulations to them both. I'm so happy they were finally able to join together as one.
Words cannot express how sorry I am that had Richie returned home you two could have grown your family as you both so badly desired. I fear that now that you know it was Jack that convinced Richie to go on that patrol with him that you'll blame him for the loss of not only your husband, but also the loss of the children that you could have had with him. When I had to have my hysterectomy, Jack and I were beyond devastated, not just for the loss of our future children, but the poor baby that died inside me that day. So I know what it meant to you to have that hope rekindled. It seems that it was just not meant to be.
I'm sorry that I'll have to decline your request to come out to see you. I'm sure it's wonderful, unfortunately, my immune system is so weak from the attempts to halt the cancer that traveling is out of the question. I will take consolation that Eric will see it soon enough for the both of us.
I'm very tired from my last round of chemotherapy, so I'll have to close here. The results were no better than last time though, so it will be my last. No more radiation, no more toxins. I'm too tired to keep fighting a hopeless battle. If it were even helping a little, I'd keep trying, but it just seems a waste of effort. Know that I still love you so very much, miss you terribly, and think of you often. I'll write more if and when I can.
Love Always,
Erica
Sitting in the library, once more reading a letter from her husband's sister, Heather wanted to cry, the news hurt so badly. All too soon three of the four people she'd loved as a young woman would be gone, leaving her alone.
Knowing she had to keep up a stoic and strong appearance for Faith's sake, she swallowed her pain and focused on the task at hand, whatever that might be at the moment. Once begun though, the habit was difficult to turn off and came off to those around her as an attitude of being much too proper, cold, and aloof.
Needing time to process the situation, Heather didn't replay right away. She knew time was short for her failing sister-in-law, but even just thinking about it would cause her to nearly break down and sob. After a week of putting it off, she knew that she had to respond before it was too late. Sequestering herself in the library once more, she sat down with pen and paper and wrote out her last words to Erica.
My Dear Sister Erica,
I don't know why I didn't start calling you that long ago, for that is what you are... my sister... the one I always wanted and never got to have. Sister of my heart and in fact. Knowing you will soon be gone breaks my heart over the time lost to us that we could have been closer, too late to make up for it.
More than anything, I wish I could come see you, but Faith has a bad flu and right now she needs me. It is tearing me up inside knowing that at this time when you need me the most, I can't even come to say goodbye. I just can't in good conscience leave her. I'm sure Franchesca would take good care of her, but I could never live with myself if something happened to her while I was off trying to assuage my own guilty conscience over not coming to see you before now. I can't be that selfish, no matter how badly I want to see you.
I do understand why you never moved on to find love again. It is much the same with me. I've no shortage of admirers, but none of them are Richard. I guess nobody ever will be. True love is hard to find. Finding it twice in one lifetime is too much to ask, and I wouldn't want it with anyone else, anyway. Every moment would be a reminder of what I'd lost.
Brooke and Jenny don't know about your condition yet. I just don't know how to tell them without breaking down myself. I've told Faith and the rest of the household as they needed to know that Eric will be coming to live with us soon. It's a bittersweet thought, knowing that soon I'll have Jack's son here living with us, but at the most terrible cost. Losing you.
Regarding Eric, losing his father at such a young age could definitely explain his difficulty getting along with other boys. Fredrick is a good man, almost like a brother to me, and can help Eric learn how to become one himself. We also have social events, church groups, and there are plenty of boys his age at the school Faith attends. I promise I'll help him however I can to become a man just as full of life as Jack always was.
Thank you for your words of comfort regarding my constant reminder of just how much Richard and I lost the day he died. I know you of all people can appreciate the loss. Rest assured that I don't blame Jack for Richard's death, nor for my own monthly torment. Jack had no way of knowing that going on that patrol would cost him and Richard their lives, and I can't be angry at him for wanting to spend time with Richard. They loved each other as more than just friends, but as brothers and life-long companions.
Richard had only one regret in life, and that was moving so very far from you and Jack. If anything, I feel it is my fault that they died. If I had been willing to give up my practice and move back to California, they wouldn't have been so desperate to spend time together that they volunteered for that patrol. I know it's irrational, but feelings usually are.
I have reached out to Social Services there in Orange County to advise them of your failing health and my relationship to Eric. They let me know that at the moment, the Stone family has custody per your written consent. However, they are willing to relinquish custody when the time comes, so Eric will be sent out here to live with me then.
Since I don't have contact information for them, Social Services contacted them for me to advise that I will soon be sending them airfare and traveling expenses for Eric to join us here, however long he needs to stay close to you in this time you have left together. I don't want to take him away and leave you there to face the end alone. As soon as Faith's health improves enough to travel, she and I will come out to see you and stay with you until the end, however long that takes.
I still pray every night for the miracle to come that will spare your life and let us reunite the two branches of our family after so long apart.
Love and Hope,
Your Sister, Heather
Erica read the last letter from Heather with great difficulty. Her doctors had stopped her treatments weeks ago and now were just focused on making her as comfortable as possible in her final hours. She didn't have the strength to pen a reply to her sister, even though she desperately wanted to; if for no other reason than to express how much she loved her as the sister she never had and the sorrow that they wouldn't see each other ever again in this life.
She had just put the letter aside when she heard the knock on her doorway.
"Hey, Mom! Looking beautiful as always! Coming home today?" her child chirped.
She tried to smile at Eric, but her strength was ebbing fast. Her usual reply of 'Thank you, Eric! I bet I'm home by tomorrow!' was just false hope, so today she just sadly shook her head. "No, sweetie."
Pausing as the child's smile fell like sunset, Eric was crestfallen. "No, Mom! You're supposed to say..."
She coughed painfully, and simply reached her hand out to her only child. "I'm sorry, sweetie! I'm afraid today I'll be going Home to be with your father." Her eyes drifted away aimlessly. "My Jack!" she almost whispered, her heart breaking for him just one more time.
Link: Every Day Is Your Last Title Page and Description
--
Sitting in Erica's office reading the printed copy of the finished manuscript, Brooke flipped through the final pages as she read the words, tears filling her eyes at the remembered heartbreak of losing her best friends. Wiping them away, she finally put down the papers.
"Wow!" she exhaled heavily. "That was..." She looked over at her niece and shook her head. "I... I can't believe it! You got all this from those tapes you recorded of me? Erica! Some of those lines were almost verbatim, and I don't mean the ones I told you! How..." Her voice trailed off as she looked at Jack's daughter, unable to formulate the words.
"I listened to your stories over and over, picturing them in my mind." Erica shrugged modestly. "The description and dialog just sort of flowed out from everything you told me about them. It just seemed... natural." She chuckled lightly. "I also did a whole lot of research! Learning Marine Corps slang took months! Did I get it right?"
Biting her lip while she considered the question, Brooke shrugged. "A little heavy at times, but not very noticeably. Some places it shows that you never served, but not so terribly that it's off-putting. I think it shows you wanted to re-create the feeling of it out of respect, not just to sound right."
Sighing, Erica nodded. "I could trim it up if you tell me where. I want this to be as perfect as it can be, Aunt Brooke."
"No." she replied. "Thank you for the compliment, thinking I could improve on what you've done here, but it really does work as a story. Anything more authentic would come off as sounding too real. See?" She flipped back to the beginning chapters. "I love the way you depicted Jack as a kid! It's just the way I always imagined him! I don't know if he was really like that, but I think it's probably pretty close. I guess the only way to know would be to seek out people that were there and ask them."
"I did." Erica said as she stood and slowly paced her office. "I did a bit of searching, using the detective agency that found April for me. Wendy Evans seems to have changed her name or moved or both. I found copies of their Yearbook for the class of eighty-nine, so I know what she looked like, but I couldn't locate her, so..." She shrugged helplessly as she sat down behind her desk.
"Huh." Brooke said as she looked off in the distance. "Well, I can tell you for certain that there was somebody who did those things. The look on Rich's face when he would mention her was authentically loathing."
Nodding in acceptance, Erica sat up. "Unfortunately, there weren't enough details or names of other people that could give an honest account to dig much. I did find Uncle Richard's high school football coach and interviewed him briefly. He was able to corroborate the events that took place on the field after the locker incident, but he never really knew my father very well, other than just as, the way he put it, 'the skinny kid that always hung around with Rich'. He gave me a little more insight into Uncle Richard as a kid, but no one seems to remember much about my father, except you and Mamma. The only ones to even remember him were teachers, and even then only vaguely."
Flipping through the chapters, Brooke stopped and laughed lightly at Erica's description of her own parents' wedding day. "How on earth did you get all the details of that day? I only gave you a rough idea of what we did!"
"Lots of research!" she answered with a tired laugh. "That's why this took so long. I wanted to make sure I got as many details right as I could. I looked up weather on specific dates, made sure I had the right day of the week, when was sunrise and sunset for each location and scene, tons of public records, some old maps, online databases of certain events... you know, research! The rest just came from the natural evolution of the characters. There was also the bartender at the club you went to. I found him, even though the club isn't there anymore. Heck, the casino it was in isn't even there anymore! He remembered you five, though. Vividly!"
She stood and placed the manuscript on Erica's desk. "Well, I don't think you could have done it better if you were there!" She sat back down and shook her head. "OK, I have to ask. How could you write that scene about Jack and Erica's first time? I mean, they're your parents! Wasn't that a little..."
"...creepy?" Erica finished for her. "Yeah, only a lot! But the story wouldn't flow right without it. I tried getting around it with a sort of 'fade to black' writing style, but it felt rushed and failed to capture their depth of feeling for one another. So I just pretended they were only characters in my head and nothing more. The rest was just imagining the natural flow of events and trying not to think about it too much!"
Laughing, Brooke clapped her hands together. "Well, you've got a stronger stomach than I do! I don't think I could write that about my parents!"
Erica laughed with her for a moment before getting serious once more. "So then, I told you when I asked you to help me with this that if you didn't think it was good enough that I wouldn't publish it, just keep it as a family record." Pausing as she closed her eyes and took in a breath, she let it out and asked. "What do you think? Is it good enough?"
Brooke looked away in thought. "I... I don't know, Erica. It's good, don't get me wrong! I'm just..." She sighed as she tried to express her concerns. "I just don't want people that were there to think it's trying to make them look bad, or telling about their lives without asking, you know?"
Sitting behind her desk, Erica flipped through the pages. "Well, I can change the names, make sure nobody is mentioned by their real name. That and publishing it as fiction with notation that it is a work of fiction that is only based on stories told second-hand, yadda, yadda, legalese and all. Would it be alright then?"
Sighing, she looked at Erica. "I suppose so. I guess it would be good to know that at least this much of Jack and Rich would live beyond them; that maybe someone might be helped by the stories of their lives." She paused a moment before nodding. "Yeah, I think they would like that! Especially Jack! God! His ego must be bursting at the thought of it!"
"Well then," Erica said standing and picking up the papers. "I'll send it to final edit and put it out there! If people like it... or not... at least I know I did the best I could. I... I also know that now a little bit of my father and uncle lives in my mind. Now I understand what Mom meant when she said there were so many stories about him that she never got to tell me. It was one of her biggest regrets." She looked at Brooke wistfully. "Thank you for helping me put at least some of that to rest for her!"
Brooke stood and walked around the desk to hug her best friend's daughter. "It was my pleasure, Erica!" Holding it a moment, she pulled away to look at her watch. "Well, I think I need to be getting home soon. Jenny will skin me alive if I'm not there for dinner! I've been gone all weekend and she is not happy about it, but I think she understands. She never got much of a chance to know Jack or your mom, just those few days and the month after your mom had her hysterectomy, but she knows how important Jack was to me."
"Just tell her you were spending some time with Jack and Rich for a while." Erica offered. "I mean, from a certain point of view, you were!"
"Yeah..." she mused. "I guess I was!" Clearing her throat and holding her tears back, she stepped back toward the door. "Oh, give my best to the family for me?"
"I will, Aunt Brooke!" Erica answered dutifully.
"Oh! If you hear from that cousin of yours, tell her to call me sometime? Aunts and godmothers worry! I need to know she's OK."
"Yes, Aunt Brooke!" Erica replied again. "I'll make sure to call more, too!"
Blowing her honorary niece a kiss, Brooke turned and walked out the office door. Making her way out to the street, she climbed into her car and started it, still reminiscing about the years of happiness, love, sadness, fun, tears, laughter, and worry she'd shared with the two men who'd been, and always would be, her best friends. Pulling away from the curb slowly, she drove home almost without thought, guided simply by the desire to be back home in Jenny's arms where she belonged.
Absently, her thoughts wandered. I wonder if Jenny would still like a baby? After all, she's only forty-three, and I'm the same age Jack's parents were when he was born!
--
If you have enjoyed this story, I would ask that you pay a small amount for the entertainment it has provided you. Nothing worthwhile in life is free. A one-time donation of $5 to the site makes it cost less than most paperbacks. Even if you regularly donate, this is the price I ask you to pay to see to it that this and stories like it can remain available.
Thank you and may God bless,
Roberta Elder